summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 16:25:14 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 16:25:14 -0800
commit9888f4f1591b93043d183d629661c4a4d6348aed (patch)
tree2cdf587c501e1e486ccc5b1e5a63c353ea018167
parent31225b4319f4bba3a6507795cf1abb75faaf2a72 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/66358-0.txt8243
-rw-r--r--old/66358-0.zipbin180557 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h.zipbin4297754 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/66358-h.htm11106
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/cover.jpgbin258889 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_001.jpgbin260105 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_034.jpgbin255153 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_074.jpgbin260770 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_094.jpgbin258619 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_200.jpgbin256739 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_220.jpgbin260853 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_230.jpgbin257378 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_240.jpgbin259945 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_250.jpgbin256655 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_260.jpgbin251716 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_276.jpgbin257463 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_280.jpgbin257662 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_290.jpgbin254403 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_304.jpgbin256875 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_310.jpgbin256843 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66358-h/images/i_318.jpgbin259942 -> 0 bytes
24 files changed, 17 insertions, 19349 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4a6758b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #66358 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/66358)
diff --git a/old/66358-0.txt b/old/66358-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 5833651..0000000
--- a/old/66358-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8243 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rasputin and the Russian Revolution, by
-Princess Catherine Radziwill
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Rasputin and the Russian Revolution
-
-Author: Princess Catherine Radziwill
-
-Release Date: September 21, 2021 [eBook #66358]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Charlie Howard and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team
- at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
- generously made available by The Internet Archive/American
- Libraries.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RASPUTIN AND THE RUSSIAN
-REVOLUTION ***
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s Note: Italic text is enclosed in _underscores._
-
-
-
-
-RASPUTIN AND THE RUSSIAN REVOLUTION
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Photo by Paul Thompson_
-
-GREGORY RASPUTIN
-
-“The Black Monk of Russia”]
-
-
-
-
- RASPUTIN
- AND THE RUSSIAN REVOLUTION
-
- BY
-
- PRINCESS CATHERINE RADZIWILL
- (COUNT PAUL VASSILI)
-
- AUTHOR OF
- “BEHIND THE VEIL AT THE RUSSIAN COURT,”
- “GERMANY UNDER THREE EMPERORS,”
- ETC.
-
-
- ILLUSTRATED
-
-
- NEW YORK: JOHN LANE COMPANY
- LONDON: JOHN LANE, THE BODLEY HEAD
- MCMXVIII
-
-
-
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1917,
- BY PUBLIC LEDGER COMPANY
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1918,
- BY JOHN LANE COMPANY
-
-
- Press of
- J. J. Little & Ives Company
- New York, U. S. A.
-
-
-
-
-TO
-
-MONSIEUR JEAN FINOT
-
-_Editor of the “Revue”_
-
-
-_My dear Mr. Finot:_--
-
-_Allow me to offer you this little book, which may remind you of the
-many conversations we have had together, and of the many letters which
-we have exchanged. In doing so, I am fulfilling one of the pleasantest
-of duties and trying to express to you all the gratitude which I feel
-towards you. Without your kind help, and without your advice, I would
-never have had the courage to take a pen in my hand, and all the small
-success I may have had in my literary career is entirely due to you,
-and to the constant encouragement which you have always given to me,
-and which I shall never forget, just as I shall always remember that it
-was in the “Revue” that the first article I ever published appeared.
-Permit me to-day to thank you from the bottom of my heart, and believe
-me to be,_
-
- _Always yours most affectionately,
- Catherine Radziwill
- (Catherine Kolb-Danvin)_
-
-
-
-
-PUBLISHERS FOREWORD
-
-
-When the book called “Behind the Veil at the Russian Court” was
-published the Romanoff’s were reigning and, considering the fact
-that she was living in Russia at the time, the author of it, had her
-identity become known, would have risked being subjected to grave
-annoyances, and even being sent to that distant Siberia where Nicholas
-II is at present exiled. It was therefore deemed advisable to produce
-that work as a posthumous one, and “Count Paul Vassili” was represented
-as having died before the publication of “his” Memoirs. This however
-was not the case, because on the contrary “he” went on collecting
-information as to all that was taking place at the Russian Court as
-well as in the whole of Russia, and, consigning this information to
-a diary, “he” went on writing. If one remembers, “Count Vassili”
-distinctly foresaw and prophesied in “his” book most of the things that
-have occurred since it was published. This fact will perhaps give added
-interest to the present account of the Russian Revolution which now
-sees the light of day for the first time. Though devoid of everything
-sensational or scandalous it will prove interesting to those who have
-cared for the other books of “Count Vassili,” for it contains nothing
-but the truth, and has been compiled chiefly out of the narrations
-of the principal personages connected in some way or other with the
-Russian Revolution. The facts concerning Rasputin, and the details of
-this man’s extraordinary career, are, we believe, given out now for the
-first time to the American public, which, up to the present moment,
-has been fed on more or less untrue and improbable stories or, rather,
-“fairy tales,” in regard to this famous adventurer. The truth is far
-simpler, but far more human, though humanity does not shine in the best
-colours in its description.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- PAGE
- PART I.--RASPUTIN 13
-
- PART II.--THE GREAT REVOLUTION 191
-
- PART III.--THE RIDDLE OF THE FUTURE 301
-
-
-
-
-ILLUSTRATIONS
-
-
- Gregory Rasputin--“The Black Monk of Russia” _Frontispiece_
-
- PAGE
- The Ex-Czar and His Family 34
-
- Rasputin and His “Court” 74
-
- Rasputin 94
-
- The First Bolsheviki Cabinet 200
-
- The Bolsheviki Headquarters in Petrograd 220
-
- The Bolsheviki General Staff 230
-
- Soldier and Sailor Citizens’ Duma 240
-
- Foreign Minister Leon Trotzky 250
-
- Meeting Addressed by Nikolai Lenine 260
-
- Alexander Kerensky 276
-
- Revolutionary Crowd in Petrograd 280
-
- Bolsheviki Sailors Buried at Moscow 290
-
- Kerensky Inspiring Troops To Support Revolutionary Government 304
-
- Peace Document of Delegates at Brest-Litovsk Conference
- 310
-
- The House at Brest-Litovsk Where Peace Negotiations Between the
- Russian Bolsheviki and the Austrian-Germans Were Conducted 318
-
-
-
-
-PART I
-
-RASPUTIN
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTION
-
-
-This exposé, based on facts which have come to my knowledge, though
-probably far from being complete, aims at depicting the recent state
-of things in Russia, and thus to explain how the great changes which
-have taken place in my country have been rendered possible. A lot of
-exaggerated tales have been put into circulation concerning the Empress
-Alexandra, the part she has played in the perturbations that have
-shaken Russia from one end to another and the extraordinary influence
-which, thanks to her and to her efforts in his behalf, the sinister
-personage called Rasputin came to acquire over public affairs in the
-vast empire reigned over by Nicholas II. for twenty-two years. A good
-many of these tales repose on nothing but imagination, but nevertheless
-it is unfortunately too true that it is to the conduct of the Empress,
-and to the part she attempted to play in the politics of the world,
-that the Romanoffs owe the loss of their throne.
-
-Alexandra Feodorovna has been the evil genius of the dynasty whose head
-she married. Without her it is probable that most of the disasters that
-have overtaken the Russian armies would not have happened, and it is
-certain that the crown which had been worn by Peter the Great and by
-Catherine II. would not have been disgraced. She was totally unfit for
-the position to which chance had raised her, and she never was able
-to understand the character or the needs of the people over which she
-ruled.
-
-Monstrously selfish, she never looked beyond matters purely personal
-to her or to her son, whom she idolized in an absurd manner. She,
-who had been reared in principles of true liberalism, who had had
-in her grandmother, the late Queen Victoria, a perfect example of a
-constitutional sovereign, became from the very first day of her arrival
-in Russia the enemy of every progress, of every attempt to civilise
-the nation which owned her for its Empress. She gave her confidence
-to the most ferocious reactionaries the country possessed. She tried,
-and in a certain degree succeeded, in inspiring in her husband the
-disdain of his people and the determination to uphold an autocratic
-system of government that ought to have been overturned and replaced by
-an enlightened one. Haughty by nature and by temperament, she had an
-unlimited confidence in her own abilities, and especially after she had
-become the mother of the son she had longed for during so many years,
-she came to believe that everything she wished or wanted to do had to
-be done and that her subjects were but her slaves. She had a strong
-will and much imperiousness in her character, and understood admirably
-the weak points in her husband, who became but a puppet in her hands.
-
- * * * * *
-
-She herself was but a plaything in the game of a few unscrupulous
-adventurers who used her for the furtherance of their own ambitious,
-money-grubbing schemes, and who, but for the unexpected events that
-led to the overthrow of the house of Romanoff, would in time have
-betrayed Russia into sullying her fair fame as well as her reputation
-in history.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Rasputin, about whom so much has been said, was but an incident in
-the course of a whole series of facts, all of them more or less
-disgraceful, and none of which had a single extenuating circumstance to
-put forward as an excuse for their perpetration.
-
- * * * * *
-
-He himself was far from being the remarkable individual he has been
-represented by some people, and had he been left alone it is likely
-that even if one had heard about him it would not have been for any
-length of time.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Those who hated him did so chiefly because they had not been able to
-obtain from him what they had wanted, and they applied themselves to
-paint him as much more dangerous than he really was. They did not know
-that he was but the mouthpiece of other people far cleverer and far
-more unscrupulous even than himself, who hid themselves behind him
-and who moved him as they would have done pawns in a game of chess
-according to their personal aims and wants. These people it was who
-nearly brought Russia to the verge of absolute ruin, and they would
-never have been able to rise to the power which they wielded had not
-the Empress lent herself to their schemes. Her absolute belief in the
-merits of the wandering preacher, thanks to his undoubted magnetic
-influence, contrived to get hold of her mind and to persuade her that
-so long as he was at her side nothing evil could befall her or her
-family.
-
-It is not generally known outside of Russia that Alexandra Feodorovna
-despised her husband, and that she made no secret of the fact. She
-considered him as a weak individual, unable to give himself an account
-of what was going on around him, who had to be guided and never left to
-himself. Her flatterers, of whom she had many at a time, had persuaded
-her that she possessed all the genius and most of the qualities of
-Catherine II., and that she ought to follow the example of the latter
-by rallying around her a sufficient number of friends to effect a
-palace revolution which would transform her into the reigning sovereign
-of that Russia which she did not know and whose character she was
-unable to understand. Love for Nicholas II. she had never had, nor
-esteem for him, and from the very first moment of her marriage she had
-affected to treat him as a negligible quantity. But influence over him
-she had taken good care to acquire. She had jealously kept away from
-him all the people from whom he could have heard the truth or who could
-have signalled to him the dangers which his dynasty was running by the
-furtherance of a policy which had become loathsome to the country and
-on account of which the war with Germany had taken such an unexpected
-and dangerous course.
-
-The Empress, like all stupid people, and her stupidity has not been
-denied, even by her best friends, believed that one could rule a nation
-by terror. She, therefore, always interposed herself whenever Nicholas
-II. was induced to adopt a more liberal system of government and urged
-him to subdue by force aspirations it would have been far better for
-him to have encouraged. She had listened to all the representatives of
-that detestable old bureaucratic system which gave to the police the
-sole right to dispose of people’s lives and which relied on Siberia and
-the knout to keep in order an aggrieved country eager to be admitted to
-the circle of civilised European nations.
-
-Without her and without her absurd fears, it is likely that the first
-Duma would not have been dissolved. Without her entreaties, it is
-probable that the troops composing the garrison at St. Petersburg
-would not have been commanded to fire at the peaceful population of
-the capital on that January day when, headed by the priest Gapone, it
-had repaired to the Winter Palace to lay its wrongs before the Czar,
-whom it still worshipped at that time. She was at the bottom of every
-tyrannical action which took place during the reign of Nicholas II. And
-lately she was the moving spirit in the campaign, engineered by the
-friends of Rasputin, to conclude a separate peace with Germany.
-
-In the long intrigue which came to an end by the publication of the
-Manifesto of Pskov, Rasputin undoubtedly played a considerable part,
-but all unconsciously. Those who used him, together with his influence,
-were very careful not to initiate him into their different schemes.
-But they paid him, they fed him, they gave him champagne to drink and
-pretty women to make love to in order to induce him to represent them
-to the Empress as being the only men capable of saving Russia, about
-which she did not care, and her crown, to which she was so attached.
-With Rasputin she never discussed politics, nor did the Emperor. But
-with his friends she talked over every political subject of importance
-to the welfare of the nation, and being convinced that they were the
-men best capable of upholding her interests, she forced them upon her
-husband and compelled him to follow the advice which they gave. She
-could not bear contradiction, and she loved flattery. She was convinced
-that no one was more clever than herself, and she wished to impose her
-views everywhere and upon every occasion.
-
-Few sovereigns have been hated as she has been. In every class of
-society her name was mentioned with execration, and following the
-introduction of Rasputin into her household this aversion which she
-inspired grew to a phenomenal extent. She was openly accused of
-degrading the position which she held and the crown which she wore. In
-every town and village of the empire her conduct came to be discussed
-and her person to be cursed. She was held responsible for all the
-mistakes that were made, for all the blunders which were committed, for
-all the omissions which had been deplored. And when the plot against
-Rasputin came to be engineered it was as much directed against the
-person of Alexandra Feodorovna as against that of her favourite, and it
-was she whom the people aimed to strike through him.
-
-Had she shown some common sense after the murder of a man whom she well
-knew was considered the most dangerous enemy of the Romanoff dynasty
-things might have taken a different course. Though every one was agreed
-as to the necessity of a change in the system of government of Russia,
-though a revolution was considered inevitable, yet no one wished it
-to happen at the moment when it did, and all political parties were
-agreed as to the necessity of postponing it until after the war. But
-the exasperation of the Empress against those who had removed her
-favourite led her to trust even more in those whom he had introduced
-and recommended to her attention. She threw herself with a renewed
-vigour into their schemes, urging her husband to dishonour himself,
-together with his signature, by turning traitor to his allies and to
-his promises. She wanted him to conclude a peace with Germany that
-would have allowed her a free hand in her desires to punish all the
-people who had conspired against her and against the man upon whom she
-had looked as a saviour and a saint. Once this fact was recognised the
-revolution became inevitable. It is to the credit of Russia that it
-took place with the dignity that has marked its development and success.
-
-This, in broad lines, is the summary of the causes that have brought
-about the fall of the Romanoff dynasty, and they must never be lost
-sight of when one is trying to describe it. It is, however, far too
-early to judge the Russian revolution in its effects because, for
-one thing, it is far from being at an end, and may yet take quite an
-unexpected turn. For another, the events connected with it are still
-too fresh to be considered from an objective point of view. I have,
-therefore, refrained from expressing an opinion in this narrative. My
-aim has been to present to my readers a description of the personality
-of Rasputin, together with the part, such as I know it, that he has
-played in the development of Russian history during the last five years
-or so, and afterward to describe the course of the revolution and the
-reasons that have led to its explosion in such an unexpected manner.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-
-We live in strange times, when strange things happen which at first
-sight seem unintelligible and the reason for which we fail to grasp.
-Even in Russia, where Rasputin had become the most talked-of person
-in the whole empire, few people fully realised what he was and what
-had been the part which he had played in Russia’s modern history. Yet
-during the last ten years his name had become a familiar one in the
-palaces of the great nobles whose names were written down in the Golden
-Book of the aristocracy of the country, as well as in the huts of the
-poorest peasants in the land. At a time when incredulity was attacking
-the heart and the intelligence of the Russian nation the appearance of
-this vagrant preacher and adept of one of the most persecuted sects
-in the empire was almost as great an event as was that of Cagliostro
-during the years which preceded the fall of the old French monarchy.
-
-There was, however, a great difference between the two personages.
-One was a courtier and a refined man of the world, while the other
-was only an uncouth peasant, with a crude cunning which made him
-discover soon in what direction his bread could be buttered and what
-advantages he might reap out of the extraordinary positions to which
-events, together with the ambitions of a few, had carried him. He was
-a perfect impersonation of the kind of individual known in the annals
-of Russian history as “Wremienschtchik,” literally “the Man of the
-Day,” an appellation which since the times of Peter the Great had clung
-to all the different favourites of Russian sovereigns. There was one
-difference, however, and this a most essential one. He had never been
-the favourite of the present Czar, who perhaps did not feel as sorry as
-might have been expected by his sudden disappearance from the scene of
-the world.
-
-I shall say a thing which perhaps will surprise my readers. Personally,
-Rasputin was never the omnipotent man he was believed to be, and
-more than once most of the things which were attributed to him were
-not at all his own work. But he liked the public to think that he
-had a finger in every pie that was being baked. And he contrived to
-imbue Russian society at large with such a profound conviction that
-he could do absolutely everything he chose in regard to the placing
-or displacing of people in high places, obtaining money grants and
-government contracts for his various “protégés,” that very often the
-persons upon whom certain things depended hastened to grant them to
-those who asked in the name of Rasputin, out of sheer fright of finding
-this terrible being in their way. They feared to refuse compliance with
-any request preferred to them either by himself or by one who could
-recommend himself on the strength of his good offices on their behalf.
-But Rasputin was the tool of a man far more clever than himself, Count
-Witte. It was partly due to the latter’s influence and directions that
-he tried to mix himself up in affairs of state and to give advice to
-people whom he thought to be in need of it. He was an illiterate brute,
-but he had all the instincts of a domineering mind which circumstances
-and the station of life in which he had been born had prevented
-from developing. He had also something else--an undoubted magnetic
-force, which allowed him to add auto-suggestion to all his words and
-which made even unbelieving people succumb sometimes to the hypnotic
-practices which he most undoubtedly exercised to a considerable extent
-during the last years of his adventurous existence.
-
-Amidst the discontent which, it would be idle to deny, had existed
-in the Russian empire during the period which immediately preceded
-the great war the personality of Rasputin had played a great part
-in giving to certain people the opportunity to exploit his almost
-constant presence at the side of the sovereign as a means to foment
-public opinion against the Emperor and to throw discredit upon him by
-representing him as being entirely under the influence of the cunning
-peasant who, by a strange freak of destiny, had suddenly become far
-more powerful than the strongest ministers themselves. The press
-belonging to the opposition parties had got into the habit of attacking
-him and calling his attendance on the imperial court an open scandal,
-which ought in the interest of the dynasty to be put an end to by every
-means available.
-
-In the Duma his name had been mentioned more than once, and always
-with contempt. Every kind of reproach had been hurled at him, and
-others had not been spared. He had become at last a fantastic kind
-of creature, more exploited than exploiting, more destroyable than
-destructive, one whose real “rôle” will never be known to its full
-extent, who might in other countries than Russia and at another time
-have become the founder of some religious order or secret association.
-His actions when examined in detail do not differ very much from those
-of the fanatics which in Paris under the reign of Louis XV. were called
-the “Convulsionnaires,” and who gave way to all kind of excesses
-under the pretext that these were acceptable to God by reason of the
-personality of the people who inspired them. In civilised, intelligent,
-well-educated Europe such an apparition would have been impossible,
-but in Russia, that land of mysteries and of deep faiths, where there
-still exist religious sects given to all kinds of excesses and to
-attacks of pious madness (for it can hardly be called by any other
-name), he acquired within a relatively short time the affections of a
-whole lot of people. They were inclined to see in him a prophet whose
-prayers were capable of winning for them the Divine Paradise for which
-their hungry souls were longing. There was nothing at all phenomenal
-about it. It was even in a certain sense quite a natural manifestation
-of this large Russian nature, which is capable of so many good or
-bad excesses and which has deeply incrusted at the bottom of its
-heart a tendency to seek the supernatural in default of the religious
-convictions which, thanks to circumstances, it has come to lose.
-
-The American public is perhaps not generally aware of the character of
-certain religious sects in Russia, which is considered to be a country
-of orthodoxy, with the Czar at its head, and where people think there
-is no room left for any other religion than the official one to develop
-itself. In reality, things are very different, and to this day, outside
-of the recognised nonconformists, who have their own bishops and
-priests, and whose faith is recognised and acknowledged by the State,
-there are any number of sects, each more superstitious and each more
-powerful than the other in regard to the influence which they exercise
-over their adherents. These, though not numerous by any means, yet are
-actuated by such fanaticism that they are apt at certain moments to
-become subjects of considerable embarrassment to the authorities. Some
-are inspired by the conviction that the only means to escape from the
-clutches of the devil consists in suicide or in the murder of other
-people.
-
-For instance, the Baby Killers, or Dietooubitsy, as they are called,
-think it a duty to send to Heaven the souls of new-born infants, which
-they destroy as soon as they see the light of day, thinking thus to
-render themselves agreeable to the Almighty by snatching children away
-from the power of the evil one. Another sect, which goes by the name
-of Stranglers, fully believes that the doors of Heaven are only opened
-before those who have died a violent death, and whenever a relative
-or friend is dangerously ill they proceed to smother him under the
-weight of many pillows so as to hasten the end. The Philipovtsy preach
-salvation through suicide, and the voluntary death of several people in
-common is considered by them as a most meritorious action. Sometimes
-whole villages decide to unite themselves in one immense holocaust and
-barricade themselves in a house, which is afterward set on fire.
-
-An incident that occurred during the reign of Alexander II. is
-remembered to this day in Russia. A peasant called Khodkine persuaded
-twenty people to retire together with him into a grotto hidden in the
-vast forests of the government of Perm, where he compelled them to die
-of hunger. Two women having contrived to escape, the fanatics, fearing
-that they might be denounced, killed themselves with the first weapons
-which fell under their hand. It was their terror that they might find
-themselves compelled to renounce their sinister design, and thus fall
-again into the clutches of that Satan for fear of whom they had made
-up their minds to encounter an awful death. Even as late as the end of
-the last century such acts of fanaticism could be met with here and
-there in the east and centre of Russia. In 1883, under the reign of the
-father of the last Czar, a peasant in the government of Riazan, called
-Joukoff, burnt himself to death by setting fire to his clothes, which
-he had previously soaked in paraffin, and expired under the most awful
-torments, singing hymns of praise to the Lord.
-
-Among all these heresies there are two which have attracted more
-than the others the attention of the authorities, thanks to their
-secret rites and to their immoral tendencies. They are the Skoptsy,
-or Voluntary Eunuchs, about which it is useless to say anything here,
-and the Khlysty, or Flagellants, which to this day has a considerable
-number of adepts and to which Rasputin undoubtedly belonged, to which,
-in fact, he openly owed allegiance. This sect, which calls itself “Men
-of God,” has the strangest rites which human imagination can invent.
-According to its precepts, a human creature should try to raise its
-soul toward the Divinity with the help of sexual excesses of all kinds.
-During their assemblies they indulge in a kind of waltz around and
-around the room, which reminds one of nothing so much as the rounds of
-the Dancing Dervishes in the East. They dance and dance until their
-strength fails them, when they drop to the floor in a kind of trance or
-ecstasy, during which, being hardly accountable for their actions, they
-imagine that they see Christ and the Virgin Mary among them. They then
-threw themselves into the embrace of the supposed divinities.
-
-As a rule the general public knows very little concerning these sects,
-but I shall quote here a passage out of a book on Russia by Sir Donald
-Mackenzie Wallace, which is considered to this day as a standard work
-in regard to its subject. “Among the ‘Khlysty,’” he writes, “there
-are men and women who take upon themselves the calling of teachers
-and prophets, and in this character they lead a strict, ascetic
-life, refrain from the most ordinary and innocent pleasures, exhaust
-themselves by long fasting and wild ecstatic religious exercises and
-abhor marriage. Under the excitement caused by their supposed holiness
-and inspiration, they call themselves not only teachers and prophets,
-but also Saviours, Redeemers, Christs, Mothers of God. Generally
-speaking, they call themselves simply gods and pray to each other as
-to real gods and living Christs and Madonnas. When several of these
-teachers come together at a meeting they dispute with each other in a
-vain, boasting way as to which of them possesses most grace and power.
-In this rivalry they sometimes give each other lusty blows on the ear,
-and he who bears the blows the most patiently, turning the other cheek
-to the smiter, acquires the reputation of having the most holiness.
-
- “Another sect belonging to the same category and which indeed
- claims close kindred with it is the Jumpers, among whom the
- erotic element is disagreeably prominent. Here is a description
- of their religious meetings, which are held during summer in a
- forest and during winter in some outhouse or barn. After due
- preparation prayers are read by the chief teacher, dressed in
- a white robe and standing in the midst of the congregation.
- At first he reads in an ordinary tone of voice and then
- passes gradually into a merry chant. When he remarks that the
- chanting has sufficiently acted on the hearers he begins to
- jump. The hearers, singing likewise, follow his example. Their
- ever-increasing excitement finds expression in the highest
- possible jumps. This they continue as long as they can--men
- and women alike yelling like enraged savages. When all are
- thoroughly exhausted the leader declares that he hears the
- angels singing, and then begins a scene which cannot be here
- described.”
-
-I have quoted this passage in full because it may give to the reader
-who is not versed in the details of Russian existence and Russian
-psychology the key to the circumstances that helped Rasputin to absorb
-for such a considerable number of years the attention of the public in
-Russia, and which, in fact, made him possible as a great ruling, though
-not governing, force in the country. In some ways he had appealed
-to the two great features of the human character in general and of
-the Russian character in particular--mysticism and influence of the
-senses. It is not so surprising as it might seem at first sight that he
-contrived to ascend to a position which no one who knew him at first
-ever supposed he would or could attain.
-
-At the same time I must, in giving a brief sketch of the career of
-this extraordinary individual, protest against the many calumnies
-which have associated him with names which I will not mention here out
-of respect and feelings of patriotism. It is sufficiently painful to
-have to say so, but German calumny, which spares no one, has used its
-poisoned arrows also where Rasputin came to be discussed. It has tried
-to travesty maternal love and anxiety into something quite different,
-and it has attempted to sully what it could not touch. There have been
-many sad episodes in this whole story of Rasputin, but some of the
-people who have been mentioned in connection with them were completely
-innocent of the things for which they have been reproached. Finally,
-the indignation which these vile and unfounded accusations roused in
-the hearts of the true friends and servants of the people led to the
-drama which removed forever from the surface of Russian society the
-sectarian who unfortunately had contrived to glide into its midst.
-
-The one extraordinary thing about Rasputin is that he was not murdered
-sooner. He was so entirely despised and so universally detested all
-over Russia that it was really a miracle that he could remain alive so
-long a time after it had been found impossible to remove him from the
-scene of the world by other than violent means. It was a recognised
-fact that he had had a hand in all kinds of dirty money matters and
-that no business of a financial character connected with military
-expenditure could be brought to a close without his being mixed in
-it. About this, however, I shall speak later on in trying to explain
-how the Rasputin legend spread and how it was exploited by all kinds
-of individuals of a shady character, who used his name for purposes
-of their own. The scandal connected with the shameless manner in
-which he became associated with innumerable transactions more or less
-disreputable was so enormous that unfortunately it extended to people
-and to names that should never have been mentioned together with him.
-
- * * * * *
-
-It must never be forgotten, and I cannot repeat this sufficiently,
-that Rasputin was a common peasant of the worst class of the Russian
-moujiks, devoid of every kind of education, without any manners and in
-his outward appearance more disgusting than anything else. It would be
-impossible to explain the influence which he undoubtedly contrived to
-acquire upon some persons belonging to the highest social circles if
-one did not take into account this mysticism and superstition which lie
-at the bottom of the Slav nature and the tendency which the Russian
-character has to accept as a manifestation of the power of the divinity
-all things that touch upon the marvellous or the unexplainable.
-Rasputin in a certain sense appeared on the scene of Russian social
-life at the very moment when his teachings could become acceptable, at
-the time when Russian society had been shaken to its deepest depths by
-the revolution which had followed upon the Japanese war and when it was
-looking everywhere for a safe harbour in which to find a refuge.
-
- * * * * *
-
-At the beginning of his career and when he was introduced into the most
-select circles of the Russian capital, thanks to the caprices and the
-fancies of two or three fanatic orthodox ladies who had imagined that
-they had found in him a second Savonarola and that his sermons and
-teachings could provoke a renewal of religious fervour, people laughed
-at him and at his feminine disciples, and made all kinds of jokes, good
-and bad, about him and them. But this kind of thing did not last long
-and Rasputin, who, though utterly devoid of culture, had a good deal
-of the cunning which is one of the distinctive features of the Russian
-peasant, was the first to guess all the possibilities which this sudden
-“engouement” of influential people for his person opened out before
-him and to what use it could be put for his ambition as well as his
-inordinate love of money. He began by exacting a considerable salary
-for all the prayers which he was supposed to say at the request of his
-worshippers, and of all the ladies, fair or unfair, who had canonised
-him in their enthusiasm for all the wonderful things which he was
-continually telling them. He was eloquent in a way and at the beginning
-of his extraordinary thaumaturgic existence had not yet adopted the
-attitude which he was to assume later on--of an idol, whom every one
-had to adore.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Photograph, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-THE EX-CZAR AND HIS FAMILY]
-
- * * * * *
-
-He was preaching the necessity of repenting of one’s sins, making
-due penance for them after a particular manner, which he described
-as being the most agreeable to God, and praying constantly and with
-unusual fervour for the salvation of orthodox Russia. He contrived
-most cleverly to play upon the chord of patriotism which is always so
-developed in Russians, and to speak to them of the welfare of their
-beloved fatherland whenever he thought it advantageous to his personal
-interests to do so. He succeeded in inspiring in his adepts a faith
-in his own person and in his power to save their souls akin to that
-which is to be met with in England and in America among the sect of
-the Christian Scientists, and he very rapidly became a kind of Russian
-Mrs. Eddy. A few hysterical ladies, who were addicted to neuralgia or
-headaches, suddenly found themselves better after having conversed or
-prayed with him, and they spread his fame outside the small circle
-which had adopted him at the beginning of his career. One fine day a
-personal friend of the reigning Empress, Madame Wyroubourg, introduced
-him at Tsarskoie Selo, under the pretext of praying for the health
-of the small heir to the Russian throne, who was occasioning some
-anxiety to his parents. It was from that day that he became a personage.
-
- * * * * *
-
-His success at court was due to the superstitious dread with which
-he contrived to inspire the Empress in regard to her son. She was
-constantly trembling for him, and being very religiously inclined, with
-strong leanings toward mysticism, she allowed herself to be persuaded
-more by the people who surrounded her than by Rasputin himself. She
-believed that the man of whose holiness she was absolutely persuaded,
-could by his prayers alone obtain the protection of the Almighty for
-her beloved child. An accidental occurrence contributed to strengthen
-her in this conviction. There were persons who were of the opinion
-that the presence of Rasputin at Tsarskoie Selo was not advantageous
-for many reasons. Among them was Mr. Stolypine, then Minister of the
-Interior, and he it was who made such strong representations that at
-last Rasputin himself deemed it advisable to return to his native
-village of Pokrovskoie, in Siberia. A few days after his departure the
-little Grand Duke fell seriously ill and his mother became persuaded
-that this was a punishment for her having allowed the vagrant preacher
-to be sent away. Rasputin was recalled, and after this no one ever
-spoke again of his being removed anywhere. From that time all kinds of
-adventurers began to lay siege to him and to do their utmost to gain an
-introduction.
-
-Russia was still the land where a court favourite was all-powerful,
-and Rasputin was held as such, especially by those who had some
-personal interest in representing him as the successor to Menschikoff
-under Peter the Great, Biren under the Empress Anne and Orloff under
-Catherine II. He acquired a far greater influence outside Tsarskoie
-Selo than he ever enjoyed in the imperial residence itself, and he
-made the best of it, boasting of a position which in reality he did
-not possess. The innumerable state functionaries, who in Russia
-unfortunately always have the last word to say everywhere and in
-everything and whose rapacity is proverbial, hastened to put themselves
-at the service of Rasputin and to grant him everything which he asked,
-in the hope that in return he would make himself useful to them.
-
-A kind of bargaining established itself between people desirous of
-making a career and Rasputin, eager to enrich himself no matter by what
-means. He began by playing the intermediary in different financial
-transactions for a substantial consideration, and at last he thought
-himself entitled to give his attention to matters of state. This was
-the saddest side of his remarkable career as a pseudo-Cagliostro. He
-had a good deal of natural intelligence, and while being the first to
-laugh at fair ladies who clustered around him, he understood at once
-that he could make use of them. This he did not fail to do. He adopted
-toward them the manners of a stern master, and treated them like his
-humble slaves. At last he ended by leading the existence of a man of
-pleasure, denying himself nothing, especially his fondness for liquor
-of every kind. At that time there was no prohibition in Russia and,
-like all Russian peasants, Rasputin was very fond of vodka, to which he
-never missed adding a substantial quantity of champagne whenever he
-found the opportunity.
-
-I shall abstain from touching upon the delicate point of the orgies
-to which it is related that Rasputin was in the habit of addicting
-himself, the more so because I do not really believe these ever took
-place in those higher circles of society where it was said they
-regularly occurred. That strange things may have happened among the
-common people, who in far greater numbers than it has ever been known,
-used to attend the religious meetings which he held, I shall not deny.
-It must always be remembered that Rasputin belonged to the religious
-sect of the Khlysty, of whose assemblies we have read the description,
-and it is quite likely, and even probable, that the assemblies of these
-sectarians at which he presided were not different from the others to
-which these heretics crowded. But I feel absolutely convinced that as
-regards the relations of the adventurer with the numerous ladies of
-society silly enough to believe in him and in his gifts of prophecy,
-these consisted only of superstitious reverence on one side and
-exploitation of human stupidity on the other.
-
-I must once more insist on the point that the apparition of Rasputin
-in Russian society had nothing wonderful about it, and that the only
-strange thing is that such a fuss was made. Before his time people
-belonging to the highest social circles had become afflicted with
-religious manias of one kind or another out of that natural longing for
-something to believe in and to worship which lies hidden at the bottom
-of the character of every Russian who has the leisure, or the craving,
-to examine seriously the difficult and complicated problems of a future
-life and of the faith one ought to follow and to believe in.
-
-In 1817 there was discovered in the very heart of St. Petersburg,
-holding its meetings in an imperial residence (the Michael Palace), a
-religious sect of most pronounced mystical tendencies, presided over
-by a lady belonging to the best circles of the capital--the widow of a
-colonel, Madame Tatarinoff. In her apartments used to gather officers,
-State functionaries, women and girls of good family and excellent
-education who, with slight variations, practised all the religious
-rites of the Khlystys. One of the Ministers of Alexander I., Prince
-Galitzyne, was suspected of having honoured these assemblies with his
-presence. Thanks to a letter which accidentally fell into the hands
-of the police, the Government became aware of what was going on, and
-Madame Tatarinoff, this Russian Madame Guyon, expiated in exile in a
-distant province of Siberia the ecstasies which she had practised and
-which she had allowed others to practise under her roof. Some of her
-disciples were prosecuted, but the greater number escaped scot free.
-The authorities did not care to increase the scandal which this affair
-had aroused in the capital.
-
-Much later, in 1878, after the Russo-Turkish war, which, like the
-Japanese affair, had been followed by a strong revolutionary movement
-in the country that culminated in the assassination of the Czar,
-Alexander II., another prophet, this time of foreign origin, appeared
-on the social horizon of St. Petersburg society, where he made a
-considerable number of converts. This was the famous Lord Radstock,
-whose doctrines were taken up by a gentleman who up to that time
-had been known as one of the gayest among the gay, a colonel in the
-Guards--Mr. Basil Paschkoff. He was enormously rich, and put all his
-vast fortune at the service of the religious craze which had seized
-him. He used his best efforts to convert to the doctrine of salvation
-through faith only not alone his friends and relatives, but also the
-poorer classes of the population of the capital, devoting in particular
-his attention to the cab drivers. All these people used to meet at
-his house, where they mingled with persons of the highest rank and
-standing, such as Count Korff, and a former Minister, Count Alexis
-Bobrinsky. Later on the whole Tchertkoff family, to which belonged
-the famous friend of Count Leo Tolstoy, associated itself with them,
-and, indeed, displayed the greatest fanaticism in regard to its
-participation in the doctrines of the new sect.
-
-The Paschkovites, as they came to be called, had nothing at all in
-common with the Khlystys. Their morals were absolutely unimpeachable,
-and what they preached was simply the necessity to conform one’s morals
-were absolutely unimpeachable, and what they explained and commented
-upon, each person according to his own light. They were Protestants in
-a certain sense, inasmuch as their views were distinctly Protestant
-ones. But they had much more in common with the nonconformists than
-the real followers of Luther or of Calvin. They were a kind of refined
-Salvation Army, if this expression can be forgiven me; though they
-never acquired the importance, nor did the good which the latter has
-done, perhaps because they could never make any practical application
-of the principles and of the ideas which animated them. But at one time
-the Paschkovist craze was just as strong as the Rasputin one became
-later on, and Lord Radstock and Mr. Paschkoff were considered just as
-much prophets among their own particular circle as was Rasputin among
-the fanatical ladies who had taken him up.
-
-These crises of religious mania are regular occurrences in Russian
-higher social circles when unusually grave circumstances arrive to
-shake their equanimity. Seen from this particular point of view,
-the apparition of Rasputin and the importance which his personality
-acquired in the life of the Russian upper classes present nothing very
-wonderful. Before him other so-called prophets had kept the attention
-of the public riveted upon their doings and their actions.
-
-What distinguished his short passage was the fact that it was made
-the occasion by the natural enemies of the empire, consisting of the
-discontented at home, and of the Germans outside the frontier, to
-discredit the dynasty as well as those whose life was spent in its
-immediate vicinity and to present this figure of the vagrant half-monk
-and half-layman, who preached a new relation to those foolish enough to
-listen to him, as being one of almost gigantic importance, who could at
-his will and fancy direct the course of public affairs and lead them
-wherever he wanted.
-
-My object in this study will be to show Rasputin for what he really
-was, and in retracing the different vicissitudes of his strange career,
-not to give way to the many exaggerations, which, in familiarising
-people abroad with his person and with his name, have made out of him
-something quite wonderful, and almost equal in power with the Czar
-himself. It is time to do away with such legends and to bring Rasputin
-back to his proper level--a very able and cunning, half-cultured
-peasant, who owed his successes only to the fanaticism of the few, and
-to the interest which many had in dissimulating themselves behind him,
-in order to bring their personal wishes to a successful end. It is not
-Rasputin who performed most of the actions put to his credit. It was
-those who influenced him, who pushed him forward and who, thanks to
-him, became both rich and powerful. He has disappeared. I wish we could
-be as sure that they have disappeared along with him.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-
-The beginning of the career of Gregory Rasputin is shrouded with a veil
-of deep mystery. He was a native of Siberia, of a small village in the
-government of Tobolsk, called Pokrovskoie. Some people relate that
-when quite a youth he was compromised in a crime which attracted some
-attention at the time--the murder of a rich merchant who was travelling
-from Omsk to Tobolsk to acquire from an inhabitant of the latter town
-some gold diggings, of which he wished to dispose. This merchant
-was known to carry a large sum of money, and as he never reached
-his destination inquiries were started. At last his body was found,
-with the head battered by blows, hidden in a ditch by the high road,
-together with that of the coachman who had driven him. The murderers
-were never discovered, but dark rumours concerning the participation of
-the youth Rasputin in the deed spread all over the village.
-
-Whether it was the desire to put an end to them, or remorse for an
-action of which he knew himself to be guilty, it is difficult to say,
-but the fact remains that suddenly Gricha, as he was called, developed
-mystical tendencies and took to attending some religious meetings at
-which a certain wandering pilgrim used to preach. The latter used to
-go from place to place in Siberia predicting the end of the world and
-the advent of the dreaded day of Judgment when Christ would once again
-appear to demand from humanity an account of its various good or bad
-actions. For something like two years Rasputin followed him, until at
-last he began himself to assume the character of a lay preacher, to
-apply himself to the study of the Scriptures and to try to establish a
-sect of his own, the principles of which he exposed to his followers in
-these terms:
-
- I am possessed of the Holy Spirit, and it is only through
- me that one can be saved. In order to do so, one must unite
- oneself with me in body and soul. Everything which proceeds
- from me is holy, and cleanses one from sin.
-
-On the strength of this theory, Rasputin declared that he could do
-whatever he liked or wished. He surrounded himself with worshippers
-of both sexes, who believed that by a close union with him they could
-obtain their eternal salvation, together with divine forgiveness for
-any sins they might have committed during their previous existence.
-
-Strange tales began to be related concerning the religious assemblies
-at which the new prophet presided. But, nevertheless, the whole
-village of Pokrovskoie, whither he had returned after his few years’
-wanderings, accepted his teachings and submitted to his decrees with
-scarcely any exceptions. These unbelievers were looked upon askance
-by the majority of the inhabitants, who had succumbed to the “monk’s”
-power of fascination and hypnotism. It was with nothing else that
-Rasputin kept his “flock” subjugated. He introduced among them the
-cult of his own person, together with certain rites which he called
-“sacrifice with prayer.”
-
-According to the narratives of some people, who out of curiosity had
-attended these ceremonies, this is how they proceeded: In the night,
-as soon as the first stars had become visible in the sky, Rasputin,
-with the help of his disciples, dragged some wood into a deep ditch dug
-for the purpose and lighted a huge bonfire. On a tripod placed in the
-midst of this fire was put a cup full of incense and different herbs,
-around which people began to dance, holding themselves by the hand all
-the while, and singing in a voice which became louder and louder as the
-wild exercise became more and more accelerated different hymns which
-always ended with the phrase: “Forgive us our sins, O Lord, forgive us
-our sins.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The dance went on until people fell exhausted to the ground and groans
-and tears replaced the former singing. The fire died out slowly and,
-when darkness had become complete, the voice of Rasputin was heard
-calling upon his disciples to proceed to the sacrifice which God
-required them to perform. Then followed a scene of general orgy.
-
- * * * * *
-
-As one can see by this tale, the strange practices introduced by the
-seer, about whom people were already beginning to talk, differed in
-no way from those generally in use among the Khlysty, and, indeed,
-Rasputin made no secret of his allegiance to this particular form of
-heresy, in which, however, he had introduced a few alterations. For
-instance, he did not admit that the souls of his followers could be
-saved by a general prayer, but only thanks to one uttered in common
-with him, and by a complete submission to his will. Some persons have
-alleged that during the early wanderings of Rasputin he had gone as far
-as China and Thibet, and there learned some Buddhist practices, but
-this is hardly probable, as in that case his instruction would have
-been more developed than it was. It is far more likely that during his
-travels he had met with exiled sectarians belonging to the different
-persecuted religious Russian communities, of which there exist so many
-in the whole Oural region, and that they initiated him into some of
-their rites and customs. They also made him attentive to the hypnotic
-powers, which he most undoubtedly possessed, teaching him how to use
-them for his own benefit and advantage.
-
-Very soon Rasputin found that Pokrovskoie was not a field wide enough
-for his energies, and he took to travelling, together with a crowd of
-disciples that followed him everywhere over the eastern and central
-Russian provinces. There he contrived to win every day new adherents
-to the doctrines in which free love figured so prominently. Among the
-towns where he obtained the most success can be mentioned those of
-Kazan, Saratoff, Kieff and Samara.
-
-Concerning his doings in Kazan, people became informed through a letter
-which one of his victims addressed to the bishop of that diocese,
-Monsignor Feofane, who had shown at the beginning of Rasputin’s career
-a considerable interest in him and who had protected him with great
-success. In this letter, which later on found its way into the press,
-the following was said among other things:
-
- “Your Reverence, I absolutely fail to understand how it is
- possible that you continue to this day to know and see Gregory
- Rasputin. He is Satan in person and the things which he does
- are worthy of those that the Antichrist alone is supposed to
- perform, and prove that the latter’s advent is at hand.”
-
-The writer then proceeded to explain that Rasputin had completely
-subjugated the mind of her two daughters, one of whom was aged twenty,
-whilst the second had not yet attained her sixteenth year.
-
- “One afternoon,” writes this unfortunate mother, “I met in the
- street, coming out of a bathhouse, Rasputin, together with my
- two girls. One must be a mother to understand the feelings
- which overpowered me at this sight. I could find no words to
- say, but remained standing motionless and silent before them.
- The prophet turned to me and slowly said: ‘Now you may feel at
- peace, the day of salvation has dawned for your daughters!’”
-
-Another woman, who had also fallen under the spell of Rasputin, wrote
-as follows about him:
-
- “I left my parents, to whom I was tenderly attached, to follow
- the prophet. One day when we were travelling together in a
- reserved first-class carriage, talking about the salvation of
- souls and the means to become a true child of God, he suddenly
- got up, approached me, and * * * proceeded to cleanse me of
- all my sins. Towards evening I became anxious and asked him:
- ‘Perhaps what we have been doing to-day was a sin, Gregory
- Efimitsch?’ ‘No, my daughter,’ he replied, ‘it was not a sin.
- Our affections are a gift from God, which we may use as freely
- as we like.’”
-
-Bishop Feofane finally was obliged to recognise the evil which Rasputin
-was constantly doing, and he bitterly repented having been taken in
-by him and by his hypocrisy. He reproached himself especially for
-having given him a letter of recommendation to the famous Father John
-of Cronstadt, through whom Rasputin was to become acquainted with
-some of the people who were later on to pilot him in the society of
-St. Petersburg. The bishop was not a clever man by any means, but he
-had been sincere in his admiration for Rasputin, a fact which added
-to the consternation that overpowered him when the truth about the
-famous sectarian became known to him. He assembled a kind of judicial
-court, composed of one bishop, one monk and three well-known and highly
-respected civil functionaries, and called upon the prophet to come and
-explain himself before this court as to the actions which were imputed
-to him. Among these figured his general conduct in regard to the women
-who had enrolled themselves in the ranks of his disciples. But somehow
-the adventurer succeeded in dispelling the suspicions that had become
-attached to his name and conduct, and he explained in a more or less
-plausible manner the things which had been told about him. His leanings
-towards feminine society, and his invariable custom of bathing with
-women, he declared to be quite innocent things, and only a proof of
-his desire to show that it was quite possible for human beings to rise
-above every kind of carnal temptation.
-
-In spite of this episode, which would have interfered with the career
-of any one but Rasputin, the fame of the latter grew with every day
-that passed. He established himself at last in the town of Tiumen in
-Siberia, where he hired the whole of a large house for himself and some
-of his most favoured disciples, and he began to turn his activity into
-another and more profitable channel. He established reception hours
-every day, when all his followers, admirers and friends could come to
-speak with him about any business they liked. Hundreds of people used
-to attend those receptions, among them some very influential persons
-curious to see and speak with the modern Peter the Hermit, who declared
-that he had been called by God to save Holy Russia. In some mysterious
-manner he acquired the reputation of having great influence in high
-quarters, where (this must be noticed) he was at the time still quite
-unknown. Governors fearing dismissal, rapacious functionaries whose
-exactions had become too flagrant, as well as business men in quest
-of some good “geschaft,” to use the German expression employed before
-the war among financial circles in Russia, crowded round him, waiting
-sometimes hours for an opportunity to speak with him, and fully
-believing in his capacities for obtaining what they required.
-
-Rasputin soon became a kind of business agent and surrounded himself
-with a number of secretaries of both sexes, whose occupation consisted
-in attending to his correspondence--he could himself hardly read or
-write--and in receiving the numerous offerings which were being brought
-to him daily. These secretaries, among whom figured a sister of the
-Bishop of Saratoff, Warnava, made an immense amount of money themselves
-because no one was ever admitted into the presence of Rasputin
-without having previously paid dearly for this favour. Very soon they
-established a tax in regard to the audiences granted by their master.
-
-Besides this sister of Bishop Warnava, Rasputin had another female
-secretary, and they both accompanied him in all his travels, calling
-themselves his spiritual sisters. They constituted, so to say, his
-bodyguard, and wherever he went, even in St. Petersburg, they never
-left off attending him and seeing to all his wants. They were the
-channel through which everything had to go, and without their consent
-no one was ever admitted into the presence of the “Saint,” as they
-already had begun to call him.
-
-Gregory Rasputin very often used to visit Tobolsk, where he was always
-received with great ceremony and pomp, as if he had been really the
-important personage he believed himself. The policeman in the streets
-saluted him as he passed; the carriage in which he drove was escorted
-or preceded by a high police functionary, and the governor asked him
-to dinner. The same kind of thing used to take place in other Siberian
-cities. In one of them the staterooms reserved at the railway station
-for any high authority on a visit to the place were thrown open to
-him. In another triumphal arches were erected in his honour, while in
-a third he was met by deputations in the midst of which could be seen
-civil functionaries and religious dignitaries.
-
-How all this happened no one knew or could explain. In what consisted
-the fame of Rasputin and what he had done to deserve all these honours
-nobody could tell. But fame he had acquired, honours he had obtained,
-and where another person gifted with a smaller amount of impudence
-than he was possessed of, would have been put into prison or sent to
-a madhouse, Gricha had it all his own way, and defied governors and
-judges with an equal indifference, sure that none among them would be
-daring enough to try to put a stop to his progress or to his avidity.
-
-Most friendly, not to say intimate, relations were established between
-Rasputin and Bishop Warnava, especially after the latter’s elevation to
-the Episcopal See of Tobolsk. The first sermon which Warnava preached
-in that town he dedicated to the wife of Rasputin. One need not say
-that the whole clergy of the town and of the diocese trembled before
-Rasputin, who did not fail to exact from it large sums of money, which
-he extorted, thanks to the promises which he made but never meant in
-the least to keep.
-
-During the course of the year 1909 complaints about Rasputin’s
-behaviour increased to a considerable extent. He was once more called
-before an ecclesiastical court to give explanations in regard to
-his general conduct. Among his judges figured again Bishop Feofane.
-This time Rasputin could not clear himself of the charges preferred
-against him, and he was invited to retire for one year into a monastery
-by way of penance. But Rasputin refused to submit to this sentence
-and categorically declined to do as he had been told. He gave as a
-reason for his disobedience to the commands of his ecclesiastical
-superiors that his conscience obliged him to resist because it would be
-impossible for his “spiritual sisters and daughters” to accompany him
-in his retreat and live together with him in the monastery they wished
-him to enter.
-
-At the time this incident took place Rasputin was already living in
-St. Petersburg, whither he had repaired on the invitation of some of
-his admirers and protectors, who had the opportunity to listen to his
-preachings in Kieff and other Russian towns. Among them figured the
-Countess Sophy Ignatieff, a woman of high standing, irreproachable
-reputation and great influence in some circles of the capital, where
-her salon was considered the centre of the conservative orthodox party.
-Bishops and priests figured among her daily visitors, and it was among
-her habitués that the most important ecclesiastical appointments in the
-Empire were discussed. Often it was the candidates whom she honoured
-with her protection who were chosen for a bishop’s place or for that
-of a superior to one of those rich monasteries the heads of which are
-quite personages in the state.
-
-The Countess was already an old woman, widow of a man who had been
-murdered during the revolution of 1905, and, incapable of being even
-suspected of any frailties of conduct. She was the mother of a large
-family, and though by no means brilliant, was yet clever in her way,
-with a slight propensity to intrigue. She was extremely devout, with
-a strong tendency to exaltation where religious matters came into
-question, and was continually lamenting what she called the relaxation
-of modern society in those practices of strict church discipline
-which Russians belonging to the higher classes have lately taken
-to forgetting. She would not have missed attending any of the long
-Church services, sometimes so tiring in the Orthodox faith, which are
-celebrated on Sundays and many feast days, and she strictly fasted at
-prescribed times. Indeed, her whole existence was, as regards its daily
-routine, more that of a nun than of a woman of the world. But for all
-that, she liked to keep herself well informed as to all that was going
-on around her, and politics was her especial hobby.
-
-Among those who frequented her house were Mr. Sabler, then Procurator
-of the Holy Synod, together with his future successor, Mr. Loukianoff;
-a good sprinkling of ministers--she was distantly related to Mr.
-Stolypine, a fact that had considerably added to her importance
-during the latter’s lifetime--and a few influential dames belonging
-to the immediate circle of friends of the imperial family. All
-this constituted a coterie that had gradually assumed perhaps more
-importance than it really deserved, but that brought into St.
-Petersburg society an element with which it would not have been wise
-to trifle and which it was impossible to overlook, for any one caring
-to concern himself or herself with the course that public affairs were
-taking and assuming.
-
-A few years before the time I am referring to, that is about 1908 or
-1909, a good deal of interest was excited not only in St. Petersburg,
-but in the whole of Russia, by a monk called Illiodore, who also
-preached a new gospel to those willing to listen. There was, however,
-about him none of the peculiarities which distinguished Rasputin, and
-no one had ever found one word to say against his morals. But he tried
-also to found a religion of his own in the sense that he attempted to
-develop on a higher scale, and with certain Protestant leanings, the
-feelings of fervour of the people. At Saratoff, where he lived, he did
-a great deal of good, and he had built there a large church, Orthodox,
-of course, which soon became a centre of pilgrimage to which flocked
-thousands and thousands of people desirous of hearing him and of
-listening to his inflamed speeches. They reminded one of those crusades
-that in the Middle Ages had stirred whole nations to rise and rush to
-deliver the Holy Sepulchre from the yoke of the infidels. He was far
-more a Peter the Hermit than Rasputin, and had, moreover, education,
-which the other lacked.
-
-But ecclesiastical authorities in St. Petersburg did not approve of
-his teachings, and he soon came into conflict with them, together
-with the Bishop of Saratoff, who had all along supported him and who
-considered him as being really a good and pious man. This conflict
-led to a quarrel, the result of which was that Illiodore was confined
-in a monastery, whence, however, with the help of his disciples and
-adherents, he contrived to make his escape. There was also a whole
-series of lawsuits, into the details of which it is useless to enter
-here. At last the monk was unfrocked for rebellion to his superiors,
-by a decree issued from the Holy Synod, and compelled to take back his
-secular name of Trufanoff. He became fearful of further annoyance and
-managed to get hold of a false passport, with the help of which he made
-his way into Norway, where we shall find him presently mixed up in a
-most extraordinary adventure with which Rasputin was concerned. But
-before all this had occurred there was a brief period when Illiodore
-was quite an important personage in Russia, and the salons of the
-Countess Ignatieff and of other ultra-devout ladies used to see a lot
-of him whenever he happened to be in St. Petersburg. These feminine
-listeners were very fond of him, and did their best to spread his
-reputation all over the capital.
-
-During Rasputin’s wanderings he had come across Illiodore at Saratoff,
-and the latter, like so many others before and after him, had succumbed
-to the hypnotic spell which “Gricha” was casting around him. He had
-believed him to be a real servant of God, and he had engaged him
-to come to St. Petersburg and to preach there before some of the
-people who had already listened to his (Illiodore’s) sermons. He
-had introduced him to the celebrated Father John of Cronstadt, this
-saintly priest who was so famous for his virtues and his good deeds.
-And, strange though this may appear, Father John also had been struck
-by Rasputin’s eloquence and had believed him to be really inspired
-by the Lord. In order to explain the state of mind prevalent at the
-time among the orthodox clergy one must say that the clergy, or at
-least some of their important members, were trying to bring about a
-revival of religious fervour in the Orthodox Church, especially among
-persons belonging to the upper classes, who had, during the last
-twenty-five years or so, become more than indifferent in regard to
-spiritual matters, and who had considered religion more a question of
-“convenience” than anything else. Since the religious censorship had
-been suppressed and books to any amount treating of every conceivable
-subject had been allowed to circulate freely in the country, the former
-attachment to the Mother Church had waxed fainter and fainter, until
-this Church appeared in the eyes of many as simply a question of good
-breeding, to which it was necessary to conform when one belonged to
-good society, but which, beyond this, was treated entirely as a matter
-devoid of importance.
-
-In view of this fact, those Prelates and Dignitaries who lamented over
-this state of things were not sorry to find that there were still in
-the world people capable of arousing in the minds of others an interest
-in religion and religious matters. This explains partly why the craze
-which seized some persons in regard to Illiodore at first, and to
-Rasputin later on, was not viewed with the dissatisfaction one might
-have expected by the Russian ecclesiastical authorities. They argued
-that surely it was better for people to pray in the way these two
-so-called “saints” told them to do than not to pray at all. It was only
-much later, after Illiodore’s rebellion to the orders of his superiors,
-and Rasputin’s ever-growing personal influence had begun to alarm them,
-that there were found some bishops in Russia who made a stand against
-both, until at last a catastrophe removed these two men from the scene
-of their previous labours and successes.
-
-Rasputin and Illiodore were in time to become mortal enemies, but at
-first a great friendship united them, and when Rasputin was sentenced
-to enter a convent in the manner already related, Illiodore took up his
-cause most warmly and telegraphed to one of the former’s admirers, an
-ecclesiastic of high rank in St. Petersburg, in the following terms:
-“Neither Bishop Feofane nor Archimandrite Serge has behaved fairly in
-regard to the ‘Blessed Grigory.’” Illiodore’s efforts, however, did
-not avail and Rasputin was ordered to leave the capital immediately.
-But instead of being compelled to enter the convent whither they had
-wished to confine him at first, he was allowed to return to his native
-village of Pokrovskoie. Before doing so he bethought himself of calling
-on his former patron, Bishop Feofane, but the latter met him with the
-exclamation, “Don’t approach me, Satan! Thou art not a blessed thing,
-but only a vulgar deceiver!” At Pokrovskoie Rasputin surrounded himself
-with twelve sisters, of whom the oldest was barely twenty-nine years
-of age. They all lived in his house, which was extremely well arranged
-and richly furnished. Rasputin’s wife, together with her children,
-was also there and occupied a suite of five rooms, whilst each of the
-sisters had a separate room to herself.
-
-People wondered that the woman who ought to have been the sole mistress
-in the place had consented to share her authority with all these
-girls, and some even thought that she was just as bad as her husband.
-In reality, the “Prophet’s” consort had done all that she could to
-persuade her husband to give up the “mission” which he declared had
-been imposed upon him by the Almighty and to return to his former life
-of a simple peasant. Her efforts had remained fruitless, and Rasputin
-had replied to all her entreaties that his past existence had come
-forever to an end, and that he knew his star was about to shine in a
-wonderful way within a short time. He commanded his wife not to attempt
-to interfere in the matter of his own personal relations with the
-“Sisters” living under their roof. Though she tried to submit to his
-will, yet there were occasions when terrible scenes occurred between
-husband and wife. Then the latter would attack violently the girls,
-whom she accused of all kinds of dreadful things, and would then fall
-on the ground in attacks of strong hysterics, screaming so dreadfully
-that people heard her from the street. But tears and submission were
-equally of no avail and Rasputin did not trouble about his wife’s
-rage or grief any more than he had troubled in general with any other
-impediment he had found in his way. As concerns the kind of life which
-the “Sisters” were leading at Pokrovskoie this is how one of them
-describes it:
-
- It is now already six months since I am here, living in a kind
- of nightmare. I do not know to this day whether the “Blessed”
- Gricha is a saint or the greatest sinner the earth has ever
- known. I cannot find a quiet place in this miserable village. I
- would like to run away, to return to St. Petersburg, but I dare
- not do so. I am so afraid, so terribly afraid of the “Blessed”
- one. His large, grey, piercing eyes crush me, enter into my
- very soul and absolutely terrify me. At a distance of 5,000
- versts I feel his presence near me. I feel that he has got
- extraordinary powers, that he can do everything that he wishes
- with me.
-
-For two whole years Rasputin was not allowed to show himself in the
-Russian capital, but the influential friends he had there never left
-off trying to get the decree of banishment rescinded. Among others, the
-Archbishop of Saratoff, Hermogene, and Illiodore worked most actively
-in his favour, and the latter in one of his sermons did not hesitate
-to call Rasputin the “greatest saint which the modern Russian Church
-had ever known.” At last the efforts of his friends proved successful
-and Rasputin, toward the end of the year 1912, reappeared in St.
-Petersburg, where this time his progress was far more rapid than it
-had been formerly, and here his reputation of a latter-day saint grew
-with every hour, until at last he came to be looked upon as a real
-manifestation of the Divinity upon earth.
-
-It was about that time that he was seen more frequently at Tsarskoie
-Selo, where the poor Empress was eating her heart away in anxiety over
-the health of her only son, the little heir to the throne, whose days
-seemed to be numbered. Rasputin, who had been introduced to her as a
-pious, good man, whose prayers had already worked miracles, was very
-quickly able to influence her in the sense that he persuaded her that
-the small Grand Duke could only be cured if constant prayers were said
-for him by people who were agreeable to the Lord. It is not to be
-denied that the pseudo-saint had cultivated to a considerable extent
-the science of hypnotism and that he used it in regard to the consort
-of the sovereign in the sense that she grew really to believe that the
-presence of the “Prophet” by the side of her sick child might cure the
-latter. There was nothing else in their relations to each other, which
-remained always, in spite of all that has been said, purely official
-ones.
-
-Rasputin was far too clever ever to say one word capable of offending
-the Empress, whose proud temperament would never have forgiven him any
-familiarity had he dared to venture upon it. Whenever he was in her
-presence he kept a most humble attitude, and certainly never discussed
-with her any matters of state and never dared entertain her with aught
-else than religious questions. He was far less guarded with regard to
-what he told the Emperor, with whom it is unfortunately true that he
-sometimes allowed himself remarks he would have done better to keep
-to himself. But the Czar never looked upon him in any other light
-than in that of a jester whose sayings were absolutely devoid of any
-importance whatever, but who could amuse him at times by the daring
-manner in which he would touch upon things and criticise people whose
-names no one else would ever have dared to mention in a disparaging
-tone before Nicholas II. But between that and the possession of any
-real power and influence, there was an abyss which, unfortunately, in
-view of the turn that events were to take, no one noticed among all
-those who lamented over the almost constant presence of Rasputin at
-Tsarskoie Selo.
-
-All that I have said, however, refers only to the Emperor and Empress.
-In regard to some people who surrounded them it was not quite the
-same. It is certain that from the first day that the “Prophet” was
-introduced at Tsarskoie Selo some intriguing persons applied themselves
-to make use of him for their own special benefit and advantage, and
-tried to create around him a legend that had hardly anything in common
-with the real truth. It is useless to mention the names of these
-people, whose influence it must be hoped is now at an end. But it is
-impossible not to speak of their activity in regard to the spreading of
-these rumours which attributed to Rasputin an importance he was never
-really in possession of. This caused no small damage to the prestige
-of the dynasty. Rasputin ought to have been considered for what he
-was--that is, a kind of jester, “un fou du roi,” who, like Chicot in
-Dumas’ famous novels, allowed himself to say all that he thought to
-his sovereign and whose words or actions no one could take seriously
-into account. Instead of this some ambitious men and women, mostly
-belonging to that special class of Tchinovnikis or civil functionaries
-that has always been the curse of Russia and that, happily, is losing
-every day something of its former power, profited by the circumstance
-that the solitary existence led by the Imperial Court in its various
-residences did not allow any outside rumours to penetrate to the ears
-of the rulers of the country. They intentionally transformed Rasputin
-into a kind of _deus ex machina_, whose hand could be traced in every
-event of importance which occurred and who could at will remove and
-appoint Ministers, generals, ladies in waiting, court officials and
-at last induce the Czar himself to deprive his uncle, the Grand Duke
-Nicholas, of the supreme command of the army and to assume it himself.
-
-These different tales were repeated and carried about all over Russia
-with alacrity, and all the enemies of the reigning house rejoiced in
-hearing them. They were untrue nine times out of ten, and generally
-invented for a purpose. Rasputin did not influence the Czar, who is
-far too intelligent to have ever allowed this uneducated peasant to
-guide or to advise him, but unfortunately he influenced other people,
-who really believed him to be all powerful. A kind of camarilla formed
-itself around Rasputin that clung to him and used him for its own
-purposes, and that went about saying that he was the only man in the
-whole of Russia capable of obtaining what one wanted, provided it
-pleased him to do so. One declared that he could persuade the Empress,
-always trembling for the health of her only son, to discuss with
-her imperial spouse any subject that he might suggest. In reality no
-such thing ever took place. Alexandra Feodorovna always kept Rasputin
-at arms’ length, and for one thing had far too much faith in his
-absolute disinterestedness even to imagine offering him any reward
-or gratification. But it is a fact that he was often called by her
-to pray at the bedside of the little boy, who represented the best
-hope of Russia. This circumstance was cleverly exploited. No one was
-ever present at his interviews with the Czar or with the Empress; it
-was therefore easy for him to say what he liked about them, certain
-that no one could ever contradict him, with the exception of the
-interested persons themselves, and these could never get to hear or
-to learn anything about the wild tales which it pleased him, together
-with his friends, to put into circulation regarding the position which
-he occupied at the court. Thanks to his persuasive powers and to the
-undoubted magnetic force he was possessed of, he contrived to imbue
-even earnest and serious people with the conviction that he was at
-times the echo of the voices of those placed far above him, and that
-they had called upon him to say to others what it embarrassed them to
-mention themselves.
-
-In Russia, as a general rule, the people in power were all cringing
-before the Czar, whom they never dared to contradict. There were at
-the time I am writing about some Ministers who believed, or affected
-to believe, in all the extraordinary tales which it pleased Rasputin
-to repeat, and who thought it useful to follow the indications which
-it pleased him to give to them. He was only too delighted to be
-considered the most powerful personage in the whole of the Russian
-Empire. He helped as much as he could to accredit all the legends going
-about among the public in regard to his own person, and he imagined
-that the best way to add to his reputation as a man who did not care
-for the opinions of the world was to treat this world with disdain and
-with contempt, and to transform into his humble slaves ladies belonging
-to the highest social ranks, just as he had transformed into his
-hand-maidens the peasant girls who had fallen under his spell.
-
-That he magnetised most of the people with whom he prayed seems but too
-true. Perhaps they did not notice it, and perhaps this was done with
-the consent of those on whom he exercised his hypnotic strength--it
-is difficult to know exactly--but that his prayer meetings were the
-scene of spiritist and magnetic experiences all who have ever been
-present agree in saying. He made no secret about the fact, and openly
-acknowledged the use which he made of the state of trance in which he
-liked to throw his disciples, especially those belonging to the weaker
-sex. He practiced to the full all the customs of the “Khlystys,” but he
-added to them a cunning such as is but rarely found in a human being,
-and a rough knowledge of human nature which gave him the facility to
-exploit the passions of the many vile people who thought that he was
-their instrument while in reality it was they who were playing fiddle
-to his tune.
-
-After his return to St. Petersburg he applied himself to the task of
-setting aside all his former patrons, such as Illiodore, against whom
-he contrived to irritate several important members of the Holy Synod
-with false reports about remarks which the now disgraced monk was
-supposed to have made. He contrived also to bring about the exile of
-the Archbishop of Saratoff, Hermogene, from whom he feared disagreeable
-revelations concerning his own past life and certain episodes connected
-with the days when he had preached his so-called doctrine in the
-town and government of Saratoff. On the other hand, he toadied to
-other ecclesiastical dignitaries eager for promotion, and in that way
-obtained their support in the Synod. Very soon he turned his thoughts
-to more practical subjects than religious fervour or religious reforms,
-and sought the society of business and financial people. Among these he
-soon obtained the opportunities he longed for and established a kind of
-large shop or concern where everything in the world could be bought or
-sold, from a pound of butter to a minister’s portfolio.
-
-It is no exaggeration to say that there was a time when nothing of
-importance ever occurred in the political, social and administrative
-life of the Russian capital that was not attributed to Rasputin, and
-the result of this was that there crowded about him all kinds of
-dark personalities, who hoped, thanks to his support and influence,
-to obtain this or that favour. Everything interested him, everything
-attracted his attention; railway concessions, bank emissions, stock
-exchange speculations, purchase of properties, acquisition of shares
-in industrial concerns, arranging of loans for persons in need of
-them--nothing seemed too small or too important for his activity. He
-liked to think himself necessary to all these high-born people, whom
-he compelled to wait for hours in his ante-chambers, just as if he
-had been a sovereign. And for every favour he granted, for every word
-which he promised to say, he exacted payment in the shape of a pound of
-flesh, which consisted, according to circumstances, in a more or less
-important commission.
-
-Ministers and functionaries feared him. They knew that he could do
-them an infinitude of harm by causing to be circulated against them
-rumours of a damaging character, the result of which would have
-undoubtedly been their disgrace or removal to another sphere of action
-very probably not at all desirable. He was credited for an infinitude
-of things he had never thought of performing, and he was supposed
-to have been privy to all kinds of governmental changes that either
-pleased or displeased those who criticised them. As time went on one
-accused him among other things of the dismissal of the procurator of
-the Holy Synod, Mr. Loukianoff, with whom he had for a long period
-been at daggers drawn and who had openly expressed his disapproval
-of the “Prophet” and his disbelief in his miraculous powers. The
-elevation of the Archimandrite Warnava, one of his warmest patrons in
-the past, to the Episcopal See of Tobolsk was also said to have been
-Rasputin’s work, and the public persisted so entirely in seeing his
-hand everywhere and in everything that it was even rumoured that it
-was he who was answerable for the decision of the censor forbidding
-the representation of a drama by the celebrated author Leonide
-Andreieff called, “Anathema,” on the eve of the day when it was to be
-produced--a decision which caused an immense sensation in the society
-of the Russian capital.
-
-It was natural that among the many people who crowded around Rasputin
-some secret police agents found their way. One of these who was
-later to become the hero of more than one scandal, a certain Mr.
-Manassevitsch Maniuloff, bethought himself of becoming the mentor
-of the “Prophet.” He was in close relation with Count Witte, always
-eager for his own return to power, and desirous of overturning every
-individual in possession of the posts which he had formerly occupied
-himself. The two men tried to imbue Rasputin with the idea that he
-had great political talents, and that it was a pity he had not yet
-turned these into account for the good and the welfare of Holy Russia.
-Rasputin did not believe in the sincerity of his newly acquired
-advisers, but he was shrewd enough to see that their help would be of
-wonderful value to him. He willingly entered into the plans which they
-unfolded to him between two glasses of brandy or two cups of champagne
-as the occasion presented itself. Count Witte was very well aware of
-all the secret influences which were paramount at Tsarskoie Selo, and
-he contrived to turn them in favour of Rasputin, suggesting at the same
-time to the latter the things which he ought to say, when in presence
-of certain personages. It was easy to throw in a word now and then,
-either in the shape of a jest, or of a remark uttered inadvertently and
-unintentionally, but yet sure to bear fruit in the future. The great
-thing was to give to Rasputin the idea that he was a personage of
-importance. This was not a very difficult matter considering the very
-high opinion which he already had of his own capacities, coupled with
-his set resolution to make the most hay whilst the sun was shining, and
-never to miss an opportunity of asserting his personality no matter on
-what occasion or with what purpose.
-
-The Balkan war gave Rasputin a golden opportunity for exercising his
-various talents, and it is pretty certain that he made at the time
-strenuous efforts in favour of peace, repeating to whomsoever wished
-to hear him that he had had visions which predicted that the greatest
-calamities were awaiting Russia, if she mixed herself up in it. This
-feeling was shared by a numerous party, and the sovereign himself
-was the most resolute adversary of any military intervention in this
-unfortunate affair. It is likely that even without Rasputin Russia
-would not have drawn her sword either for Bulgaria or for Serbia, but
-nevertheless it pleased his friends to say that without him this would
-have most undoubtedly occurred. And it also pleased him to assert
-that on this occasion he had proved to be the saviour of his native
-land. We shall see him repeat this legend with great relish during a
-conversation which I had with him personally just before the breaking
-out of the present war.
-
-There was also another incident in which Rasputin most certainly was
-implicated. This was the dismissal of Mr. Kokovtsoff, then Prime
-Minister and President of the Council, followed by the appointment
-in his place of old and tottering Mr. Goremykine, to whom no one in
-the whole of Russia had ever given a thought as a possible candidate
-for this difficult post. Count Witte was the personal enemy of Mr.
-Kokovtsoff, whom he had never forgiven for his so-called treason in
-regard to himself, and he never missed any opportunity to attack him
-in the Council of State, of which they were both members, criticising
-his financial administration and making fun of the splendid budgets
-which were regularly presented to the Duma. These Witte declared to be
-entirely artificial, reposing on a clever manipulation of figures. In
-some ways it was easy to find fault with Mr. Kokovtsoff, whose name had
-been mixed up far too much for the good of his personal reputation in
-all kind of financial transactions and Stock Exchange operations. But,
-then, the same thing had been said about Count Witte with perhaps even
-more reason than about Mr. Kokovtsoff, whose wife, at least, had never
-been suspected of any manipulations with her banking account. Indeed,
-no finance minister in Russia had escaped accusations of the kind from
-his detractors or his adversaries, and it had never interfered with
-their administrative careers nor prevented them from sleeping soundly.
-
-So far, so well; but then this was more the work of events as they
-had unfolded themselves naturally than the merit of Rasputin; yet he
-was openly congratulated by his friends, or so-called ones, on the
-success which he had obtained in driving Mr. Kokovtsoff away. The
-ultra-orthodox party which hailed the advent to power of one of its
-members--Mr. Goremykine having always been considered as one of the
-pillars of the conservative faction--not only cheered the “Prophet”
-with enthusiasm but also started to proclaim anew his genius and clear
-understanding of the needs of the Russian people. Thus a ministerial
-crisis culminated in the apotheosis of a man whose only appreciation
-of the qualities and of the duties of a Minister consisted in the
-knowledge of that Minister’s existence as a public functionary.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-
-Among Rasputin’s adversaries was Mr. Stolypine, who, with strong
-common sense and great intelligence, had objected to the importance
-which certain social circles in St. Petersburg had tried to give to
-the soothsayer. At first he had regarded the whole matter as a kind
-of wild craze which was bound to subside in time, as other crazes of
-the same sort had dwindled into insignificance in the past. Later on,
-however, some reports that had reached him concerning the persons who
-frequented Rasputin’s society had given him reason to think that there
-might be something more than stupid, enthusiasm in the various tales
-which had come to his ears in regard to the Prophet of Pokrovskoie.
-He, therefore, expressed the wish to see him, so as to be able to form
-a personal judgment of the man, and a meeting was arranged in due
-course at the house of one of the ladies who patronised Rasputin. It is
-related that after he had cast his eyes upon him Mr. Stolypine, when
-asked to give his opinion on the personality of the individual about
-whom he had heard so many conflicting reports, had simply replied:
-
-“The best thing to do with him is to send him to light the furnace; he
-is fit for nothing else.”
-
-The words were repeated and circulated freely in St. Petersburg;
-they reached Rasputin, and enraged him the more, because, shortly
-afterwards, it was Mr. Stolypine who had insisted on having him
-expelled from the capital, and who for two whole years had refused to
-allow him to enter it again. When, therefore, in the early autumn of
-1912 the “prophet” at last was allowed to return to St. Petersburg,
-it was with the feelings of the deepest enmity against the Minister
-who had exiled him. He had the satisfaction of finding that during
-his enforced absence the popularity of Mr. Stolypine had decreased,
-and that a considerable number were openly talking about overthrowing
-him. Rasputin very soon discovered the use which could be made of this
-state of things, which surpassed by far any hopes he might have nursed
-of being able to be revenged upon the President of the Cabinet for the
-injury which he imagined that the latter had done to him. He proceeded
-in all his sermons to compare him with the Antichrist, and to say that
-Russia would never be quiet so long as he remained one of its rulers.
-
-The police agent, whose name I have already mentioned, Mr.
-Manassevitsch Maniuloff, who always had his eye on Rasputin, and who
-had hastened to call upon him as soon as he had seen him return to
-the capital, was not slow to notice the now outspoken animosity of
-the latter in regard to the Prime Minister, who was offensive to him
-as well as to the whole secret police. The latter, finding that it
-could no longer do what it pleased, and that it had to respect the
-private liberty and life of the peaceful Russian citizens, or else be
-called to account by Mr. Stolypine, who ever since his appointment had
-been working against the occult powers of the “Okhrana,” had but one
-idea; and this was to get rid by fair means or by foul of a master
-determined to control the police. It is known in Russia that Mr.
-Stolypine’s assassination was the work of the secret police itself, who
-had found the murderer in the person of one of its own agents, to whom
-it had furnished even the revolver with which to kill the unfortunate
-Stolypine. But few people dared relate all that they suspected in
-regard to this heinous crime, and fewer still were aware of all its
-details, and of the manner in which it had been planned.
-
-The truth of the story is that Mr. Maniuloff secretly took to
-Rasputin’s house two or three police agents, to whom the latter said
-that God himself had revealed to him that Russia could never be saved
-from the perils of revolution until the removal of Mr. Stolypine.
-He even blessed the officers, together with a pistol with which he
-presented them. It turned out afterwards that this pistol was the
-very weapon which the Jew Bagroff fired at the Prime Minister in the
-theatre of Kieff during the gala performance given there in honour of
-the Emperor’s visit to the town. When Stolypine had succumbed to his
-wounds, Rasputin made no secret of the satisfaction which his death
-had occasioned to him, and exerted himself in favour of several people
-who were supposed to have been privy to the plot that had been hatched
-against the life of the Prime Minister. He told his disciples that the
-fate which had overtaken the unhappy Stolypine did not surprise him at
-all, and that every one of those who would venture to oppose him would
-meet with a similar one in the future.
-
-In a certain sense, this threat had an effect on those before whom
-it was uttered. People began to dread Rasputin, not on account of
-any supernatural powers he might have been endowed with, but because
-they saw that he had managed to get into association with individuals
-utterly unscrupulous and ready to resort to every means, even to
-assassination, in order to come to their own ends. They thought it
-better and wiser, therefore, to get out of his way and not to attempt
-to thwart him. He became associated in the mind of Russian society
-with conspirators similar to the Italian carbonari or Camorrists. The
-conviction that, under the veil of religious fervour, he was able to
-persuade his satellites to do whatever he pleased, and to hesitate at
-nothing in the way of infamy and crime, gradually established itself
-everywhere until it was thought advisable to have nothing to do with
-him, or else to submit to him absolutely and in everything. It was very
-well known that he had had a hand in the murder of Mr. Stolypine, but
-not one single person could be found daring enough to say so, and an
-atmosphere of impunity enveloped him together with those who worshipped
-at his shrine or who had put themselves under his protection.
-
-It was during this same winter of 1912–13 that the name of Rasputin
-became more and more familiar to the ears of the general public,
-which until that time had only heard about him vaguely and had not
-troubled about him at all. It was also then that rumours without
-number concerning the prayer meetings at which he presided began to
-circulate. Innumerable legends arose in regard to those meetings,
-which were compared to the worst assemblies ever held by Khlysty
-sectarians. In reality nothing unmentionable took place during their
-course. Rasputin was far too clever to apply to the fine ladies, whose
-help he considered essential to the progress of his future career, the
-same means by which he had subjugated the simple peasant women and
-provincial girls whom he had depraved. He remained strictly on the
-religious ground with his aristocratic followers, and he tried only to
-develop in them feelings of divine fervour verging upon an exaltation
-which was close to hysteria in its worst shape or form. In a word, it
-was with him and them a case like that of the nuns of Loudun in the
-sixteenth century. Had he lived in the middle ages it is certain that
-Rasputin would have been burnt at the first stake to be found for the
-purpose, which, perhaps, would not have been such a great misfortune.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Photograph, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-RASPUTIN AND HIS “COURT”]
-
-I have seen a photograph representing the “Prophet” drinking tea with
-the ladies who composed the nucleus of the new church or sect, which
-he prided himself upon having founded. It is a curious production.
-Rasputin is seen sitting at a table before a samovar or tea urn slowly
-sipping out of a saucer the fragrant beverage so dear to Russian
-hearts. Around him are grouped the Countess I., Madame W., Madame
-T. and other of his feminine admirers, who, with fervent eyes, are
-watching him. The expression of these ladies is most curious, and makes
-one regret that one could not observe it otherwise than in a picture.
-Their faces are filled with an enthusiasm that bears the distinct
-stamp of magnetic influence, and it is easy to notice that they are
-plunged into that kind of trance when one is no longer accountable for
-one’s actions.
-
-The method used by Rasputin was to humiliate all the women of the
-higher circles whom he had subjugated, and who had been silly enough
-to allow themselves to fall under his spell. Thus he liked to compell
-them to kiss his hands and feet, to lick the plates out of which he had
-been eating, or to drink out of the glass which he had just drained.
-He made them say long prayers in a most fatiguing posture, compelled
-them sometimes to remain for hours prostrate on the ground before some
-sacred image, or to stand for a whole day in one place without moving,
-as a penance for their sins; or again to go for hours without food.
-Once he commanded one of them to walk in one night to the village of
-Strelna, a distance of about twenty-five miles from St. Petersburg, and
-to return immediately, without giving herself any rest at all, with a
-twig from a certain tree he had designated to her.
-
-In a word, Doctor Charcot would have found in him an invaluable
-assistant in the experiments he was so fond of making. But he did
-not go further than these eccentricities. Orgies did not take place
-during the prayer meetings in which Rasputin exerted to the utmost
-the magnetic powers which he undoubtedly possessed. While he had been
-preaching to the humble followers he had at the beginning of his career
-of thaumaturgy the theory of free love, to his St. Petersburg disciples
-he declared that sensuality was the one great crime which the Almighty
-never forgave to those who had rendered themselves guilty of it. It
-was in order to subdue the flesh and the devil that he commanded his
-victims to mortify themselves together with their senses, and that he
-submitted them to the most revolting practices of self-penitence before
-which they would have recoiled with horror had they been of sound mind.
-
-There is a curious account of an interview with him which was published
-in the _Retsch_, the organ of the Russian Liberal party, immediately
-after the death of Rasputin by Prince Lvoff, who had had the curiosity
-to speak with the “Prophet.” The Prince was one of the leaders of the
-progressive faction of the Duma. This is what he wrote, which I feel
-certain will interest my readers sufficiently for them to forgive me
-for quoting it in extenso:
-
- “I have had personally twice in my life occasion to speak with
- Rasputin. The first time was toward the end of the year 1915,
- when I was invited by Prince I. W. Gouranoff to meet him.
-
- When I arrived Rasputin was already there, sitting beside a
- large table, with a numerous company gathered around him,
- among which figured, in the same quality as myself, as a
- curious stranger, the present chief of the military censorship
- in Petrograd, General M. A. Adabasch, who was the whole time
- attentively watching the “Prophet” from the distant corner
- whither he had retired. Rasputin was dressed in his usual
- costume of a Russian peasant and was very silent, throwing
- only now and then a word or two into the general conversation
- or uttering a short sentence, after which he relapsed into
- his former silence. In his dress and in his manners he was
- absolutely uncouth, and when, for instance, he was offered an
- apple he cut a hole at its top with his own very dirty pocket
- knife, after which he put the knife aside and tore the fruit
- in two with his hands, eating it, peel and all, in the most
- primitive manner. After some time he got up and went to the
- next room, where he sat down on a large divan with a few ladies
- who had joined him, toward whom his manner left very much to be
- desired.
-
- I had kept examining him the whole time with great attention,
- seeking for that extraordinary glance he was supposed to
- possess, to which was attributed his power over people,
- but I could not find any trace of it or notice anything
- remarkable about him. The expression of his face was that of
- a cunning mougik, such as one constantly meets with in our
- country, perfectly well aware of the conditions in which he
- found himself, and determined to make the best out of them.
- Everything in him, to begin with his common dress and to end
- with his long hair and his dirty nails, bore the character of
- the uncivilised peasant he was. He seemed to realise, better
- perhaps than those who surrounded him, that one of his trump
- cards was precisely this uncouthness, which ought to have been
- repelling, and that if he had put on different clothes and
- tried to assimilate the manners of his betters, half of the
- interest which he excited would have disappeared. I did not
- stay a long time, and went away thoroughly disappointed, and
- perhaps even slightly disgusted at the man.
-
- A few months later, in February of the present year, 1916,
- I was asked again to meet Rasputin at Baron Miklos’s house.
- There I found a numerous and most motley company assembled.
- There were two members of the Duma, Messrs. Karaouloff and
- Souratchane; General Polivanoff; a great landowner of the
- government of Woronege, N. P. Alexieieff; Madame Svetchine;
- the Senator S. P. Bieletsky and other people. Ladies were in a
- majority. Rasputin remained talking for a long time with the
- Deputy Karaouloff in another room than the one in which I found
- myself. Then he came to join us in the large drawing room,
- where he kept walking up and down with a young girl on his
- arm--Mlle. D., a singer by profession--who was entreating him
- to arrange for her an engagement at the Russian Opera, which he
- promised her to do “for certain,” as he expressed himself.
-
- Every five or ten minutes Rasputin went up to a table on
- which were standing several decanters with red wine and other
- spirits, and he poured himself a large glass out of one of
- them. He swallowed the contents at one gulp, wiping his mouth
- afterwards with his sleeve or with the back of his hand. During
- one of these excursions he came up to where I was sitting,
- and stopped before me exclaiming: “I remember thee. Thou art
- a gasser, who writes, and writes, and repeats nothing but
- calumnies.” I asked the “Prophet” why he did not say “you” to
- me, instead of addressing me with the vulgar appellation of
- “thou.”
-
- “I speak in this way with everybody,” he replied. “I have got
- my own way in talking with people.”
-
- I made him a remark concerning some words which he had
- pronounced badly, adding, “Surely you have learned during the
- ten years which you have lived in the capital that one does not
- use the expressions which you have employed. And how do you
- know that I have written or repeated calumnies. You cannot read
- yourself, so that everything you hear is from other people, and
- you cannot feel sure whether they tell you the truth.”
-
- “This does not matter,” he replied. “Thou hast written that one
- is stealing, and thou knowest thyself how to do so.”
-
- “I do not know how to steal,” I answered. “But I have written
- that one is doing so at present everywhere. This it was
- necessary to do for the public good.”
-
- “Thou hast done wrong; one must only write the truth. Truth is
- everything,” he said.
-
- The conversation was assuming an angry and sharp tone. Rasputin
- became enraged at my telling him that all he was saying was
- devoid of common sense, and he began shouting at me, at the top
- of his voice. “Be quiet, how darest thou say such things. Be
- quiet!”
-
- I did not wish to remain quiet, and I began in my turn to shout
- at the “Prophet,” who became absolutely furious when I assured
- him that I was not a woman whom he could frighten, that I
- wanted nothing from him, and that he had better leave me alone,
- or it might be the worse for him.
-
- He then howled at me, screaming as loud as he could: “It is an
- evil thing for everybody that thou art here!”
-
- When in the following April it came to my knowledge that Mr.
- Sturmer wanted to expel me from the capital, I was surprised to
- have Baron Miklos come to me one day in the name of Rasputin,
- who had asked him to tell me that though I was a “proud man,”
- he did not bear me any grudge, that if I wished it, he would
- take steps to have the order for my expulsion revoked, and that
- at all events, he begged me not to think that he had taken any
- part in this whole affair. I categorically refused to avail
- myself of the help of Rasputin, and there ended the whole
- matter.”
-
-I have reproduced this tale because it seems to me that it helps one
-to understand the personality of Rasputin, and because it describes
-to perfection the manner in which he used to treat the people with
-whom he dealt. Personally, when I interviewed the “Prophet,” I had
-the opportunity to convince myself that the impression which he had
-produced upon Prince Lvoff was absolutely a correct one, and I made the
-same remark which the latter had done in regard to the total absence
-of this magnetic strength which Rasputin was supposed to possess over
-those with whom he entered into conversation. The man was a fraud
-and nothing else. He had been deified by the group of foolish people
-whom he had persuaded that he was a messenger from Heaven, come to
-announce to Holy Russia that a new Christ had arisen. But his pretended
-fascination existed only in the imagination of the persons who
-asserted its existence. To the impartial observer he appeared what he
-was--an arrogant and insolent peasant, who, knowing admirably well on
-which side his bread was buttered, exploited with considerable ability
-to his personal advantage the stupidity of his neighbours.
-
-I have already related that his house had become a kind of Stock
-Exchange in which everything could be bought or sold, where all kinds
-of shady transactions used to take place, and where the most disgusting
-bargaining for places and appointments was perpetually going on. Gifts
-innumerable were showered upon him, which he pretended he distributed
-to the poor, but which in reality he carefully put into his own pocket.
-This peasant, who when he had arrived in St. Petersburg for the first
-time, had hardly possessed a shirt to his back, had become a very rich
-man. He had bought several houses, gambled in stock shares and other
-securities, and had contrived to accumulate a banking account which,
-if one is to believe all that has been related, amounted to several
-millions. From time to time, however, he used to come out with some
-munificent offering to some charity or other, with which he threw
-dust in people’s eyes. They thought that it was in this manner that
-he employed all the money which was showered upon him by his numerous
-admirers. It was in this way that he built in St. Petersburg, not far
-from the spot where, by a strange coincidence, his murdered body was
-afterwards found, a church which was called the Salvation Church, which
-adjoined a school for girls. There he used to go often. Whenever he
-went he was always met by the clergy in charge with great pomp, as
-if he had been a bishop or some great ecclesiastical dignitary, and
-was awaited at the door with the cross and holy water. This church was
-placed under the special protection of the Metropolitan of Petrograd,
-Pitirim, who often celebrated divine service in it, at which Rasputin
-always made it a point to be present. But instead of meeting the
-Metropolitan, as he ought to have done, he was in the habit of arriving
-after him. Mgr. Pitirim, however, awaited his arrival just as he would
-have waited for the Emperor. Indeed the submission which the official
-head of the clergy of the capital affected in regard to Rasputin is one
-of the most extraordinary episodes in the latter’s wonderful career.
-
-In fact, when one reviews all one has heard concerning this personage,
-one is tempted to ask the question whether his appearance in St.
-Petersburg had not brought along with it an epidemic of madness among
-all those who had come in contact with him. It hardly seems possible
-that bishops, priests, ministers, high dignitaries, statesmen, even,
-or at least men having the pretension to be considered as such, should
-have thought it necessary to go and seek the favour of this vulgar,
-ill-bred, dirty Russian mougik, devoid of honesty and of scruples,
-about whom the most disgraceful stories were being repeated everywhere,
-and whose presence in the houses where he was a daily visitor used
-to give rise to the worst kind of gossip. This gossip was of such a
-nature that decent persons hesitated before repeating it, let alone
-believing it. Like an insidious poison it defiled all whom it touched.
-One fails to realise by what kind of magic grave men like Mr. Sabler,
-for instance, who for some time had occupied the highly responsible
-and delicate function of Procurator of the Holy Synod, one of the most
-important posts in the whole Russian Empire, could be made so far to
-forget himself as to prostrate himself before Rasputin in his eagerness
-to become entitled to the latter’s good graces and protection. And that
-he did so is at least not a matter of doubt, if we are to believe the
-following letter which the monk Illiodore wrote from his exile on the
-fifth of May, 1914, to a personage very well known in the political
-circles of St. Petersburg.
-
- “I swear to you with the word of honour of an honest man
- that the letter in which I called Sabler and Damansky the
- instruments of ‘Gricha’ (Rasputin) contained nothing but the
- solemn truth, and I repeat it once more, that according to
- what Rasputin told to me on the twenty-eighth of June, 1911,
- at 3 o’clock in the afternoon in my little cell, Sabler really
- kissed the feet of ‘Gricha,’ who, in relating this story to
- me, showed me with an expressive pantomime in what way he had
- done so. I consider as utterly false and as a barefaced lie the
- declaration of Mr. Sabler that he had never prostrated himself
- before any one, except before the sacred images. Respectfully
- yours,
-
- S. M. TROUFANOFF,
- formerly the monk Illiodore.”
-
-
-It is difficult to say, of course, how much reliance can be placed on
-those assertions of Illiodore, and whether Mr. Sabler really thought
-it necessary to fall on the ground before Rasputin. But out of this
-letter one can infer that the influence of the latter was considered
-to be important enough for people to trouble themselves about relating
-stories of the kind to show it up. Altogether, one may safely conclude,
-out of the very spare material which so far has come to light in regard
-to the activity of Rasputin, that we have not yet heard the whole truth
-about all the circumstances which accompanied his sudden rise and fall,
-and that there must have been in both events things which perhaps will
-never come to light. But all of them point out to some dark intrigue
-in which he was but one of the pawns, whilst believing himself to be
-the principal actor. One must not forget that the Czar himself was at
-one time liberal in his ideas and opinions, and that it was entirely
-due to his personal initiative that the Constitution, such as it is,
-which Russia possessed before his fall was promulgated. This was not
-done without arousing terrible animosities, provoking awful discontent.
-From the first hour that its contents were published, there were found
-persons who began to work against it, and who by their efforts brought
-about the revolution of the year 1905, with the help of which they
-hoped to bring back the days of absolute government, when every public
-functionary was a small Czar in his own way, and when the caprice of
-the first police official could send away to distant Siberia innocent
-people. This abuse Nicholas II. had tried to put an end to, which was
-not forgiven by the crew of rapacious crocodiles, who up to that day
-had administered the affairs of the Russian Empire, and they it was
-who determined to take their revenge for this noble and disinterested
-intention of their sovereign.
-
-Rasputin became the instrument of the reactionary party, which he,
-in his turn, contrived to make instrumental in carrying out his own
-views and aims. His head had been turned by the unexpected position in
-which he had found himself placed. It is not surprising that he lost
-his balance and that he ended by considering himself as being what he
-had been told by so many different people that he was--a Prophet of
-the Lord, having the right to say what he liked, to calumniate whom he
-liked, to make use of whatever means he found at hand, to eliminate
-from his path any obstacles he might have found intruding upon it.
-His name became synonymous with that of this ultraconservative party
-which was leading Russia towards its ruin, and which always contrived
-to reduce to nothing all the good intentions of the Czar. Rasputin
-was a symbol and a flag at the same time; the symbol of superstition,
-and the flag of dark reaction. It is impossible to know to this day
-whether he was not also what everything points to; that is, an agent of
-the German Government, who had entered into German interests, and who
-had during the last months of his life been working together with Mr.
-Sturmer and the latter’s private secretary, the famous Manassevitsch
-Maniuloff, towards a separate peace with the Central Powers, the
-conclusion of which would have dishonoured forever the Czar, together
-with his Government, and which would have provoked such discontent in
-the country that the dynasty might have collapsed under its weight.
-
-There exist at least indications that such a thing was within the
-limits of possibility, and, if so, those who put an end to the evil
-career of this dangerous man deserve well from their country, and the
-leniency which has been shown to them is but the reward for an act of
-daring which, though unjustifiable from the moral point of view, is
-nevertheless to be condoned by the circumstance that its patriotic aim
-was so great that it was worth while risking everything, even remorse,
-in order to accomplish it.
-
-In a certain sense, Rasputin was the curse of Russia. Thanks to him,
-the purest existences were subjected to a whole series of base attacks
-and of vile calumnies. Thanks to him, our enemies were given the
-opportunity to pour out upon us, upon our institutions, our statesmen
-and even upon our sovereign the poison of their venom, and to represent
-us to those who do not know us in a light which, thanks be rendered to
-God, was an absolutely false and untrue one.
-
-Russia was far too great for such things to touch her. That Germany
-rejoiced at every tale which reached its ears in regard to Rasputin is
-evident if one reads its newspapers. That it was in understanding and
-accord, if not directly with him, at least with some of those who were
-his immediate friends and habitual confidents, has been proved to the
-satisfaction of all impartial persons. And that he worked continually
-towards establishing an understanding between the Czar and the Kaiser
-is another fact of which more than one man in Russia is aware. Whether
-he did so intentionally, or whether he was the unconscious instrument
-of others cleverer and more cultivated than he ever was or would
-become, is still a point that has not been cleared up to the general
-satisfaction. But that his so-called influence only existed over
-certain weak people, and that the Czar himself never knowingly allowed
-it to be exercised in matters of state, is a fact about which there can
-exist no doubt for those who knew the sovereign.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-
-I have quoted the impressions of Prince Lvoff in regard to Rasputin,
-and have remarked that I have had personally the opportunity to
-convince myself that they were correct, at least in their broad lines.
-The interview which I had with Rasputin in the course of the winter of
-1913–14 left me with feelings akin to those experienced by the Prince.
-This interview took place under the following circumstances: I had been
-asked by a big American newspaper to see the “Prophet,” whose renown
-had already spread beyond the Russian frontiers, and who was beginning
-to be considered as a factor of no mean importance in the conduct of
-Russian state affairs. This, however, was by no means an easy matter.
-For one thing, he was seldom in St. Petersburg. He spent most of his
-time at Tsarskoie Selo, where his headquarters were the apartments of
-Mme. W. He used to make only brief and flying visits to the capital,
-where he possessed several dwellings. One never knew in which one he
-could be found, as he used to go from one to another, according to
-his fancy. He gave audiences like a sovereign would have done, and
-before any one was allowed to enter his presence that person had to be
-subjected to a course of cross-examination so as to make quite sure
-that no malicious or evil designs were harboured by him in regard to
-the “Prophet.”
-
-At last, after a succession of unavailing efforts, I chanced to light
-on a certain Mr. de Bock, with whom Rasputin had business relations,
-and for whom he procured when the war broke out an important contract
-connected with the supply of meat for the troops in the field. It was
-this personage who finally obtained for me the favour of being admitted
-into the home of Rasputin. The latter was living at the time in a
-very handsome and expensive flat, in a house situated on the English
-Prospekt, a rather distant street in St. Petersburg, whose proximity to
-the quarters of the working population of the capital had appealed to
-the “Prophet’s” tastes. When I arrived there at about 4 o’clock in the
-afternoon, I was, first of all, stopped by the hall porter, who wanted
-me to explain to him where and to whom I was going. Upon hearing that
-it was to Rasputin he insisted on my taking off my fur coat downstairs,
-and then examined me most carefully and suspiciously, surveying with
-special attention the size and volume of my pockets, so as to make
-sure that I was not carrying any murderous instruments hidden in their
-depths.
-
-Upstairs the door was opened by an elderly woman with a red kerchief
-over her head, who, I learned afterward, was one of the “sisters”
-who followed the “Prophet” everywhere. She asked for my name, and
-then ushered me into a room, sparely but richly furnished. There some
-half-dozen people were waiting, in what seemed to me to be extreme
-impatience, for the door of the next room to open and admit them.
-Voices were heard through the door angrily discussing something or
-other. Among the people present I recognised a lady-in-waiting on the
-Empress, an old general in possession of an important command, two
-parish priests, three women belonging to the lower classes, one of whom
-seemed to be in great trouble, and a typical Russian merchant in high
-boots and dressed in the long caftan which is still worn by some of
-those who have kept up the traditions of the old school. Then there was
-a little boy about ten years old, poorly clad, who was crying bitterly.
-All these people kept silent, but the eager expression on their faces
-showed that they were all labouring under an intense agitation and
-emotion. When I entered the apartment a distinct look of disappointment
-appeared on all their faces. At last the old general approached me, and
-asked me in more or less polite tones whether I had a special card of
-admission or not.
-
-“What do you mean?” I inquired.
-
-“Well, you see,” he said, “we all who are in this room have got
-one, but there”--and he pointed with his finger to the adjoining
-door--“there sit the people who have come here on the chance, just to
-try whether Gregory Efimitsch will condescend to speak to them. Some
-have been sitting there since last night,” he significantly added.
-And as he spoke he slightly pushed ajar the door he had mentioned. I
-could see that a room, if anything smaller than the one we were in, was
-packed full of persons of different ages and types, all of whom looked
-tired. They were sitting not only on the few chairs which the apartment
-contained, but also on the floor. There were women with children
-hanging at their breast, military men, priests, monks, common peasants
-and two policemen. The last named were seated by the window leisurely
-eating a piece of bread and cold meat, which they were cutting into
-small slices with a pocketknife. They had evidently made themselves at
-home, regardless of consequences or of the feelings of other people.
-Suddenly we heard another door slam, and a strong step resounded in the
-hall. A man began to speak in a loud voice. He said: “You just go to
-see----” and here the name of one of the most influential officials in
-the Home Office was mentioned, “and you tell him that Gricha has said
-he was to give you a place, and a good one, too. It does not matter
-whether there is none vacant, he must find one. There, take this paper,
-and now go, and don’t forget to show it when you come to the Home
-Office.”
-
-The door slammed again, and all remained silent for a few minutes. Then
-the elderly woman who had admitted me, came into the apartment where we
-were sitting and beckoned me to follow her. But this proved too much
-for the feelings of the old general who had accosted me on my entrance,
-and he pushed himself forward in front of me, exclaiming as he did so:
-
-“I have been here a longer time than she has been,” pointing at me with
-his finger, “and I must get in first.”
-
-“You cannot do so,” replied the woman; “my orders are to let this lady
-in first.”
-
-“Do you know who I am, woman?” screamed the general at the top of his
-lungs; he was evidently in a towering passion. “Go at once, and tell
-Gregory Efimitsch that I must see him at once, I have been waiting here
-for more than an hour.”
-
-“I cannot do so,” replied the woman, “I must obey the orders that have
-been given to me.”
-
-“Then I shall do it myself,” exclaimed the general, and he rushed
-toward the door, which he opened, when he was stopped by a whole
-torrent of invectives coming from the next room.
-
-“How dare you disobey my orders?” cried out an angry voice. “Thou pig
-and son of a pig, I have said I wish to see this person and no one
-else! Thou idle creature! Chuck him out of the room, that pig who
-dares to contradict me, and you come in here!” And the tall figure of
-Rasputin appeared on the threshold of the room. He rudely pushed aside
-the general and, seizing my hand, pulled me into another apartment,
-which seemed to be his dining room.
-
-It was a rather large corner room with three windows, in which stood
-a quantity of flowers and green plants. A round table occupied the
-middle, on which was laid a striped white-and-red tablecloth. A samovar
-was standing on it, together with glasses on blue-and-white saucers,
-slices of lemon, sugar in a silver sugar basin, and quantities of cakes
-and biscuits. Chairs were placed around it, on one of which Rasputin
-sat down, facing the tea urn, after having made me a sign to do
-likewise. I noticed that there was a large writing table in one corner
-covered with books and papers.
-
-The “Prophet” himself did not at all strike me as being the remarkable
-individual I had been led to expect. He must have been about forty
-years old, tall and lean, with a long black beard and hair, falling
-not quite down to his back, but considerably lower than his ears. The
-eyes were black, singularly cunning in their expression, but did not
-produce, at least not on me, the uncanny impression I had been told
-they generally made on those who saw them for the first time. The hands
-were the most remarkable thing about the man. They were long and thin,
-with immense nails, as dirty as dirty could be. He kept moving them in
-all directions as he spoke, sometimes folding them on his breast and
-sometimes lifting them high up in the air. He wore the ordinary dress
-of the Russian peasant, high boots and the caftan, which, however, was
-made of the best and finest dark-blue cloth. What could be seen of his
-linen was also of the best quality.
-
-After having beckoned to me to sit down, Rasputin poured out some tea
-in a glass and proceeded to drink it, sipping the beverage slowly out
-of the saucer into which he poured it out of the glass which he had
-just filled. Suddenly he pushed the same saucer toward me with the word:
-
-“Drink.”
-
-As I did not in the least feel inclined to take his remains, I declined
-the tempting offer, which made him draw together his black and bushy
-eyebrows with the remark:
-
-“Better persons than thou art have drunk out of this saucer, but if
-thou wantest to make a fuss it is no concern of mine.”
-
-And then he called out, “Avdotia! Avdotia!” The elderly woman who had
-opened the door for me hastened to come into the room.
-
-“There,” said Rasputin, “this person”---pointing toward me with his
-forefinger--“this person refuses to drink out of the cup of life; take
-it thou instead.”
-
-The woman instantly dropped on her knees and Rasputin proceeded to open
-her mouth with his fingers and pour down her throat the tea which I had
-disdained. She then prostrated herself on the ground before him and
-reverently kissed his feet, remaining in this attitude until he pushed
-her aside with his heavy boot and said, “There, now thou canst go.”
-
-Then he turned to me once more. “Great ladies, some of the greatest
-in the land, are but too happy to do as this woman has done,” he said
-dryly. “Remember that, daughter.”
-
-Then he proceeded at once with the question, “Thou hast wished to see
-me. What can I do for thee? I am but a poor and humble man, the servant
-of the Lord, but sometimes it has been my fate to do some good for
-others. What dost thou require of me?”
-
-I proceeded to explain that I wanted nothing in the matter of worldly
-goods, but asked this singular personage to be kind enough to tell me
-for the paper which I represented whether it was true that but for him
-Russia would have declared war upon Austria the year before.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Photograph, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-GREGORY RASPUTIN]
-
-“Who has told you such a thing?” he inquired.
-
-“It is a common saying in St. Petersburg,” I replied, “and some people
-say that you have been right in doing so.”
-
-“Right? Of course, I was right,” he answered with considerable
-irritation. “All these silly people who surround our Czar would like
-to see him commit stupidities. They only think about themselves and
-about the profits which they can make. War is a crime, a great crime,
-the greatest which a nation can commit, and those who declare war are
-criminals. I only spoke the truth when I told our Czar that he would be
-ruined if he allowed himself to be persuaded to go to war. This country
-is not ready for it. Besides, God forbids war, and if Russia went to
-war the greatest misfortunes would fall upon her. I only spoke the
-truth; I always speak the truth, and people believe me.”
-
-“But,” I remarked, “no one can understand how it is that your opinion
-always prevails in such grave matters. People think that you must have
-some strange power over men to make them do what you like.”
-
-“And what if I have,” he exclaimed angrily. “They are, all of them,
-pigs--all these people who want to discuss me or my doings. I am but a
-poor peasant, but God has spoken to me, and He has allowed me to know
-what it is that He wishes. I can speak with our Czar. I am not afraid
-to do so, as they all are. And he knows that he ought to listen to me,
-else all kind of evil things would befall him. I could crush them all,
-all these people who want to thwart me. I could crush them in my hand
-as I do this piece of bread,” and while he was speaking he seized a
-biscuit out of a plate on the table and reduced it to crumbs. “They
-have tried to send me away, but they will never get rid of me, because
-God is with me and Gricha shall outlive them all. I have seen too much
-and I know too much. They are obliged to do what I like, and what I
-like is for the good of Russia. As for these ministers and generals,
-and all these big functionaries whom every one fears in this capital,
-I do not trouble about them. I can send them all away if I like. The
-spirit of God is in me and will protect me.
-
-“Thou canst say this to those who have sent thee to see me. Thou canst
-tell them that the day will come when there will be no one worth
-anything in our holy Russia except our Czar and Gricha, the servant of
-God. Yes, thou canst tell them so, and be sure that thou dost it.”
-
-I protested that I should consider this my first duty, but at the same
-time begged “the servant of God,” as he called himself, to explain to
-me by what means he had acquired the influence which he possessed.
-
-“By telling the truth to people about themselves,” he quickly replied.
-“Thou probably thinkest that all these fine ladies about the court who
-come to me do not care to be told about their failings. But there it
-is that thou art mistaken. They feel so disconcerted when they hear
-me call them by their proper names and remind them that they are but
-b----s, and the daughters of b----s, that they immediately fall at my
-feet. A silly lot are these women, and Gricha is not such a fool as
-one thinks. He knows how they ought to be treated. Wilt thou see how I
-treat them?”
-
-I said that nothing would give me more pleasure. Rasputin went to the
-door and called Avdotia.
-
-“Go to the telephone,” he said when she came in, “ask the Countess
-I---- to come at once. She must come herself to the telephone, and if a
-servant replies, say that he must call her immediately, and then tell
-her that I require her presence here at 12 o’clock to-night; not one
-minute earlier or later, mind.”
-
-The woman went away, and I could hear her talking at the telephone in
-the next room in an authoritative tone. Soon she returned with the
-words:
-
-“The Countess sends her humble respects to Gregory Efimitsch, and she
-will be here at midnight as she has been ordered to.”
-
-Rasputin turned toward me with a triumphant smile on his coarse cunning
-countenance.
-
-“Thou canst see, they are losing no time to obey me. Thou dost not know
-what women are, and how they like to be handled. Wait, and thou shalt
-see something better. Avdotia,” he called again. “Is Marie Ivanovna
-here?” he asked, when she came in response to his call. “Yes, since
-three hours,” was the reply. “Call her here.”
-
-A young woman of about twenty-five years of age appeared. She was very
-well dressed in rich furs, and ran up to Rasputin, kneeling before him,
-and kissing with fervour his dirty hands.
-
-“How long hast thou been here?” he asked.
-
-“About three hours, Batiouschka,” she answered.
-
-“This is well, thou art to remain here until midnight, and neither to
-eat or to drink all that time, thou hearest?”
-
-“Yes, Batiouschka,” was the reply, uttered in timid, frightened tones.
-
-“Now go into the next room, kneel down before the Ikon, and wait for
-me without moving. Thou must not move until I come.”
-
-She kissed his hands once more, prostrated herself on the floor before
-him three times in succession, and then retired with the look of being
-in a kind of trance during which she could neither know nor understand
-what was happening to her.
-
-“If thou carest, thou canst follow her, and see whether she obeys me or
-not,” said Rasputin in his usual dry tone.
-
-I declined the invitation, protesting that I had never doubted but
-that the “Prophet” would be obeyed, adding, however, that though I had
-understood he could control the fancies and imagination of women gifted
-with an exalted temperament, yet I was not convinced that his influence
-could be exerted over unemotional men, and that this was the one point
-which interested my friends.
-
-“Thou must not be curious,” shouted Rasputin. “I am not here to tell
-thee the reasons for what I choose to do. It should suffice thee to
-know that I would at once return to Pokrovskoie if ever I thought my
-services were useless to my country. Russia is governed by fools.
-Yes, they are all of them fools, these pigs and children of pigs,” he
-repeated with insistence. “But I am not a fool. I know what I want, and
-if I try to save my country, who can blame me for it?”
-
-“But Gregory Efimitsch,” I insisted, “can you not tell me at least
-whether it is true that some ministers do all that you tell them?”
-
-“Of course, they do,” he replied angrily. “They know very well their
-chairs would not hold them long if they didn’t. Thou shalt yet see
-some surprises before thou diest, daughter,” he concluded with a
-certain melancholy in his accents.
-
-Avdotia entered the room again.
-
-“Gregory Efimitsch,” she said, “there is Father John of Ladoga waiting
-for you.”
-
-“Ah! I had forgotten him.” Then he turned toward me.
-
-“Listen again,” he said; “this is a priest, very poor, who is seeking
-to be transferred into another parish somewhere in the south. Avdotia,
-call on the telephone the secretary of the Synod and tell him that I am
-very much surprised to hear that Father John has not yet been appointed
-to another parish. Tell him this must be done at once, and that he must
-have a good one. I require an immediate answer.”
-
-The obedient Avdotia went out again, and we could hear her once more
-talk on the telephone. “The secretary of the Synod presents his humble
-compliments to you, Batiouschka,” she said when she returned.
-
-“Who cares for his compliments?” interrupted Rasputin. “Will the man
-have his parish or not? This is all that I want to know.”
-
-“The order for his transfer will be presented for the Minister’s
-signature to-morrow,” said Avdotia.
-
-“This is right,” sighed Rasputin with relief. And then turning to me:
-
-“Art thou satisfied?” he asked, “and hast thou seen enough to tell to
-thy friends?”
-
-I declared myself entirely satisfied.
-
-“Then go,” said Rasputin. “I am busy and cannot talk to thee any
-longer. I have so much to do. Everybody comes to me for something,
-and people seem to think that I am here to get them what they need or
-require. They believe in Gricha, these poor people, and he likes to
-help them. But as for the question of war, this is all nonsense. We
-shall not have war, and if we have, then I shall take good care it will
-not be for long.”
-
-He dismissed me with a nod of his head, and his face assumed quite
-a shocked look when he found that I was retiring without seeming to
-notice the hand which he was awkwardly stretching out to me. But I
-knew that he expected people, as a matter of course, to kiss his dirty
-fingers, and as I was not at all inclined to do so, I made as if I did
-not notice his gesture. As I was passing into the next room, I could
-perceive through a half open door leading into another apartment the
-young lady whom Rasputin had called Marie Ivanovna. She was prostrated
-before a sacred image hanging in a corner, with a lamp burning in
-front of it, with her eyes fixed on Heaven, and quite an illuminated
-expression on her otherwise plain features. St. Theresa might have
-looked like that. But seen in the light of our incredulous Twentieth
-Century, she appeared a worthy subject for Charcot, or some such
-eminent nerve doctor, and her place ought to have been the hospital of
-“La Salpetriere” rather than the den of the modern Cagliostro, who was
-making ducks and drakes out of the mighty Russian Empire.
-
-As I was going down the stairs, I met an old man slowly climbing them,
-with a little girl whom he was half carrying, half dragging along with
-him. He stopped me with the question:
-
-“Do you happen to know whether the blessed Gregory receives visitors?”
-
-I replied that the “Prophet” was at home, but that I could not say
-whether he would receive any one or not.
-
-“It is for this innocent I want to see him,” moaned the man. “She is so
-ill and no doctor can cure her. If only the blessed Gregory would pray
-over her, I know that she would be well at once. Do you think that he
-will do so, Barinia?” the man added anxiously.
-
-“I am sure he will,” I replied, more because I did not know what to say
-rather than from the conviction that Rasputin would receive this new
-visitor. I saw the old creature continue his ascent up the staircase,
-and the whole time he was repeating to the child, “You shall get well,
-quite well, Mania, the Blessed One shall make you quite well.”
-
-On the last steps before the stairs ended on the landing, two men were
-busy talking. They were both typical Israelites, with hooked nose and
-crooked fingers. They were discussing most energetically some subject
-which evidently was absorbing their attention to an uncommon degree,
-and discussing it in German, too.
-
-“You are quite sure that we can offer him 20 per cent?” one was saying.
-
-“Quite sure, the concession is worth a million; the whole thing is to
-obtain it before the others come on the scene.”
-
-“Who are the others?” asked the first of the two men.
-
-“The Russo-Asiatic Bank,” replied the second. “You see the whole matter
-lies in the rapidity with which the thing is made. The only one who can
-persuade the minister to sign the paper is the old man upstairs,” and
-he pointed out toward Rasputin’s apartment. Thereupon the two in their
-turn started to mount the steps.
-
-My first interview with Rasputin, all the details of which I wrote down
-in my diary when I got home, gave me some inkling as to the different
-intrigues which were going on around this remarkable personage. It
-failed, however, to make me understand by what means he had managed to
-acquire, if he really acquired, a fact of which I still doubted, the
-strong influence which he liked to give the impression he exercised.
-It was quite possible that he had contrived through the magnetic
-gifts with which he was endowed to subdue to his will the hysterical
-women, whose bigotry and mystical tendencies he had exalted to the
-highest pitch possible. But how could he, a common peasant, without any
-education, knowledge of the world or of mankind, have imbued ministers
-and statesmen with such a dread that they found themselves ready to do
-anything at his bidding and to dispense favours, graces and lucrative
-appointments to the people whom he called to their attention. There was
-evidently something absolutely abnormal in the whole thing, and it was
-the reason for this abnormality that I began to seek.
-
-This search did not prove easy at first, but in time, by talking
-with persons who saw much of Rasputin and of the motley crew which
-surrounded him, I contrived to form some opinion as to the cause of
-his success. It seemed to me that he was the tool of a strong though
-small party or group of men, desirous of using him as a means to attain
-their own ends. There is nothing easier in the world than to make or to
-mar a reputation, and it is sufficient to say everywhere that a person
-is able to do this or that thing, to instil into the mind of the public
-at large the conviction that such is the case. This was precisely what
-occurred with Rasputin.
-
-Count Witte, who was one of the cleverest political men in his
-generation and perhaps the only real statesman that Russia has known in
-the last twenty-five years, ever since his downfall had been sighing
-for the day when he should be recalled to power. He knew very well all
-that was going on in the Imperial family, and it was easier for him
-than for any one else to resort to the right means to introduce an
-outsider into that very closed circle which surrounded the Czar. So
-long as he had been a minister and had under his control the public
-exchequer it had been relatively easy for him to obtain friends, or
-rather tools, that had helped him in his plans and ambitions. When
-this faculty for persuasion failed him he bethought himself to look
-elsewhere for an instrument through which he might still achieve the
-ends he had in mind. He was not the kind of man who stopped before any
-moral consideration. For him every means was good, provided it would
-prove effective. When he saw that certain ladies in the entourage
-of the sovereigns had become imbued with the Rasputin mania, he was
-quick to decide that this craze might, if properly managed, prove of
-infinite value to him. He therefore not only encouraged it as far as
-was in his power by pretending himself to be impressed by the prophetic
-powers of the “Blessed Gregory,” but he also contrived very cleverly to
-let the fact of the extraordinary ascendancy which Rasputin was rapidly
-acquiring over the minds of powerful and influential persons become
-known. Very soon everybody talked of the latter-day saint who had
-suddenly appeared on the horizon of the social life of St. Petersburg,
-and the fame of his reputation spread abroad like the flames of some
-great conflagration.
-
-Russia is essentially the land where imperial favourites play a rôle,
-and soon the whole country was not only respecting Rasputin, but was
-trying to make up to him and to obtain, through him, all kinds of
-favours and material advantages. Together with Count Witte a whole
-political party was working, without the least consideration for the
-prestige of the dynasty which it was discrediting, to show up the
-rulers as associated with the common adventurer and sectarian, who,
-under other conditions, would undoubtedly have found himself prosecuted
-by the police authorities for his conduct. They had other thoughts in
-their heads than the interests of the dynasty, these money-seeking,
-money-grubbing, ambitious men. They represented nothing beyond the
-desire to become powerful and wealthy. What they wanted was important
-posts which would give them the opportunity to indulge in various
-speculations and more or less fraudulent business undertakings they
-contemplated.
-
-Russia at the time was beginning to be seized with that frenzy
-for stock-exchange transactions, share buying and selling, railway
-concessions and mining enterprises which reached its culminating point
-before the beginning of the war. Men without any social standing, and
-with more than shady pasts, were coming forward and acquiring the
-reputation of being lucky speculators capable in case of necessity
-of developing into clever statesmen. These men began to seek their
-inspirations in Berlin, and through the numerous German spies with
-which St. Petersburg abounded they entered into relations with the
-German Intelligence Department, whose interests they made their own,
-because they believed that a war might put an end to the industrial
-development of the country, and thus interfere with their various
-speculations. The French alliance was beginning to bore those who had
-got out of it all that they had ever wanted; it was time something new
-should crop up, and the German and Russian Jews, in whose hands the
-whole industry and commerce of the Russian Empire lay concentrated,
-began to preach the necessity of an understanding with the great
-state whose nearest neighbour it was. A rapprochement between the
-Hohenzollerns and the Romanoffs began to be spoken of openly as a
-political necessity, and it was then that, thanks to a whole series of
-intrigues, the Czar was induced to go himself to Berlin to attend the
-nuptials of the only daughter of the Kaiser, the Brunswick.
-
-This momentous journey to Berlin was undertaken partly on account of
-the representations of Rasputin to the Empress, whose love for peace
-was very well known. Europe had just gone through the anxiety caused
-by the Balkan crisis, and it was repeated everywhere in St. Petersburg
-that a demonstration of some kind had to be made in favour of peace
-in general and also to prove to the world that the great Powers were
-determined not to allow quarrels in Serbia, Bulgaria and Greece to
-trouble the security of the world. The marriage festivities of which
-Berlin became the theatre at the time seemed a fit opportunity for this
-demonstration. The bureaucratic circles in the Russian capital and the
-influence of Rasputin were used to bring about this trip of the Czar.
-
-Rasputin was thus fast becoming a personage, simply because it suited
-certain people--the pro-German party, to use the right word at last--to
-represent him as being important. They pushed things so far that many
-ministers and persons in high places refused on purpose certain things
-which were asked of them and which were absolutely easy for them to
-perform simply because they wished Rasputin to ask for them for those
-who were weary of always meeting with a non possumus in questions for
-which they required the help of the Administration.
-
-Rasputin’s various intermediaries, through whom one had to pass before
-one could approach him, sold their help for more or less large sums of
-money, and thus began a period of vulgar agiotage, to use the French
-expression, of which Russia was the stage, and Rasputin, together with
-the men who used him, the moving spirits. I very nearly said the evil
-spirits. But of this, more later on.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-
-I must now make one remark which is absolutely necessary in order to
-enable the foreign readers to understand how the numerous legends
-which were connected with Rasputin and the influence of the latter on
-the course of public affairs could come to be accepted by the nation
-at large. One can seek its principal reason in the tendency which the
-Russian government has cultivated since immemorial times to forbid the
-open discussion of certain things and facts. At the time about which
-I am writing present military censorship did not exist, and there was
-no war which could have justified the control by the government of
-the publication by the daily press of the current events of the day.
-Yet the censors did not allow any mention of Rasputin to be made in
-any organ of publicity. Thanks to this senseless interdict, it helped
-the invention of the most unbelievable tales concerning him and the
-attitude which he had adopted in regard to state affairs, with which
-he had begun to occupy himself, much to the dismay of those who had by
-that time learned to appreciate the fact that the “Prophet” was but
-the plaything of men far cleverer than himself and 50,000 times more
-dangerous.
-
-St. Petersburg has always been famed for its gossiping propensities,
-and in no place in the whole world do the most incomprehensible rumours
-start and flourish with the rapidity that they do in the Russian
-capital. What the newspapers are forbidden to mention is told by one
-person to another, whispered from one ear to another and discussed
-everywhere, in clubs, drawing rooms, restaurants, in the houses of
-the proudest aristocrats as well as in the dwellings of the humblest
-citizens. Nowhere does, or rather, did, because I believe this has
-become impossible nowadays, the telephone contribute more to relate
-all kind of gossip concerning both private people and public matters.
-Of course, as there existed no possibility of controlling all that
-was being related under the seal of secrecy all over St. Petersburg,
-the most improbable rumours were put in circulation and were carried
-about not only in the town itself, but in the provinces, where the
-travellers returning from St. Petersburg were but too glad to repeat
-with considerable additions all that they had heard in the capital.
-
-The very secrecy which was enjoined by the authorities in regard to
-Rasputin added to the latter’s importance and transformed him into
-a kind of legendary personage, either too holy or too bad to be
-mentioned. Soon all kinds of things in which he had had absolutely
-no part began to be attributed to him, and many persons, earnestly
-believing him to be all-powerful, took to asking his help not only in
-the matter of their administrative careers, but also in questions where
-their private life and private interests were involved. It happened
-every day that a man who had a lawsuit of a doubtful character sought
-out Rasputin, hoping that he might be able to put in a word capable
-of influencing the judges before whom the case was to be tried. As
-it was absolutely impossible for any one to approach him without
-passing through an intermediary of some kind, it was generally this
-intermediary who began the regular plundering of the pockets of all the
-unfortunate petitioners who had hoped to retrieve their fortunes by an
-appeal to the “Prophet’s” protection. This plundering went on as long
-as the victim had a penny to spare and a hope to live upon.
-
-On the other hand, the liberal parties in the country began to be
-seriously alarmed at the importance which this uncouth peasant was
-assuming, and they it was who helped by the anxiety which they openly
-manifested to set the general public thinking about him more than it
-ought to have done. In the Duma the name of Rasputin was mentioned
-with something akin to horror, and allusions without number were made
-concerning the “Dark Powers,” as they were called, who were grasping
-in their hands the conduct of public affairs. The “Prophet” began to
-be mentioned as the scourge of Russia long before he had become one.
-His followers, on the contrary, made no secret of his ever-growing
-importance, and invented on their side any number of tales absolutely
-devoid of truth and tending to prove that nothing whatever was done
-in regard to the management of state affairs without his having been
-previously consulted. Who consulted him no one knows, and no one could
-tell. Certainly it was not the Emperor, who had, when the “Prophet”
-once or twice had attempted to touch upon this point in his presence,
-rebuked him most sharply; certainly it was not the Empress, who at that
-time had never yet cared for politics, whether foreign or domestic. It
-was also not the ministers, and most certainly it was not the leaders
-of any party in the Duma, because all parties there were agreed as to
-one thing, and that was a thorough detestation of Rasputin and of the
-whole crew which surrounded him and without which he could not exist.
-Who consulted him, then? No one knew, and very probably no one cared to
-know. But the fact that he was consulted was an established one, most
-probably due to the efforts of those persons in whose interests it lay
-to represent him as the deus ex machina without whom nothing could be
-done in general, and upon whom everything more or less depended.
-
-It was even related in St. Petersburg that one day, during an audience
-which he had had with the Czar, Mr. Rodzianko, the President of the
-Duma, had attempted a remonstrance on the subject of Rasputin for
-which he had been severely reproved by the Sovereign. Personally,
-I do not believe for one single instant that such an incident ever
-took place. For one thing, no one, not even Mr. Rodzianko, would have
-dared to talk to the Emperor about such an unsavoury subject as that
-of the “Prophet,” even if he had been endowed with a moral courage
-far superior to that of the President of the Duma. Then, again, the
-well-informed were, at the time I am referring to, far too cognisant
-of what was going on in the way of court intrigues not to understand
-that all protestations against the constant presence of Rasputin
-in the vicinity of the Imperial family would have led to nothing,
-for the simple reason that those upon whom it depended did not and
-could not even recognise the danger that it presented, because they
-simply looked upon him as upon a holy man. He soothed the anxieties
-of the Empress in regard to her small son, promising her that the day
-would come when, thanks to his prayers, the child would outgrow his
-delicacy. He amused the Emperor by talking to him in a rough but bright
-language, describing bluntly all the incidents that had reached his
-knowledge generally through the channel of those interested in having
-them conveyed to the Sovereign in the way that best served their own
-interests. But Nicholas II. never took him seriously into account, and
-therefore could hardly have been brought to think that others were
-doing so, and doing it with a vengeance into the bargain.
-
-Rasputin, however, was of a different opinion, and in his desire that
-others should share it he liked to boast in public of the things which
-he had not done and of the words which he had not spoken. He was upon
-excellent terms with some of the palace servants, in whom he had found
-comrades and with whom he felt more at his ease than with any one else.
-He got them to relate to him all that was going on in the family of
-the Czar. He very cleverly made use of this knowledge later on. It is
-well known in Russia that the Emperor himself was watched by the secret
-police, not only in view of his personal safety, but also because it
-was to the interest of the police to be thoroughly acquainted with all
-that he did and with the remarks it pleased him to make. And the secret
-police were working hand in hand with Rasputin. Their provocative
-agents, of which there existed considerable numbers, were everywhere
-talking about the “Prophet’s” influence and ever-growing importance,
-as well as relating in all the restaurants and public places in the
-capital wonderful and improbable tales concerning him and his doings.
-From these they were spread among the public and penetrated to people
-who otherwise would never have had the possibility of hearing anything
-about them. Among those who showed themselves the most active and the
-most eager to talk about Rasputin and about the influence which he
-was acquiring were persons well known for their German sympathies and
-others suspected of being German agents in disguise.
-
-At that period the great aim of the German Foreign Office was to bring
-about the collapse of the Franco-Russian alliance, and it set itself
-most cleverly to try to bring it about. Among the persons whom it
-employed for the purpose was Rasputin, perhaps unknown to himself, but
-led by men like Count Witte, who had always been pro-German in sympathy
-and who had almost engaged himself to bring about a rapprochement
-between the St. Petersburg and the Berlin Court. Working with Witte was
-Mr. Manusevitsch Maniuloff, one of the most abominable secret agents
-the world has ever known, who in his unscrupulousness would have done
-anything he was asked, provided he were paid high enough. For years
-he had been in receipt of German subsidies. By dint of blackmailing
-he had contrived to maintain himself in the capacity of one of the
-editors of the _Novoie Vremia_, where he wrote all that was asked of
-him for a consideration, the extent and nature of which depended
-upon circumstances. He was also on the staff of the Russian political
-Intelligence Department, to which he rendered such services as he
-considered to be advantageous to himself without the least thought of
-the use these might be to the State which employed him.
-
-Mr. Maniuloff was a spendthrift who never could deny himself any of
-the good things of life. These are always considered to be expensive
-ones, and consequently he had expensive tastes. His capacity of police
-agent had allowed him to blackmail to advantage people against whom
-he had discovered, or thought he had discovered, something in the way
-of dangerous political opinions. One of his favourite occupations
-consisted in going about among these people and hinting to them that
-unless they showed themselves willing to minister to his numerous wants
-they might find themselves one day in a very tight corner. Generally
-these tactics proved successful, until he was caught red-handed in
-Paris, where he had been sent on a special mission, tampering with
-the funds of which he had control. This accident caused him to be
-dismissed. But the man knew far too much and had been far too advanced
-in the confidence of his superiors for them to be able to do without
-his services, so he was allowed to return to Russia and enroll himself
-in journalism, thus to make himself useful again. He had a wonderful
-intelligence and was an excellent worker and talked fluently in most of
-the European languages. He therefore made his way up the ladder once
-more, until at last he became the private secretary to Mr. Sturmer when
-the latter was Prime Minister, an advancement that proved fatal to
-him because it brought him to prison. But of this I shall speak later
-on when touching upon the events which culminated in the murder of
-Rasputin.
-
-Such were the men who virtually controlled every action of the
-“Prophet,” and it is no wonder if guided by them he sometimes contrived
-to influence never the Czar himself, but the latter’s Ministers and
-officials who had been told, they did not even know by whom, but
-probably by the loud voice of the public, that to do anything to please
-Rasputin was to secure for oneself the good graces of the highest
-people in the land. As time went on the “Prophet” showed himself less
-and less in public, remaining among a small circle of personal friends
-whose interest it was to represent him as a kind of Indian idol,
-unapproachable except to his worshippers.
-
-And in the meanwhile the ladies who had been the first artisans of
-Rasputin’s favour were still holding religious meetings under his
-guidance and still seeking inspiration from his teachings. They
-believed him to be a real saint, refused to admit that he could do
-anything wrong and refused to accept as true the rumours which went
-about and which, unfortunately for the “Prophet’s” reputation, were but
-too exact, that he was fond of every kind of riotous living, that he
-spent his nights in drunken revels and that he gave his best attention
-to brandy mixed with champagne. His admirers persisted in seeing in him
-the prophet of the Almighty and believed that they could never be saved
-unless they conformed to all the directions which it might please him
-to give them.
-
-The Rasputin craze became more violent than ever during the few months
-which immediately preceded the war, and it very nearly verged upon
-complete fanaticism for his personality. Everything that he did was
-considered to be holy. His insolence and arrogance, displayed with
-increasing violence every day and hour, were almost incredible. This
-illiterate peasant dared to send dirty little scraps of paper on which
-he had scribbled a coarse message to ministers and public men ordering
-them to do this or that according to his pleasure, and presuming to
-give them advice, which was never his own, in matters of the utmost
-public importance. At first people had laughed at him, but very soon
-they had discovered that he could revenge himself on them quickly
-and effectively, and this had led to the general determination not
-to interfere with him any more, but to leave him severely alone, no
-matter what extravagance he might commit or say. And when it came to
-the extortion of large sums of money, those who were challenged to pay
-them generally did so with alacrity, as happened in the case of several
-banks to which Mr. Maniuloff applied for funds, with the help of these
-illiterate scraps of paper upon which Rasputin had scribbled his desire
-that the money should be put at the disposal of his “protégé.”
-
-What I have been writing is fact, which has been proved publicly, and
-never contradicted by so much as one single word of protestation. It
-accounts for the hatred with which the “Prophet” came to be viewed.
-As time went on it was felt that something ought to be attempted
-against the imposter who had contrived to break through barriers one
-could have believed to be absolutely impregnable. But no one knew how
-this was to be done, and at the time I am referring to the idea of a
-political assassination of Rasputin had not entered into the people’s
-heads. It was a woman who was to bring it before the public in the
-following circumstances:
-
-During the spring of the year 1914, Rasputin, to the general surprise
-of everybody, declared to his friends that he intended to leave the
-capital and to return for a few months to his native village of
-Pokrovskoie in Siberia to rest from his labours. Strenuous efforts were
-made to detain him in Petrograd, but he remained inflexible and rudely
-thrust aside those who would fain have kept him back. He declared that
-he was tired and weary of the existence which he had been leading the
-last year, and that the various annoyances and difficulties that had
-been put in his way by his numerous enemies had quite sickened him.
-Such, at least, was the explanation which he chose to give and to
-which he stuck. Others, it is true, declared that the real reason for
-his departure was that he had been given to understand that he would
-do better to absent himself from St. Petersburg during the time when
-the visit of the President of the French Republic was expected, as his
-presence there might prove embarrassing from more than one point of
-view. The hint had enraged him, and he had determined to go away for
-a much longer time than he had been told to do. He had even declared
-to a few of his closest friends that he was not going to return to the
-capital any more, but that he would remain in Siberia, where, as he
-graphically put it, “there was a great deal more money to be made than
-anywhere else in the world.”
-
-Whether the above is strictly true or not, I am not in a position to
-say, but it does not sound improbable. The fact remains that Rasputin
-left St. Petersburg for Pokrovskoie, where he arrived in the first days
-of June, 1914, accompanied by the “Sisters,” who were his constant
-companions. He was received with such honours that he might have been
-the Sovereign himself instead of the simple peasant he was. A crowd
-composed of several thousand men and women met him at the gates of
-the village and threw themselves at his feet imploring his blessing
-and calling upon him to pray with them, and to show them the real way
-to God which he was supposed to be the only one in Russia capable of
-indicating. For a few days this kind of thing continued, and Rasputin’s
-house was literally besieged by crowds of people who had gathered at
-Pokrovskoie from all parts of Siberia eager to pay homage to their
-national hero, for such he was considered to be. Rasputin smiled and
-chuckled and rubbed his hands, as was his wont in those moments when
-he allowed his satisfaction at anything to overpower him. If in St.
-Petersburg he had been considered as a prophet, here in this remote
-corner of Siberia he was fast becoming a kind of small god at whose
-shrine a whole nation was worshipping. This was just the sort of thing
-to please him and to make him forget any small unpleasantnesses he
-might have experienced before his departure from the capital.
-
-One morning, it was the 13th of July, 1914, Rasputin was leaving his
-house on his way to church, whither it was his custom to repair every
-day. On the threshold of his dwelling a woman was awaiting him. She had
-her face muffled in a shawl in spite of the warm weather. When she saw
-him she threw herself on her knees before him, as persons of her kind
-invariably did when they met him. The “Prophet” stopped and asked her
-what it was she wanted from him. Her only reply was to plunge into his
-stomach a large kitchen knife, which she had held the whole time hidden
-under her shawl.
-
-Rasputin uttered one cry and sank upon the ground. The crowd which was
-always following him rushed toward him and lifted him up, while two
-local policemen who had been set by the authorities to protect and
-guard him threw themselves upon the woman and seized her violently by
-both arms. She remained perfectly quiet, declaring that they need not
-hold her as she had not the slightest intention of running away. She
-knew very well what she had done, and she had meant to do it for a long
-time. When asked what had been her motives, she declared that she would
-speak before the magistrates, and only asked to be protected in the
-meanwhile against the fury of the mob that was threatening to tear her
-to pieces in its rage. She did not seem to be in the least disturbed
-by what she had done and throughout she showed the most extraordinary
-coolness and self-possession.
-
-Very soon it was ascertained that she was a native of the government
-of Saratoff, and that her name was Gousieva. When Rasputin had been
-preaching in Saratoff she was among the women who had been taken in by
-his speeches, and though married she had left her husband and family
-to follow the “Prophet.” He very soon proceeded to “cleanse her from
-her sins,” according to his favourite expression. We know, of course,
-what this meant, and Gousieva, who at that time was young and pretty,
-only shared the fate of so many other women, deluded by the mealy
-mouthed utterances of the “new Saviour,” that it was only by means of
-a complete union with himself that they could be saved and their sins
-forgiven them. The unfortunate Gousieva had been only one of many.
-When she had found it out an intense rage had taken hold of her, which
-had been further enhanced and strengthened by the monk Illiodore, to
-whom she had related her misfortune. He had already at the time she
-sought him out become the deadly enemy of his former friend Rasputin.
-The miserable woman had lost everything--home, children, husband,
-relatives--on account of her mad infatuation for the deceiver who had
-made her forget her duties by the fascination which he had exercised
-over her weak mind. She swore that she would revenge herself and kill
-the “Prophet,” so that at least other women could be saved from the
-awful fate which had befallen her.
-
-After Rasputin had dismissed her she had been compelled to lead a
-dreadful kind of existence in order to obtain a piece of bread. At
-last she had become attacked by an awful disease, which had already
-eaten away a part of her nose and completely disfigured her face.
-This, too, she attributed to the “Prophet.” In her despair she decided
-that as she had nothing to lose the best and only thing left for her
-to do was to try and rid the world from the awful impostor who had
-caused so much misery, brought about such abominable misfortunes and
-occasioned so much distress to such a number of innocent women. She
-had followed Rasputin for a long time in St. Petersburg, but had never
-been able to approach him near enough to execute her design. But when
-it had come to her knowledge that he was returning to Pokrovskoie she
-had taken it as an indication that the Almighty would be with her in
-the deed which she was contemplating, and she, too, started for the
-distant Siberian village. There she had spent three days waiting for a
-favourable opportunity until the morning when she had at last succeeded
-in getting close enough to him to plant in his body the knife which she
-had carried about with her for more than two years.
-
-This whole story was related by Gousieva with the utmost composure,
-and without any hesitation at all. She considered Rasputin as the
-incarnation of the devil, and she had thought it a good deed to put
-him out of the way of committing any more evil. For the rest, she did
-not care what was to become of her. As it was she knew that she had
-not long to live, and with the illness with which she was afflicted
-existence in itself was not so sweet that she should sacrifice her
-revenge in order to retain it. She had had no accomplices, and she had
-consulted no one. In spite of the efforts which were made to induce her
-to say that she had acted under the directions and the inspiration of
-Illiodore, she denied it absolutely, adding that had she spoken to him
-about her intention she knew that he would have dissuaded her from it
-and that he might even have warned the police so as to frustrate her
-design.
-
-In the meanwhile, Rasputin had been carried back to his room and
-telegrams dispatched everywhere for a doctor. The wound, though deep,
-was not a serious one and it had not attacked any vital organs. The man
-was in no danger, but his disciples chose to say that it was a miracle
-of Providence that he had not succumbed at once under the blow which
-had been dealt at him. The “Prophet,” when he had felt himself stabbed,
-had cried out that some one was to “arrest that b----h who had hit
-him.” Then he caused several telegrams to be sent to his friends in
-St. Petersburg in which he described the attempt against his life as
-the work of the devil, who had inspired the woman Gousieva and induced
-her to commit her abominable action. He added that at the moment when
-her weapon had touched him he had seen an angel descend from Heaven,
-stop her arm, and then put a hand on his wound so as to stop it from
-bleeding, and that it was only due to this direct intervention of the
-Almighty that he had escaped with his life. Of course, the story was
-believed by the credulous people who accepted every one of his words as
-a manifestation of the will of the Lord, and he became more than ever a
-saint, to whom the people began to raise altars, and to regard in the
-light of another Saviour come to redeem mankind from the terrors of sin.
-
-In St. Petersburg the news of the attempted assassination of Rasputin
-had produced an immense impression, and had been commented upon in
-different ways. Some people saw in it an intervention of the secret
-police, who had been told to get rid in some way or other of a man who
-was fast becoming a public nuisance and embarrassment for everybody,
-even for those who had benefited through their acquaintance with him.
-Others declared that it was a just punishment for his evil deeds,
-and that the woman Gousieva had not been badly inspired when she had
-tried to revenge herself on him for the terrible wrong which he had
-done to her. Every one was anxious to learn how the news would be
-received in certain quarters and among the bevy of feminine worshippers
-whose existence was wrapped up in that of Rasputin. Public curiosity,
-however, was not destined to be satisfied, because nothing was heard
-concerning the feelings of these adepts of his on this remarkable
-occasion.
-
-The only thing which one learned in regard to the whole affair was that
-two ladies who figured among his most prominent supporters had started
-at once for Pokrovskoie, and that a celebrated surgeon from Kazan had
-also been requested to go to see him regardless of what his journey
-might cost.
-
-The care that was taken of Rasputin soon restored him to his usual
-health, and he became at once a martyr. When the first moment
-of fright--and, being a great coward, he had been thoroughly
-frightened--had passed away, he felt rather satisfied at the fuss which
-was made about him, and more grateful than anything else to the woman
-Gousieva for having given him such a splendid opportunity to recover
-some of his popularity, which he had feared might decrease during his
-absence from St. Petersburg. The fact that his attempted assassination
-had brought his name and his person once more prominently before the
-public pleased him, and his natural cunning made him at once grasp
-the whole importance of the event and the capital that might be made
-out of it. He was the first to plead for indulgence for his would-be
-murderess, perhaps out of fear of the scandal which a trial might
-produce, a trial during which a lawyer might be found daring enough and
-enterprising enough to speak openly of the reasons which had driven the
-accused woman to this act of madness, and to disclose certain episodes
-in the past existence of the “Prophet” which the latter would not have
-cared at all to become the property of the public. On the other hand,
-the authorities, too, felt that a public trial would only cause a most
-painful sensation, by the mention of names which it was of the highest
-importance to keep outside the question. The culprit herself insisted
-upon being brought before a jury, declaring that she had sought
-publicity and that she would not rest until she had it; that, moreover,
-she did not intend to be cheated out of her revenge or prevented from
-exposing the man in whom she saw the most flagrant and daring impostor,
-a creature for whom nothing in the world was sacred and who would not
-hesitate at anything in order to come to his ends. She insisted on the
-fact that she would have rendered a public service to the country had
-she killed him, and that, whatever happened to her personally, the
-vengeance of God would one day overtake “Gricha” and his wickedness,
-and that others would be found who would follow the example which she
-had given to them and not fail as she had failed.
-
-Gousieva told all this to the examining magistrate to whom had
-been intrusted the preliminary inquest, and she persisted in her
-allegations, notwithstanding all the efforts and even the threats which
-were made to her to induce her to retract her first deposition. The
-authorities found themselves in a dilemma from which they did not know
-how to extricate themselves, when Rasputin himself came to their rescue.
-
-“The woman is mad,” he said. “All that she relates is but the ravings
-of a madwoman. Lock her up in an asylum, and let us hear nothing more
-about her!”
-
-This piece of advice was considered to be the best possible under
-the circumstances, and Gousieva was placed first in a hospital for
-observation and then a few months later adjudged insane by order.
-She was removed to a madhouse, no one knows exactly where, and there
-she probably is locked up to this day unless death in some shape or
-form has overtaken her and removed her forever out of a world which
-certainly had never proved a kind one for her.
-
-In the meanwhile her victim was mending rapidly, and three weeks
-after his accident he was removed first to Tobolsk and then to St.
-Petersburg. His disciples were preparing a great reception for him, and
-he himself was openly talking of all that he would do on his return
-and of the revenge which he was going to take on the people to whose
-influence he attributed the “mad” act of the woman who had attacked
-him. He made the greatest efforts to connect Illiodore with the attempt
-of Gousieva, and he was quite furious to see them fail, declaring that
-when he was once more in the capital he would make it his business
-to find out whether it was not possible to discover some points of
-association between the unfrocked monk and the woman whose knife had
-been raised against him. He further made no secret of his intention
-to obtain the proofs which he needed, thanks to the intelligence and
-with the help of his friend Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff. Whether he
-would have succeeded or not, it is difficult to say, because when
-Rasputin returned to St. Petersburg and was enabled to visit his
-friends at Tsarskoie Selo once more, there were other preoccupations
-which were troubling the public more than anything connected with his
-individuality. War had broken out with Germany.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-
-It was perhaps a fortunate thing for Rasputin that he was not in St.
-Petersburg when Germany attacked us so unexpectedly. It is quite
-probable that if he had found himself in the capital at the time he
-would have intrigued in so many ways that he might have put even the
-Sovereign in an embarrassing position, for any hesitations in the
-decisions of the Government would have been attributed to the influence
-of the “Prophet.” At this time of national crisis, it certainly would
-have been a misfortune if anything had occurred likely to endanger
-the prestige of the dynasty. But in regard to Rasputin himself, it is
-likely that his absence delayed the conspiracy which resulted in his
-death, as he was forgotten for the moment, so intensely was public
-opinion preoccupied with the grave events that were taking place.
-
-Later on, after the disaster of Tannenberg, the friends of the
-“Prophet,” in order to win back for him some popularity, spread the
-rumour that he had from his distant Pokrovskoie written to one of his
-warmest patronesses, Madame W, that he had had a vision during which
-it had been revealed to him that the Russian armies were to march
-immediately upon eastern Prussia, where it would be possible to deal
-a decisive blow at the enemy, and to do so with all their strength.
-Now this is precisely what was not done, owing to the military
-misconception of the Russian General Staff, which for political reasons
-started to proceed to the conquest of Galicia, that could have been
-delayed with advantage until after the Prussian monster, if not killed,
-had been at least seriously injured.
-
-The enemies of the Grand Duke Nicholas, of whom there were plenty,
-seized hold of this rumour, and rallied themselves round Rasputin,
-declaring that once more God had intervened in favour of Holy Russia,
-in blessing it with a prophet whose clear glance and visions could
-be relied upon far better than the strategical combinations of the
-Grand Duke that had proved such a complete failure. The Grand Duke was
-accused of having despatched two army corps into the Mazurian region
-without having taken sufficient precautions to insure their safety,
-and it was said that the only one who had seen clearly the disaster
-which had overtaken these corps had been Rasputin, and that it had been
-revealed to him direct from Heaven even before it had taken place.
-
-All this was great nonsense, of course, but nevertheless it did a
-considerable amount of harm. One must not lose sight of one fact when
-one judges the whole history of the impostor who for so many years
-contrived to occupy with his personality the attention of the Russian
-public, and that is that his sermons and utterances appealed to that
-mystical side of the Slav character which in all hours of great
-national crises and misfortunes asserts itself a manner which to the
-Occidental mind seems quite incomprehensible. It is sufficient to have
-looked upon the crowds kneeling in the streets of St. Petersburg, and
-of Moscow, during those eventful August days which saw the breaking
-out of the catastrophe, to become persuaded of the fact that they
-reckoned more on God’s intervention on their behalf than on the
-efficacy of any guns or soldiers to insure a victory for the Russian
-arms.
-
-Rasputin, for a short period, became once more a national hero, at
-least in the eyes of the select circle that had first brought him
-prominently before the public, and they began to say among this circle
-that until one followed his directions and gave oneself up entirely
-to the service of God in the manner it pleased him to recommend, the
-campaign that had just begun would never be won. For other people, too,
-the return of the “Prophet” to Petrograd, as St. Petersburg had been
-rechristened, was also a boon. All the speculators, army purveyors and
-persons interested in army contracts awaited him with an impatience
-which surpassed every description, and they surrounded him at once and
-laid siege, not so much to his person as to the influence which he was
-supposed to possess.
-
-There are innumerable anecdotes about this agitated period in the
-career of Rasputin, each more amusing and each more incredible than the
-others. I shall here quote a few:
-
-A Danish gentleman had arrived in Petrograd from Copenhagen with a load
-of medicines and different pharmaceutical products which he wanted to
-sell to the Red Cross. He brought excellent credentials with him, and
-he imagined that the business would be a relatively easy one. But to
-his surprise he found that this was not at all the case. Though the
-prices which he asked for his goods were not at all high compared with
-those current in the Russian capital, he could not get rid of them,
-and he was always put off until the next day. At last he became quite
-discouraged and was already thinking of returning home when he met in
-the lounge of the principal hotel of Petrograd (famed for the financial
-transactions which were regularly taking place under its roof) a Jew
-who, seeing him looking worried and annoyed, asked what was the matter.
-The Dane then related his story, adding that he failed to understand
-why at a time when the things which he had brought with him were in
-great demand he could not sell them, though he had lowered his prices
-to a point below which it was quite impossible for him to go. The Jew
-looked at him for some minutes, then asked him whether he would feel
-inclined, if he could help him to dispose of his wares at a profit, to
-give a large commission in exchange. The Dane of course assented, and
-the Jew took him the next day to Rasputin, to whom he told a long story
-of which the seller of the articles in question understood nothing at
-all, but which culminated in the “Prophet” scribbling something in
-pencil on a dirty scrap of paper, and handing it to his visitors. The
-same afternoon the two men went to the head offices of the Red Cross,
-accompanied by another gentleman, who introduced himself as Rasputin’s
-secretary. To the intense surprise of the Dane, the medicines which he
-had been trying uselessly to sell for three weeks were at once accepted
-on the producing of the “Prophet’s” note, and sold at such an enormous
-profit that he remained absolutely astounded. The contract was signed
-there and then, and a cheque handed to the happy seller. His two
-companions then accompanied him to the bank, where he handed over to
-them their share in the transaction, Rasputin’s representative taking
-the lion’s share of course, but whether for his master or for himself
-has never been ascertained.
-
-Another example is still more typical. There existed in Petrograd a
-German who had lived there for years, and who had acquired considerable
-property, among other things several houses in Petrograd, bringing
-him a large income. Very soon after the breaking out of the war the
-properties belonging to the enemy were sequestrated, and German
-subjects sent away from the capital to live out the war in some
-northern government. The same fate overtook our friend. But he was a
-man of resources, and he immediately proceeded to pay a visit to Mr.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff. The latter was about the last man capable
-of allowing such a wonderful chance to escape him. How he managed he
-did not say, and the German never cared to learn, but he was allowed
-not only to remain in Petrograd, but also to sell his houses to a
-personage occupying such a very important administrative position that
-no one cared or dared to inquire of him whether he paid into the bank,
-as he ought to have done, the price of his acquisitions, or whether
-he gave it in the shape of a cheque on a foreign bank to the seller.
-And to crown the whole matter, the German in question was allowed
-to leave Russia with all due honours, and received the position of
-official buyer of different military goods for the Russian government
-in Scandinavia. He soon managed to indemnify himself to the full for
-the loss he had incurred in parting from his property for a mere song,
-and in paying the three hundred thousand rubles commission which Mr.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff and Rasputin had together obtained from him.
-
-Such things were of daily occurrence, known to the general public, and
-of course commented upon in terms which were anything but favourable to
-the “Prophet.” The latter, however, did not mind and seemed absolutely
-convinced of immunity in regard to the different transactions in
-which he indulged and which increased in importance every day. He
-began to give his special attention to the interesting matter of army
-contracts, and there he found a very rich field to explore. All the
-different agents and intermediaries who constituted such a notable
-element in Petrograd crowded around him, offering him their services,
-or imploring his help in all kinds of shady business, out of which no
-one with the exception of Rasputin himself got a single penny. Thanks
-to him, bad cartridges were delivered to the army; rotten meat, or meat
-at a fabulous price, was sold for its wants, and not only sold once,
-but several times over. No matter how strange this last assertion may
-sound, it is absolutely true. If at the beginning of the war people
-were afraid to indulge in that kind of sport, they became adepts at
-it later on, and the only art which was practised in regard to it
-consisted in bribing an official not to put the Government stamp on
-the goods which were delivered to the Red Cross or to the Commissariat
-Department, an omission which allowed them to be returned to those who
-had already once disposed of them, and thus become the object of a new
-transaction, perhaps even more profitable than the first.
-
-In regard to important matters, Rasputin did not disdain occasionally
-to play the spy. I remember a curious instance which during the first
-five or six weeks of the war greatly amused those who became aware of
-it. The whole incident is most characteristic of the business methods
-then in vogue in Russia, which are at present dying out fast, thanks
-to the co-operation of the English and French authorities with the
-Russians in all questions connected with army contracts.
-
-When war was declared the military administration proceeded to
-requisition numerous things which it required in the way of war
-material. Among others were sand bags for the trenches. Now there
-happened to be a Jew in Petrograd who had about 50,000 of them. He
-did not care to declare them as he ought to have done, knowing very
-well that he was not in a position to obtain from the Commissariat
-Department the price which he wanted. He therefore sold them to another
-Jew, who gave him a certain sum on account, stipulating that he would
-take the delivery of the goods in the course of the next week or so.
-But in the meanwhile prices went down, and the unlucky buyer found that
-he had indeed made about as bad a bargain as possible. While he was
-thus lamenting his bad luck, he happened to meet one of the secretaries
-of Rasputin to whom he related his misfortune.
-
-“Is this troubling you?” exclaimed the latter. “This is nothing, and
-we shall soon set it all right.” He took him to the “Prophet,” where
-the trio came to the following arrangement: The Jew was to go forthwith
-to the Commissariat Department and declare that he had so many thousand
-sand bags to sell. Rasputin was to speak in his favour and to do his
-best to obtain the highest prices possible. Rasputin’s secretary
-proceeded then to denounce the first Jew, who was the real owner of
-the bags, as having neglected to declare their existence. Immediately
-a requisition was made in the latter’s store, where the bags of course
-were found. Then the Jew who had given an account of them interfered,
-and said that they were his property, and that he had fulfilled all
-the formalities required by the law in regard to them. He forthwith
-proceeded to take possession of the bags, laughing in the face of their
-real owner whom he defied to claim the balance still due to him, well
-knowing that the unfortunate victim could do nothing, because if he
-had tried to complain he would inevitably have been condemned to pay a
-heavy fine and to be imprisoned.
-
-Then again there was a story of railway trucks in which the “Prophet”
-also was mixed up in some unaccountable way. Some Jews, protected
-no one knows to this day by whom or in what way, had obtained some
-contracts from the Government for different goods which were to be
-delivered to the army, together with the necessary numbers of railway
-trucks to carry them to the front. They immediately proceeded to sell
-these contracts at a fair price, though not an exaggerated one, to
-other people, but with the clause that these other people were to take
-upon themselves the care of forwarding the goods to their destination.
-And they kept for their own use and benefit the trucks which had been
-allotted to them, hiring them afterward to whoever wanted to have them
-for as much money as they could get. One Jew, a certain Mr. Bernstein,
-thus obtained control over more than 500 trucks, out of which he drew
-during six months an income amounting to something like 250,000 rubles
-a month. And this occurred while everybody was complaining of the
-impossibility of forwarding anything anywhere, owing to the total lack
-of railway material. It is related that in this little business, too,
-Rasputin was mixed up, and that without him the military contracts
-which the heroes of the anecdote I have just related obtained would
-never have been granted.
-
-These stories, scandalous though they were, are well known. There were
-others of which it is hardly possible to speak in a language fit for
-a drawing room. Such, for instance, is the sad case of a young girl,
-the daughter of a rich merchant in Moscow, who travelled all the way
-to Petrograd, to see the “Prophet” and implore his prayers for her
-fiancé who was at the front. Rasputin received her, and forthwith
-proceeded to tell her that the young man for whom she felt so anxious
-was doomed and could be saved only if she consented to unite herself
-with him, Rasputin, and to be cleansed by him of all her sins. The poor
-child, frightened out of her wits and fascinated by the terror which
-the dreadful creature inspired in his victims, allowed him to do what
-he liked with her. But she afterward became mad, on hearing that in
-spite of her sacrifices her lover had fallen at Tannenburg, during the
-terrible battle which took place in that locality.
-
-All these things were whispered from ear to ear with horror and
-disgust, but they did not harm in the least the impostor who was
-pursuing his career of wickedness, deceit and crime. As time went on,
-he got more and more insolent, more and more overbearing, so that at
-last even some of his former protectors found that he was going rather
-too far, and he was no longer received at Tsarskoie Selo with the same
-kindness that had been shown to him previously.
-
-He did not care for this, nor did those with whom he was working care
-either. They were all unscrupulous, daring people, determined to make
-hay while the sun was shining, and careless as to what others might
-think of them. Count Witte, who saw further and understood better than
-most of the public the hopeless muddle into which the administration
-had fallen, felt sure that sooner or later the country would demand an
-explanation for the many mistakes and errors which had been committed,
-and that a change in the Government was bound to take place. He fully
-meant this change to affect his own prospects in so far that it would
-put him again at the head of affairs, and he was helping Rasputin as
-hard and as well as he could to discredit the Cabinet then in power,
-and to show it up as being thoroughly incapable of managing the country
-at this moment of grave crisis.
-
-It was about that time that the Massayedoff incident took place, about
-which such a lot has been written, and which deserves a passing
-mention in this record. Massayedoff was a colonel who had already given
-some reasons to be talked about for misdeeds of a more or less grave
-nature. General Rennenkampf, when he had received the command of the
-Kovno Army Corps, had energetically protested against his appointment
-on his staff, but headquarters ignored his representations and
-maintained the colonel in his functions.
-
-After the disaster of Tannenberg and the loss of two Russian army
-corps in the swamps of the Mazurian region, it was discovered that
-some spying of a grave nature had been going on and that the principal
-spy was Colonel Massayedoff, who had kept the enemy informed of the
-movements of the Russian troops. He was tried and condemned to death,
-which sentence was duly executed. Together with him several individuals
-compromised in the same affair, mostly Jews connected with questions of
-army purveyance, were also hanged. Among these last was a man called
-Friedmann, who had been one of the parasites who were perpetually
-crowding around Rasputin. The latter, however, when asked to interfere
-in his favour had refused to do so, but whether this was due to the
-desire to get rid of a compromising accomplice or the dread of being
-mixed up himself in a dangerous story, it is difficult to say or to
-guess. But others talked, if the “Prophet” himself remained silent, and
-soon it began to be whispered that he was also, if not exactly a German
-agent, at least a partisan of a separate peace with Germany.
-
-There certainly exist indications that such was the case. In spite of
-the strong character upon which Rasputin prided himself, it is hardly
-possible that he could have escaped the influence of the people who
-were constantly hanging about him, and who were all partial to Germany.
-This was due to the fact that they hoped, if the latter Power triumphed
-and vanquished the Russians, to obtain from the German Government
-substantial rewards for their fidelity, in the shape of some kind of
-army contracts, for the time that the Prussian troops remained in
-occupation of some Russian provinces. It is quite remarkable that while
-the nation in general was all for the continuation of the war, and
-would have considered it a shame to listen to peace proposals without
-consent of its Allies, commercial and industrial people were always
-talking about peace to whomever would listen. And Rasputin had now more
-to do with that class of individuals than with the nation.
-
-It was at that time that he suddenly imagined himself to be endowed
-with perspicacity in regard to military matters, and that he attempted
-to criticise the operations at the front, and especially the leadership
-of the Grand Duke Nicholas, whom he hated with all the ferocity for
-which his character had become famous. He was known to be absolutely
-without any mercy for those whom he disliked. He disliked none more
-than the Grand Duke, who had, on one occasion when the “Prophet”
-had tried to discuss with him the conduct of the campaign and even
-volunteered to arrive at headquarters, declared that if he ever
-ventured to put in an appearance there he would have him hanged
-immediately from the first tree he could find. Rasputin was prudent,
-and moreover he knew that Nicolas Nicolaievitsch was a man who always
-kept his word, so he thought it wise to leave a wide berth between
-him and the irascible commander-in-chief. But he applied himself with
-considerable perseverance to undermine the position of the latter,
-and especially to render him unpopular among the people, accusing him
-openly of mismanagement in regard to military matters and of want of
-foresight in his strategical dispositions.
-
-In the beginning this did not succeed, partly because the staff did
-not allow any news of importance to leak out from the front and partly
-because the country believed so firmly in a victory over the Prussians
-that it was very hard to shake its confidence in the Grand Duke’s
-abilities. The early successes of the first Galician campaign had
-strengthened this confidence, and no one in Petrograd during the first
-months of the year 1915 ever gave a thought to the possibility of our
-troops being compelled to retreat before the enemy, and no one foresaw
-the fall of Warsaw and of the other fortresses on the western frontier.
-Rasputin, however, knew more than the public at large. He had his
-spies everywhere, who faithfully reported to him everything that was
-occurring in the army. He was well aware that the army was suffering
-from an almost complete lack of ammunition, and that it would never be
-able to hold against any offensive combined with artillery attacks on
-the part of the enemy. This knowledge, which he carefully refrained
-from sharing with any one, enabled him to indulge in prophesies of
-a more or less tragic nature, the sense of which was that God was
-punishing Russia for its sins, and that with an unbeliever like the
-commander-in-chief at the head of its armies it was surely marching
-towards a defeat which would be sent by God as a warning never to
-forget the paths of Providence, and never to disdain the advice of the
-one prophet that He had sent in His mercy to save Russia from all the
-calamities which were threatening her.
-
-He used to speak in that way everywhere and to everybody, even at
-Tsarskoie Selo, not to the Emperor and Empress, of course, but to all
-those persons surrounding them who were favourably inclined toward
-himself and likely to spread abroad the prophecies which he kept
-pouring into their ears.
-
-But, in spite of all this, he was not quite so successful as he had
-hoped, because owing to the ignorance which prevailed as to the real
-state of things in the army, few people believed him, and fewer still
-would own that they did so. Once more Rasputin’s star was beginning to
-wane, and even the Empress began to think him very wearisome with his
-perpetual forebodings concerning misfortunes which seemed to be far
-away from the limits of possibility.
-
-Then suddenly things changed. Mackensen began his march forward, and
-the Grand Duke, with his heart full of rage and despair, was compelled,
-owing to the mistakes, the negligence and the crimes of others, to make
-the best out of a very bad job, and to try at least to save the army
-confided to his care. Even if he had to sacrifice towns and fortresses,
-he had declared he would never, and under no conditions whatever,
-surrender to the enemy. The great retreat began, and proved to be one
-of the most glorious pages in the history of Russian warfare, a deed
-the gallantry of which will live in the military annals of the world
-as almost as grand a one as the famous retreat of Xenophon and his
-10,000 warriors. Russia appreciated its importance; the world admired
-it; the Czar, though he may have shed bitter tears over its necessity,
-felt grateful for the talent which was displayed in such a terrible
-emergency; but people in Petrograd began looking for those upon whom
-they could fix the responsibility for this awful disappointment which
-had overtaken them. This was the moment for which Rasputin had been
-waiting with the patience of the serpent watching for its prey, and
-of which he hastened to make use with the infernal cunning he usually
-displayed in all the evil deeds with which he was familiar.
-
-The secret police agents, who were working with him, and thanks to whom
-he had been enabled to make the enormous profits that had added so many
-millions to his fortune since the war had started, began to spread the
-rumour that the Grand Duke was plotting against the Czar, and wanted
-to usurp the latter’s throne and crown, out of fear of being called
-upon to render an account of his activity during the nine months of the
-campaign. Though it was quite evident that the responsibility for the
-lamentable want of organisation which had culminated in the momentary
-defeat of the Russian troops lay upon the War Office and the Artillery
-and Commissariat Departments, and though the War Minister, General
-Soukhomlinoff, had been dismissed in disgrace before being sent to the
-fortress of St. Peter and St. Paul to await there his trial; though
-strenuous efforts had been made to punish those to whose carelessness
-this mass of misfortunes had been due, yet Rasputin and his friends
-applied themselves to the task of representing the Grand Duke as being
-more guilty than any one else, and of having on purpose kept secret
-the real state of things, out of fear that he would be called upon,
-if he revealed the truth, to surrender his command. There was not one
-word of truth in these accusations, because Nicholas Nicholaievitsch
-had, on the contrary, worked harder than any one to repair the blunders
-of others, and had never shared the blind confidence in victory which
-so many people who knew nothing about the real condition of affairs
-professed to nurse. He had done all that it was humanly possible to do,
-in order to save a situation which had been doomed from the first day
-that it had begun to develop. If he had failed, this had been in no way
-his fault, but that of circumstances and of fate which had proved too
-strong for him.
-
-The public, however, thought differently, and Rasputin’s numerous
-supporters helped it to come to the conclusion that the Grand Duke
-ought to be deprived of his command by some means or other. This,
-however, was not such an easy thing to do, because the Emperor had a
-sincere esteem and respect for his uncle, and understood better than
-all those who criticised the latter the extent of the difficulties
-against which he had had to fight. He refused to listen to those who
-tried to shake his confidence in the commander-in-chief. He might have
-gone on for a long time doing so had not Rasputin succeeded in winning
-over to his point of view several high ecclesiastical dignitaries, who
-took it upon themselves to speak to the Sovereign of the desire and
-wishes of the nation to see him assume himself the supreme command over
-his armies. They assured him that it was quite certain that the armies
-would fight ever so much better under the personal leadership of their
-Czar than under any other commander-in-chief, no matter how high might
-be his military reputation, or how elevated might be his rank. This
-was quite a new point of view, and Nicholas II. had to examine it with
-attention, the more so as the Empress, too, had been won over to the
-idea, and was pressing him to give to his subjects this satisfaction
-for which they craved.
-
-The military situation was then recognised, even by the most
-optimistically inclined people, to be very serious, and it was
-generally felt that something had to be done to excite the enthusiasm
-of the troops, which had lately begun to wane. The assumption by the
-Czar of the supreme command seemed to present itself almost in the
-light of an absolute necessity. Perhaps from some points of view
-Rasputin was not so very wrong to urge it, as it most certainly
-produced a salutary effect on the whole situation. But it is to be
-doubted whether the “Prophet” had ever looked at it in that light. It
-is far more likely that his only aim had been the displacing of the
-Grand Duke Nicholas, who had begun to look too closely into all that
-was going on around Rasputin, and to watch the different intrigues in
-which the latter was taking part with an attention that did not promise
-anything good for him, or for the further development of his career as
-an adventurer.
-
-When the Grand Duke had been appointed Viceroy of the Caucasus, and
-had left for his new residence, Rasputin breathed freely once more.
-For one thing, this incident had given him a greater confidence in his
-own strength than he had even possessed before. Now that he had been
-able to remove the commander-in-chief of the Russian armies from his
-post, it seemed to him that it would be a relatively easy thing to push
-forward, and to appoint to the most important functions in the State
-people indoctrinated with his view and ready to help him in keeping
-undisturbed and unchallenged the position into which he had glided so
-naturally, and as now appeared to him, so simply--a position which
-he was absolutely determined not to lose. With a Prime Minister at
-his command, he would become the real master of Russia, and the Czar
-himself would be compelled to take him into account, a thing which up
-to then he had refused to do, much to the distress of the “Prophet.”
-Though he repeated everywhere, and to whomsoever wished to listen to
-him, that he could do all he liked at Tsarskoie Selo, he knew very
-well in his inmost heart that such was not the case, and that in the
-Imperial Palace Rasputin was nothing but Rasputin, an ignorant peasant,
-endowed sometimes with gifts of second sight and always with religious
-fervour, but a peasant all the same, with whom one might pray, but whom
-one would never dream of appointing to any responsible position.
-
-The knowledge that such was the case, and that his so-called influence
-existed mostly in the imagination of the people who spoke about it,
-worried Rasputin. Though he dictated to ministers his will, though he
-decided together with them more than one important matter, yet he felt
-that there was a flaw in the edifice of his fortune, and that this flaw
-consisted in the fact that the Sovereign did not share the feeling of
-reverence with which the Russian nation, as the “Prophet” flattered
-himself was the case, experienced for his person and for his teachings.
-This was what tormented him, and he spent the whole time thinking how
-it might become possible to put in the place of Mr. Goremykine another
-Prime Minister more ready to enter into his views, and to follow his
-advice in regard to matters of state. This the then President of
-Council, in spite of his deference for Rasputin, had refused to do,
-preferring to discuss the affairs of the Government alone with the
-Emperor, without any interference of the former.
-
-Rasputin spoke of his wishes to some of his confidants, and even
-mentioned the subject to several of the high-born ladies who formed
-the great bulk of his “clientele.” These entered into his views with
-alacrity, the more so as he developed them in a pathetic tone, which
-appealed to their feelings of “patriotism.” They would have given much
-to be able to help him, but they did not very well know how this was
-to be done. This was due to the sad fact that there seemed to be no
-one available. The unexpected and sudden death of Count Witte, which
-had occurred in the meanwhile, removed the only person whom they could
-suggest as a candidate for the functions of Prime Minister. All those
-whose names might have been mentioned as fit individuals for the post,
-such as Mr. Krivoscheine for instance, were people who would, with a
-greater energy even than Mr. Goremykine had ever displayed, oppose any
-interference of Rasputin into the conduct of the Government. Their
-perplexity might have lasted a long time if Providence, in the shape
-of Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, had not interfered in their favour,
-and had the latter not suggested the advisability of entering into
-negotiations with Mr. Sturmer.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-
-Mr. Sturmer was not a novice in politics and he was known to be a
-reactionary of the deepest dye. It is likely that even Rasputin’s
-friends would never have given a thought to the possibility of his
-becoming Prime Minister if Count Witte had still been in the land of
-the living. With the latter’s death the sort of coalition or secret
-society that had hoped through the occult influence of the “Prophet”
-to rise to power had lost its best head. There was no one to take his
-place, officially at least, because with the best will in the world it
-was impossible to suggest as a candidate for a ministerial portfolio
-Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff. The past record of this man did not permit
-him to play any rôle but that of the Père Joseph of a minister who was
-not a Richelieu. And though the secret position of principal adviser
-to a personage of the importance of Rasputin had its advantages, it
-nevertheless precluded the possibility of becoming a candidate for the
-place of a statesman.
-
-The next best thing, therefore, was to find some one who would be
-willing to become consciously what the “Prophet” was unconsciously,
-the instrument of the vile crew whose ambition was to make money by
-all means out of the terrible situation into which the country was
-plunged. These unscrupulous people all felt that they would never again
-in the whole course of their life have another such opportunity of
-becoming rich beyond the dreams of avarice, and they were not the kind
-of people to allow it to escape them. Every effort was therefore put
-forward to bring Mr. Sturmer to the notice of the Emperor, and to the
-attention of all those capable of suggesting to the latter the choice
-of this functionary to replace Mr. Goremykine, who had openly declared
-that he could not any longer go on fighting against the subterranean
-forces which were slowly but surely working against him, and making his
-position more unbearable every day. The candidate who would have been
-the most welcome to public opinion was Mr. Krivoscheine, but he was the
-last man whom Rasputin’s friends would have cared to put forward.
-
-On the other hand, Mr. Sturmer, for personal reasons into which it is
-useless to enter here, when approached by Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, had
-not hesitated a single moment in promising to indorse the purposes of
-the small group of persons who had made up their minds to become the
-real rulers of the State. As soon as he had declared his willingness to
-join with them in the future an energetic campaign was started in his
-favour, not in the press nor in the Duma, nor even among the public,
-but in the immediate vicinity of the Sovereign, a campaign in which
-some of the highest authorities in the Greek Church were enrolled, and
-in which the Empress herself was persuaded by some of her personal
-friends to take part. The expected then occurred. The Czar was finally
-persuaded that in Mr. Sturmer he would find a faithful servant, which
-in a certain sense he did, and also a minister determined to govern
-according to the old principles of autocracy with an utter disregard
-for the liberal parties, as well as for the Duma. The Duma had not
-spared the Government during the whole summer, and its activity had
-been viewed with dismay by certain members. Yet the country was glad
-to find that at last there existed among its representatives men
-courageous enough to say what they thought, and to try to save Russia
-from the abyss into which it was felt that she was falling through the
-influence not so much of Rasputin himself as of those who surrounded
-him and who used him for their own ends.
-
-This campaign succeeded and Mr. Sturmer was appointed. His selection
-caused an outcry of indignation throughout the whole country, and
-distressed its best friends for more than one reason. But even among
-the functionaries of the Ministry, which had to accept him as its
-chief, there were found some rebellious spirits, among whom was the
-then Minister of the Interior, Mr. Chvostoff, who made up their minds
-that it was at last high time to get rid of Rasputin in some manner
-or other. He was also a reactionary, like Mr. Sturmer, and even a
-furious one. When he was still a deputy in the Duma he had been one of
-the leaders of the faction of the right and before that time had made
-for himself the reputation of being an ultraconservative in all the
-different administrative posts which he had occupied. Among others, he
-had been Governor at Nijni Novgorod for a short period. He belonged to
-the number of persons who held the opinion that Rasputin ought to be
-removed. But whether he was really a party to the extraordinary story
-I am going to relate is a matter about which I shall abstain from
-expressing an opinion.
-
-The fact is that about the beginning of the year 1916 people were
-startled by hearing of a new conspiracy against Rasputin, in which it
-was rumoured that the Minister of the Interior himself was a party.
-Things stood thus: A secret agent of the Russian police called Rgevsky,
-a man about as unscrupulous as Manassevitsch-Maniuloff but not so
-clever, who had already figured more than once in occasions when the
-need for a provocative agent had been felt, arrived in Christiania,
-in Norway, where the unfrocked monk Illiodore was living, and sought
-him out. His journey had been undertaken without the knowledge of the
-chief of the secret police, Mr. Bieletsky, but on the express orders of
-Mr. Chvostoff, the Minister of the Interior. Bieletsky, however, had
-suspected that some underhand game was going on, and had caused Rgevsky
-to be watched. When the latter had crossed the frontier at Torneo, he
-had been thoroughly searched and examined by special orders received
-from Petrograd, without, however, anything suspicious being found on
-him. When he was questioned as to the reasons for his journey abroad he
-had, in order to be allowed to proceed, to own that it was undertaken
-by command of the Minister of the Interior.
-
-On his return from abroad Rgevsky was at once arrested under the
-pretext of having blackmailed another police agent. Furious at what he
-considered to have been a breach of faith, he contrived to apprise
-Rasputin of the position in which he found himself placed, and revealed
-to him that the object of his mission had been to see and speak with
-Illiodore to try to persuade the latter to organise a conspiracy with
-the help of the many followers he still had in Russia. The object of
-this plot was to be the murder of the “Prophet.” Illiodore had been
-considered ever since his quarrel with Rasputin one of the latter’s
-worst enemies, and it was felt that he would enter with alacrity into
-the plot which it was proposed to engineer. But to the stupefaction of
-the persons who had thus applied to him in the hope of finding in him
-the instrument which they required, Illiodore went over to the enemy.
-On the advice of Rgevsky he telegraphed to Rasputin, asking the latter
-to send some one whom he could trust to Norway, and telling him that he
-would deliver into the hands of that person the proofs of the plot that
-was being hatched against his, Rasputin’s, life.
-
-Mr. Chvostoff, when taken to task for the affair, of course, denied
-it in its entirety. He declared that he had given quite different
-instructions to Rgevsky, and that he had sent the policeman to Norway
-to buy the memoirs of Illiodore, which he had heard the latter was
-about to publish abroad. But at the same time Chvostoff made no secret
-of his feelings of repugnance to Rasputin, and declared that he
-considered him a most dangerous and mischievous man, whose presence
-at Petrograd was exceedingly harmful for the prestige of the dynasty,
-as well as for the welfare of the State in the grave circumstances in
-which the country was finding itself placed.
-
-According to Mr. Chvostoff, Rasputin was surrounded with individuals
-of a most suspicious character, who spent their time in concocting
-any amount of shady affairs and transactions, and who had organised
-a regular plundering of the public exchequer. He did not dare to do
-anything directly against the “Prophet,” but he tried to get at him
-through the arrest of several of his adepts and friends. He caused the
-houses of a considerable number of these to be thoroughly searched for
-compromising documents. Among other places searched was the flat of
-a Mr. Dobrovolsky, who held the position of a school inspector. This
-search gave abundant evidence by which he might have been incriminated
-in more than one dirty transaction. But he was not immediately arrested
-and contrived to make his escape. Another of the Rasputin crew, a
-certain Simanovitsch, was arrested at the very moment when he returned
-to his home in the private automobile of Mr. Sturmer, one of whose
-familiar friends he happened to be.
-
-At the request of the “Prophet” an inquest into the denunciation of
-Rgevsky was ordered by Mr. Sturmer, and a certain Mr. Gourland, whose
-name had often been mentioned as that of a rising secret agent, was
-entrusted with it. But Manassevitsch-Maniuloff contrived to oust him
-and to get himself appointed in his place. At the same time it was
-decided to send some one to Norway to interview Illiodore, and to try
-thus to come to the bottom of the whole business. A certain General
-Spiridovitsch, who had already more than once been entrusted with
-missions of a delicate character which he had always accomplished to
-the satisfaction of those who had employed him, was selected for
-the task. The General had several interviews with Mr. Chvostoff, but
-they all came to nothing, and he did not go abroad as it had been
-rumoured that he would do. At last both the Minster of the Interior
-and the chief of the secret police, Mr. Bieletsky, had to resign their
-functions, and Rasputin found himself delivered from two of his most
-dangerous enemies.
-
-The next question which arose was that of the appointment of
-Chvostoff’s successor. The post which he had vacated was such a
-difficult and responsible one that several persons who were sounded as
-to their readiness to accept it refused the offer in a most categorical
-manner. The story which I have just related died at last a natural
-death. Rgevsky disappeared, no one knew where, but the difficulties out
-of which it had arisen were still there. They could hardly be set aside
-by any minister, unless some radical measures were adopted, such as the
-exile of Rasputin, a thing which no one dared to propose, and which no
-one would have dared to enforce even if some one else had proposed it.
-
-After the resignation, or rather the dismissal, of Mr. Chvostoff,
-his post was finally offered, by the advice of Rasputin and at the
-suggestion of Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, to Mr. Protopopoff, a rich
-landowner of the Government of Simbirsk, who for some time had occupied
-the position of vice president of the Duma of the Empire.
-
-Just before his appointment to what is the most important and
-responsible function in the whole Russian Empire, there was much talk
-of an interview which he had had at Stockholm with Mr. Warberg, a
-representative of the German Government, during which the conditions
-at which a separate peace might come to be concluded between Russia
-and the Central Empires had been discussed. Later on, when this
-meeting, which had been arranged through the good offices of a Jew, Mr.
-Maliniak, became the subject of general knowledge in Stockholm, and
-details concerning it had found their way into the Russian press, Mr.
-Protopopoff was violently attacked by the liberal parties in the Duma,
-which accused him of treason, and refused even to listen to the clumsy
-explanations which he attempted to give of the affair.
-
-It was then generally believed that the political career of this
-gentleman was at an end, and it was assumed that he would have to
-resign his vice presidency in the House. Certainly no one ever thought
-that he would suddenly develop into a minister. And yet, this is the
-very thing which happened, thanks to the Rasputin crew, which persuaded
-Mr. Sturmer to present Mr. Protopopoff to the Emperor as the best
-candidate for the place vacated by Mr. Chvostoff. In the meanwhile,
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, who had been the moving spirit in this whole
-intrigue, had been appointed private secretary to Mr. Sturmer, and at
-his instigation there began dissipation of public funds such as Russia
-had never seen before, and such as, let us hope, she will never see
-again.
-
-There are many more things than I could possibly relate in regard
-to the incidents of which I have given the outline here, but these
-could hardly be published at present. The only thing which I can do
-is to try to make my readers understand the general position as it
-presented itself before the murder of Rasputin by quoting some speeches
-which were delivered in the Duma as far back as the year 1912. They
-were reproduced in the Russian Liberal organ, the Retsch, on the day
-following the assassination of the “Prophet.” The Russian censor
-offered no opposition to this republication.
-
-The first of these speeches was made by Mr. Goutschkoff, one of the
-most enlightened men in the whole of the Russian Empire, whose liberal
-opinions and sound political views had won for him the respect of all
-parties, even those who were opposed to them. The occasion upon which
-it was pronounced was that of the discussion of the budget of the Holy
-Synod, a discussion during which for the first time the personality of
-Rasputin, together with his activity, was publicly denounced as one of
-the greatest sources of danger that had ever threatened the country as
-well as the dynasty.
-
-“You all know,” said Mr. Goutschkoff in this memorable address, “what a
-terrible drama Russia is living through at present. With sorrow in our
-hearts and with terror in our souls we have followed its developments,
-and we are dreading its consequences. Standing in the very heart of
-this drama we see a mysterious, enigmatical, tragi-comical figure, who
-seems to have come out of the dark ages, which we believed had passed
-away forever, into the full light of the twentieth century. Perhaps
-this figure is that of a sectarian of the worst kind who is trying to
-popularise amongst us his mystical rites; perhaps it is that of an
-adventurer seeking to hide under the cloak of religious fanaticism and
-superstition his numerous swindles. By what means has this individual
-succeeded in rising to such a prominent position and in acquiring such
-an influence which even the dignitaries of our church, together with
-the highest functionaries in our State, acknowledge and which they seek
-to propitiate?
-
-“If we had had to do with only this one figure which had made its way
-on the field of religious superstition and which has thriven, thanks
-to an exalted spirit of mysticism, a state of mind which, though not
-perhaps bordering on insanity, is yet not quite normal, then we should
-have said nothing. We might have regretted the fact; we might even have
-wept over it, but we would not have spoken about it.
-
-“But unfortunately this figure is not standing alone. Behind it there
-is a whole crew, strong and varied, unscrupulous and grasping, which is
-taking advantage of its position and of the talents of persuasion which
-it may possess. Amongst this crew there are to be found journalists in
-want of copy, shady business men, adventurers of every kind and sort.
-It is they who are the moving spirits in all this sad history, it is
-they who inspire it, they who tell it what it is to do. They constitute
-a kind of commercial enterprise, and they understand how to play their
-game in the most clever manner.
-
-“Before such a spectacle it is our duty to cry out as loud as we can
-that one ought to beware of all those people, and that the church--our
-church, and the country--our country, find themselves in imminent
-danger, because no revolution and no anti-Christian propaganda have
-ever done them more harm than the events which are daily taking place
-under our eyes for the last twelve months.”
-
-Two years later, in 1914, a few weeks before the breaking out of the
-present war, another deputy, this time a clergyman, Father Filonenko,
-spoke about Rasputin in the Duma, and did so in the following strong
-terms:
-
-“As a faithful and devoted son of our Holy Orthodox Church, I consider
-it my painful duty to mention once more what has already been discussed
-here, by so many orators better than myself, and to recur to a subject
-which is at present talked of at the corner of every street, in every
-town and in every village, no matter how distant and how far from
-any civilised centre in our vast Empire. We find ourselves compelled
-to look upon this unexplainable influence of a common adventurer,
-belonging to the worst type of those sectarians, whom until now we have
-known by the name of Khlystys, and despised accordingly. We are obliged
-to reckon with this influence of a man upon whom all the sane elements
-in our society look with contempt.”
-
-On that same day another deputy belonging to the group of
-Ultra-Conservatives, Prince Mansyreff, also spoke about Rasputin, with
-perhaps even more energy than any one had ever done before in the Duma.
-Said the Prince:
-
-“The adventure of Illiodore ended in ridicule, but we have now in his
-place another adventurer, with the personality of whom are connected
-the most nefarious and disgusting rumours, the most unnatural and
-contemptible crimes. It is useless to mention his name; every one
-knows who he is, and of whom I am talking. He has been let loose
-on our society to acquire some influence over it, by men even more
-shameless than he is himself; he has been used to terrorise all those
-who have dared to express their opinions against the currents which
-prevail at present in our administrative circles. This adventurer,
-whenever he travels and whenever he arrives in St. Petersburg, is
-met at the railway station by the highest dignitaries of the church;
-before him pray, as they would do to God, unfortunate hysterical ladies
-of the highest social circles. This individual, who only seeks the
-satisfaction of the lowest instinct of a low nature, has introduced
-himself into the very heart of our country and of our society, and we
-find and feel everywhere his disgusting and filthy influence.”
-
-A few days after this memorable sitting of the Duma the Government
-issued instructions to the press never to mention Rasputin’s name or to
-speak of any subject connected with him in the newspapers. As soon as
-this became known the Octobrists put down on the order of the day in
-the Duma an interpellation on the matter, and Mr. Goutschkoff in moving
-it exclaimed:
-
-“Dark and dangerous days have arrived, and the conscience of the
-Russian nation has been deeply moved by the events of the last few
-months, and is protesting against the appearance amongst us of symptoms
-proving that we are returning to the darkest periods of the middle
-ages. It has cried out that things are going wrong in our State, and
-that danger threatens our most holy national ideals.”
-
-Prince Lvoff seconded the motion, and asked the Government to explain
-who was this “strange personality who had been taken under the special
-protection of the administration, who was considered as too sacred to
-be subjected to the criticism of the press, and who had been put upon
-such a pedestal that no one was allowed to touch or even to approach
-him.”
-
-I would not have quoted these speeches but for the fact that they
-all bore on the same point, the one that I have tried to make clear
-to the mind of my readers. This point is that the danger which
-Rasputin undoubtedly personified in Russian society at large did not
-proceed from his own personality, but from the character of the men
-who surrounded him, who had made out of him their tool and who were
-trying through him to rule Russia and to push it into the arms of
-Germany. There is no doubt that Germany had been carefully following
-all the phases of the drama which culminated in the assassination of
-the “Prophet” and had been helping by her subsidies the underhand
-and mysterious work of men like Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff and his
-satellites, and like Mr. Sturmer. Sturmer believed quite earnestly
-that he would secure immortality for his name and for his work if
-he contrived to conclude a peace which every one knew that Russia
-required, but which no one except himself and the adventurers to whom
-he owed his elevation thought of making except in concert with Russia’s
-Allies, and only after Germany had been compelled to accept the
-conditions of her adversaries.
-
-The whole Rasputin affair was nothing but a German intrigue which
-aimed at discrediting the dynasty and perhaps even at overthrowing the
-sovereign from his throne.
-
-Thanks to the infernal cunning of the people who were its leaders, the
-Imperial circle and even some of the Imperial family were represented
-as being entirely under the “Prophet’s” influence. And thanks to the
-solitary existence which the Emperor and Empress were leading, and to
-the small number of people who were allowed to see them, these rumours
-gained ground, for the simple reason that there existed no one capable
-of contradicting them or of pointing out their absurdity. Calumnies
-as stupid as they were degrading to the authors of them were set in
-circulation, and the revolutionary movement which Germany had been
-fomenting grew stronger and stronger every day, until it reached the
-lower classes. These classes by a kind of miracle were also kept very
-well informed as to everything that was connected with Rasputin or
-with the subterranean work performed by his party, a work which tended
-to only make the House of Romanoff unpopular, and to represent it as
-incapable of taking to heart the interest of the country over which it
-reigned.
-
-If we consider who were the people at the side of the “Prophet,” and
-who inspired all his actions as well as his utterances we find police
-agents, adventurers who had been sometimes in prison, and sometimes in
-exile; functionaries eager to obtain some fat sinecure in which they
-might do nothing and earn a great deal; stock exchange speculators
-of doubtful morality and still more doubtful honesty; women of low
-character and army purveyors, mixed up with an innumerable number of
-spies. Most of these last were in the German service and were working
-for all that they were worth to bring about some palace conspiracy or
-some popular movement capable of removing from his throne a Czar whose
-honesty and straightforwardness of character precluded the possibility
-of Russia betraying the trust which her Allies had put in her.
-
-Yet this was precisely what these people wanted, and what they had
-made up their minds to force through, thanks to the indignation which
-the various stories which were being repeated every day concerning
-Rasputin and the favour which he enjoyed was arousing all over Russia.
-The Emperor, of course, knew nothing of all this; the Empress even
-less. There was no one to tell them the truth, and they would have been
-more surprised than any one else had they suspected the ocean of lies
-which had been told concerning themselves, and concerning the kindness
-with which they had treated a man whom they considered as being half
-saint and half mad, but of whom they had never thought in their wildest
-dreams of making their chief adviser.
-
-In this extraordinary history there is also another point which must
-be noticed. When the first deceptions produced by the disasters of the
-beginning of the campaign had thrown public opinion into a state of
-mind which was bordering well nigh upon despair, and before it had had
-time to recover from the shock of the fall of Warsaw and the line of
-fortresses upon which they had relied to protect the western frontier,
-people had begun to seek for the cause of the great disillusion they
-had been called upon to experience. It was very quickly discovered,
-partly through the revelations that had been made in the Duma, that
-the real reason for all the sad things which had happened lay in the
-systematic plundering of the public exchequer, that had been going on
-for such a long time and which even the experiences of the Japanese war
-had not cured. When the fierce battle against Germany began in grim
-earnest, the first thought of the Emperor had been to try to put an end
-to these depredations that had compromised the prestige and the good
-name of Russia abroad as well as at home. Great severity was shown to
-the many adventurers who had enriched themselves at the expense of the
-nation. When it had come to the fabrication of the necessary ammunition
-required by the army, then the help of Russia’s Allies--England and
-France--had been sought. Thanks to the efforts of these two Powers,
-something like order was re-established in the vast machine of the War
-Office.
-
-The fabrication of shells of a size that could not fit any gun was
-stopped. The army at the front got clothes and food of which it
-had been in want at the beginning of the campaign. Ammunition was
-despatched where it was required, and not in the contrary direction
-as often had been the case before. The Allies helped Russia to the
-best of their ability, and Russia, at least the sane and honest part
-of Russian society, felt grateful to them for their co-operation in
-the work of their common defence against a foe which it had become
-necessary to defeat so thoroughly that civilisation could no longer be
-endangered by its existence and activity.
-
-But the people who surrounded Rasputin and with whom he was working
-were not grateful for the labour of love which Great Britain and France
-had assumed. They began to complain of the so-called interference
-of foreign elements with the details of the Russian administration.
-Some went even so far as to say that Russia was becoming an English
-colony. All the plunderers, all the thieves who had had their own way
-for so many months, perceiving that they would no longer have the
-opportunities which they had enjoyed before to add to their ill-gotten
-gains, tried by all means in their power to discredit the Sovereign
-whose firmness they had found in their way. They joined all the
-pro-Germans of whom, alas, there existed but too many in the country,
-in an effort to bring about a peace, the shame of which would have been
-quite indifferent to them.
-
-It is not at all wonderful if those shameless adventurers started the
-conspiracy for the success of which they required the moral influence
-of Rasputin and the authority of his person. It was, after all, such
-an easy matter to say that in such and such a case he had been acting
-in conformity with the Imperial will. No one could disprove the truth
-of the assertion, and in that way the Emperor was made responsible
-for all the unavowable things which were going on. He was supposed
-to have given his sanction to all these things simply because it
-had pleased, not even Rasputin himself, but individuals like Mr.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, to declare that they had been done with his
-knowledge and approval.
-
-Can one feel surprised if in the presence of this artificial
-atmosphere, and still more artificial position, an intense feeling of
-disgust took hold of real patriots, and made them contemplate seriously
-the possibility of trying at least to unmask Rasputin and his crew and
-bring to the ears of the Czar all the different rumours which were in
-circulation concerning the “Prophet” and what was going on around him?
-Men of experience and of weight seriously thought how this could be
-done. They made no secret of the fact, unfortunately for themselves as
-well as for the success of their plans. What was going on very soon
-came to the knowledge of Manassevitsch-Maniuloff and made him more
-frantic than he had ever been to overthrow what he called “foreign
-influences” in Russia. He applied himself with renewed energy to bring
-about, by fair means or foul, the conclusion of a peace on which
-depended his whole future destiny. And he might perhaps have succeeded
-if circumstances had not turned against him and put an end to his
-machinations, at least for a time.
-
-Mr. Sturmer was but a tool in the hands of this artful, clever private
-secretary whom he had been persuaded, or rather compelled, to take.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff had managed to get hold of him and to keep him
-securely bound to his own policy. He was the man who had contrived
-to put him into the position of authority which he enjoyed, and Mr.
-Sturmer, whatever may have been his other defects, had a grateful
-nature. Besides, Maniuloff amused him, and took an immense amount
-of trouble off his hands. He could rely on his never doing anything
-stupid, even when he did something very dishonest. Mr. Sturmer was
-absorbed in great political combinations and was looking toward a long
-term of office. He felt absolutely safe in the situation which he
-occupied, where at any moment he liked he could speak with the Czar and
-explain to him what he thought to be most advantageous to the interests
-of his party, or the events of the day as they followed in quick
-succession.
-
-Alas for this security! An unexpected incident was to destroy it in
-the most ruthless manner. Rasputin, together with Mr. Maniuloff, went
-too far in the system of blackmailing which they had been practising
-with such skill for so many long months. For once they found their
-master in the person of one of the directors of a large banking
-establishment in Petrograd, who, upon being threatened with all kinds
-of unpleasantness unless he consented to pay a large sum of money, did
-not protest as others had done before him in similar cases, but gave
-it immediately, first having taken the numbers of the banknotes which
-he had handed over to Mr. Maniuloff. He went with these numbers to the
-military authorities and lodged with them a formal complaint against
-the blackmailers. The result was as immediate as it was unexpected. The
-General Staff had been waiting a long time for just such an opportunity
-to proceed against Rasputin and the members of his crew. That very
-same night, in obedience to orders received from the military commander
-of Petrograd, Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff’s house was searched from top
-to bottom, and he himself conveyed to prison, without even having been
-allowed to acquaint his chief, Mr. Sturmer, with what had happened to
-him.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-The arrest of the Prime Minister’s private secretary produced, as
-may well be imagined, an immense sensation in Petrograd and intense
-consternation among the friends of Rasputin. They were thus deprived
-of the one strong ally capable of guiding their steps in the best
-direction possible under the circumstances, and, moreover, of the one
-who was possessed of information which no one else could possibly get
-at. Mr. Sturmer himself was more than dismayed at this step taken by
-the military authorities without consulting him and resented it as a
-personal affront. He tried to interfere in the matter and went so far
-as to demand as his right the liberation of Manassevitsch-Maniuloff.
-But his intervention, instead of helping the person in whose favour
-it had been displayed, gave on the contrary the signal for a series
-of attacks against Mr. Sturmer himself, attacks of which the most
-important was the speech made by Mr. Miliukoff in the Duma, where he
-publicly accused the Prime Minister of being in league with Germany and
-of working in favour of a separate peace with that country.
-
-Of course, the remarks of the leader of the opposition in the Chamber
-were not allowed to be published, but so many persons had heard them
-and so many others had heard of them that the contents of the address
-of Mr. Miliukoff very soon became public property. No one had ever
-cared for Mr. Sturmer, whose leanings had always been for autocracy.
-While Governor of Tver he had distinguished himself by the zeal which
-he displayed in putting down every manifestation of public opinion in
-his government. In addition he had been connected with various matters
-where bribery played a prominent part, a fact which had not helped him
-to win any popularity in the province which he had administered. His
-only merits lay in his ability to speak excellent French and in his
-having very pronounced English sympathies. These sympathies, however,
-by some kind of unexplainable miracle, died out immediately after
-his assumption of office. He at once fell under the influence of a
-certain party that clamoured for the removal of foreigners from the
-administrative and political life of Russia. He was not clever, though
-he had a very high idea of his own intelligence and knowledge.
-
-Though he had never carried his knowledge beyond a thorough grasp
-of the precedence that ought to be awarded to distinguished guests
-at a dinner party (which he had acquired while he was master of the
-ceremonies at the Imperial Court), yet he was convinced of his capacity
-to fill the most important offices of the Russian State. These he
-looked upon with the eyes of a farmer in the presence of his best
-milking cow. He was not a courtier, but a flatterer by nature, and
-an essentially accommodating one, too. There was no danger of his
-ever turning his back on persons who he had reasons to think were in
-possession of the favour of personages in high places. And he had a
-wonderful faculty for toadying wherever he expected that it might prove
-useful to his career.
-
-For some years he had vegetated in a kind of semi-disgrace and fretted
-over his inactivity. When he found himself able once more to make
-a display of his administrative talents he took himself and these
-talents quite seriously and imagined that perhaps he could become the
-saviour of Russia, but surely a very rich man. This last idea had been
-suggested to him by Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, who in conversations
-with him had imbued Mr. Sturmer with the conviction that it would be a
-proof of careless neglect on his part if he did not make the most of
-the many opportunities his important position as Prime Minister put
-in his way, and did not assure the prosperity of his old age, when he
-had at his disposal all possible sources of information out of which
-he might make a profit. Mr. Sturmer was no saint, and the weaknesses
-of the flesh had always appealed to him. There is nothing wonderful in
-the fact that he listened with attention, and even with satisfaction,
-to the confidences which were poured into his ear by his private
-secretary, of whose talents he had a most exalted opinion.
-
-When his Fides Achates was arrested and thrown into a more or less
-dark dungeon, Mr. Sturmer was so dismayed that he allowed himself to
-be drawn into the mistake of identifying himself with the prisoner and
-claiming his liberty as a right. It is related that when the object
-of his solicitude heard of the various steps undertaken by the Prime
-Minister on his behalf he gave vent to words of impatience at what he
-considered an imprudence likely to cost a good deal to the guilty ones.
-
-“Sturmer ought to have known that a man like myself does not allow
-himself to be arrested without having taken the precaution to be
-able to impose on those who had ventured to do so the necessity of
-liberating him,” he had exclaimed.
-
-The fact was that Manassevitsch-Maniuloff had put to profit the months
-when, in his capacity as private secretary to the Prime Minister, he
-had access to all the archives and secret papers of the Ministry of
-the Interior. He had taken copies of more than one important document,
-the divulging of which might have put the Russian Government in an
-embarrassing position. Some persons even said that his zeal had carried
-him so far as to make him appropriate to himself the originals of
-these documents, leaving only a worthless copy in their place. True
-or not, it is certain that the spirit of foresight that had always
-distinguished him had induced him to take certain precautions against
-any possible mishap capable of interfering with his career. He was
-able to regard his imprisonment philosophically. This was more than
-Mr. Sturmer could do. The latter had reason to fear that during the
-police search of the flat occupied by Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff some
-compromising letters had been discovered. This fear did not add to his
-happiness or to his equanimity. Besides, he was not strong enough to
-resist the attacks which, dating from that day, were poured upon his
-head. In spite of the assurances which Rasputin was continually giving
-him that he had nothing to fear, he did not share the confidence of the
-“Prophet.”
-
-He had good reasons for this fear. In the Duma, in the Petrograd
-drawing rooms, in the army and among the public, all had grown tired
-of Mr. Sturmer, and all spoke of nothing else but of the necessity
-of compelling him to resign his post. Among the different reproaches
-which were addressed to him was that of being an enemy of England
-and of trying to work against the Russo-English alliance. It was
-very well known that his relations with Sir George Buchanan, the
-British Ambassador, were not cordial. Sir George, in spite of all that
-the pro-Germans liked to say about him, was a popular personage in
-Russia, that is, among the sane portion of Russian society, which had
-hailed with joy the initiative that he had taken in the great work of
-reorganisation of the Russian administration.
-
-Thanks to the English officers who had arrived in Russia with the aim
-of bringing some kind of order out of the chaos that had prevailed not
-only in the War Office, but in every other branch of the Government,
-the military position of the Empire had considerably improved, and
-the great work of national defence had been at last put upon a sound
-basis. As a man occupying a very important position in Petrograd wrote
-to me during the course of last summer: “There are some people here
-who say that Russia is fast becoming an English colony, but I reply to
-them that she might certainly do worse, if by that word is meant the
-introduction of the English spirit of order and of English honesty in
-our country.”
-
-This was the opinion of a sincere Russian patriot. There is no doubt
-that it was shared by all the best elements of the nation, who had
-recognised that in the crisis through which their Fatherland was going
-only one idea ought to dominate everything, and that was the necessity
-of imposing upon Germany a peace that would at last give to the world
-the assurance that it would never be called upon again to undergo
-another such catastrophe as the one under which it was struggling.
-Mr. Sturmer, however, was of a quite different opinion. This was well
-known everywhere, especially in parliamentary circles. Mr. Miliukoff
-made himself the echo of the popular voice when he delivered his famous
-indictment of the Prime Minister. The latter retorted by issuing
-against the leader of the Opposition a writ for libel, and applied
-himself with renewed energy to the task of getting out of prison the
-man who had been the prime mover in the dark and sinister intrigue of
-which Rasputin was the principal figure. At last he succeeded, and
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff was released on bail. Among all the papers
-which had been confiscated at his home not one incriminating document
-had been found, and the only thing against him that could be proved
-was the blackmailing scheme against the Bank whose director had had
-him arrested. He threatened, in case he should be brought to trial, to
-make certain revelations absolutely damaging for more than one highly
-placed personage, and he contrived to inspire a great terror even among
-those most eager to have him condemned for his numerous extortions and
-other shameful deeds. As soon as he was at liberty he set Rasputin to
-working in his favour, and made the latter display an activity that at
-last exasperated the public against the “Prophet” to such an extent
-that the first thought of organising a conspiracy to remove him was
-started, and very soon became quite a familiar one with more than one
-person.
-
-To be quite exact, this thought had already existed for some time.
-About a year after the beginning of the war some enterprising
-individuals in Petrograd tried to get rid of the “Prophet” by
-entangling him in some disgraceful escapade which would have made it
-necessary for him to leave Petrograd. In accordance with this plan he
-was invited one night to supper at some fashionable music hall, of
-which there exist so many in the Russian capital. Bohemian singers were
-called in and an unlimited amount of champagne provided. Rasputin,
-who was rather fond of such adventures when he was not obliged to pay
-for their cost in rubles and copecs, accepted with alacrity. He soon
-became quite drunk. Then, at the invitation of one of the guests, he
-proceeded to show them the manner in which the Khlistys, the religious
-sect to which he belonged, danced around the lighted fire, which was an
-indispensable feature of their meetings. As he was dancing, or rather
-turning round and round a table that had been put in the middle of the
-room, he took off some of his clothes, just as his followers used to do
-when they were holding one of their assemblies in real earnest. Some
-of the assistants seized hold of the opportunity and hid the garments
-of which he had divested himself, then called in the police, requiring
-them to draw up a report of what had taken place. On the next day this
-report was taken to a high authority, in the hope that it would have a
-damaging effect on the reputation of Rasputin. The result, however, was
-quite different from that which had been expected, for the person who
-had brought the report to the authority in question instead of being
-believed was treated as a libeler and himself compelled to retire from
-public life. After this it was generally recognised that nothing in
-the world would be strong enough to bring about the downfall of the
-“Prophet.”
-
-In the meanwhile the efforts of the Opposition party in the Duma had
-succeeded to the extent of forcing Mr. Sturmer to resign as Prime
-Minister; but he had influence enough to secure his appointment as High
-Chancellor of the Imperial Court, one of the most important positions
-in Russia. He did not fall into disgrace, but remained the power
-behind the throne whose existence, though not officially recognised,
-yet was everywhere acknowledged. He had not been dismissed, he had
-simply gone away--a very different thing altogether in the realm of
-the Czar. Though no longer a Minister, he was still a personage to be
-considered as capable of an infinitude of good or of harm, according
-as it might please him to exert his influence. His successor, Mr.
-Trepoff, an upright and fairly able man, did not long retain the office
-he had accepted much against his will. With him departed one of the
-most popular Ministers Russia had known for a long time, Count Paul
-Ignatieff, the able son of an able father. He had for something like
-two years held the portfolio of Public Instruction to the general
-satisfaction of the public and had come to the conclusion that it was
-useless to go on fighting against dark powers which were getting the
-upper hand everywhere.
-
-The resignation of these two statesmen was preceded by one of the
-most scandalous incidents in Russian modern history, the trial of
-Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff. This had been put off from day to day
-for a considerable length of time until at last it became impossible
-to secure further delay. The culprit had taken good care, as I have
-already indicated, to put in safety documents of a most incriminating
-nature, implicating many persons whom the authorities could not afford
-to see mixed up in the dirty business connected with the numerous sins
-of Mr. Sturmer’s private secretary. When the latter was questioned by
-the examining magistrate in regard to that last transaction which had
-brought him into court, he declared that he had acted in accordance
-with the instructions which he had received from his chief and that it
-was not he himself, but the Prime Minister who had received the money
-which the bank that had lodged a complaint against him had been induced
-to pay in order to be spared certain annoyances with which it had been
-threatened. He had insisted upon this version of the affair and warned
-the magistrate that his counsel would develop it in all the details
-before the jury.
-
-In the meanwhile Rasputin was moving heaven and earth to get the trial
-postponed and to get the charges against the prisoner quashed by the
-Chamber of Cassation. He had long conferences with several ladies
-having free entrance into the Imperial Palace and he put forward,
-among other arguments, the one which had certain points in its favour:
-that it would be detrimental to the public interest to have the
-scandal of such a trial commented upon by the press of the whole of
-Europe at a time when Russia was struggling against a formidable foe,
-always ready to catch hold of anything that would discredit it or its
-institutions. For a time it seemed as if the efforts of the “Prophet”
-would be crowned with success. Then one fine day opposite currents
-became powerful and Mr. Maniuloff was sent before a jury in spite of
-his protestations and his threats of revenge upon those who had taken
-upon themselves the responsibility of subjecting him to that annoyance.
-
-On the fifteenth of December, the day appointed for the trial, the
-halls and corridors of the law courts of Petrograd were filled with an
-inquisitive crowd struggling to get access to the room where it was
-to take place. The spectators waited a long time, watching curiously
-the impassive face of the hero of the day, who had quietly entered the
-hall and taken his place in the criminal dock. About 12 o’clock the
-Judges, together with the public prosecutor, made their entrance, when
-to the general surprise the latter rose and said that, owing to the
-absence of several important witnesses for the prosecution, he moved
-an adjournment of the proceedings until an indefinite time. What had
-happened, what had brought about such an extraordinary change? This was
-the question which one could hear everywhere after the Court had risen
-and the assembly dispersed. Comments without number followed upon this
-decision, which no one would have thought possible a few hours before.
-
-In spite of the severe censorship over the press, the principal Liberal
-organs of the capital published short commentaries which revealed
-the feeling of intense indignation that prevailed in every class of
-society. The words “Shame, shame!” were heard on all sides. It is not
-at all wonderful that they found an echo among some determined spirits
-who resolved at last to free Russia from the scourge of Rasputin, whose
-hand was again seen in the whole disgraceful affair.
-
-This, however, was not at all an easy matter, considering the fact
-that the “Prophet” had become very careful and that his followers
-had him watched wherever he went for fear of an attack which they
-strongly suspected was being contemplated. The house where he lived,
-64 Gorokhovaja Street, was always surrounded by policemen and secret
-agents, who examined every person who entered or went out of it.
-Rasputin himself had also grown suspicious, even of persons with whom
-up to that time he had been upon friendly terms, and he avoided the
-numerous invitations that began once more to be showered upon him. He
-spoke again of returning to Siberia, which was always with him a sign
-that he did not feel himself at ease in the capital.
-
-I had an opportunity to observe this restlessness the second time
-that I met him at the house of that Mr. De Bock whom I have already
-mentioned, when he declared to us that he was sick of Petrograd and of
-the many intrigues which were going on there. But that was before the
-war, and it seems that after it began the ideas of Rasputin changed
-and that he was always saying that he considered it his duty to remain
-beside his friends at this hour of national peril. The fact that his
-feelings had changed on the last point proves that he was aware of the
-danger in which he stood, and of which it is likely that he had been
-warned by the numerous spies who were but too ready to keep him well
-informed of all that was to his interest to know.
-
-One thing seems certain, and that is the activity which he began to
-display during the last weeks and days of his evil life in favour of
-the conclusion of a peace, which he now said Russia ought to make if
-she wished to escape from further sin, as he termed it.
-
-Why his feelings had undergone such a change it is impossible to say,
-but one may make a pretty near guess. One of the principal motives
-which actuated him undoubtedly was the idea that existed among a
-certain circle of persons that if peace were made with Germany,
-the English and French officials working with Russian officials in
-perfecting the defence of the fatherland, and whose presence already
-had prevented so many malversations, would depart. This would leave
-once more a free field for the rapacity of all the civil and military
-functionaries of the War Office and Commissariat Departments, who could
-make a new harvest of rubles as a result of the unavoidable expenses
-which the liquidation of the war would necessarily entail.
-
-There were, however, some persons who, seeing the dangers in the path
-in which this nefarious individual was leading Russia, decided that,
-as nothing else could bring about his removal, it had to be effected
-by violent means. I do not seek to excuse them, far less to take
-their part. Murder remains murder, but if ever an assassination had
-an excuse, this was the slaying of Rasputin, which also implied the
-destruction of the crew of unscrupulous people of which he was the
-tool. There was something of self-sacrifice in the conspiracy to which
-he fell a victim, something of an intense love of the Fatherland in
-the spirit that armed the hand of the man whose pistol sent him into
-eternity. One may condemn the deed and yet excuse its motive. Though
-I am not trying to do so, yet I shall not be the one to cry out for
-vengeance against the over-excited young people who risked everything
-in the world to deliver their country from evil.
-
-Of the details of the murder we know very little, and even the
-travellers who have gone abroad since it was committed could only
-speak vaguely about the circumstances that attended it. It is certain,
-however, that there was a deeply laid and well organised plot to kill
-the “Prophet,” that about a dozen persons, some of them belonging to
-the best and to the highest social circles, were concerned in it, and
-that at last lots were drawn to select the man who was to execute the
-victim. Among those persons were members of the Conservative faction
-of the Duma, some officers of several guard regiments, and even ladies
-of the smartest set of Petrograd. That something was known concerning
-this plot in governmental circles can be seen from the fact that the
-Minister of the Interior, Mr. Protopopoff, who had always been one of
-the most ardent disciples of Rasputin and who had been working with
-him for the conclusion of a peace which both considered to be useful to
-their personal interests, hearing that he was going to have supper at
-the house of Prince Youssoupoff, sent there the Prefect of Petrograd,
-General Balk, with instructions to watch over the “Prophet.” When the
-Prefect appeared upon the scene, he was politely asked by the master of
-the house to withdraw, as his presence was not required.
-
-Young Prince Youssoupoff, who, by the way, is well known in London, was
-the husband of the Princess Irene of Russia, the first cousin of the
-Czar. By virtue of his position he could be whatever he liked, even
-to dismiss curtly the principal police official of the capital. At
-the supper which he gave on the night when Rasputin was killed about
-a dozen people belonging to the best circle of Petrograd society were
-present. What passed during the meal and how the murder itself was
-committed is not known even now, though several versions of the crime
-are given. Some say that it was done during the meal, and that the
-pretext for it was the conduct of Rasputin toward one of the ladies
-present at the table. Other people relate that they waited until the
-“Prophet” was on the point of departing, and that as he was putting on
-his overcoat the young man who had drawn the lot designating him for
-the deed shot him with his revolver at the foot of the stairs. The body
-was then wrapped up in a blanket and put into the automobile of a very
-high personage, which was waiting in the garden of the house where the
-event took place, and driven to the Neva, where it was dropped under
-the ice. It seems that after this had been accomplished one of the
-conspirators went to Tsarskoie Selo and informed the Czar of what had
-taken place, as well as of his own share in the deed.
-
-In the meanwhile the authorities had become suspicious. At 3 o’clock in
-the night screams had been heard by a policeman on duty at the corner
-of the street in which was situated the house of Prince Youssoupoff.
-He also noticed several persons coming out of the house, not by the
-usual entrance, but by the garden, which had a door leading into
-another street. After this, an automobile was seen driving out of that
-same garden, an altogether strange circumstance. This automobile was
-seen by another policeman about one hour later in the islands which
-surround Petrograd, driving close to the Neva and not on the usual
-road. The next day the garden of Prince Youssoupoff was searched by
-Secret Service agents, who found some traces of blood on the snow, but
-the servants of the Prince declared that it was that of a dog that had
-been shot the day before. No one dared say or do anything more against
-the supposed murderers, especially as the body of their victim had not
-yet been found. The river was dragged, but it was not until twenty-four
-hours after the event that the dead man was discovered under the ice in
-a frozen condition, with the features so completely battered that they
-could be recognised only with difficulty.
-
-The curious thing is that, though it was known exactly where the body
-had been dropped, it could not be found at once, having been carried
-away by the current further than had been expected. This gave rise
-to all kind of rumours, and the friends of Rasputin tried to spread
-the news that he had escaped and was hiding away somewhere from his
-persecutors. The tale, however, could not be kept up for any length
-of time, as the whole capital with an unheard-of rapidity became
-aware that the most detested man in the whole of Russia had at last
-met with the fate which he so richly deserved. The joy of the public
-could not be suppressed, notwithstanding the fear of the police. In
-all the theatres and public places the national anthem was sung with
-an immense enthusiasm. No one regretted what had happened, and the
-people suspected of having had a hand in the murder received messages
-of congratulation from every quarter. In fact, they became at once
-national heroes. The murder so far has remained unpunished, and it is
-more than likely that no one will be brought to account for it.
-
-As for the body of Rasputin, it was at first kept in the hospital where
-it had been taken after its recovery from under the ice. The police
-received orders not to allow it to be seen by the crowds, which it was
-feared would flock in numbers to have a last look at their “saint,” the
-“Blessed Gregory,” as he was called. But to the general surprise these
-crowds did not manifest any curiosity to view the mortal remains of the
-man about whom so much fuss had been made in his lifetime, but after
-whose death the whole Russian world seemed to breathe more freely than
-it had been able to do for the last ten years or so. Among the clergy
-satisfaction was openly expressed, and it was only a few hysterical
-women who were found to weep over the end of the career of one of the
-wickedest men who had ever lived.
-
-The question most discussed in connection with the death of this
-sinister adventurer was whether he was to be allowed a Christian
-burial. He had been, after all, but a sectarian, a heretic, the
-follower of a creed which was not only reproved by the orthodox church,
-but also prosecuted by the law of the land. The synod was called upon
-to pronounce itself on the subject when the advice of the Metropolitan
-Pitirim of Petrograd, one of the personal friends of Rasputin, at last
-prevailed, and he was buried with the rites of Holy Church. Some of
-the ladies who had been the first cause of his having obtained the
-importance which grew to be attached to his strange figure did not
-wait, however, for the permission of the ecclesiastical authorities,
-and a few hours after the body had been discovered Madame W., one of
-the most hysterical among the many women followers of Rasputin, caused
-solemn prayers to be celebrated in her apartments for the repose of
-his soul. She went to fetch his two daughters, girls of sixteen and
-fourteen years of age, who were living with him at Petrograd, taking
-them to her house and declaring that she would henceforward consider
-and treat them as her own children.
-
-But apart from this small group of blind admirers no one regretted him,
-not even the crew of parasites that had surrounded him and exploited
-him. By one of those strange anomalies, such as can only take place in
-Russia, Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, who had been the indirect cause of
-his death, was appointed, together with other secret police agents,
-to investigate the details connected with the murder of his former
-friend and patron. Of course, the inquest led to nothing. No one had
-any wish to see it end otherwise than in oblivion. Every political
-party in Russia was agreed in thinking that with the disappearance of
-this dangerous man the dynasty had won a battle just as important for
-the safety of its future existence as would have been a victory on the
-battlefield against a foreign foe. The names of the murderers, though
-pronounced nowhere, were blessed by all sincere Russian patriots, who
-cried out when they heard that Rasputin was no more, “Thank God that
-this adventurer is dead and long live the Czar!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-
-Rasputin, taken individually, did not deserve any notice. He was
-never in possession of the influence which was attributed to him,
-and his voice was never preponderant in the councils of the Czar. It
-served the interests of those whose tool he had become to spread the
-notion that he had acquired it, and that, thanks to the religious
-enthusiasm which he had contrived to arouse among a certain small
-circle of influential men and women, he had installed himself in the
-confidence of his Sovereign. Unfortunately for Russia, these people not
-only had accomplices in their evil deeds, but also had the means to
-spread their opinions among the public and the ability to make these
-opinions penetrate into all the different classes of the nation. They
-discredited the Imperial family; they discredited the Government of the
-day; they discredited the monarch, until it became at last a political,
-and I shall even say a national, necessity to suppress them, together
-with the adventurer whom they had put forward and thanks to whom they
-had been able to play unmolested for so many years the most nefarious
-of games.
-
-Unfortunately, the slaying of Rasputin did not destroy the persons
-who had used him. It did not put an end to the many abuses which had
-brought Russia to the sad state of chaos in which it found itself at
-the moment of its great trial. The man himself was but an ensign, and
-the loss of an ensign does not mean that the regiment that carried it
-about has shared its fate.
-
-Rasputin was the last representative of the old régime. His appearance
-on the horizon of Russian social life was but the last flicker of a
-detestable past. During his time of favour and of success the two
-forces that struggled for supremacy in the land of his birth fought
-their last battle, in which he was the stake. We must rejoice that it
-was not the force which he was supposed to incarnate in his enigmatical
-and mysterious person that remained master of the field. Whether he
-would have been killed under different circumstances is a question to
-which it would be very difficult to find a reply. Most probably the
-spirit of mysticism which lies at the bottom of the Slav character
-would have prevented even his worst enemies, let alone his simple
-adversaries, from trying to remove him from the position into which he
-had been thrust. They would most likely have shrugged their shoulder
-and waited for that intervention of St. Nicolas, who, according to
-Russian traditions, always arrives at the right moment, to put straight
-everything that has gone wrong.
-
-The peril in which Russia found herself placed gave energy even to
-those to whom that quality had hitherto been unknown, and it was felt
-everywhere that, together with the Fatherland, the Czar ought to be
-saved from a danger of which, perhaps, he did not himself realise the
-real importance. Rasputin, and especially Rasputin’s followers, had
-worked as hard as they could to make Russia’s Allies, and especially
-England, unpopular with the Russian nation. He paid with his life for
-the attempt, and one can only rejoice that such was the case. As things
-stand at present, it is principally toward Great Britain and America
-that Russia must look for its salvation. What I am writing to-day
-has been my earnest and deep conviction for long years, and I have
-preached it not only since the beginning of this war in all the books
-and articles which I have written, but also long before any one ever
-thought or suspected that the day would come when the English Union
-Jack and the Stars and Stripes would float beside the Russian flag and
-the French Tricolor on the same battlefields, united against one common
-enemy. I have always considered that in human life, as well as in the
-existence of nations, it is essential to recognise the superiority
-of others where this superiority exists, and that true civilisation
-consists in assimilating to oneself with gratitude the virtues of
-other nations, whose example one ought to follow instead of trying to
-ridicule. Russia, with all its vast resources and with its immense
-territory, would do well to imitate England and the United States in
-their immense work of culture and to call the latter countries to her
-help in developing her own national existence on proper and useful
-bases. In doing so she would not abase herself; she would only prove
-that she was great enough to admire the greatness of others.
-
-It is certain that if Anglo-Saxon influence had been so dominant in
-Russia in the past as it is to be hoped it will remain in the future,
-we should not have seen occur in Petrograd incidents like those
-connected with the career of Rasputin. We should not have witnessed all
-these perpetual changes of Ministers, over which Germany has rejoiced
-with such evident relish. We should not have heard people defy the
-authority of the Czar, as unfortunately has been the case.
-
-We former monarchists, who have been brought up in the old traditions
-of loyalty to bygone days, have often been accused by this crew of
-adventurers of harbouring revolutionary ideas. They have reproached us
-with the spirit of criticism that has sometimes induced and prompted
-us to speak out what we thought and to lay blame where blame was due;
-to criticise where criticism was almost a national necessity. Time
-shall prove whether we have been mistaken. It seems to me, however,
-that as English ideals and English respect for individual liberty and
-individual opinions become more and more familiar to Russians and
-penetrate into the Russian mind, the public, will acknowledge that we
-have not been so very wrong when we have raised our voices against
-the importance which individuals such as Rasputin have been allowed
-to take in our society and in our governmental circles, and against
-this corrupt system of administration, which, thanks to its crawling,
-flattering propensities, caused our people to kneel at his feet with
-the idea that by doing so they were pleasing the higher authorities,
-who most of the time knew nothing about the developments for which this
-intrigue was responsible. Russia has still something oriental about
-her, and in some respects she resembles the Greek empire which fell
-under the blows dealt at it by the power of Islam. It needs new life
-and new blood in its veins. It requires the support of this strong,
-earnest British civilisation, which is, perhaps, the most beautiful the
-world has ever known.
-
-I have always been accused of being too pro-English in my ideas and
-opinions. If being pro-English means the wish to see my country
-freed from the abuses, the existence of which has prevented her from
-developing herself on the road of a progress embodied in the respect of
-the individual, together with the institutions that rule him, such as
-Great Britain has known for so many centuries, then I will willingly
-confess it, I am pro-English. I feel sure that all good Russians share
-my feelings. We have had enough of the German Kultur and of German
-intrigues. They it is that have brought my beloved Fatherland to the
-brink of ruin. The whole sad incident of Rasputin’s rise and fall
-has been the result of German interference, and it would never have
-assumed the proportions to which it rose if the German press had not
-exaggerated it and German spies spoken about it, not only abroad, but
-also in Russia itself.
-
-When thinking about this story, which savours in some of its details
-of superstitions of the Middle Ages, one must always remember what
-I said at the beginning of this sketch of the career of a man whom
-circumstances and the hatred of our enemies transformed into a kind
-of monster devouring all that it touched. This fact is that Russia
-is still the land of many surprises, because of its tendency toward
-mysticism, always so strong in all the Slav races. Before Rasputin
-appeared there had been other sectarians who had drawn thousands of
-men and women around them and who had inspired crowds with feelings
-of fanaticism in no wise different from the ones which the modern
-“Prophet,” as some called him, the modern Cagliostro, as others had
-nicknamed him, had evoked in the breasts of the simple-minded people
-whose confidence he had abused and whose spirit of superstition he had
-impressed. But these had remained strictly in the field of religion and
-had not meddled with any other questions. They had grouped around them
-only persons convinced of the truth of their teachings, while Rasputin
-had gathered about him men determined to use him for the benefit
-of their money-seeking, money-grubbing schemes; men who saw in the
-misfortunes that had fallen upon their Fatherland only the possibility
-to enrich themselves at her expense. They would not have sacrificed the
-smallest things for her welfare; far less would they have given up the
-chance to add to the ill-gotten gains they were daily accumulating.
-Without those persons the whole story of Rasputin would have ended in
-ridicule. Thanks to them and to their rapacity, it finished in blood.
-
-It was, after all, the aristocracy that finally got rid of Rasputin,
-perhaps to the great relief of many persons who out of weakness, or
-let us say kindness, had hesitated before taking the strong measure
-of sending him away where it would have been difficult for him to do
-any more mischief. And it is doubtful whether his removal anywhere
-than to a place whence there existed no possibility for him to return
-would have stopped the evil which the very mention of his name alone
-was sufficient to cause. Credulous persons exist everywhere and will
-always exist; timorous ones also abound in the world. Even if Rasputin
-had been exiled it would have been relatively easy for those who
-reaped such a rich harvest out of the blood and the tears of the whole
-Russian nation to attribute to him powers which he did not possess,
-to threaten with his vengeance the persons who might refuse to lend
-themselves to their dirty schemes. He would have been a perpetual
-menace suspended over the heads of those who would have tried to rebel
-against the directions issued by the enterprising scoundrels who abused
-the prestige which his so-called holiness had won for a man who in
-other times and in another country would not have arrested for a single
-moment the attention of any one, let alone the crowds.
-
-Rasputin is dead! Let us hope that his former supporters have lost,
-together with him, their audacity and their power of doing mischief.
-But to say that he was ever a paramount strength in Russian politics is
-an error which I have tried to correct as far as lay within my power.
-Rasputin’s story is simpler than many persons think, and perhaps the
-best explanation that can be given of it is to be found in the Book of
-Esther in the Bible, a careful perusal of which is recommended to those
-who are interested in the character of Rasputin.
-
-
-
-
-PART II
-
-THE GREAT REVOLUTION
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-
-On the 15th day of May, 1896, Moscow was celebrating the Coronation
-of the Czar Nicholas II. of Russia. In the large courtyard inside the
-Kremlin, an immense crowd was gathered, awaiting the moment when the
-Sovereign together with his Consort would come out of the Cathedral of
-the Assumption, to make the customary round of the different shrines
-and churches, which according to the ancient custom, they had to visit
-after they had assumed the old Crown of the Russian Autocrats. Among
-this crowd, there were persons who remembered having witnessed the same
-kind of ceremony thirteen years before, when Alexander III. had been
-standing in his son’s place. What a splendid apparition it had been
-that of this Czar, gigantic in stature, whose quiet and strong features
-seemed in their placidity to be a true personification of the might of
-that Empire at the head of which he stood. One had hoped at that time,
-that he would preside over the destinies of his Realm for long years to
-come, and no one had given a thought to the possibility that he would
-so soon be lying in his coffin. Now it was with mixed feelings of pity,
-combined with a sympathy which already was no longer so strong as it
-had been when he had ascended the throne, that all were awaiting the
-new Monarch, who had become in his turn the chief of the old House of
-Romanoff, so that when the golden gates of the Assumption were thrown
-open to give passage to the procession which was escorting Nicholas
-II. all the heads of the numerous people gathered in honour of the
-occasion, under the shade of the ancient belfrey of Ivan Weliky, turned
-with an anxious curiosity towards the Sovereign about to show himself
-for the first time before his people, in the full pomp of his Imperial
-dignity.
-
-What did one see? A young man thin and slim, who seemed to be entirely
-crushed under the weight of the massive crown which was reposing on his
-head, and of the heavy robe of cloth of gold, lined with ermine, which
-was thrown upon his shoulders. He was tottering as he walked along,
-and his pale, tired face, together with his uncertain steps, bore no
-resemblance whatever to the firm and superb countenance of his father
-thirteen years before. As he reached the door of the Church of the
-Holy Archangels, one noticed that he suddenly stopped, as if unable to
-proceed any further, completely worn out by the fatigue of the long
-ceremony that had come to an end a few moments before, and the hand
-which was holding the sceptre, enriched with precious stones, which
-the Metropolitan of Moscow had just handed to him, dropped down at his
-side, whilst the symbol of might and of power which it was holding,
-escaped from its grasp. Chamberlains and lords in waiting hastened to
-pick it up, and the crowd never noticed what had occurred, but those
-who had witnessed the incident, were deeply impressed by it, and
-different rumours began to circulate in regard to it, rumours which
-would have it that it was a bad omen, whilst persons well up in the
-study of history, and especially in that of foreign countries tried to
-find an analogy between it, and the remark made by Louis XVI. on the
-day of his Coronation at Rheims, when he had complained that his crown
-was hurting him, and felt too heavy for his head.
-
-A few days later there happened another event, which reminded one of
-a similar coincidence between the life of the unfortunate King whose
-head was to fall on the scaffold of the Champs Elysées, and that of
-Nicholas II. It occurred during the popular feast which is always
-given in Moscow after the Coronation of a Czar. A crowd amounting to
-several thousands of men and women, some say three hundred thousand,
-had gathered together on a field known by the name of Khodinka Plain,
-in the immediate neighbourhood of the town, to be present at it, when
-suddenly a panic which was never accounted for nor explained, seized
-this multitude, and about twenty thousand human creatures were crushed
-to death in the short space of a few minutes. The emotion produced by
-this disaster among all the different classes of society was very deep
-and terrible. The only person who accepted it with calm and even with
-indifference, if the reader will forgive me for this expression, was
-the Czar himself, who, however, and this is a justice which I must
-render to him, only heard much later the whole extent of the disaster,
-but who at the same time, did not try to learn anything definite about
-it, on the day when it took place, and who, under the direct influence
-of his Consort, gave directions to reply to the French Ambassador, the
-Comte de Montebello, who had enquired whether he ought to postpone the
-ball he was giving that same night, that “he did not see any necessity
-for doing so.”
-
-This answer became known at once, and it traced between the Monarch and
-his subjects one of these white lines which in a tennis ground marks
-the antagonistic camps, and out of two players makes two enemies ...
-and this line went on getting wider and wider as time went on. It still
-existed when Nicholas II. abdicated, but it had then become an abyss.
-
-In general there is nothing sadder in the world than a misunderstanding
-between two people both possessed of good intentions towards each
-other. It is something worse than a discussion, worse than a quarrel,
-and even worse than hatred, because it is the only thing which sound
-reasoning cannot conquer, and which is bound to go on aggravating
-itself from day to day. How much worse therefore is a thing of the kind
-when it has established itself between a nation and those who rule it.
-The great, the supreme misfortune of Nicholas II. consisted in the
-fact that he never could understand his people or their wants, whilst
-Russia on the other hand was, through circumstances independent of its
-will, brought to distrust the real feelings harboured by the Czar in
-regard to its welfare, and to indulge in comparisons which certainly
-were not to his advantage, between him and the Sovereign to whom he had
-succeeded, who had possessed the full confidence of his subjects.
-
-This fatality which has dogged all the footsteps of the Emperor who
-abdicated a year ago, from the very first moment that he had ascended
-his Throne, can be partly attributed to the defective education
-which he had received, together with the deplorable weakness of his
-character; and partly to the state of absolute subjection in which
-he had been kept first by his father, during the whole time of the
-latter’s life, and later on by his wife, together with the complete
-ignorance in which he remained in regard to the wants, the aspirations,
-needs and character of his people. He was a despot by temperament,
-perhaps because he had never seen anything else but despotism around
-him, and perhaps because he had got a mistaken idea in regard to the
-duties which devolved upon him. He had always been told that he ought
-to uphold intact the principle of autocracy, thanks to which his
-predecessors had maintained themselves upon the throne. He had seen
-Alexander III. adopt him with these principles with success, and he
-had forgotten, or rather he had never known, that in order to be a
-successful autocrat, one must neither prove oneself a tyrant, nor an
-oppressor of people’s consciences and opinions. His first steps as a
-Sovereign had hurt all the feelings of loyalty of his subjects. Among
-the many addresses of congratulation that had been presented to him on
-the occasion of his marriage and of his accession to the Throne, there
-had been one from the Zemstvo or local assembly of the government of
-Tver, a town which was known to be very liberal in its opinions, in
-which was expressed the hope that the Monarch would try to govern his
-people with the help and with the co-operation of these same Zemstvos
-or local assemblies, the aim of which was the improvement of the local
-conditions of existence of the population of the different governments
-or provinces of the Russian Empire. There was absolutely nothing that
-was revolutionary in this address. Unfortunately there happened to
-be in the vicinity of the young Empress a person whose influence had
-always been perniciously exercised, whenever it had manifested itself:
-the Princess Galitzyne, her Mistress of the Robes. Out of a feeling of
-personal dislike, or rather hatred, against one of the signatories of
-this document, which, on account of the consequences that followed upon
-its composition, became historical, Princess Galitzyne explained to the
-Sovereign at the head of whose household she stood, that this appeal
-in favour of a liberal system of government ought to be discouraged,
-if not crushed, at once. Alexandra Feodorovna was then beginning to
-acquire the absolute power over her consort’s mind, which she was never
-to lose in the future, and she spoke to him of the matter suggested by
-the Princess, on the very day that different deputations, coming from
-all parts of Russia to express their good wishes to the young Imperial
-couple, were about to be received by them in the Winter Palace.
-
-Nicholas II. has never in his whole life had an opinion of his own,
-but he has shown himself enthusiastic for all those that have been
-suggested to him. He promised his wife “to say something,” which would
-put into their proper place the people daring enough to dream of
-anything likely to diminish his own power or prerogatives. He forgot,
-however, one thing, perhaps the most important one, and that was
-that these persons he was about to see, were not at all those who had
-signed the unlucky address, of which it would have been far better for
-everybody to forget the text as soon as possible. The result of this
-first intervention of the Empress in affairs of State which did not
-concern her is but too well known. The Czar instead of thanking the
-people who had come to lay at his feet the expression of their loyalty,
-declared to them that they ought never to “indulge in any senseless
-‘dreams.’” The words were repeated everywhere, and ran from mouth to
-mouth in the whole of Russia. They inflicted on the young popularity of
-Nicholas II. a blow from the effects of which it never recovered.
-
-This was the prologue of the tragedy which came to an end, if it has
-done so, with the signature of the Manifesto of Pskov. After this rise
-of the curtain was to begin a drama, all the different acts of which
-appear to us shrouded in bloody clouds.
-
-One questions at present whether this drama could have had a different
-end from the one which we are witnessing, or whether the historical
-evolution that has been accomplished in the course of the last few
-months in Russia could have been avoided, or at least otherwise
-directed. Personally I believe it to have been unavoidable, but it
-could have unfurled itself with dignity, if the Crown had consented
-to concessions which would have taken nothing away from its greatness
-or importance, but which would on the contrary have lent to it a new
-lustre. In any case it would have been possible for autocracy to
-die, or better still, to live otherwise. No matter what reproaches
-could have been addressed to the Romanoffs in the past, no matter the
-injustices and the cruelties they had committed in the course of their
-family history, there is one thing which cannot be taken away from
-them, and that is that they have all of them been strong and courageous
-men, incapable of trembling before the attacks of any enemies, however
-powerful, or before the fury of a revolted mob. Nicholas II. was the
-first one among them who proved himself unable to inspire either love
-or hatred in his subjects, and for whom they held nothing but contempt,
-because they very quickly grasped the fact that he would never be able
-to give to himself or to others an account of the position he stood in,
-or to realise the tragedy of his own fate.
-
-People who knew him well have wondered whether he ever understood what
-his duty really meant. I think, however, from the personal knowledge
-which I have of his character, that in a certain way he wished to do
-what was right, but I doubt whether he knew the responsibilities of
-his position, and the fact that he ought to put the interests of the
-State before those of his own family. For him his wife and children
-held the first place, and were the first objects of his consideration.
-This would have been a virtue in a private person, but it could easily
-assume the proportions of a crime in a sovereign.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, International Film Service, Inc._ (_Courtesy
- Seattle Times._)
-
-THE FIRST BOLSHEVIKI CABINET]
-
-His father had left to him a splendid inheritance, which he might
-have kept intact with a little care, and very small trouble. Before
-the Japanese war it might have been still possible for him to rule
-his country autocratically, though not despotically; but after
-Moukhden and Tschousima, and especially after the revolution which
-followed upon these two catastrophes, and which would have been hardly
-possible, had they not occurred, the thing became more difficult,
-if not impossible, because the Russian nation had begun to wonder
-at the causes that had brought about these terrible disasters, the
-consequences of which had been the loss of Russian prestige in the Far
-East, and even in Europe. It would, however, still have been possible
-to save something out of the former form of government, if a serious
-and honest appeal had been made to the nation to help to consolidate
-its strength, and if an attempt had been made to modify it according
-to the exigencies of the times and of the moment. But after the famous
-day which saw rivers of blood flow in the streets of St. Petersburg,
-and the wholesale slaying of thousands of innocent workmen, whose only
-crime had consisted in wishing to lay their grievances before their
-Czar, every attempt to keep up the old order of things was bound to
-fail. Something else had to be tried to save the dynasty together with
-the country, but not the granting of a so-called Constitution, which
-it had been determined beforehand to leave a dead letter. If on the
-occasion I have just referred to, Nicholas II. had found sufficient
-courage to meet his people face to face, and to speak with them as
-his great grandfather had done on an occasion far more critical even
-than the ones which prevailed in 1905, it is likely that the divorce
-which finally separated him from his subjects would never have taken
-place. But he went to Tsarskoie Selo as soon as he heard there was
-likely to be trouble in his capital, forgetting everything else but
-his own personal safety, which, by the way, had never been seriously
-threatened. He proved himself to be a coward, and cowardice is the
-last thing which a nation forgives in those who rule it. The Czar lost
-in consequence of his conduct every prestige he had left. And he also
-lost the respect of Russia, owing to the shameless corruption which
-established itself everywhere during his reign, when at last everything
-under the sun could be bought or sold in the country, to begin with, a
-Court appointment, and to end with, the highest functions in the State.
-The Emperor was unable to refuse anything to those whom he liked, and
-he never grasped this essential fact, that when one gives too easily
-and without discernment, it inevitably follows that one also allows
-people to take what perhaps one would never have granted, had one
-thought about it.
-
-Alexander III. had been just as generous as his son showed himself
-to be later on. But his generosity was only exercised in regard to
-what belonged to him personally, whilst no one was more careful than
-this sovereign of the public exchequer. He had seen what corruption
-meant during his own father’s reign, when abuses had also prevailed,
-which though in no way comparable to those that established themselves
-towards the close of the one which has come to an end a year ago,
-were still sufficiently grave and serious to cause anxiety to a
-Monarch eager and anxious for the welfare of his State. He therefore
-had applied himself to put an end to them, and knowing as he did,
-admirably well the character of the Russian nation, he took up morally
-the famous stick of Peter the Great, with which he dealt at times
-most severe blows to those whom he believed to be in need of them.
-The result of this system made itself felt within a very short time,
-and when Alexander III. died, the old custom of taking bribes, which
-had been formerly so prevalent in Russia, had nearly died out, or at
-least existed upon such a small scale that it could no longer do any
-harm. But under Nicholas II. the old evil was revived, and finding no
-obstacle in its path, it soon assumed most unheard of proportions,
-and became at last a regular institution. Soon everything in the vast
-Empire of the Czars was put up at public auction, everything could be
-purchased or sold, and everything became buyable, provided a sufficient
-price was offered for it. The Emperor knew nothing, and saw nothing,
-and no one dared to tell him anything, whilst many unscrupulous persons
-found it to their advantage to profit by the changes that had taken
-place to enrich themselves quickly and with very little trouble. The
-whole country was seized with a perfect fever of speculation, and with
-the frantic desire to win millions as rapidly as possible. When I say
-the whole country, this is not quite exact, because it was not the
-country, but only some people in it, who, thanks to the position which
-they occupied, or to their relations in influential circles, found
-themselves able to take a part in this general plundering. The Japanese
-war which was to have such a sad end, was entirely brought about
-through certain concessions being granted by the Russian government on
-the River Yalou which never belonged to the Russian State, to a number
-of persons who hoped to transform them into shareholders’ companies,
-and to make money out of them. They had bribed officials who persuaded
-the Emperor to sign the decree which was presented to him, of which
-he failed to see the importance or the meaning, or the strange light
-in which it put him, to distribute thus what he did not possess, and
-what had still to be taken away from the Japanese government before
-it could be disposed of. This war, one cannot sufficiently repeat it,
-was brought about willingly and knowingly, by people who saw in it an
-opportunity to enrich themselves at the expense of their fatherland,
-thanks to the ammunitions and provisions they would be able to deliver
-for the use of the army in the field, and which that army never got at
-all. The system of an organised plundering which in the present war has
-had such mournful and such tragical consequences, was then inaugurated
-with a success that went far beyond the most sanguine expectations of
-those who indulged in it. Huge fortunes were made in the space of a few
-months whilst our troops were in want of everything, and enduring cold,
-hunger and thirst. The Czar remained in utter ignorance of all that was
-being done in his name. He never suspected anything. But his people
-never forgave him for this indifference to its fate. One sees it to-day.
-
-One wonders what was in the mind of this Sovereign, who having ascended
-the throne amidst so many sympathies, had contrived to lose them within
-the space of a few months! Did he ever realise the importance of the
-ocean of unpopularity which was submerging him slowly, and the waves
-of which were rising higher and higher, with each day that passed? One
-would like to know it now, when one tries to go back to the sources of
-the tragedy to which he has fallen a victim. Or was his character so
-shallow and so careless, that he only looked at the outside of things,
-and could not appreciate their real depth? He was of a very reticent
-nature and disposition, and rarely confided in any one, not even in
-his wife, whose inspiration and advice he was nevertheless to follow
-so blindly. And the tastes for solitude which he was to develop so
-strongly later on soon brought him to lead a kind of existence that can
-be compared only to that of the Mikado of Japan, before the reforms
-that were to change everything in that country.
-
-That he was surrounded by flatterers goes without saying, but he could
-nevertheless have manifested some desire to learn the truth, and not
-have been so continually busy with the exclusive wish to maintain his
-own authority, which in spite of his efforts to the contrary, no one
-in the whole of Russia either respected or feared. All the concessions
-which politically were squeezed out of him, came too late, or else
-were accepted by him at the wrong time. Even when he seemed in the
-eyes of the public to be following the advice which was given to him
-by disinterested and honest persons, he tried in an underhand way to
-counteract the efficacy of the measures he had himself ordered to be
-taken, and whenever he resigned himself to the inevitable, he did not
-understand the reason why he was so doing.
-
-With it all he was in some respects an intelligent man. He cared for
-good reading, for arts, for music, for all the things which help to
-make out of life a pleasant thing for irresponsible individuals. He was
-fond of study, very painstaking, but ignorant, and doing all that was
-required of him, in an almost automatic manner; kind, it is true, but
-incapable of coming to any serious resolution or determination of his
-own accord; devoid of political sense, occasionally most obstinate,
-and, unfortunately for him as well as for his country and dynasty, he
-had the misfortune in all the circumstances when a sacrifice of some
-fraction of his Imperial prerogatives came into question, not to be
-able to understand either his people or the times he was living in, and
-to have no thought for anything else but the safety of his own family,
-forgetting utterly that his country and its welfare ought to have come
-before them.
-
-When he resigned himself to grant that shadow of a constitution, the
-advent of which was hailed with such enthusiasm by the whole of Russia,
-he might still, had he liked, have regained some part at least, of
-his lost popularity. His personal prestige, or rather that of the
-position he stood in, was still so great among the nation, that it
-would have felt gratitude toward him, for every favour he would have
-chosen to confer upon it, if only he had not taken back all that he
-had given, almost immediately after he had awarded it. It is quite
-certain that the first Duma committed many errors, but it should have
-been remembered that no human achievement can reach perfection at
-once; and the excitement and effervescence that had followed upon the
-opening of the first Russian Parliament ought to have been allowed to
-cool down, and been given sufficient time to make an honest trial of
-its rights and privileges. At the period I am referring to, and this
-notwithstanding all that was said to the contrary, a revolution like
-the one which took place the other day, would have been an impossible
-thing, because the Sovereign could still rely upon the army, and it
-would have been better for him had he always leant upon it rather than
-upon the low crowd of state functionaries with which he was exclusively
-surrounded and out of which his wife had picked her favourites. He
-might have checked the then rising tide of radicalism with which he
-found himself unable to cope later on, and in the strength of which he
-was to remain to the end mistaken, because he dreaded it when it was
-not dangerous, and imagined that he had subdued it, at the very moment
-when it had become, thanks to his own errors, and to his own faults,
-sufficiently strong to carry him away on its waves.
-
-Such a thorough weakness of character was bound to bring about the most
-serious consequences, and these did not fail to produce themselves. If
-Nicholas II. had had beside him a wife able to lead him, to advise him,
-to open his eyes which perhaps he did not quite close, but which he
-was never to succeed in keeping sufficiently open, and to show him not
-only the perils which surrounded him (these she never forgot to point
-out to him in an exaggerated manner), but also to bring to his notice
-his duties towards his subjects, he might have become a Sovereign like
-any other, neither better nor worse, insignificant perhaps, but never
-really dangerous for his country or for his dynasty. Even if that wife
-he was so devoted to had wished not to identify herself with State
-affairs, had kept outside them, and not surrounded herself with people
-lost to every sense of shame, he might have come out of the numerous
-difficulties with which he found himself confronted, if not exactly
-to his honour and credit, at least without losing too much of his
-prestige. But Alexandra Feodorovna was the fatal and dissolving element
-which destroyed, thanks to her attitude and conduct, every scrap of
-respect for the Sovereign, and who inspired in the whole of the nation
-the desire to get rid of an authority in which it believed no longer,
-and in which it saw only an obstacle in the way of its development and
-of its historical evolution. The Empress understood even less than her
-husband the state of mind of his subjects; she raised between him and
-them a barrier which nothing could destroy, because it was made out of
-the contempt which they both inspired in the whole of Russia.
-
-There is one curious thing contrasting with the facility with which
-Nicholas II. accepted the opinions of others, and with his total
-absence of personal initiative; and that is the persistence with which
-he maintained himself during the whole time that his reign lasted, in
-one line of conduct which never varied in regard to the determination
-to govern his country in a despotic sense, and which was the more
-singular that he never knew the meaning of real authority. He always
-kept listening to those who represented to him that the first duty of
-a Russian Emperor consisted in keeping up the prestige of the police
-before the mass of the citizens. Under no reign in Russia, if we
-except the dark period of the Opritschnikys under Ivan the Terrible,
-did the police play such an important part in public life, or become
-guilty of more abuses and of more malversations of every kind. I
-will not mention here the horrors which took place during and after
-the revolution of 1905, when no one felt secure against an anonymous
-denunciation, the consequences of which might be that one saw oneself
-exiled in Siberia, simply because one had not sufficiently bribed
-the police officer in charge of the district where one lived; but
-later on, even after things had calmed down, the might of what was
-called the Okhrana, remained just as formidable as it had been before.
-Literally no one could feel safe under this so-called liberal Czar,
-whilst under the reign of his father everybody possessed of a good and
-clear conscience could rest peacefully in the certitude that neither
-the security of his domicile or his personal safety would ever be
-threatened or infringed upon by the caprice of this secret power called
-by the vague name of “administration.”
-
-But after all was he really liberal, this Czar who had so little
-known or understood how to endear himself to his subjects, or did he
-merely say that such was the case, in order to dissimulate despotic
-leanings which were the more dangerous that they exercised themselves
-without any judgment or without any justification for their explosion?
-A considerable number of persons have wondered about it, and have
-found themselves unable to solve this riddle. To hear him speak,
-one would have thought that such was the case, whilst it was hardly
-possible to talk with him for any length of time, without finding him
-a sympathetic, kind personality, curious mixture of totally different
-elements in a character that was chiefly remarkable for its weakness.
-One could like him, one could even admire some of the qualities which
-he undoubtedly possessed, but it was utterly impossible to respect
-in him the Monarch, or to esteem the man, so strange did his conduct
-sometimes appear, a conduct which finally dragged him into an abyss,
-together with his family and with his dynasty. Physically, he had a sad
-and kind face, affectionate and clear blue eyes, a charming voice, much
-affability in his manners; a wonderfully bright smile, reminding one of
-his mother’s, a most cordial manner of shaking hands that went straight
-to the heart and made one suspect a lot of things which in reality did
-not exist; a rapid and quick walk, a certain hesitation in his speech,
-and in the expression of his face at times; such was the man. Morally,
-he was possessed of honesty of purpose to such an extent that he could
-realise its absence in others; he had no will of any kind, but a good
-deal of obstinacy; principles which were always forgotten when they
-interposed themselves between his personal welfare and his duty; no
-sense of responsibility, but a very exalted opinion of his own rights,
-and especially of his might; the conviction that autocracy ought to be
-maintained at any cost, and simultaneously the sincere desire, during
-a short while, to govern according to the change of system to which
-he had been compelled to submit, more by the force of things and of
-events, than through his personal opinions; absolutely no consciousness
-of the great events with which he found himself mixed up, or of the
-wants of the country over which he ruled; no conception of the aims
-he ought to have had in view; no real sympathy for his people, but a
-vague wish to help them; an unacknowledged dread of finding himself
-thrown into any intimate contact with the mob, combined with the hope
-that this feeling would not be noticed by the public at large; far too
-much confidence in incapable advisers; an exaggerated mistrust of the
-persons courageous enough to tell him the truth, an absolute incapacity
-to resist bad influences; sometimes considerable dignity, and often
-useless haughtiness; a good deal of superstition combined with
-religion; a deep conviction that his own person was something so sacred
-that though it might come to be attacked and criticised, yet nobody
-would be daring enough to lay a sacrilegious hand upon it; a complete
-incapability of making any distinction between his friends and his
-foes, and such a persuasive manner that no one could ever contradict
-or resist him, so that the Revolution in which he lost his Crown must
-have surprised him to the extent of paralysing all his faculties of
-realising its importance and its extent; such was the Sovereign.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-
-By the side of this Monarch in whom his subjects at last lost every
-vestige of confidence, there stood a sinister figure, the bad genius
-of a reign that would most probably have been far more peaceful if
-it had not been there: the figure of his wife, the Empress Alexandra
-Feodorovna, “the German,” as she had been called even long before the
-present war broke out. It was undoubtedly to her that were due, at
-least to a considerable extent, the various misfortunes which have
-assailed the unfortunate Nicholas II., and it was also she, who, in the
-brief space of a few short years, discredited him together with the
-throne to which he had raised her. It was she who destroyed all the
-prestige which the Monarchy had retained in Russia, until the day when
-she tarnished it. She was another Marie Antoinette, without any of the
-qualities, or the courage that had distinguished the latter, who had
-become the object of the hatred and furious dislike of her subjects,
-more on account of the vices which were attributed to her, than of
-those which she really possessed. In regard to the Consort of the Czar
-Nicholas II., it was just the contrary that occurred, because the
-general public never became aware of all the strange details concerning
-the private life of this Princess, who compromised by her conduct the
-inheritance of her son, together with the Crown which she herself
-wore. On her arrival in Russia she had been met with expressions of
-great sympathy, and it would have been relatively easy for her to
-make herself liked everywhere and by everybody, because the peculiar
-circumstances which had accompanied her marriage had won for her a
-sincere popularity all over Russia. At the time she arrived there as
-the bride of the future Sovereign there existed in the country a strong
-current of anglomania, which disappeared later on, to revive again
-during the last year or two. The Princess who came to Livadia from
-Darmstadt was the granddaughter of Queen Victoria of Great Britain, by
-whom she had been partly brought up, a fact which spoke in her favour
-because it was supposed that her education would have developed in her
-liberal opinions, love for freedom, and the desire to make herself
-liked as well as respected by her future subjects, who received her
-with the more enthusiasm that they all hoped she would influence in the
-right direction her husband, whose weakness of character was already
-at that time known by those who had had the opportunity of becoming
-acquainted with him. One felt therefore inclined to forgive her any
-small mistake she might be led into committing during those first days
-which followed upon her arrival in her new Fatherland. One pitied
-this young bride, whose marriage was to follow so soon the funeral of
-the monarch whose untimely death was lamented so deeply by the whole
-of Russia, and one felt quite disposed, at least among the upper
-classes of St. Petersburg society, as well as in court circles, to
-show oneself indulgent in regard to the almost inevitable errors into
-which she might fall, at the beginning of her career as an Empress.
-This feeling was so strong that during the first months which followed
-upon her marriage, the popularity of her mother-in-law, who had been
-so sincerely loved before, suffered as a consequence of this general
-wish to make an idol of Alexandra Feodorovna. The eyes of everybody
-were turned towards the new star that had arisen on the horizon of the
-Russian capital.
-
-Amidst this general concert of praise which arose on all sides in
-honour of the newly wedded Empress, there were a few persons who,
-having had the opportunity to listen to some discordant notes, kept
-aloof and waited for what the future would bring. At the time of the
-death of Alexander III., a man belonging to the prominent circles of
-Russian society, who had been for a long period of years upon terms of
-personal friendship with the German Royal Family, happened to be in
-Berlin, and during a visit which he paid to the Empress Frederick, the
-aunt of the future wife of the new Czar, he told her how many hopes
-were set in Russia upon her young niece. He was very much surprised to
-hear the Empress express herself with a certain scepticism in regard
-to the bride, and finally say that she felt afraid the Princess Alix,
-as she was still called at the time, would not understand how to make
-herself beloved by her subjects, or how to win their hearts. Seeing the
-astonishment provoked by her remark, she added that the character of
-the girl about to wear the crown of the Romanoffs, was an exceptionally
-haughty and proud one, and that as in addition to this defect she was
-possessed of an unusual amount of vanity, she would most probably have
-her head turned by the grandeur of her position, and would put forward,
-in place of the intelligence which she did not possess, an exaggerated
-feeling of her own importance. The gentleman to whom I have referred
-returned therefore to Russia with fewer illusions concerning Alexandra
-Feodorovna than the generality of his compatriots indulged in.
-
-I must give the latter their due, they did not keep these illusions
-for any length of time, because from the very beginning of her
-married life the new Czarina contrived to wound the feelings and the
-susceptibilities of all those with whom she was thrown into contact.
-She had absolutely no tact, and she fancied that if she allowed herself
-to be amiable in regard to any one, she would do something which was
-below her dignity. She applied herself to treat everybody from the
-height of her unassailable position, and she took good care never to
-say one word that might be interpreted in the light of a kindness or
-amiability towards the people who were being presented to her, so that
-though they tried hard to attribute her utter want of politeness to
-a timidity which in reality did not exist, yet they felt offended at
-it. Russian society had been used to something vastly different, and
-to a certain familiarity in its relations with its Sovereigns. The
-mother of Nicholas II., the Empress Marie, had been worshipped for the
-incomparable charm of her manners, and the simple kindness with which
-she received all those who were introduced to her, asking them to sit
-down beside her, and talking with them in a charming chatty way,
-full of sweet and unassuming dignity. Her daughter-in-law abolished
-these morning receptions which had brought the Sovereign into close
-intercourse with so many different people. She received the ladies who
-had asked to be presented to her, standing, surrounded by her court,
-with two pages behind her holding her train, and she merely stretched
-out her hand to be kissed by those whom she condescended to admit
-into her august presence, without speaking one single word to them.
-Of course the people whom she treated with such rudeness felt hurt
-at it, and it began to be said among the public that the Empress was
-not at all amiable, and people abstained from seeking her presence
-or appearing at Court, unless it was absolutely necessary to do so,
-leaving thus the field free to people devoid of self respect, to whom
-one impoliteness more or less did not matter. The balls at the Winter
-Palace, which formerly had been such brilliant ones, became dull and
-monotonous. The smile of the Empress Marie was no longer there to
-enliven them. At last the Czarina left off giving any, and no one
-missed them, or felt the worse for their absence. One felt rather
-relieved than otherwise not to be compelled any longer to appear in the
-presence of the Empress.
-
-As time went on, an abyss was formed which divided the Consort of
-Nicholas II. from her subjects, whose feelings manifested themselves
-quite openly on the day of the solemn entry of the Imperial Family into
-Moscow, on the eve of the Coronation of the new Sovereigns. The golden
-carriage that contained the Dowager Empress was followed all along its
-way by the cheers of the population of the ancient capital, whilst a
-tragic silence prevailed during the passage of the coach in which sat
-her daughter-in-law. The contrast was such a striking one that it was
-everywhere noticed and commented upon.
-
-This latent animosity, the first signs of which manifested themselves
-on this memorable occasion, became even more acute after the
-catastrophe of Khodinka. Russia did not forgive its Empress for having
-danced the whole of the night that had followed upon it, and for
-having given no sign of regret at a disaster that had cost the life
-of more than twenty thousand people, who had perished in the most
-awful manner possible. The divorce between her and her subjects was
-accomplished definitely after that day, and without any hope of a
-future reconciliation coming to annul its effects.
-
-This unpopularity, and let us say the word, this hatred of which she
-became the object, did not remain unknown to the Empress, who either
-noticed it herself, or else was enlightened on the point by her
-German relatives, with whom she had remained upon most intimate and
-affectionate terms. She attributed it at first to the fact that she had
-not during many years given a son to her husband and an heir to the
-Russian Throne, but later on she was compelled to acknowledge that the
-dislike which she inspired was due to other causes which were dependant
-on her own self. The discovery angered and soured her, and made her
-nasty and ill natured. She tried to avenge herself by the assumption
-of an authority in the exercise of which she found a certain pleasure,
-because it procured her at least the illusion of an absolute power,
-allowing her, if the wish for it happened to cross her mind, to crush
-all those who were bold enough to criticise any of her actions or her
-general demeanour.
-
-Her character was obstinate without being firm. She believed herself
-in all earnestness to be the equal of her husband, and did not think
-of herself at all as his first subject, so that, instead of giving to
-others the example of deference towards their Sovereign, she applied
-herself to lower him down to her own level, to diminish his importance,
-and to show quite openly that she did not in the very least respect
-either him or the throne which he occupied. One heard a number of
-anecdotes on the subject, among others one to the effect that during
-a regimental feast, at which the Imperial Family was present, the
-Empress, who had arrived a little in advance of the Czar, did not rise
-from her seat when he entered the riding school in which the guests
-were assembled to receive him. This want of deference was commented
-upon in unfavourable terms, and caused such a scandal that Alexandra
-Feodorovna was taken to task for it by her mother-in-law, with the only
-result that she impertinently told the latter to mind her own business
-and to hold her tongue. The Dowager Empress did not allow her to repeat
-such a remark, and withdrew herself almost entirely from the Court,
-much to the regret of all her admirers. All these things were perhaps
-not important ones, at least from other points of view than the purely
-social one, but they constituted this drop of water, which by its
-constant and continual dripping ends in attacking the solidity of the
-hardest granite. Very soon it became a subject of general knowledge
-that no one cared for the Empress, and one came to the conclusion
-that this initial want of sympathy would easily become very real and
-implacable hatred.
-
-The woman who had become the object of it, instead of trying to fight
-against the general dislike which she inspired, did absolutely nothing
-to try to persuade her subjects that she was not the detestable being
-she had been represented to be, but that she cared for their welfare,
-in spite of her cold appearance. The haughty and mistaken pride which
-was one of the chief features in her strange character, led her to
-retire within herself and to try to avoid seeing the people, who by
-that time had grown to meet her whenever she appeared in public, with
-angry and unpleasant expressions in their faces. The Imperial Court
-under her rule was quickly transformed from the brilliant assemblage
-it had been into a desert--a solitude no one cared to disturb. The
-Empress amused herself chiefly in turning tables and in evoking spirits
-from the other world, in company with mediums of a low kind who abused
-the confidence that she so unwisely and unnecessarily placed in them,
-and predicted for her (as it was to their interest to do) a happy and
-prosperous future.
-
-Then came the war with Japan, together with the disasters which
-attended it, a war that shook most seriously the prestige of the throne
-of the Romanoffs. It brought to light all the defects, the disorder,
-and the inefficiency of the War Office; it enlightened the nation as
-to the real worth of the people who were standing at the head of its
-government, and it sounded the first knell of the Revolution which
-was at last accomplished. This war afforded another pretext to the
-public for attacking the personality of the Empress, who according
-to the rumours which circulated at the time, had only looked upon it
-from the joyous and glorious side, and never noticed its earnest and
-sad one. It is a fact that neither disasters like those of Moukhden
-and Tschousima, nor even the revolutionary movement that broke out in
-consequence of them, affected her equanimity. She remained absolutely
-cold in presence of these grave events and was absorbed in the joy of
-the new maternity, which just at that time was granted to her--the
-birth of the long expected and hoped for Heir to the Russian Throne,
-which occurred in the very midst of the Japanese campaign. This event
-certainly did not contrive to make her more popular among her subjects,
-whilst on the other hand it increased considerably her importance, so
-that after the appearance in the world of the son she had so ardently
-wished for, she began to display more independence in her conduct than
-had been formerly the case, and to discuss more eagerly, and more
-authoritatively than she had ever been able to do before, matters of
-State which her position as the mother of the future Sovereign gave her
-almost a right to know, and to interfere with. She brought forward her
-own opinions and judgments, which never once proved in accord with the
-real needs of the Russian people. The Empress was neither good, kind,
-nor compassionate. Her nature was cold, hard and imperious, and she
-had never been accessible to the divine feeling which is called pity
-for other people’s woes. She would have signed a death warrant with
-the greatest coolness and indifference, and more than once her husband
-decided, thanks to her intervention, to confirm those submitted to his
-consideration. This last fact became known, and, as may be imagined, it
-did not procure her any sympathy among her subjects.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-THE BOLSHEVIKI HEADQUARTERS IN PETROGRAD]
-
-It was about that time, that is just before the birth of the Heir to
-the Throne, and whilst the war with Japan was being fought, that people
-began to spread dark rumours concerning the private life of Alexandra
-Feodorovna. A most extraordinary friendship which she contracted with
-a lady whose reputation left very much to be desired, and who had been
-divorced from her husband under circumstances that had given rise to
-much talk, Madame Wyroubieva, was severely criticised. The Empress
-remained deaf to all the hints which were conveyed to her on the
-subject. She kept the lady in question beside her, gave her rooms in
-the Imperial Palace, and took her about with her wherever she went,
-without minding in the least the impression which this bravado of
-public opinion produced everywhere. Another friendship for a certain
-Colonel Orloff, an officer in her own regiment of lancers, also gave
-rise to considerable gossip, which increased in intensity when after
-the death of the latter, who committed suicide under rather mysterious
-circumstances, the Empress repaired every afternoon to the churchyard
-where he was buried, prayed and laid flowers upon his grave. One
-wondered why she did such strange things, and of course persons were at
-once found to explain her motives in a manner which was the reverse of
-charitable.
-
-The Emperor knew and saw all that was going on, but said nothing. His
-wife by that time had acquired over his mind quite an extraordinary
-influence, and either he did not dare to make any remarks as to the
-originality which she displayed in her conduct, or else he imagined
-that her position put her so much above criticism that it was useless
-to interfere with what she might feel inclined to do in the matter of
-eccentricity. A legend soon established itself in regard to Alexandra
-Feodorovna. She was said to suffer from a nervous affection, which
-obliged her at times to keep to her own apartments, and not to appear
-in public. People tried, thanks to this pretext, to explain her absence
-on different occasions when her position would have required her to
-show herself to her subjects. But the truth of the matter was that
-the Empress did not wish to see anybody, outside the small circle of
-people before whom she need not constrain herself to be amiable or
-pleasant; and that utterly forgetful of the duties entailed upon her
-by her high rank and great position, she wanted only to live according
-to her personal tastes, surrounded by flatterers or by people resigned
-beforehand to accept and bow down before her numerous caprices, and to
-fulfil with a blind obedience all the commands it might please her to
-issue to them.
-
-She mixed openly in public affairs, and began to play a leading part
-in the conduct of the State. Her husband never dared to refuse her
-anything, and the Empress attempted to lead the destinies of Russia in
-the sense which she had the most at heart, that is in one corresponding
-to the interests of her own native country. She had remained entirely
-German in her tastes and opinions, and her English education had
-had absolutely no influence on her character. Thanks to an active
-correspondence which she kept up with her brother, the Grand Duke of
-Hesse, she was able to acquaint the Emperor William II. with a good
-many things that he would never have learned without her. This is the
-more curious, if one takes into account the fact that during the first
-years which had followed upon her marriage, and especially after the
-different journeys which she had made in France, Alexandra Feodorovna
-had expressed great sympathy and admiration for everything that was
-French, perhaps on account of the great enthusiasm with which she had
-been received by the French population. But later on, thanks to the
-influence of the unscrupulous people into whose hands she fell, her
-ideas became transformed, and she boldly tried to fight against the
-French leanings of her husband, and to lead him towards an alliance
-with Germany, in which she thought that she saw the advantage, and even
-the safety of her throne, and of the son she loved above everything
-else in the world.
-
-All these facts could not long remain unknown, and soon the public
-began to discuss them, together with the story of the different
-intrigues of which the Palace of Tsarskoie Selo became the centre.
-Thanks to the friends whom she had chosen for herself, the ante-chamber
-of the Empress was transformed into a kind of annex to the Stock
-Exchange, where all sorts of people, honest or dishonest, used to meet,
-in order to obtain through her intercession more or less extravagant,
-if not dangerous, favours. Thanks to Madame Wyroubieva, there were
-introduced into the intimacy of the Czarina certain members of the
-orthodox clergy recommendable only by their love for money and for
-lucrative employments, or rich dioceses and monasteries. The Empress
-together with her sister, the Grand Duchess Elisabeth, who after the
-murder of her husband had become a nun and the superior of a cloister
-which she had founded in Moscow, and to whom one might have applied
-with success the remark of Marie Antoinette in regard to her aunt
-Madame Louise of France, “she is the most intriguing little Carmelite
-in the whole of the kingdom,” tried to mix themselves up in every
-important matter in the State, and to lead it according to their
-own lights and aims, making use of the Emperor as of an instrument
-of their own private ambitions and desires. They were both fierce
-reactionaries, who from the first day that Nicholas II. had promulgated
-the Constitution of the 17th of October, had tried to persuade him to
-recall it. It was thanks to the initiative of the Empress that the
-first Duma was dissolved, and that the government began to exercise
-considerable pressure over the elections in order to prevent the
-candidates whom it believed it could not trust from being chosen by
-their constituents. One Minister after another of those whom the
-Czar appointed in rapid succession, resigned their functions, until
-at last it was an acknowledged fact in Russia that no honest trial
-of constitutional government could or would be attempted so long as
-Alexandra Feodorovna would be there to counteract its existence. When
-the Revolution broke out in the year 1905, and especially at the time
-of the disturbances which took place in Moscow, it was the Empress
-who excited her husband to adopt rigorous measures in order to crush
-it, measures which led to nothing, and which only made Nicholas II.
-a little more unpopular than he already was among his subjects. It
-was related, whether true or not I cannot say, that when the famous
-Semenovsky Regiment was sent to Moscow to reduce into submission the
-insurrection which had broken out there, Alexandra Feodorovna had
-desired to say good-bye to the officers before their departure, and
-that the only recommendation which she had made to them had been not to
-show any mercy to the insurgents. She had read without understanding it
-in the very least, the history of the French Revolution in 1789, and
-one had often heard her say that to show any weakness or compassion in
-times of danger was equivalent to signing one’s own death warrant. Her
-friends were nearly all of them men and women with a bad reputation,
-and amidst the circle of her own immediate family she had only
-contrived to make herself enemies. Thanks to her influence, and to her
-petty personal spite, the young Grand Duke Cyril, the son of the Grand
-Duke Vladimir, was deprived of his titles and dignities and exiled from
-Russia for having dared to marry his first cousin, the divorced wife of
-the Empress’s brother, the Grand Duke of Hesse, the Princess Victoria
-Melita of Edinburgh. This punishment, however, was promptly cancelled,
-thanks to the numerous protests which followed upon it from all
-quarters, but the two people concerned never forgave the Empress her
-attitude in regard to their union, and we saw an echo of this hostility
-the other day when the Grand Duke Cyril on the outbreak of the
-Revolution tried to play the part of Philippe Egalité in the Romanoff
-family, and went with his regiment to put himself at the disposal of
-the new government appointed by the Duma.
-
-The only brother of Nicholas II., the Grand Duke Michael
-Alexandrovitsch, saw the influence of the Empress exercised against
-him in a manner which was even more odious, because she contrived to
-deprive him of the control not only of his fortune, but also of his
-personal liberty to manage his estates. With her mother-in-law, the
-Dowager Empress Marie, Alexandra Feodorovna showed herself absolutely
-abominable in her disdain, haughtiness and pride. With the persons
-composing her court and household, she was unpleasant and bitter. Even
-in regard to her own daughters she proved herself heartless, and she
-never once during the twenty-three years which followed her arrival
-in Russia until the day of her downfall, tried to do any good around
-her or induce her husband to accomplish one of those actions full of
-generosity and mercy which unite a nation with its Sovereign, and make
-their hearts beat together for some noble cause or other. Then again
-there occurred the Rasputin incident. I have discussed it at length in
-the first part of this book, and shall therefore not enter here into a
-second description of the career of this strange personage, this low
-Cagliostro of a reign that did not deserve to have any great nobleman
-or even gentleman for its favourite. The only thing which I want to
-point out to the reader, is the responsibility which devolves upon the
-Empress in this disagreeable story, which more perhaps than anything
-else hastened the fall of the old Romanoff monarchy. Whether she was
-really persuaded of the holy character of the sinister adventurer who
-had contrived so cleverly to exploit her credulity, or whether there
-was in this curious infatuation for an unworthy object a question of
-hypnotism, combined with the extravagance of a badly balanced mind
-and imagination, it is difficult to say, especially when one has not
-followed otherwise than by hearsay the different incidents of this
-almost unbelievable tragedy. It is probable that the mystery, such as
-it was, will never be quite explained, but one may reasonably suppose
-that the perpetual invocations to spirits of another world, which
-Alexandra Feodorovna had practised for so many years, have had a good
-deal to do with the obstinacy with which she insisted upon imposing
-this personage upon all those who surrounded her, and with which
-she allowed him to interfere with the details of her family life, a
-thing which went so far that one day the governess of the young Grand
-Duchesses, Mademoiselle Toutscheff, a most distinguished lady, went to
-seek the Emperor, and told him that she could no longer be responsible
-for the education of his daughters if Rasputin was allowed to enter
-their apartments at every hour of the day and night. The only reply
-which was made by Nicholas II. to this communication was that the
-Empress ought not to be crossed, on account of the state of her nerves.
-He seemed to approve of everything that was going on in his house,
-and, this is the point which has always seemed so incomprehensible in
-his character, he even appeared to view with a certain pleasure the
-admittance into the intimacy of his home life of this uncivilised and
-uncouth creature called Rasputin, whose hand Alexandra Feodorovna bent
-down to kiss with a reverence that she had never before in the course
-of her whole life shown to any one else, not excepting Queen Victoria
-of England, whom she had tried to snub during the official visit which
-she had paid to her after her marriage.
-
-The complete indifference of the Czar as to what was going on around
-him and under his own roof, combined with his weakness of character
-and his unreasonable love for his wife, did not add to the feelings
-of respect that his subjects ought to have entertained for him. In a
-very short time extraordinary rumours began to circulate concerning
-all that was supposed to take place at Tsarskoie Selo, rumours
-which, disseminated as they were among the population of Petrograd,
-contributed in no small degree to the promptitude with which it
-rallied itself to the cause of the Revolution that put an end to the
-reign of Nicholas II. It was related amongst other things that the
-Commander-in-Chief of the Army, the Grand Duke Nicholas, had one
-day told his Imperial nephew that if he did not lock up Alexandra
-Feodorovna in a convent, he would come himself at the head of his
-troops, to carry her away, and confine her within the walls of the
-monastery of Novodievitvchy. True or not, the story was repeated
-everywhere, and it procured for the Grand Duke a considerable number of
-friends and sympathisers.
-
-Soon after this it was related that the Empress was in connivance
-with the numerous people who had made it their business to plunder
-the national exchequer, and that she looked with indulgence upon the
-malversations from which profited the partisans and the accomplices,
-for one could hardly call them by another name, of Rasputin. She began
-to be hated even more ferociously than had been the case before, and
-at last the police had to let Nicholas II. know that his Consort would
-do better not to show herself too often in public, because an attempt
-against her life might easily come to be made, under the influence of
-all the stories which one heard right and left concerning her private
-conduct and her affection for a being who was accused by the whole
-nation of being fatal to Russia’s prosperity at home and good renown
-abroad. The Czar listened to all this, as he was to listen later on to
-the remonstrances of his own family, but he did not act on all that he
-had been told. He continued to see Rasputin, partly because, according
-to the tales of those who were in the secret of what really went on
-in that strange Imperial household, the frank way of speaking of this
-uncouth peasant amused him and pleased him, being something so totally
-different from the language which he was accustomed to hear. But
-contrary to what was generally believed, he did not discuss with him
-matters of State, any more than did the Empress. It is to be hoped that
-this last assertion is correct, and that Rasputin in regard to Nicholas
-II. only played the part sustained by Chicot at the court of Henri III.
-of France, that of the King’s Jester, capable occasionally of telling
-some truths to his master. But during the last months which preceded
-the removal of this sinister figure from the horizon of Tsarskoie Selo,
-no one in Russia would believe in such a version, seeing that this
-Jester could dispose according to his pleasure of all the high places
-in the State, that he had created ministers, functionaries of paramount
-importance, church dignitaries, and that whoever addressed himself to
-him generally got what he wanted, whilst it was his friends who were
-controlling the government of the vast empire of the Czars. One did not
-realise that this had become possible only because all persons endowed
-with the slightest independence of character, had gradually become
-estranged from their Sovereign, and had come to the decision to abandon
-him to his fate, disgusted as they were by his weakness in regard to
-his wife, and being moreover unwilling to accept the responsibility
-of duties which they were not allowed to fulfil according to the
-dictates of their conscience. One after another the Ministers, who
-at the beginning of the reign of Nicholas II. had helped him to rule
-Russia, had been dismissed by him, or retired of their own accord,
-and their places had been taken by simple subaltern functionaries,
-preoccupied only with that one single thought of remaining as long as
-possible in possession of the places which they had been called upon
-by a caprice of destiny to occupy, and for which they knew at heart
-that they were not fit. Everybody who had a sense of decency left,
-had fled from Tsarskoie Selo, not caring to enter into conflict with
-the mysterious and subterranean powers, which, to repeat the words
-used by Professor Paul Miliukoff in his famous speech in the Duma
-a few days before the Revolution, alone decided the most important
-questions in the State. The whole country was disgusted at the conduct
-of those who ruled it, and this disgust was soon to change into an
-absolute contempt. The unpopularity of the Empress had extended itself
-to the person of the Czar himself, whom one was beginning to render
-responsible for the different things going on under his roof and to
-accuse of seeing, without any emotion, the Imperial prestige and honour
-sullied, and this autocracy for which he cared so much dishonoured.
-This unfortunate Emperor did not find anywhere a support. His mother
-had been estranged from him; his whole family had turned against him,
-after numerous and useless attempts to open his eyes as to the dangers
-which surrounded him and the position in which he stood before his
-subjects. His brother had been systematically kept away from him by the
-Empress, who did not care to have in her vicinity a man in whom she
-saw an eventual pretender to the throne of her son. His sisters tried
-to remove themselves as far from him as possible. He was longing for
-disinterested affections, and there is therefore nothing wonderful or
-surprising that he sought them from the wife whom fate had associated
-with his existence, whom in spite of everything he continued to
-love tenderly, and whose nefarious influence was to lead him to his
-destruction.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, Underwood & Underwood, N. Y._
-
-THE BOLSHEVIKI GENERAL STAFF]
-
-And she, this woman who alone stands responsible for all this ruin that
-has overtaken her consort, and his dynasty, did she ever understand
-the terrible responsibility that she had assumed? Did she ever try
-to be for her husband the faithful companion whom he required, and on
-whom he might have leant in the hour of danger and of peril? Did she
-attempt to develop in him those strong and virile qualities a sovereign
-conscious of his might requires to be able to handle it wisely? Did
-she ever enter into the needs of her people, or identify herself with
-the interests of the nation whose Empress she happened to be? Alas!
-Alas! history has already replied to those questions, and it is history
-which tells us that, thanks to Alexandra Feodorovna, the inheritance
-bequeathed by Peter the Great to his posterity has been squandered and
-lost. If there has ever existed a woman who has proved fatal to all
-those with whom her lot has been thrown, it is this little Hessian
-Princess, whom fate or chance associated with one of the greatest
-political crises of which Russian history will keep the record and the
-remembrance, and for whose tears no one will find any pity, even when
-her sorrows will need it most.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-
-In one of her letters addressed to her daughter Marie Antoinette, the
-Empress Marie Therese wrote: “I am glad to hear that you have decided
-to re-establish the old etiquette and representation of Versailles.
-However tiresome it may be, its inconveniences are still far less than
-those which arise out of its absence. A Court must learn to know well
-its sovereigns.” These words of a woman who knew better than any other
-queen had ever known how to uphold the prestige of her crown, ought
-to have been remembered by the Czar Nicholas II., because it is an
-undoubted fact that the custom which was established during his reign
-to keep the Emperor and his family isolated from the nation over which
-he ruled, had a good deal to do with the change that established itself
-gradually in the ideas of the people, as well as in the minds of the
-aristocracy, in regard to the reigning house. One forgot that there
-existed in Russia an Emperor, and one only remembered the manifold
-abuses which were the consequence of the detestable government to
-which the nation was subjected. All the personal ties that might have
-bound the monarch with those who could in an emergency have defended
-him against danger, had been snapped asunder by that monarch himself.
-St. Petersburg, which formerly (I have now in mind only the upper
-classes) had converged towards the sun represented by the Imperial
-Palace and its inhabitants, learned how to do without it, and it was
-no longer considered to be an honour to have relations, no matter of
-what nature, with any member of the House of Romanoff. The Imperial
-Family, in imitation of the conduct pursued by its Chief, seemed as
-if it wished to efface itself and to lead the existence of common
-mortals, which it did not succeed in doing, because it had been brought
-up too far from the world in general, represented by that portion
-of humanity which suffers and which works in silence, to be able to
-enter into its interests, and to make them its own. On the other
-hand that same family gave the first signal of rebellion against the
-system represented by the masters of the Palace of Tsarskoie Selo,
-whom it applied itself to discredit with an energy which was the more
-tenacious that it would have liked to be in their place. The Grand
-Duchess Vladimir, especially, together with her two sons, who had never
-cared for the Head of their dynasty, were the first ones to greet in
-their house all the discontented people who abounded in the Russian
-capital, and to deplore in their presence the scandal occasioned by
-the strange conduct of the Empress. The Revolution which was to come
-later on was prepared silently in the palaces of the very persons who
-ought to have fought against it, as well as in the homes of those old
-servants of the monarchy, who would have wished to save it from the
-disaster, which they saw but too well, was fast overtaking it, but who
-had to own themselves powerless to do so, and had to acknowledge with
-sorrow and with shame that it was discrediting itself a little more
-with each day that was passing. The nation, on its side, was preparing
-itself for the impending struggle. The systematic manner in which the
-labour party in Russia organised itself in view of the approaching
-Revolution, has never been sufficiently known or appreciated abroad.
-It has constituted for those who have followed the slow evolution
-which was the consequence of the premature revolutionary movement that
-had failed in 1905, one of the most interesting political problems
-of the twentieth century. I have lived in Russia during the years
-which have immediately preceded the war, and I have been in personal
-relations with some of the leaders of this party. I can therefore
-write about it from the point of view of a witness eager to watch the
-slow transformation, which out of a party essentially violent in its
-view and aspirations had produced a political faction, sufficiently
-ripened and saddened by the unsuccesses of its first fight not to seek
-elsewhere than in a too rapid solution the end of the difficulties
-under which it had been condemned to develop itself. It was quite
-sufficient to have witnessed the manifestations that used to take place
-each first of May, to come to the conclusion that the workman who was
-walking the streets, singing and carrying revolutionary flags, in 1906,
-was quite a different man from the one who indulged in manifestations
-of the like kind in 1913 and 1914. The general strike which preceded
-the war by a few weeks upon which the Germans founded so many useless
-hopes was, notwithstanding its revolutionary character, rather an
-expression of opinion on the part of a powerful and perfectly well
-organised party than a rebellion against authority. The workman had
-at last realised that he had got the future for him, provided he did
-not allow his natural impatience to carry him too far, and that he
-could resist the temptation to proceed too quickly with the plans
-which he had formed. He had also realised another thing, and that was
-that neither the liberals nor the octobrists, nor the party called
-that of the cadets, nor even the revolutionary socialists, were strong
-enough to constitute a government, and that all the plans they were
-continually talking about, would only end in speeches more or less
-empty and devoid of practical common sense. The workman applied himself
-to avoid mistakes, which perhaps he had noticed before he had quite
-grasped their importance. He understood on the other hand perfectly
-well the fact that the immense industrial movement, which had developed
-itself during the years that had followed immediately upon the war with
-Japan, was bound to increase still further in importance, and that the
-future belonged to those who would be able to profit by it, to guide
-it, and to direct it in the sense of a great and general reform of the
-different abuses which had corrupted all the higher classes of the
-nation. The number of factories which suddenly arose everywhere, the
-speculation that followed upon the rise in the value of all kinds of
-industrial securities, and the knowledge that the workman very quickly
-acquired as to the different means thanks to which the fortunes of
-so many people come, no one knew from whence, had been edified, gave
-him a strength which became the more formidable that he was compelled
-to remain silent in presence of so many spectacles that revolted
-his sense of integrity. In regard to this particular point, the
-impossibility to hold public meetings proved a blessing in disguise for
-the development of the activity of the labour party, because it allowed
-it to proceed in secret to a propaganda that became the more dangerous
-for the security of the government in that there existed no one able
-to point out to those among whom it flourished its perilous, and even
-to a certain extent, its disastrous sides. Under the very eyes of the
-police, the mass of the workmen employed in the different factories
-scattered all over Petrograd, prepared itself for the mission which it
-felt but too well was bound sooner or later to devolve upon it; so that
-whenever it allowed its voice to be heard, it was always with prudence,
-and even with a certain amount of cautious wisdom that prevented the
-general public and the authorities noticing how strong and powerful it
-was getting, and what a wonderful instrument it would prove later on,
-in the hands of those who in the meanwhile were leading it in secret,
-until the day when, thanks to their help, it would be able in its turn
-to lead others.
-
-It must here be remarked that the Russian government of that time
-never understood the wants of the labour party. It is sufficient to
-recall the terrible drama which was enacted in the Lena gold fields
-of Siberia, when the troops, called to the help of the owners of the
-works, fired on the mass of workmen who were simply asking for some
-legitimate improvements in their conditions of existence, to come
-to the conclusion that, according to the words of Hamlet, “there
-was something rotten in that state of Denmark.” Only, neither the
-government nor the upper classes of society, who were all of them, or
-nearly all, in the dependence of a few lucky speculators in stocks and
-shares, nor these speculators themselves, whose number was getting
-larger and larger every day in St. Petersburg, cared to remember that
-such was the fact.
-
-During the years which immediately preceded the great war, the whole
-of Russia had become one vast Stock Exchange, the securities of which
-were quoted at every street corner, where the only things that had any
-value, were those which could be turned into a shareholder’s company.
-The Emperor Alexander III. had tried, during the whole time of his
-reign, to improve agriculture in his land, and he had tried to bind
-together the different social classes of the nation, by a common love
-for their native soil. It had been told at that time that he had been
-wrong in looking upon Russia exclusively from the agricultural point of
-view, but in presence of the things which have happened recently, one
-may wonder whether after all he had not been right, because it is quite
-certain that the change of system that had followed upon his death, and
-the exclusive protection which to the detriment of everything else,
-industry was awarded, during the twenty-two years of Nicholas II.’s
-administration, and especially during the time that Mr. Kokovtsoff
-remained at the Treasury, darkened the judgment of the people who
-under different circumstances, and if they had made less money, would
-have probably noticed the progress made by socialism, and the growing
-influence of the labour party over its adherents, who from the outset
-had been determined to break this might of capital which was of no good
-to the country, and simply added to the importance of lucky speculators.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, Underwood & Underwood, N. Y._
-
-SOLDIER AND SAILOR CITIZENS’ DUMA]
-
-As for the Emperor, he had ceased to count for anything in Russia,
-after the failure of the so-called Constitutional government, which
-he had inaugurated rather out of caprice than because he had become
-convinced that it was indispensable to the welfare of Russia to see it
-ruled by a responsible Cabinet. At the time I am referring to, it was
-an acknowledged fact in the whole of Russia that it was governed by
-some mysterious and dark powers which in secret were proceeding to any
-amount of malversations, most harmful for the prosperity of the nation,
-as well as for its prestige in Europe. The one general feeling which
-prevailed everywhere was one of immense lassitude at a state of things
-one knew but too well could not last, but which no one yet felt strong
-enough to try to ameliorate, change, or overturn. If the war had not
-broken out, it is likely that this condition, which hovered between
-a dream and a nightmare, might have gone on for a long time, because
-though the public realised perfectly well that the Throne, as well as
-the man who occupied it, represented only a dead thing, yet it appeared
-still so immense that no one dared to touch it, but continued looking
-upon it, with the same eyes one would have done had it remained the
-great one it had been formerly.
-
-The war broke out and awakened the nation out of the state of marasm
-into which it had fallen. During the first weeks which followed upon
-its declaration there took place in Russia an explosion of enthusiasm
-such as had never been witnessed before. It did not, however, last
-any appreciable length of time, and collapsed together with the news
-of the reverses that attended the Polish campaign. Nowhere were these
-reverses felt more than amidst the ranks of the labour party, which,
-as a direct consequence of them, acquired all at once an importance it
-had hardly dared to hope it could win so soon. Factories became the
-principal organ of the national defence, and the word “ammunition” was
-transformed into the flag under which all those who were dissatisfied
-with the government then in power enrolled themselves as well as the
-people who longed for the end of an order of things the faults and
-mistakes of which were known in Russia long before they came to be
-recognised abroad. The workman suddenly became the individual to whom
-was awarded the greatest importance, there where the question of the
-salvation of the Fatherland came to be raised. He was the one to whom
-everybody said aloud what he had been himself aware of long before,
-that it was from him, and from his efforts, that depended victory over
-the enemy who had audaciously invaded Russian territory. This workman
-(this must never be lost sight of) was intimately connected with the
-army in which he had served, with the army that had far more confidence
-in him, and in his knowledge and efforts, than in the incapable
-government that had sent it to be slaughtered without providing it
-with any means to fight its foes. The workman became thus conscious
-of his extreme importance, and he aspired to be awarded the place in
-society which he imagined that he had the right to pretend to. He
-raised his voice, and insisted upon its being listened to. Perhaps
-Nicholas II. would still be in possession of his throne had he had
-sufficient common sense to do so. There were at this juncture people
-who tried to make the Sovereign understand that it was not enough for
-him to have assumed the supreme command over his troops in order to
-win back the popularity he had so completely lost, and that he would
-do well, in the interest of his dynasty as well as in his own, to show
-himself more frequently to the population of Petrograd, and to try
-to get into direct touch with it otherwise than through his official
-visits to the factories where ammunition was prepared for the army;
-visits during which he was escorted with great pomp and ceremony by his
-usual cortège of attendants and in the course of which he had never
-found one single word of encouragement to say to those who were toiling
-for the welfare of the Fatherland. The Emperor failed to grasp the
-wisdom of this piece of advice, nor did he realise the importance of
-another one, which proceeded from the few friends he had still left to
-him, the advice to call together a national and responsible Ministry,
-composed of men chosen among the representatives of the country in the
-Duma, and in possession of the confidence of the latter. He understood
-even less the necessity, recognised everywhere outside the gates of his
-Palace, to try and raise the prestige of the Crown, by getting rid of
-the compromising personalities, whose presence at his side dishonoured
-him as a man, and discredited him as a sovereign. He did not see,
-and perhaps no one dared to point out to him, the shameless money
-speculations which were taking place everywhere in Russia, and even
-under his own roof; the bargaining of everything that there was to sell
-or to buy in the country; honours, dignities, distinctions, places,
-and the Fatherland itself, by a gang of shameless adventurers, who had
-found the protection which they needed to carry on their plunder within
-the walls of the Imperial residence. He believed what his wife kept
-repeating to him, that once he had declared such was not the case, no
-one would dare to think that he consulted Rasputin or the metropolitan
-Pitirim in regard to State affairs, and he simply laughed at those
-who pretended that he was doing so. He was blind until the end. He is
-perhaps blind still, and it is quite possible that he will persist in
-remaining so until the day when his revolted subjects will come and
-claim his life, after having compelled him to surrender his throne.
-Unconscious creature, unable to notice the dangers amidst which he had
-been living, or the abyss that was already swallowing him up.
-
-It is when considering this point that one feels tempted to ask what
-would have become of Nicholas II. had he had beside him one of these
-intelligent women, endowed with a strong character, and understanding
-the nature of her duties as a wife, as a mother and a sovereign. It is
-likely that if he had found such a help he might have prevented or at
-least have contrived to give a different shape to the crisis through
-which Russia had to pass. The war was an unavoidable misfortune, owing
-to the firm determination of Germany to provoke it, no matter in what
-way, or under what pretext, but it would have been possible to conduct
-it differently than was the case. One could also have been prepared
-for it, and one ought to have realised that the old and superannuated
-system of government so utterly rotten, where everything was left in
-the hands of corrupt functionaries, who had never learned anything
-out of the book of history, for whom the intellectual development
-of nations meant nothing at all, and who did not look beyond their
-personal advantages in all the great crises which might come to shake
-the equanimity of the country, that this system had served its time,
-and was bound to collapse under the weight of the universal contempt.
-But Nicholas II. called together a Duma which he had determined
-beforehand to deprive of every initiative, and of the liberty to say
-what it wished concerning the needs of the country that had entrusted
-it with the defence of its interests. He made many fine promises which
-he never intended to keep, and when he spoke about the necessity of
-bringing about a close union between the Czar and the representatives
-of his people, he never wished to give to the latter the possibility
-to approach him, or to lay their grievances at his feet. Had there
-been in Russia an Empress worthy of the name, and competent to fill
-the position she occupied, she would have told her husband that the
-duty of them both consisted in remaining loyal towards their subjects.
-She would have exposed her person, and risked her life if necessary,
-in the accomplishment of the task which had been allotted to her
-by Providence. She would have spent her time otherwise than in the
-practices of a piety that was nothing else but superstition mingled
-with erotic tendencies.
-
-What did Alexandra Feodorovna do during those solemn hours of a
-supreme crisis? I do not wish to be hard on her now that misfortune
-has overtaken her, but the truth must be told, and it is necessary to
-point out that her principal preoccupation during the months which
-preceded the Revolution consisted in defending Rasputin against the
-attacks directed against him from all sides, and in isolating the
-Emperor from all the people capable of enlightening him in regard
-to the conduct and the character of the sinister personage whom her
-imagination had transformed into a Saint, and to whose presence at
-her side she attributed a miraculous power, capable of protecting her
-and her family, against every kind of danger. Under his influence
-and thanks to the impulse which he gave to her activity, she applied
-herself to persuade the Czar to conclude a separate peace with Germany,
-working upon the humanitarian feelings of Nicholas II., and repeating
-constantly to him that he owed it to his subjects to put an end to a
-useless effusion of blood, and not to go on with a perfectly hopeless
-struggle. If the Revolution had not taken place it is most probable
-that a separate peace would have been signed between Russia and Germany
-during the course of the next few months, and it is also likely that
-if this intention of the Empress had not transpired outside the gates
-of her Palace the Revolution would not have broken out when it did,
-because all the different political parties in the Duma were agreed
-as to the advisability of putting it off so long as the enemy was in
-occupation of a part of the country. But Alexandra Feodorovna poured
-the last drops into a glass which was ready to overflow, and the hatred
-which the Russian nation bore her found at last its justification in
-the general opinion which suddenly exploded like a barrel of powder in
-the whole of the country, that she also was a traitor, who had been
-won over to the German cause, and who was ready to give up into the
-hands of the adversary against whom one had been fighting for so many
-long and anxious months of a struggle during which so much blood had
-flown, this Russia that had offered her the Imperial diadem, which she
-had found nothing better to do than to sully with the mud of the dirty
-roads whither her steps had taken her.
-
-Here I must make a pause, and try to analyse the real part played in
-the drama by the unfortunate Sovereign on the head of whom so many
-curses have been showered. I do not believe that it was in order to
-hand over to her own native country, the one which had become hers by
-marriage, that Alexandra Feodorovna lent herself to the intrigue in
-which it is unfortunately an uncontested fact that she took an active
-share. It seems to me, so far as I can judge of things which did not
-take place in my presence, that her intentions were sincere according
-to her lights. She was not an intelligent woman by any means, and what
-she possessed in the way of intellect had disappeared in a vanity
-and haughtiness of which it is hardly possible to form an adequate
-idea. She cared only for her crown, and for autocratic power over
-her subjects, and under the influence of those who represented to her
-that the least concession to the spirit of the times was bound to
-further the cause of a revolution which she abhorred, she had awarded
-her protection to this reactionary party represented by men like
-Sturmer, Protopopoff, and others of the same kind. She had preached
-to her husband whenever she had had the opportunity for doing so, the
-necessity to stand firm, and never to sacrifice one fraction of the
-principle of absolute power over his subjects. She had pointed out
-to him on every possible occasion the example of Louis XVI., who had
-been beheaded, because he had not had sufficient courage to resist
-to the pressure exercised over him by the revolutionary elements in
-the French monarchy. She did not grasp in the very least that times
-were different, that ideas as well as men had changed, and that a
-sovereign who in a moment of danger does not seek help from his people,
-or try together with them to find a solution to the difficulties of
-a threatening situation, courts an inevitable ruin. The Empress has,
-without any doubt being allowed as to this point, been the direct cause
-of the misfortunes as well as of the fall of her husband, and probably
-when history will be called upon to judge her, it will show itself even
-more severe in regard to her and to her conduct than her contemporaries
-have been, because she has certainly done more to destroy the respect
-of Russia for the throne to which she had been raised than the most
-violent revolutionary attacks that were ever directed against it.
-Instead of trying to bring her consort nearer to the nation at
-whose head he stood, she only inspired him with suspicions and even
-with dislike for this nation, or at least for the best among its
-representatives.
-
-There happened circumstances when the Empress interfered directly
-in the affairs of the State, and persuaded the Czar to do what she
-required of him; as, for instance, the exile in Siberia, this Siberia
-whither she was to be sent herself, and the arbitrary arrest of several
-leaders of the labour party, whom, under some futile pretext or other,
-the government threw into prison a few weeks before the outbreak of the
-Revolution, in spite of the indignant protestations made by the Duma
-on the subject. It was also Alexandra Feodorovna, who, on the advice
-of the metropolitan Pitirim, a creature of Rasputin, who had caused
-him to be appointed to the See of Petrograd, the most important one in
-the Empire, persuaded the Emperor to follow the advice of the minister
-Protopopoff to prorogue the Duma, and to arm the police with machine
-guns, in view of a possible revolt of the inhabitants of the capital
-against the government, a fatal and most imprudent measure, if there
-ever was one, which decided the fate of the Romanoff dynasty.
-
-In this last occurrence, it was less out of fear of the debates that
-might take place in the Duma, than because he wanted to have his
-hands untied in regard to the conclusion of peace for which he had
-been working ever since he had been called to the ministry of the
-interior, that Protopopoff induced his Sovereign to resort to a measure
-absolutely devoid of common sense, and the only effect of which could
-be to add fuel to a fire that had been smouldering for months, if
-not years. It proved fatal for everybody, and it is still a question
-whether it was not to be more fatal for Russia than anything else which
-Nicholas II. had ever done, because it has thrown her into an era of
-revolution and of trouble, for which she was neither prepared nor ripe.
-
-At that time I am writing about, the members of the Imperial family
-together with the aristocracy were beginning to get more and more
-alarmed at the manner in which events were unfolding themselves, and
-were wondering as to what could be done to put an end to the influence
-of the Empress and of her favourites. One of the oldest, and the only
-surviving personal friend of the late Czar Alexander III., Count
-Vorontzoff Dachkoff, when he visited the Emperor to take leave of him,
-on his resignation of the functions of Viceroy of the Caucasus, had
-tried to remonstrate with him on the subject, and to point out to him
-the necessity of getting rid of Rasputin and of the followers of the
-latter. He had known Nicholas II. as a child, and he could therefore
-talk with him more familiarly than any one else in Russia: “I must tell
-you the truth,” he said. “Do you know that, thanks to your Rasputin,
-you are going to your ruin and endangering the throne of your son?”
-The old soldier, who had served under four sovereigns, became quite
-eloquent in his speech. The Czar listened to him in silence, and at
-last exclaimed almost with a sob: “Why did God lay upon me such a heavy
-burden?”
-
-After Count Vorontzoff, the Dowager Empress Marie Feodorovna tried
-to do something to save her son. She had left Petrograd months
-before, not caring to live in the vicinity of her daughter-in-law,
-whom she disliked as much as did the other members of the Imperial
-family. When Nicholas II. visited Kieff in October, 1916, where his
-mother was residing, the latter had a long conversation with him, in
-which she pointed out to him the peril which threatened him and the
-dynasty, unless he decided upon an energetic step, and removed from
-her side the favourites of his wife. But even Marie Feodorovna was
-powerless in presence of the dark and occult powers that held her son
-in their trammels, and nothing followed upon her remonstrances or
-her adjurations that he might consider the dangers with which he was
-surrounded, and try at least to conjure them.
-
-After this interference of the widow of Alexander III., some of the
-members of the Cabinet who were not of the same opinions as Messrs.
-Sturmer and Protopopoff, attempted to reason with their Sovereign,
-among others Count Ignatieff and Mr. Bark, but they were also not
-listened to, and the former at last handed in his resignation which was
-accepted with alacrity, Alexandra Feodorovna not trying even to hide
-the extreme satisfaction she felt at its having taken place.
-
-Count Ignatieff had been the most popular minister of public
-instruction Russia had ever known, and his departure was looked upon
-in the light of a national misfortune, adding to the dislike with
-which the Empress was viewed everywhere. Mr. Bark did not feel himself
-at liberty to abandon the department of finances of which he had
-the charge at the very moment when a new loan was being floated, but
-he avoided seeing the consort of his Sovereign, and only appeared at
-Tsarskoie Selo, when he could not help doing so.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, Underwood & Underwood, N. Y._
-
-FOREIGN MINISTER LEON TROTZKY]
-
-On the 1st of November, 1916, one of the cousins of the Czar, the
-Grand Duke Nicholas Michaylovitsch, who was perhaps the cleverest
-member of the Imperial family, a man wonderfully well learned, and who
-had acquired the reputation of an excellent historian, thanks to the
-remarkable studies which he had published on the life and times of
-Alexander I., and the Napoleonic wars, made another effort to shake
-the influence of Rasputin, Protopopoff and the Empress. He asked the
-Czar to receive him, and during a long and heated conversation which
-he had with the latter, he read to him a letter which he had prepared
-beforehand, in which were exposed not only the political, but also
-the private reasons, which made it an imperative necessity to remove
-Rasputin from Tsarskoie Selo. As the Grand Duke told his friends later
-on, there were in this letter some passages that might have wounded
-Nicholas II. in his feelings as a husband, not only as a sovereign. But
-the Czar did not reply one single word, only went to fetch the Empress,
-and in his turn read to her the incriminating epistle. When he reached
-the passage in which remarks were made concerning her, Alexandra
-Feodorovna rose up in a passion, and snatching the document out of
-her husband’s hands, she tore it up into a thousand small pieces. In
-the course of this memorable conversation, the Grand Duke asked the
-Emperor whether he knew that the appointment of Protopopoff was the
-work of Rasputin, with whom the former had become acquainted at the
-house of one of their common friends, a certain Badmaieff.
-
-“Yes,” replied the Czar, “I know it.”
-
-“And you find this a matter of course,” exclaimed his cousin.
-
-Nicholas II. replied nothing.
-
-In spite of the angry tone which the discussion had assumed, the
-Emperor remained perfectly civil to the Grand Duke. The latter
-afterwards remarked that he had been more than surprised to meet
-with such utter indifference, and at the same time such kindness, in
-appearance at least, from his cousin. It seemed as if nothing that he
-could say could move the Czar, who, during the most heated moments of
-this interview, handed the matches to his kinsman, when he noticed
-that the cigarette of the latter had gone out. At last the Grand Duke
-exclaimed: “You have got Cossacks here, and a great deal of room in
-your gardens. You can have me killed and buried without any one being
-the wiser for it. But I must tell you the truth, and say to you that
-you are going to your ruin.”
-
-The Czar continued to be silent, and his cousin had to take his leave,
-without having been able to obtain one single word from him by which he
-might have guessed whether he had been believed or not.
-
-The confessor of the Imperial family, Father Schabelsky, was induced to
-interfere in his turn, and to warn the Emperor of the ever increasing
-unpopularity of his consort, advising him at the same time to send her
-somewhere for the benefit of her health, until the storm had abated
-which everybody except the few people who surrounded the Sovereign saw
-was on its way. His advice also was disregarded. A lady belonging to
-the highest social circles, whose family had always been upon terms
-of intimacy with that of Nicholas II., the Princess Vassiltschikoff,
-bethought herself to write to the Empress, and to entreat her to
-save the country and the dynasty, and to induce her husband to call
-together a responsible ministry, in possession of the confidence of
-the Duma and of the nation. The only reply which she received was an
-order commanding her to leave the capital immediately for her country
-seat, with a prohibition to return to it again. Alexandra Feodorovna
-remained the only person the Czar would listen to, and Alexandra
-Feodorovna was but the mouthpiece of people like Rasputin, Sturmer,
-and Protopopoff, who kept telling to her that she must not yield, and
-that the only thing capable of restoring peace to Russia was to subdue
-the rebellious spirits who dared talk about the necessity of making
-concessions to public opinion, coupled with the firm determination to
-crush, even by force, any manifestations which might be made in that
-direction. Acting upon this advice, the Empress assumed a power which
-had never belonged to any consort of a sovereign before. In the absence
-of Nicholas II. at the front, it was she who gave out orders, not
-only to the different ministers, but also to the troops composing the
-garrison of Petrograd; she had people arrested according to her fancy,
-she caused the houses of others that had displeased her to be searched
-by the numerous police agents whom she had at her disposal, ready to
-execute any of her caprices; she showed herself the absolute master in
-her consort’s dominions, and she held everybody, including himself, in
-a firm grasp, which (this must be added) was more the grasp of Rasputin
-and Protopopoff, than her own.
-
-It was evident that such a state of things could not go on
-indefinitely. There were still some persons left who hoped to be able
-to save the dynasty by removing its principal enemy, the unscrupulous
-peasant who had tarnished its prestige. A plot, into which entered
-different persons belonging to the highest aristocracy of the land
-as well as some members of the Imperial family, was arranged, and
-culminated, as I have already related, in the murder of Rasputin. All
-this has been told, but what has not yet been written is the manner
-in which the news of the assassination of her favourite was received
-by the Empress. At first her despair was pitiable to behold, then she
-quickly rallied, and getting back her energy, proceeded to avenge her
-murdered friend. The Czar was at Headquarters, and she happened to find
-herself alone with her children at Tsarskoie Selo. She sent for one of
-her husband’s aide de camps, General Maximovitsch, and commanded him to
-proceed immediately to Petrograd, and to arrest the Grand Duke Dmitry
-Pavlovitsch, allowing him, however, to remain in his own palace, but
-with strict orders not to leave it, even for a short walk. The whole
-Imperial family protested, but it was of no avail. Mr. Protopopoff
-was on the side of the Czarina, and he alone was in command of the
-police forces of the capital. Any thought of resistance was out of
-the question. The hated minister would not have hesitated to proceed,
-even against the relatives of his Sovereign, to gratify the revengeful
-feelings of Alexandra Feodorovna.
-
-How vindictive the latter showed herself to be can be seen out of the
-severity of the punishments which, at her instigation, were showered
-upon all those who had taken part in the conspiracy to which Rasputin
-had fallen a victim. Prince Youssoupoff, with his wife, was exiled in
-one of his properties in the government of Koursk, and the young Grand
-Duke Dmitry was ordered to proceed to the front in Persia, which,
-considering his delicate state of health, was tantamount to a death
-sentence. When this became known, the whole of the Imperial family
-wrote to the Czar in the following terms:
-
-“May it please Your Majesty, we, whose signatures you will find at the
-bottom of this letter, urgently and strongly beg of you to reconsider
-your decision in regard to the Grand Duke Dmitry Pavlovitsch, and show
-him some leniency. We know for a fact that he is physically ill, and
-morally broken down. You have been his guardian in his youth, and you
-are aware of the deep feelings of affection and of respect that he has
-always entertained in regard to you, and to our Fatherland. We implore
-Your Majesty in view of his youth, and of the precarious state of his
-health, to allow him to repair either to his own estate of Oussoff, or
-else to Vilensky.
-
-“Your Majesty is probably aware of the terrible conditions in which
-our army finds itself placed in Persia at the present moment, and of
-the many illnesses and epidemics of all kinds that are raging there.
-To expose the Grand Duke to those dangers is simply compassing his
-ruin, because he can only come out of such a trial a physical and moral
-wreck, and surely the kind heart of Your Majesty will take pity on a
-youth for whom you have had some affection in the past, and in regard
-to whom you have always shown yourself a kind father. We pray to God to
-soften the feelings of Your Majesty, and to induce you to alter your
-decision, and to show some mercy to your own kinsman.”
-
-To this letter was received on the next day the following reply:
-
-“No one has the right to commit a murder. I am aware that many people
-are suffering now from qualms of conscience, because it is not only
-Dmitry Pavlovitsch who is mixed up in this business. I am surprised at
-your daring to address me in such terms. Nicholas.”
-
-The Grand Duke had to submit. He departed for the Persian front,
-accompanied by an officer who had received strict orders to oppose any
-attempt that he might feel tempted to make, in order to escape his
-doom. A curious incident, very characteristic of the state of mind
-prevailing in the capital at that time, then occurred. The comrades of
-this officer, upon hearing of his appointment, obliged him to resign
-his commission, considering that he had disgraced himself by accepting
-such a mission.
-
-In the meanwhile the body of Rasputin was taken at night to Tsarskoie
-Selo and buried in a small chapel which had been erected some years
-before by the Empress, quite close to the palace which she inhabited.
-Troops surrounded it so as to prevent any one getting near to it,
-whilst the ceremony lasted, and the funeral was attended by the
-Emperor, the Empress, and the intimate friend of the latter, Madame
-Vyroubieva. Alexandra Feodorovna used to go every afternoon to pray on
-the grave of the man whose influence had proved her bane, until at last
-the Revolution imprisoned her, and threw to the winds the ashes of the
-greatest enemy that the dynasty of the Romanoff’s had ever known. When
-the body was exhumed by the angry populace, one found on its breast
-a sacred image, bearing the names of the Empress, and of her three
-daughters, last memento of an affection which had proved so fatal to
-those who had nursed it.
-
-The murder of Rasputin had one very clear and definite object, that of
-ridding the Czar of an individual who had sullied his honour. Those who
-were courageous enough to send him into eternity had nursed the hope
-that once this evil influence had disappeared, the counsels of wisdom
-would prevail, and Nicholas II. might be at last brought to understand
-that his duty required of him to look bravely into the face of the
-situation in which he had been thrown together with the Empire over
-which he ruled. Until that time, no one had been able to talk seriously
-with him, with hopes of being listened to. The Emperor had acquired
-the habit of never giving an immediate reply to any proposition that
-was submitted to him, but deferred his decisions, in order to discuss
-them first with the Empress, who in her turn consulted her favourites
-Sturmer and Protopopoff, who had taken to a certain extent the place
-left empty by Rasputin’s disappearance. They were all of them working
-together towards the conclusion of a separate peace with Germany,
-because they believed that if once this were achieved they would be
-able to recall the army from the front, and to use it against the Duma
-and the nation, establishing with its help upon a sounder and firmer
-base their own power and might. None among them gave a thought to the
-possibility that the troops might practise with the people, and work
-together with it towards the downfall of the government and of the
-dynasty.
-
-This desire of the Empress to bring about, no matter at what cost,
-the ending of the war, was suspected by a good many people. A few
-officers in possession of important commands had an inkling of it,
-and the leaders of the labour party had also heard about it. The last
-named, who had worked more than any other class of the nation for the
-continuation of the struggle in the material sense of the word, and who
-wanted to avenge their sons fallen before the enemy, became anxious
-at the possibility of such a peace being concluded; and very distinct
-threats were uttered not only in Petrograd, but all over Russia,
-against the Ministers, the Emperor, and especially the Empress. This
-explains, apart from other reasons, why the murder of Rasputin was
-hailed with such joy. One hoped that his removal would put an end to
-a state of things out of which could only result disaster, shame and
-misfortune.
-
-Unfortunately things turned out quite differently. Alexandra Feodorovna
-declared that she considered it her duty to go on doing exactly what
-her dead and gone friend had advised her to do, and the partisans of a
-separate peace with Germany found in her a more solid protection than
-the one they had enjoyed before. She pursued unmercifully all those
-who had tried to open the eyes of the Emperor, and the first thing she
-did, after having seen the Grand Duke Dmitry sent to Persia and Prince
-Youssoupoff exiled, was to cause the Czar to write to the Grand Duke
-Nicholas Michaylovitsch, who had addressed to him the letter which had
-incensed her so terribly, and command him to leave Petrograd and repair
-for two months to an estate which he owned in the South of Russia, in
-the government of Kherson. This order was brought to the Grand Duke
-by an Imperial messenger, on the last day of the year 1916, at half
-past eleven o’clock at night. It was written entirely in the Emperor’s
-hand, and was couched in the following terms: “I command you to start
-at once for Grouchevka, and to remain there two months. Nicholas.” But
-there was added a postscript that had been probably written without the
-Empress’s knowledge, under the vague feeling of remorse for such an
-unjustifiable action, and which said: “I beg you to do what I ask you.”
-Other Grand Dukes attempted in their turn to shake the influence of
-Alexandra Feodorovna, and to point out to the Czar the peril which it
-represented for the dynasty. Many angry scenes took place at Tsarskoie
-Selo, between them and the master of this Imperial place, but they
-all led to nothing, and when the wife of the Grand Duke Cyril, the
-Grand Duchess Victoria Feodorovna, sought the Sovereign on her own
-initiative, and tried to make him realise the great unpopularity of
-his consort, Nicholas II. interrupted her with the exclamation: “What
-has Alice got to do with politics? She is only a sister of mercy, and
-nothing else. And in regard to her so-called unpopularity, what you say
-is not exact.”
-
-He then proceeded to show his cousin any amount of letters emanating
-from wounded soldiers, who thanked the Empress for the care which she
-had taken of them, letters of which not a single one was genuine,
-and which had been manufactured at the instigation of Sturmer and
-Protopopoff. The truth of the matter was that the wounded and sick
-in the different hospitals visited by Alexandra Feodorovna, did not
-at all harbour kind feelings in regard to her, as they reproached
-her with giving all her care and attention to the German prisoners,
-to the detriment of her own soldiers. And among other stories which
-were related concerning those visits of hers, there was one which had
-obtained a wide circulation. It was related that one day the Empress,
-talking to a wounded officer who had been brought to her own hospital
-at Tsarskoie Selo, had asked him the name of the German regiment
-against which he had been fighting. The officer had replied that it was
-a Hessian regiment, upon which Alexandra Feodorovna had turned her back
-upon him, and had left the room in a violent rage which she had not
-even tried to control or to dissimulate.
-
-The Grand Duchess Victoria was not discouraged by the manner in
-which her disclosures had been received by Nicholas II., and she had
-attempted to discuss the subject with the Empress, but the latter, at
-her first words, had stopped her with the remark: “The people whom you
-advise us to take into our confidence, are the enemies of the dynasty.
-I have been for twenty-two years upon the throne, and I know Russia
-well. We are beloved by the nation, and no one will ever dare raise
-his hand against us. All this opposition about which you are talking
-proceeds from a few aristocratic bridge players, and is devoid of any
-importance.” After this, there was nothing to be done but to allow
-events to take their course, and to proceed.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, Underwood & Underwood, N. Y._
-
-MEETING ADDRESSED BY NIKOLAI LENINE IN FRONT OF WINTER PALACE,
-PETROGRAD]
-
-They were to develop far quicker than one could have imagined. The
-army had begun to discuss the position, and to comment upon it. Every
-one who had watched the march of affairs during the last months, felt
-that something was going to happen, but no one knew what it would be,
-or wished even to know it, so general was the discouragement that had
-taken hold of the public mind. There was, however, one factor left,
-which towered over the whole of the situation; that was the sincere
-desire on the part of the different political parties to try and keep
-back as long as possible a crisis which was recognised to have become
-inevitable, but which no one wished to see hastened. This feeling was
-such a general one that a member of the Duma, who for family reasons
-had come for a few days to Stockholm where I was residing at the time
-just before the Revolution, told me that no one had been more surprised
-than he when the news had reached him that it had broken out, because,
-though he had been convinced it was going to produce itself, yet he
-had never believed that it could take place so soon.
-
-Whilst this fearful storm was brooding on the horizon and getting
-nearer and nearer to him with each day that passed, Nicholas II.
-refused to listen to the thunder which was already resounding close
-to his ears, and was getting more and more determined to persist in
-the fatal resolution of holding his own against the tempest, and if
-necessary of using force in order to conjure and to subdue it. If ever
-the old Latin proverb, “Quod Deus vult perdere, prius dementat,” has
-ever been realised, it was in the case of this unfortunate Sovereign,
-who had fallen into the hands of an ambitious, cold woman, devoid
-of intelligence and of scruples, and incapable of appreciating the
-character of the people over whom she had been called upon to reign,
-and of whom she had been unable to conquer either the esteem, the
-respect or the affection, during the quarter of a century that she had
-lived in its midst.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-
-This discredited Monarch, and his hated and despised Empress, by
-whom were they surrounded during those eventful days which preceded
-their fall? Who were the people whom they trusted, and on whom they
-relied? Whom do we see advising them? Only a handful of flatterers,
-of sycophants, always ready to turn against him and to betray them at
-the first opportunity, together with Ministers devoid of any political
-sense, and without any knowledge or comprehension of the position
-into which the country had been allowed to drift; without any courage
-or energy, incapable of imposing themselves or their opinions upon
-the masses, and of convincing them of the soundness of their views;
-incapable even of subduing these masses by the use of sheer force.
-Apart from these flatterers and these weak advisers, whom could
-Nicholas II. and his Consort trust and believe in? Whom had they got
-beside them? A discontented army, that was too thoroughly weary of
-seeing itself neglected and passed over like a negligible quantity,
-whilst it was fighting for dear life on the frontiers, and who had lost
-all wish to go on with what appeared to it to have become a hopeless
-struggle; a few functionaries who cared for nothing but their own
-advantage or advancement; a handful of adventurers in quest of places,
-influence and riches, especially of the latter; a police always ready
-to listen to every kind of low denunciation; that had abused its power,
-that had destroyed, thanks to its criminal activity, every sense of
-personal security in the nation, and that prosecuted only those who
-did not pay it sufficiently to leave them alone. Blackmailers, spies,
-and valets; this was all that was left to the Czar of All the Russias,
-to watch over him. They were the only people on whom he could rely,
-and even they would only remain faithful to him as long as the supreme
-power would remain, at least nominally, in his hands. His family, as
-we have seen, detested the Empress, and was ready and prepared to side
-against him on the first notice of his downfall, which it effectively
-did. What was left in Petrograd of aristocracy had withdrawn itself
-from him, lamenting over evils which it knew itself powerless to allay,
-and had come to the sad conclusion that the further it kept from
-Tsarskoie Selo the better it would be for everybody. The Emperor stood
-alone, forsaken by all those who under different circumstances would
-have considered themselves but too honoured to die for him, let alone
-defend him against his foes. Alexandra Feodorovna had created a desert
-around her husband, and, thanks to her, there was hardly a Russian left
-in the world who did not for some reason or other curse the Sovereign
-whom Providence had destined to become in all human probability the
-last of the Romanoff’s crowned in Moscow. Nicholas II. imagined that
-he could rely on the devotion and the loyalty of his army. He forgot
-that this army was no longer the one that had acclaimed him with such
-enthusiasm at the beginning of the war. Most of the officers who had
-been in command of it at the time had fallen on some battle field or
-other; the soldiers too had disappeared, and the young recruits who had
-taken their place had been reared in different ideas, and were ignorant
-of the old discipline which had inspired the former regiments whose
-original contingents had been slain. The army had become a national
-one from the Imperialist it had been before; it was composed of the
-same elements of discontented minds who before they had been called
-to the colours had freely discussed the conditions under which the
-war was being fought, and who had noticed better than it would have
-been possible for them to do at the front, the mistakes of those in
-command, the remorseless dilapidation of the Public Exchequer which was
-going on everywhere, together with all the faults and the carelessness
-that had brought about all the disasters which had fallen upon the
-nation. This army could no longer nurse, in regard to the Czar, the
-veneration and almost religious respect which had animated it in
-earlier days. It had perceived at last that he was not at the height
-of the duties and responsibilities which had devolved upon him, and as
-a natural consequence of the fall of the scales from its eyes it had
-sided against him, together with the Duma, from which it was hoping
-and expecting the salvation which its masters of the present hour were
-unable to procure for it.
-
-But whilst the whole of Russia was aware of this state of things,
-Nicholas II. alone refused to see it. He felt afraid of appearing as
-the weak man that he really was; he refused all the urgent entreaties
-which were addressed to him, to appeal to his people, and to appoint
-a popular and responsible Ministry, capable once he had called it to
-power of requiring from him the fulfilment of his former promises,
-which he had determined beforehand never to keep. He threw himself from
-right to left, and from left to right, in quest of councillors after
-his own heart, or rather after the heart of the Empress, because it was
-she who finally decided everything; and he changed his Ministers with
-a facility which was the more deplorable that those of the morrow did
-not differ from the ones whom he had dismissed the day before, until at
-last, thanks to his irresolution and to his obstinacy, he contrived to
-discredit, not only in Russia, but also abroad and among his Allies,
-the government of which he was the head, together with his own person
-and the great Imperial might which he personified. At last even the
-extreme conservative parties, who until then had been on his side,
-joined the ranks of his enemies, and this defection of theirs made the
-disaster an irremediable one, and the fatal catastrophe inevitable.
-
-England at this moment made an effort to save the Czar, together with
-his dynasty. Lord Milner, who had repaired to Petrograd to attend the
-conference of the Allies which was being held there, tried to open
-the eyes of Nicholas II. as to the dangers which surrounded him, and
-to persuade him to grant at last a constitutional government to his
-people, and to entrust the interests of the country to a Cabinet in
-possession of its confidence. His representations proved absolutely
-useless. The Emperor replied to him that if the troubled state of
-public opinion persisted, he would establish a military dictature. He
-forgot in saying so that in order to carry an attempt of the kind it
-is indispensable to have at one’s hand a man strong enough to accept
-the responsibility of such a post, and an army faithful and loyal
-enough to back him up. Protopopoff, whom the Empress consulted as to
-the wisdom of the decision which Lord Milner had implored the Czar to
-take, declared that he thought it would be an extremely dangerous one
-to adopt, and that the only thing which could and ought to be done,
-in the present circumstances, was to resort to rigorous measures; to
-prorogue the Duma and the Council of State; and to repress without
-the least mercy every demonstration against the government. He added
-that he was quite ready to assume the responsibility of the repression
-which he advised, and if the necessity for doing so presented itself,
-to give orders to the police to fire on the crowds. At the same time
-he inundated the capital, and even the provinces, with a whole army of
-spies, whose only occupation consisted in denouncing to him all the
-people who did not pay them sufficiently well to leave them alone. A
-kind of committee of public safety, such as had existed in France at
-the time of the Terror, became, thanks to Mr. Protopopoff, the sole
-master of the Russian Empire, and it disposed, according to its fancy,
-of the existence as well as of the property and liberty of the most
-peaceful citizens. During one night, fifty workmen belonging to the
-group that was sitting in the industrial war committee, entrusted with
-the fabrication of ammunitions, as representatives of the labour party,
-were arrested, without any other apparent reason than the fact that
-they had allowed themselves to discuss in public the debates which had
-taken place in the Duma, and had been overheard by some spy or other.
-
-This Assembly had met on the 27th of February, 1917, as had already
-been settled before the resignation of Mr. Sturmer, and the appointment
-of Prince Galitzyne as Prime Minister in his place. It became evident
-from the very first day the Session was opened that most violent
-discussions were about to take place, and that the government
-would never be able to command a majority, because even the ultra
-Conservatives who had backed it up before had forsaken it. One more
-reason for discontent with it had arisen: the almost total lack of food
-in Petrograd, where, thanks to the mismanagement of the railways and
-the lack of tracks, no provisions of any kind could arrive. Riots of
-a more or less serious character took place in different quarters of
-the town; the population clamoured for bread, and broke the windows
-in the bakers’ and butchers’ shops, wherever it could do so. This
-was one more complication added to all those already existing. The
-Duma thought it indispensable to make an energetic manifestation of
-its want of confidence in the government’s power to grapple with the
-difficulties of the situation. The parties composing the moderate left,
-together with the Cadets that had recently united themselves into one
-group denominated the “Bloc,” declared by the mouth of their leader,
-Mr. Chidlovsky, that it was indispensable to call together a Cabinet
-comprising really national elements, in possession of the confidence
-of the country as well as that of the Sovereign, because the one in
-existence was entirely discredited, even among its former supporters.
-During the debates which followed upon this motion, the socialist
-deputies, among others Mr. Tcheidze, expressed themselves in most
-violent terms, and said, among other things, that the government then
-in power would never understand the wishes or the needs of the nation,
-or become reconciled with it, and that between it and the country there
-existed an abyss which nothing in the world could ever fill. It had
-against it the whole of Russia, and it had done nothing and was doing
-nothing to smooth over the difficulties which it had itself created,
-and for which it was alone responsible. And Mr. Tcheidze concluded his
-speech by expressing his conviction that a compromise was no longer
-possible, and that only a great national movement of revolt could
-overturn the Cabinet and replace it by another one better able to
-understand the needs of the country and of the army.
-
-One of the leaders of the extreme right who, up to that time,
-had been famous for his reactionary opinions and sympathies, Mr.
-Pourichkievitsch, went even further than his socialist colleague,
-and proceeded to sketch the character of Mr. Protopopoff, accusing
-him of spending his time in suspecting everybody (the zemstvos, the
-aristocracy, the Duma, and even the Council of State) of conspiracies
-against his person, and of meditating the suppression of these two
-institutions within a short time. Mr. Pourichkievitsch added that in
-what concerned the Duma he was personally convinced that it would
-prefer a dissolution to the alternative of a blind submission to a
-tyrant like the Minister of the Interior, and of keeping silent when it
-knew that the Fatherland was in danger.
-
-Another speaker of great talent, Mr Efremoff, said that he had come
-with great regret to the conclusion that all means at the disposal of
-a parliamentary assembly to fight the government had been exhausted,
-and that the whole country was a prey to deep dissatisfaction with the
-existing order of things. It was high time, he added, that the system
-which had ruled Russia for such a long time should give way before a
-responsible cabinet, the constitution of which was claimed imperatively
-by public opinion. It was only such a cabinet that would be able to
-encourage the country to go on with the struggle in which it found
-itself engaged, against a foe who had obtained so many advantages over
-it, thanks to the mistakes and to the crimes of the administration
-represented by Mr. Protopopoff, and by his friends.
-
-But it was the leader of the Cadets, Mr. Miliukoff, the greatest
-statesman that Russia possesses at the present moment, who dealt the
-last blow to the Ministry, thanks to the acerb criticisms which he
-addressed to the Sovereign and to the latter’s advisers, and to his
-indignant protest against the arbitrary imprisonment of the delegates
-of the workmen of Petrograd, who had been chosen by them to represent
-their interests in the industrial war commission. The vice president
-of this commission, Mr. Konovaloff, joined him in this protest, whilst
-another deputy belonging to the extreme left, whose name was to become
-famous very soon, Mr. Kerensky, in language of a violence such as had
-never been heard before in the Duma, prophesied that the time would
-soon come when this Duma would find itself compelled to fight for its
-rights and for the liberty of the nation, and would adopt decisive
-measures to put an end to the danger which was threatening the great
-work of the national defence, if it was allowed to remain in the hands
-and under the control of people who had so badly understood its claims
-and its necessities.
-
-After these debates, during which had been voted by an immense majority
-the immediate release of the arrested workmen, Mr. Protopopoff rushed
-to Tsarskoie Selo, the metropolitan Pitirim, and Mr. Sturmer (who had
-remained a persona grata at Court, notwithstanding the fact that he
-had been compelled to resign his former functions of Prime Minister)
-accompanied him. A conference took place between them and the Empress,
-towards the close of which Nicholas II. was asked to come in and
-to listen to the decisions that had been arrived at, which he was
-requested to sanction. This conference decided that the negotiations
-already engaged with Germany in view of the conclusion of a separate
-peace should be hastened; that the Duma should be prorogued for an
-indefinite period of time, and the police armed with machine guns, in
-order to be able to crush at once, by a display of its forces, every
-popular manifestation that might be attempted in favour of a change of
-government, should such manifestation take place in the capital.
-
-Here I am touching in this short sketch of the Russian Revolution
-upon a point which is still dark, the point concerning this separate
-peace with Germany, about which there arose at that time so much
-talk in Petrograd. The idea of a step of that kind, which would have
-constituted an arrant treason in regard to the Allies of Russia, had
-been conceived first in the brain of Mr. Sturmer, to whom most probably
-it had been suggested by his confidential friend and secretary, Mr.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, about whom I have already spoken in the first
-part of this book, and who, after the murder of Rasputin, had been
-finally brought to trial and sentenced to eighteen months hard labour
-for blackmail. He had always been in the employ of Germany, and he
-had spoken to his patron of the necessity for putting an end to a war
-which, if it went on much longer, might endanger the very existence of
-the dynasty. Mr. Sturmer had also sympathies for the “Vaterland,” and
-he was but too glad to act according to the hints which were given to
-him by a man in whom he had every confidence. He found an unexpected
-ally in Rasputin, who in his turn induced the Empress through Madame
-Vyroubieva to rally herself to his opinion, which was a relatively easy
-thing to do, considering the fact that she had been already, of her
-own accord, working towards a reconciliation between the Romanoffs and
-the Hohenzollerns, the only people whom she thought of any consequence
-in the whole affair. The difficulty consisted, however, in finding
-a person willing and disposed to act as intermediary in so grave a
-matter. Rasputin knew Protopopoff, discussed the subject with him, and
-found him quite ready to enter into the views which he expounded to
-him.
-
-At that time Mr. Protopopoff was vice president of the Duma. No
-one knew exactly how he had contrived to secure his election as
-such, considering his reputation of reactionary and especially of
-opportunist. He had, however, succeeded in getting himself appointed,
-and the fact that he held this position gave him a certain weight and
-prestige abroad. He was given very precise instructions as to what he
-was to do, and started with several of his colleagues of the Duma for
-England, under the pretext of returning the visit which some members
-of the English House of Commons had paid to Petrograd a few months
-earlier. On his way back, he stopped at Stockholm as I have already
-related, conferred there with an agent of the German Foreign Office
-called Mr. Warburg, and settled with him the conditions under which an
-eventual peace could be concluded. After this Protopopoff returned to
-Russia, where, however, the story of his Swedish intrigues had already
-become known so that he was awarded a very poor welcome by his friends.
-People believed then that his political career had come to an end,
-when, just at this juncture, the most important post in the Russian
-Empire, that of Minister of the Interior, became vacant, thanks to the
-dismissal of Mr. Chvostoff who had tried to get rid of Rasputin with
-the help of the monk Illiodore, and, to the general stupefaction of the
-world, the place was offered to Mr. Protopopoff by the Empress herself.
-
-By that time one had become used in Russia to every possible surprise
-in regard to the appointment of Ministers, and nothing that could
-happen in that line astonished those (and they were legion) who knew
-that it was a gang of adventurers that was ruling the country. The rise
-of Mr. Protopopoff was not therefore considered by them as something
-out of the way, but in parliamentary circles it gave rise to deep
-indignation; an indignation which eventually found its way into the
-press, where, however, it was very quickly suppressed by the censor,
-and also in the various speeches uttered in the Duma, during which
-allusions were made for the first time to the unhealthy influence
-exercised by the Empress over her husband.
-
-The former was triumphant. As soon as she became aware of the
-conditions under which the German government would consent to conclude
-peace with Russia, she set herself, in conjunction with her friends,
-to try to persuade Nicholas II. that his duty in regard to his people
-required him to put an end to a hopeless conflict during which the best
-blood in Russia was being spilt for a cause doomed beforehand. She made
-him observe that if the war went on much longer, the revolutionary
-elements in the country would wax stronger, in proportion to the
-sacrifices entailed upon the nation, and that it was quite possible,
-the latter, exasperated by their magnitude, would attempt to get
-rid of a government that had not succeeded in restoring to it the
-tranquillity which it so sorely needed. It did not take her a long
-time to convert the Czar to her point of view, and the negotiations
-officiously inaugurated by Mr. Protopopoff were officially continued by
-him together with Mr. Sturmer, whom Alexandra Feodorovna personally
-entreated to assume their direction in conjunction with her own self.
-
-In spite of the extreme secrecy which had presided at these different
-conferences between the Empress and her favourites, something of their
-purport had transpired among the general public, and threats had been
-proferred against those who had accepted to play the sad part of Judas
-in regard to their country. These threats had been whispered in the
-corridors of the Duma, and Mr. Protopopoff had been informed of their
-purport by his spies. It became therefore one of his principal aims
-to get rid of an opposition which, he knew but too well, would only
-increase in violence as well as in importance as the sorry work he was
-bent upon performing would come out in the light of day and become
-known to his numerous adversaries. Apart from this, he thought it
-would be better to present himself later on before the Duma with an
-accomplished fact behind him. He therefore persuaded the Empress that
-whilst he would be pressing with the utmost speed the negotiations
-with the Kaiser, begun already, it would be advisable to bring from
-the front a considerable number of troops to Petrograd, so as to be
-able with their help to crush any effort at resistance attempted either
-by the population of the capital or by its garrison, about whose
-state of mind the minister did not feel quite sure. The Cabinet was
-so badly informed, in spite of its numerous spies, of what was going
-on in the army that it imagined the latter would only feel grateful
-and happy to see the campaign come to an end and be able to go back
-to its homes, and that in consequence it would lend itself with the
-greatest pleasure to any attempt made by the Monarch and the government
-to put an end to a struggle for which it did not feel any longer any
-enthusiasm at heart.
-
-The men who reasoned thus were absolutely mistaken. The army had made
-up its mind to win the war; the workmen whose importance was increasing
-with every day that went by, also wished it, because they hoped that
-out of this victory they were longing for might result a radical change
-in the form of the administration they had begun to despise more and
-more as its incapacity became more and more apparent. The person of
-the Czar did not inspire respect or enthusiasm any longer, but on the
-other hand love for the Fatherland had made considerable progress
-since the beginning of the war, and the national sentiment which, up
-to that time, had only existed in the state of an Utopia had become a
-reality, especially since one had perceived the great strength which it
-had communicated to Russia’s allies, to France among others, where the
-Republic, which many people were already seeing loom in the distance as
-a possibility in the land of the Czars, had inspired so much patriotism
-to its citizens.
-
-Neither Mr. Sturmer, nor Mr. Protopopoff, nor those who shared their
-opinions and their views, were able to understand what was going on
-in the heart and in the soul of the Russian nation. They were far
-too much absorbed in their own petty, personal interests, to be able
-to give a thought to such a subject. For them the conclusion of a
-peace with Germany meant the strengthening of their influence and of
-their power, together with honours, dignities, and the possibility
-to enrich themselves, and to have a few more stars attached to the
-golden embroideries of their uniforms. It meant also the possibility
-of getting rid once for all of this spectre of a responsible ministry,
-of which they stood in such dread. They therefore threw themselves in
-the struggle against the Duma with an ardour that grew as they saw the
-increasing difficulties with which the accomplishment of their designs
-was going to encounter in that Assembly, and, as a first step in the
-course of action they had determined to follow, they submitted to the
-signature of Nicholas II. the fatal decree which prorogued the Duma
-together with the Council of State, and which was to give the signal
-for the conflagration of which they were to become themselves the first
-victims.
-
-Traitors are always to be found in hours of great national peril. Among
-the people who resided in the palace of Tsarskoie Selo, there was a
-person who, becoming acquainted by chance of what was going on there,
-rushed to communicate the news which he had heard to Mr. Kerensky, the
-leader of the extreme left party in the Duma. The latter did not lose
-one moment in communicating to his colleague the news which had come to
-his knowledge, and also to the president of the Assembly, Mr. Rodzianko.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Photograph, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-ALEXANDER KERENSKY]
-
-Mr. Rodzianko was about the last man whom one would have suspected of
-being possessed of the necessary determination to resort to a “Coup
-d’Etat.” He was a Chamberlain of the Czar; he had been brought up in
-monarchical traditions, and during his whole life he had submitted
-to the one which, in Russia, placed the Sovereign in the light of
-something holy and sacred before his subjects. He was respected but
-did not enjoy an immense authority in the Chamber that had never
-taken quite kindly to him, not thinking him possessed of sufficient
-courage to fight its battles with efficiency. It is probable that
-he felt terrified rather than anything else, at the prospect which
-the communication of Mr. Kerensky opened before him, but things
-had advanced too far for him to be able to withdraw. There was no
-alternative left but to perish oneself, or to destroy others. Mr.
-Rodzianko called together a meeting of several deputies belonging to
-the moderate parties, with whom he discussed the situation. They very
-quickly came to the conclusion that if one entered into a struggle
-with the government in this all important question of war and peace,
-one would be backed up by the whole country, which did not wish to see
-the war come to an end until the enemy had been driven out of Russian
-territory. There was also another thing which added itself to all the
-different questions roused by the discovery of the intentions of the
-Court. It was the determination of the radical groups of the Duma to
-proceed to the “Coup d’Etat” on their own accord, and no matter under
-what conditions, with or without the help of the moderate elements
-in the Assembly. This might have become extremely dangerous, as they
-had behind them the whole mass of the working population of the
-capital. The question had therefore to be considered as to whether
-the Revolution was to be made with the concurrence of all the parties
-represented in the Duma, or by the radical socialists alone, who,
-in the latter case, would have become the absolute masters of the
-situation, and might have pressed for the immediate proclamation of
-a Republic which could easily have degenerated into an anarchy, and
-which in the best of cases would have lacked the necessary dignity,
-capable of giving it prestige and authority at home and abroad. Mr.
-Rodzianko found himself placed in the presence of a dilemma of a most
-difficult kind and nature. He took the only decision possible under the
-circumstances, he boldly placed himself at the head of the movement
-and constituted a provisional government, in place of the one that had
-foundered under the weight of the contempt of the whole nation.
-
-The first thing that was done by the Duma was to refuse to disperse and
-to resist the ukaze of the Czar that had prorogued its debates for an
-indefinite time. The socialist deputies went about trying to get the
-population of Petrograd to join in the vast movement of revolt they
-meant to bring about. The latter was but too willing to do so, and the
-want of provisions was the pretext which the people took to organise
-vast meetings, and a strike in all the factories. Great masses of men
-and women paraded the streets, and were dispersed by a formidable
-police force which had been assembled by Mr. Protopopoff and armed with
-machine guns that were used against the crowds, whenever these did not
-obey immediately the injunctions to disperse given to them by special
-constables and Cossacks gathered together in all the principal streets
-and squares of the capital. The regular troops had been consigned in
-their barracks and ordered to keep themselves ready to lend a hand
-to the police. But the unexpected happened. The soldiers had been
-worked upon by delegates from the workmen, and they declared that they
-would not obey orders, should any be given to them, to fire upon the
-populace assembled in the streets. The latter seemed quite sure of
-impunity, because notwithstanding the preparations made by the police
-to quell the revolutionary movement, the existence of which was already
-recognised everywhere, it refused to disperse, and on the contrary
-proceeded to commit the only acts of violence which were performed
-during the course of the mutiny. It threw itself on the prisons where
-political offenders were confined, plundered and burned them, and
-liberated their inmates. A few other excesses were performed, upon
-which the Duma constituted itself an executive committee, which assumed
-the task of restoring order in Petrograd.
-
-In the meanwhile, the Czar who had been kept in total ignorance of what
-was going on in the capital, had left Tsarskoie Selo for headquarters,
-after having signed the prorogation of the Chambers. In his absence,
-it was the Empress who was left sole mistress of the situation, and
-it is to her and to Protopopoff that were due all the attempts at
-repression which happily for all parties concerned were not allowed to
-be executed, at least not in their entirety.
-
-Mr. Rodzianko telegraphed to the Czar. He informed him that the
-position was getting extremely serious, that the population of
-Petrograd was absolutely without any food, that riots were taking
-place, and that the troops were firing at one another. He implored
-the Sovereign in the interests of the dynasty to send away Protopopoff
-and his crew, and he drew his notice to the fact that every hour was
-precious, and that every delay might bring about a catastrophe. At the
-same time he telegraphed to the principal commanders at the front,
-asking them to uphold his request for a responsible government capable
-of putting an end to the complete anarchy that was reigning in the
-capital, an anarchy which threatened to extend itself all over the
-country. The commanders replied that they would do what he asked them
-to perform. Nicholas II. alone made no sign. It was related afterwards
-that he had telegraphed to the Empress, asking her what she advised
-him to do. But it is more likely that the telegram of the President of
-the Duma was never handed to him. Mr. Rodzianko, however, sent another
-despatch to headquarters which contained the following warning: “The
-position is getting more and more alarming. It is indispensable to take
-measures to put an end to it, or to-morrow it may be too late. This
-is the last moment during which may be decided the fate of the nation
-and of the dynasty.” To this message also no reply was received. The
-Czar seemed unable to understand the gravity of the situation. Others
-did, however, in his place, and on that same day, the 12th of March,
-the troops composing the garrison of Petrograd went over to the cause
-of the Revolution. They marched to the Duma in a long procession,
-beginning with the Volynsky regiment, one of the crack ones in the
-army, to which joined themselves almost immediately the famous
-Preobragensky Guards, and they declared themselves ready to stand by
-the side of the new government. The President of the Duma received
-them, and declared to them that the executive committee which had been
-constituted was going to appoint a provisional government; of the Czar,
-there was no longer any question. It had become evident that his army
-would no longer support his authority or fight for him and for his
-dynasty. Soon the troops composing the garrisons of Tsarskoie Selo,
-Peterhof, and Gatschina left their quarters and joined the mutineers.
-The Revolution had become an accomplished fact.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-REVOLUTIONARY CROWD IN PETROGRAD]
-
-The new executive committee displayed considerable patriotism at this
-juncture. It might have provoked enormous enthusiasm in its favour had
-it revealed what it knew concerning the peace negotiations entered into
-by the Empress, but this might have given a pretext for explosions
-of wrath on the part of the mob, which could easily have ended in
-excesses, compromising the dignity of the Revolution. It therefore
-decided to keep back from the public its knowledge on this subject, and
-contented itself with arresting the ministers, and all the persons whom
-it suspected of having lent themselves to this intrigue, and it simply
-empowered two members of the Duma, Mr. Goutschkoff and Mr. Schoulguine,
-to proceed to Pskov, where it was known that the Emperor had arrived
-the day before, to ask the latter to abdicate in favour of his son.
-Nicholas II. in the meanwhile had arrived at headquarters which were
-then in Mohilev, and where no one seemed to know anything about what
-was going on in Petrograd. None of the people about him even suspected
-that a storm was brewing which would overturn in a few hours a power
-which they considered far too formidable for anything to be able to
-shake. The only person who was kept informed of the course which events
-were taking was the head of the Staff, General Alexieieff, who had
-been won over from the very first to the cause of the Revolution, and
-who, if one is to believe all that one hears, played all the time a
-double game. It was he who received all the telegrams addressed to
-the Emperor, and who communicated them to him. The latter at last was
-shaken out of his equanimity, and gave orders to prepare his train
-to return to Tsarskoie Selo. He took this decision in consequence
-of a message from the commander of the Palace, addressed to General
-Voyeikoff the head of the Okhrana, where the latter was advised that
-the presence of the Sovereign was necessary, because the troops of the
-garrison in the Imperial residence had mutineed, and the safety of the
-Empress and of her children was endangered. But in spite of the orders
-given to press the departure of the Imperial train it somehow could not
-be got ready as quickly as was generally the case, so that it was only
-during the night from the 12th to the 13th of March, that it started
-at last. It went the usual route as far as the station of Lichoslav,
-where it was met with the news that a revolutionary government had been
-formed at Petrograd which had seized the railway lines and appointed
-a deputy to take them in charge. Another telegram from the military
-station master of the Nicholas station in Petrograd instructed the
-officials at Lichoslav to send the Imperial train to Petrograd, and not
-to Tsarskoie Selo. This was communicated to General Voyeikoff, who,
-however, gave directions not to heed this warning, but to proceed to
-Tsarskoie Selo, as had been arranged at first. At twelve o’clock at
-night the Imperial train reached Bologoie. There a railway official
-informed the persons in charge of it that Tosno and Lioubane were in
-possession of the troops which had mutineed against the government, and
-that it might be dangerous to proceed any further. General Voyeikoff
-would not listen to this advice, and the train went on to the station
-of Vichera, where it had perforce to stop. The General was told that
-the first train which always preceded the one in which the Sovereign
-was travelling had been seized by the insurgents, and the members of
-the Imperial suite who were travelling in it had been arrested and
-conveyed under escort to Petrograd.
-
-The Czar was awakened. General Voyeikoff informed him that it was
-impossible to proceed to Tsarskoie Selo, because the railway line was
-in the hands of the revolutionaries. It was then decided to go to
-Pskov, where commanded General Roussky, on whose fidelity the Sovereign
-believed that he might rely.
-
-But Roussky had been won over to the cause of the Duma, notwithstanding
-the fact that he had been loaded with favours by Nicholas II. When the
-latter reached Pskov, where the General met him at the railway station,
-the troops there had already been sworn over by their commander
-in favour of the Revolution, and were quite ready to enforce its
-decisions. The Czar knew nothing about this, and after a few moments’
-conversation with Roussky, who acquainted him superficially with the
-spirit reigning in the army, he declared to him that he consented to
-call together a responsible Cabinet chosen out of the principal leaders
-of the different parties in the Duma. But the General replied that
-he feared this concession came too late, and that it would no longer
-satisfy the country or the army.
-
-On the 15th of March, Roussky succeeded in talking over the telephone
-with Rodzianko, whom he informed of the details of his conversation
-with Nicholas II. The president of the Duma then told him that the
-former must decide to abdicate in favour of his son. They spoke for
-more than two hours, and before their talk had come to an end, Roussky
-had promised to do all that lay within his power, even to resort to
-violence if need be, to further the views of the new government that
-had taken up the supreme authority in Russia. He went then to make his
-report to the Emperor, after which the latter signified his intention
-to resign his throne to his little boy. The telegram announcing
-this resolution, however, was not sent to Petrograd, because in the
-meanwhile there had reached Pskov the news that the two delegates sent
-by the Executive Committee, Mr. Goutschkoff, and Mr. Schoulguine, had
-started on their way thither, in order to confer personally with the
-Czar.
-
-At ten o’clock in the evening of that same day, the 15th of March, they
-reached Pskov. Their intention had been to confer at first with General
-Roussky, but an Imperial aide de camp met them on the platform, and
-asked them to follow him immediately into the presence of Nicholas
-II. The latter received them in his railway carriage. With him were
-old Count Fredericks, the Minister of his household, and a favourite
-aide de camp, General Narischkine. Nothing in the appearance of the
-Emperor could have led any one to suppose that something extraordinary
-was happening to him. He was as impassible as was his wont in all the
-important occasions of his life, and he shook hands with the delegates
-as if nothing whatever was the matter, asking them to sit down. He
-motioned Goutschkoff to a chair beside him, and Schoulguine opposite.
-Fredericks and Narischkine stood at some distance from the group, and
-Roussky, who came in uninvited at that moment, placed himself next to
-Schoulguine.
-
-Goutschkoff was the first one to speak. He was extremely agitated
-and could only control his feelings with difficulty, keeping his
-eyes riveted on the table and not daring to lift them up to the face
-of the Sovereign whose crown he had come to demand. But his speech
-was perfectly correct, and contained nothing that could have been
-interpreted in an offensive way. He exposed the whole situation, such
-as it was, and concluded by saying that the only possible manner to
-come out of it would be the abdication of the Czar in favour of his
-son under the regency of the former’s brother, the Grand Duke Michael
-Alexandrovitsch.
-
-At this juncture Roussky could not restrain his impatience, and,
-bending down towards Schoulguine, murmured in his ear: “This is already
-quite settled.”
-
-When Goutschkoff had finished his speech, Nicholas II. replied in a
-perfectly quiet and composed tone of voice:
-
-“I thought the matter over yesterday, and to-day, and I have made up my
-mind to abdicate. Until three o’clock I was ready to do so in favour of
-my son, but then I came to the conclusion that I could not part from
-him.”
-
-He stopped for a few moments, then went on:
-
-“I hope that you will understand this,” and after another pause he
-continued:
-
-“On that account, I have decided to abdicate in favour of my brother.”
-
-The delegates looked at each other, and Schoulguine remarked that they
-were not prepared for this complication, and that he begged permission
-to consult with his colleague. But after a short conversation they
-gave up the point, as Goutschkoff remarked that he did not think they
-had the right to mix themselves up in a matter where paternal feelings
-and affection came into question, and that besides a regency had also
-much to say against it, and was likely to lead to complications. The
-Emperor seemed satisfied that the delegates had conceded the point, and
-then he asked them whether they could undertake to guarantee that his
-abdication would pacify the country and not lead to any disturbances.
-They declared that they could do so. Upon this he got up and passed
-into another compartment of his railway carriage. In about half an hour
-he returned, holding in his hand a folded paper, which he handed over
-to Goutschkoff, saying as he did so: “Here is my abdication, will you
-read it?” After which he shook hands with the delegates and retired as
-if nothing unusual had happened, perhaps not realising that with one
-stroke of his pen he had changed not only his own life, but the course
-of Russian history, and, in a certain sense, destroyed the work of his
-glorious ancestor, Peter the Great.
-
-It is difficult here not to make some remark on the part played by
-General Roussky in this tragedy which without his interference would
-probably have taken a different course. It is impossible not to come to
-the conclusion that the unfortunate Czar whom he induced to abdicate,
-might have found better and more faithful servants than the people who
-forsook him in the hour of his peril. Very probably Roussky believed
-that he was acting in the interests of his country, which in a sense
-he was also doing, because something had to be attempted in order to
-stop the nefarious work of Alexandra Feodorovna, and it is certain
-that her husband would never willingly have consented to be parted
-from her. Killing a woman would have been disgracing oneself, together
-with the Revolution which had been accomplished under such exceptional
-circumstances; but still one would have preferred that the man who was
-instrumental in the destruction of the Romanoff dynasty should not have
-been one who wore on his epaulettes the initials of the Sovereign he
-was helping to dethrone. One would have liked him to feel some pity for
-the master whose hand he had kissed a few days before he presented to
-him the pen with which he ordered him to sign his own degradation. In
-spite of the impassibility preserved by Nicholas II. during the last
-hours of his reign, it is likely that the tragedy which took place at
-Pskov must have been one of the most poignant that has ever assailed
-a Sovereign, who, after having reigned for twenty-two years, found
-himself, in the course of a few hours, reduced to utter powerlessness
-and compelled to give up of his own accord the crown which his father
-had bequeathed to him, and which he had hoped to leave in his turn to
-the son, whom fate and perhaps a mistaken feeling of affection had made
-him despoil. He was not a bad man after all, although he had done many
-a bad action; he was a tender father, and the thought of his child must
-have added to the moral agony of his soul. By what means he was induced
-to put his name at the bottom of the document which snatched away from
-him the sceptre which he had dropped on his coronation day in Moscow,
-remains still a mystery. Whether violence was used, or whether he was
-persuaded by the eloquence of Roussky alone to give up the inheritance
-of his race, is a thing which the future alone will reveal to us. It
-is probable that he found himself compelled to come to his decision in
-some way or other, and perhaps the threat to reveal the treason against
-his allies in which he had participated, and which had been the work of
-the Empress, was the most powerful argument which was used to oblige
-him to sign his abdication. It was after all better to fall as a weak
-man than to be covered with shame in the eyes of the world. He was
-perhaps told to choose between degradation and dishonour, and he cannot
-be blamed if he refused to resign himself to the latter.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-
-The abdication of Nicholas II. was but one of the acts of a drama the
-end of which is awaited with anxiety not only in Russia, but in the
-whole of the world. Like everything else that he had ever done, it was
-not performed in time, and it was badly executed. His own selfishness,
-together with that of his wife, had brought about catastrophes which it
-would have been relatively easy to avoid, by displaying a small amount
-of political tact, good sense, and knowledge of the real requirements
-of the Russian people. If the Czar had only been able to render to
-himself an account of all that was going on around him, he would in
-the interest of his dynasty have given up his son to the care of the
-nation, and allowed him to take his place under the regency of the
-Grand Duke Michael. This would have left Russia with a Czar, and not
-allowed the people to see that they could very well exist without
-one, which, as events have proved, has not been a particularly lucky
-experience for them. This would also have ensured to Nicholas II. his
-own liberty, because it is not likely that the Grand Duke Michael
-would have had his brother and sister-in-law imprisoned. But neither
-the dispossessed Monarch nor Alexandra Feodorovna were characters able
-to rise to any heights of unselfishness. She had not the faintest
-knowledge of the duties imposed upon her by her position as Empress
-of Russia, and when she was placed between the alternative of seeing
-her husband dethroned, or being compelled to give up his crown to their
-child, she suggested a third one; that of substituting for the latter
-his uncle, because she thought it would be easier for her later on
-to overturn him than an Emperor who owned her for a mother; and that
-she already contemplated the eventuality of a protest on the part of
-Nicholas II. against the abdication to which he had been compelled is a
-fact that can hardly be denied.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, Underwood & Underwood, N. Y._
-
-BOLSHEVIKI SAILORS BURIED AT MOSCOW]
-
-On the other hand the Grand Duke Michael could not have refused to act
-as Regent for his nephew, though it was, in a certain sense, natural
-for him to show some hesitation in accepting over the head of his
-brother, and of his brother’s son, the crown of their common ancestors.
-Personally the young Grand Duke did not care for power or for honours,
-and the fact that he was married to a lady not belonging to any royal
-house made it easier for him to resign himself to go on for the rest
-of his existence living as a very rich private gentleman, which he had
-done for a number of years. Pressure was also brought to bear upon
-him, in the sense that he was told by persons interested in his not
-accepting the throne that if the Constitutive Assembly which it was
-proposed to call together, would elect him as Emperor, it would put
-him later on in an easier position in regard to his nephew, the little
-Grand Duke Alexis, and perhaps even allow him to secure the possession
-of his empire to his own children after him. All these considerations
-put together decided him not to avail himself of the immediate
-opportunity which lay before him, of becoming the Czar of All the
-Russias, and his proclamation on the subject may have been a wise one
-from a personal point of view; it was, however, disastrous as regarded
-the future fate of the dynasty, and it is doubtful now whether it will
-ever be possible for a Romanoff to reign again in Russia.
-
-The men who had made the Revolution were but too well aware of this
-fact, and they proceeded, immediately after this act of Renunciation,
-to organise the government of the country on the new lines which they
-hoped and wished to follow in the future. Their lead was followed
-by the nation with an enthusiasm which was so intense that it is no
-wonder it came to collapse so soon as was the case. Russia seemed to
-have been seized with a perfect frenzy; she was like a man who after
-having been unjustly imprisoned for years does not know what to make
-of his newly acquired freedom. People were literally mad with joy, and
-inclined to find that everything their new government wished to do was
-right. Hardly a voice of discontent arose during these first weeks that
-followed upon the abdication of Nicholas II., and this absolution,
-which was granted beforehand to the Ministry that had taken into its
-hands the direction of the affairs of the country, allowed the men at
-the head of it to decide the fate of the Sovereign whom they had helped
-to overthrow, in a manner perhaps different from what would have been
-done under other circumstances.
-
-The Czar, after having parted from Mr. Goutschkoff and Mr. Schoulguine
-at Pskov, and seen them leave with his abdication for Petrograd,
-proceeded himself in his own special train to Mohilew, where the
-headquarters of the army were established. It is not easy to understand
-the reasons which induced him to do it. Perhaps he thought he would
-be in greater safety among the troops that had owned him as a chief
-but the day before than anywhere else. At that time he had not the
-slightest inkling of the treason of General Alexieieff, and he might
-have nursed the vague thought that the latter might lend himself to
-another effort to subdue the revolutionary movement which had seized
-hold so rapidly of the whole country. Others say that he wished to bid
-good-bye to his army before returning to Tsarskoie Selo to join his
-wife and family. The real motive of his determination has, however,
-not been ascertained so far, though the rumours going about at the
-time would have it that he had been invited to repair to headquarters
-by Alexieieff, who thought that it would be easier for him to keep his
-former Sovereign a prisoner there than anywhere else, until the moment
-when the new government should have decided as to what was to be done
-with him. That something of the kind must have been in his mind can
-be deduced from the fact that from the day of the return of Nicholas
-II. at Mohilew he was no longer allowed to see any of the officers
-of the Staff, or those attached to headquarters, and that the only
-person who visited him twice a day, as if to assure himself that he was
-still there, was General Alexieieff himself, and this only for a few
-minutes. It was also the general who insisted on both Count Fredericks,
-formerly Minister of the Imperial household, and General Voyeikoff,
-the head of the Okhrana, or personal police guard of the Czar, being
-sent away from Mohilew. He explained his request by saying that these
-two gentlemen were looked upon with such inimical feelings by the
-garrison and officers stationed at Mohilew, that he could not answer
-for their safety were they to remain near the Emperor. In consequence
-of this warning both of them left for Petrograd, but on their way
-thither were arrested, and conveyed under escort to the fortress of
-St. Peter and St. Paul, from whence Count Fredericks in view of his
-advanced age (he is over eighty), and of the precarious state of his
-health, was transferred to the Evangelical hospital. General Voyeikoff
-having been invited to tear off the initials of Nicholas II. from his
-epaulettes, proudly refused to do so, and declared that he had rather
-take off these epaulettes altogether. He was the only one who did not
-consent to submit to the orders of the government in that respect, all
-the other members of Nicholas II.’s military household having shown
-themselves but too eager to do it, General Roussky divesting himself
-of his aiguillettes five minutes after the Emperor had handed over his
-abdication to the Delegates sent by the Duma to require it from him.
-
-The unfortunate Monarch returned to Mohilew from Pskov on the 17th
-of March. On the next day arrived there by special train his mother,
-the Dowager Empress Marie, who, upon hearing of the misfortunes that
-had befallen her son, had hastened to his side. Their relations had
-been more than strained for a long time, thanks to the intrigues of
-the Empress Alexandra, but in those moments of agony the mother’s
-heart forgot aught else save that her child was in trouble, and she
-rushed to him to try at least to help him by her presence to bear it.
-Nicholas II. felt the nobility of this conduct, and the few days which
-he spent with Marie Feodorovna did away with much of the bitterness
-that had presided at their intercourse with each other for some time.
-But what they must have been for the widowed Empress it would be hardly
-possible to imagine. She understood but too well, if he did not, the
-perils which awaited her son in the future, and the contrast which his
-reign had presented with that of his father must have filled her soul
-with agony and distress. Fate proved itself indeed hard for this noble
-woman, because it inflicted upon her that last, supreme sorrow, of
-seeing, before her train carried her back to this town of Kieff which
-she had made her home for the last two years, Nicholas II. taken away a
-captive to that palace that was to know him no longer for its master.
-
-If one is to believe all that one hears, it seems that it was General
-Alexieieff, together with General Roussky and a few socialist leaders,
-who insisted on the provisional government ordering the arrest of the
-former Czar and of his Consort. They represented to Mr. Miliukoff and
-to his colleagues, that it would be the height of imprudence to allow
-the Empress to remain at liberty and able to go on intriguing, as was
-her wont, against the new administration. On the other hand sending the
-Imperial family immediately abroad had also its inconveniences, because
-their presence in Denmark or in England would only have been a cause of
-embarrassment to the Allies. Then again, the hatred of the population
-of Petrograd for Alexandra Feodorovna had reached such immense
-proportions that it was feared it would give way to excesses against
-her, and even attempts to murder her, if some kind of satisfaction
-were not given to its incensed feelings in respect to a woman who was
-considered everywhere in the light of the worst of traitors. For this
-reason or for another, it is not quite clear, but most likely because
-of the representations made by Roussky and by Alexieieff, the Executive
-Committee of the Duma, which was then the highest authority in Russia,
-decided to arrest Nicholas II. together with his Consort.
-
-Four members of the Duma, Messrs. Boublikoff, Gribounine, Verschinine
-and Kalinine, were commanded to repair to Mohilew, and to signify to
-the ex-Emperor the decision of the government. It seems that what had
-hastened it had been the discovery of a correspondence between the
-Empress and Protopopoff, which the latter, in abject fear for his
-life, had himself given up to the Duma, hoping that he would thus be
-able to drive away from his own person the responsibility for the
-conspiracy which had been going on at Tsarskoie Selo, under the plea
-that he had been compelled to obey the orders which had been given to
-him. Apart from this correspondence, other things had come to light;
-amongst others the part that a Thibetan doctor, who had been a friend
-of Rasputin, and whom Madame Vyroubieva had introduced to the Empress,
-had played in the private life of the Imperial pair. It seems that he
-had given to Alexandra Feodorovna certain drinks and drugs, which,
-unknown to him, she had administered to Nicholas II., with the result
-that the latter had been completely stupefied, and had become a tool
-in the hands of his enterprising wife. The fact sounds incredible,
-and I would not have mentioned it here had it not been that young
-Prince Youssoupoff, one of those who had executed Rasputin, publicly
-spoke about it during an interview which after his return to Petrograd
-from the exile whither he had been sent by the Czar, he awarded to
-a correspondent of the Vovoie Vremia, where the account of it was
-published. Both these incidents gave a free hand to those who, from the
-very first day of the Revolution, had insisted upon the Empress being
-put under restraint, and once this measure was adopted, it was hardly
-possible not to extend it also to Nicholas II.
-
-The Commissioners started on March 20th for Mohilew. General Alexieieff
-had been privately informed as to the reason of their arriving there,
-and, unknown to others, gave orders for the Emperor’s train to be
-prepared to carry him away at a moment’s notice. At four o’clock of the
-afternoon of March 21st, the Commissioners reached their destination,
-and they sent at once for the General, with whom they held a conference
-of about twenty minutes. He assured them that he had already made full
-preparation for the departure of the Monarch. They asked him for a list
-of the people in attendance on the latter, and noticing thereon the
-name of Admiral Niloff, who was considered to be one of the staunchest
-supporters of the Empress, they said at once that he could not travel
-in the Imperial train, and sent for him to acquaint him with the fact.
-Niloff asked only if he was to consider himself as being under arrest,
-but the commissioners assured him that they had received no orders to
-that effect.
-
-Whilst this was going on, Nicholas II. was lunching with his mother in
-the latter’s special train, which all the time of her stay in Mohilew
-had remained at the station, and which she had not left during these
-days. General Alexieieff was the one who took it upon himself to tell
-the Czar that he had been made a prisoner. He boarded the train of the
-Empress, pushed himself most unceremoniously into the carriage where
-she was sitting with her son, and acquainted the latter with his fate.
-Neither the deposed Sovereign nor the widowed Empress said a word.
-She simply got up and went to the window. She saw a crowd of people
-standing around her train, and the one that was about to carry away her
-son, then she turned back, and folded him in one long embrace. Speech
-was impossible to either of them and Marie Feodorovna remained tearless
-all through this tragedy.
-
-On the platform were standing several officers who had formerly been
-attached to the person of the Emperor, whilst he had been in command of
-the army. They were waiting to say good-bye to their former chief. A
-guard, no longer of honour alas! was also standing at the door of the
-railway compartment assigned to him, who a few days before had been the
-Czar of All the Russias, together with the commissioners of the Duma,
-into whose hands Alexieieff delivered his prisoner. Nicholas II. passed
-on from his mother’s train to his own. Every head was uncovered; he
-spoke to no one, and no one spoke. A silence akin to that of the grave
-prevailed. Standing at the window of her carriage could be seen the
-figure of the Empress Marie watching this sad departure. A few minutes
-later the train started on its mournful journey. Another act in this
-drama had come to an end.
-
-Whilst this was going on at Mohilew, the officer in command of the
-garrison of Petrograd, General Korniloff, had repaired to Tsarskoie
-Selo. From the station he telephoned to Count Benckendorff, the head
-of the Imperial household, asking him when he could see the Empress.
-The Count asked him to wait a few minutes at the instrument, and then
-told him that Alexandra Feodorovna would be ready to receive him in
-half an hour. At the appointed time the General was introduced into the
-presence of the Sovereign who entered the room dressed in deep black,
-but as haughty as ever, and asked him in ironical tones to what she was
-indebted for the honour of his visit. Korniloff got up, and briefly
-communicated to her the decision of the government in respect to her
-person, and warned her that the Palace would be strictly watched, and
-all communications between her and the outside world forbidden. The
-Empress then enquired whether her personal servants and those of her
-children would be left to her, and after having been reassured as to
-that point, she withdrew as impassible as ever, though strong hysterics
-seized her as soon as she was once more alone in her private apartments.
-
-The guard in charge of the Palace was changed; the telephone and
-private post and telegraph office were taken over by a staff which
-General Korniloff had brought over with him from Petrograd, and the
-Empress was informed that she could not leave her rooms, even for a
-walk, without the permission of the officer in charge of the troops
-quartered in the Imperial residence. Though no orders had been issued
-in regard to her personal attendants, yet the proud Princess was to
-find that most of them had left her of their own accord. Her children
-were all ill with a severe attack of measles, but this did not prevent
-the salaried domestics who up to that moment had been so happy and
-eager to be allowed the privilege of serving her, deserting her in the
-hour of her need. The few friends she thought she could rely upon were
-in prison. She was alone, all alone; and so she was to remain until the
-end. The devotion with which Marie Antoinette was surrounded during the
-tragedy of her existence was not known by Alexandra Feodorovna in the
-drama of her life. She had made far too many enemies during the time
-of her splendour and prosperity to find any one willing to cheer and
-comfort her in the hour of her misfortune.
-
-And the next day her husband was brought back to that Palace of
-Tsarskoie Selo they had both liked so much, brought back a prisoner to
-find her captive. What did she think when she saw him again? Did she
-realise at last all the evil which she had done, all the misery, which,
-thanks to her influence, had overtaken the Emperor whose crown she had
-shared? How did she feel in presence of this catastrophe, of this wreck
-of all her ambitions, plans and hopes? Outwardly she made no sign that
-she understood the full significance of the events that had swallowed
-her up in their depths, together with her pride and haughtiness. She
-only manifested some emotion when told that the body of Rasputin had
-been exhumed and burned publicly by exasperated crowds. Otherwise she
-remained silent and if not resigned at least disdainful, even when she
-was subjected to a close interrogation by General Korniloff, who was
-deputed to examine her as to certain points in the correspondence which
-Mr. Protopopoff had surrendered to the Duma. She denied to every one
-the right to question her; she proudly refused to reply to the demands
-addressed to her, and it was only when she was alone in her rooms that
-she used to give way to terrible fits of despair at the loss of that
-grandeur by which her head had been turned. Her children were so ill
-that they could not even be told of the change that had taken place in
-their existences and destinies. Her husband was too much crushed by the
-weight of all the calamities which had fallen upon him to be able to
-comfort her in any way. Her friends had left her, her attendants had
-forsaken her, her family had abandoned her.... And it was thus, amidst
-the stillness of sorrow and of anxiety, that the curtain was to fall
-upon the tragedy of Nicholas II. and of Alexandra Feodorovna, or at
-least upon one of its principal acts....
-
-
-
-
-PART III
-
-THE RIDDLE OF THE FUTURE
-
-
-
-
-CONCLUSION
-
-
-More than one year has gone by since the events narrated in this book,
-and it is possible now to throw a retrospective glance on them, as well
-as on all the tragedies that have followed the fall of the Romanoffs.
-It has been proved beyond doubt that it is not sufficient to destroy
-a political system and to overturn a monarchy. These must be replaced
-by something else, and it is this something else which Russia has been
-vainly looking for during the last twelve months. After the abdication
-of Nicholas II., successors had to be found to take up the power which
-had been snatched out of his hands owing to the clamours of public
-indignation at his weakness of character and want of comprehension of
-the needs of his people. These successors, who were taken here and
-there in the hazards of an adventure brought about by the intrigues
-of a few and by the cowardice of many, who were they? What did they
-represent? And what elements of strength did they possess? They were
-called upon to take the direction of the destinies of their Fatherland
-in an hour of national crisis, such as it had never known before in
-the whole course of its history, and to try to save a situation which
-had become already so entangled that it had almost reached the limits
-of desperation. It is possible to-day to pass judgment on the first
-government that assumed authority after the fall of the unfortunate
-Czar. And, much as one would like to think well of it, it must be
-admitted that though it was composed of men of great talent and
-integrity, it did not possess one single character determined enough
-and strong enough to deliver it from the demagogues who had secured an
-entry into it, and from the anarchist elements that had tried from the
-very outset to impose themselves upon it and their doctrines. Moreover
-these men were devoid of experience, and they believed sincerely (there
-can be no doubt as to this point) but absolutely erroneously, that it
-was sufficient for them and their party to come to the foreground in
-order to bring about in Russia an era of bliss such as exists only in
-fairy tales. Among them was found Alexander Kerensky, a Socialist, one
-of the leaders of the Labour Party, an indifferent lawyer but a most
-eloquent speaker, who, better than any one else in Russia, understood
-the art of stirring the souls and appealing to the passions of the
-crowds upon which he relied to keep him in power; and who by his
-wonderful speeches could easily lead these crowds upon any road he
-wished to have them follow, though it might not land them where they
-imagined they were going. Kerensky imposed himself upon the Revolution
-in the same way he imposed himself upon a jury, and he treated it as
-he would have treated a jury during a criminal trial. Of politics he
-had but a hazy idea; of the art of government he understood nothing. He
-believed in the value of words, and imagined that he could establish
-in Russia an ideal State, living upon ideal principles. But at
-one time he was popular, and people thought him a strong man, whilst
-he was only an eloquent demagogue. With this he had an overbearing
-character, would not admit contradiction, and soon was at variance with
-his colleagues in the ministry, who, unfortunately for Russia, were
-as weak as he was himself but with less tyrannical dispositions; they
-retired when they found that they could not prevent him from carrying
-out his plans of reforming the army and of abolishing its military
-discipline, without which no troops in the world could be expected
-to stand bravely in presence of an attacking foe. It is a thousand
-pities that men like Paul Milyukoff, Prince George Lvoff, Rodzianko
-and others, to whose initiative was due the success of the Revolution,
-allowed themselves to be overruled by Kerensky, until he was left alone
-to bear upon his shoulders the whole burden of the government and the
-whole responsibility of the war, when he collapsed like a weak reed at
-the first real attack directed against him.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, Underwood & Underwood, N. Y._
-
-KERENSKY INSPIRING TROOPS TO SUPPORT REVOLUTIONARY GOVERNMENT]
-
-Another misfortune connected with the government that replaced that
-of Nicholas II. was that it failed to recognise the terrible German
-propaganda that was carried on with renewed energy in Russia after the
-Revolution. It would not believe in its danger, and it could not bring
-itself to employ violence to put an end to the Socialist or, rather,
-anarchist agitation fomented by German intrigues and kept up by German
-money, which alone has rendered possible the triumph of Bolschevikism
-and the seizure of supreme power by people such as Lenine, Trotzky,
-Kameneff, and other personalities of the same kind, and the same
-doubtful or, rather, not doubtful reputation.
-
-And yet it would have been relatively easy to put an end to the career
-of these men, had one only applied oneself to do so in time and
-bravely faced the criticisms of the people who were in their pay, or
-in their employ. The whole story of the Lenine-Trotzky intrigue has
-not yet been told, at least not here in America; and it may not be
-without interest to disclose some of its details. When Milyukoff and
-Prince Lvoff proceeded to form a government after the overthrow of the
-Monarchy, they offered the portfolio of Justice to a Moscow lawyer
-called Karensky (nothing to do with Alexander Kerensky) who enjoyed the
-reputation of being one of the most eloquent, and, at the same time,
-honest members of the Moscow Bar. They called him to Petrograd, where
-they held several consultations with him. Karensky declared himself
-ready to accept the position offered him, but only on one condition:
-that he would be given an absolutely free hand to proceed with the
-greatest energy and vigour against all the German spies and agents with
-which the Capital was infested, and that he would also be allowed the
-same free hand in his dealings with the anarchists who were beginning
-to make themselves heard. Neither Prince Lvoff nor Milyukoff would
-agree to give him these powers he demanded. They feared that if they
-did so they would be reproached for doing exactly the same as the
-government that had crumbled down a few days before; and they also
-objected to allowing a member of the cabinet to dispose at his will and
-fancy of such grave questions as those involved in repression exercised
-against any political party, no matter of what shade or opinion.
-Karensky thereupon refused the position offered to him, but accepted
-the post of State Prosecutor under Alexander Kerensky at first, and,
-afterwards, when the latter had been transferred to the war office,
-under Mr. Pereviazeff. This allowed him to watch the growing German
-agitation, connected with anarchist conspiracies, which was beginning
-to feel its way previous to its explosion. He had heard about Lenine
-and Trotzky, and was from the first convinced that they were both in
-the employ of the Kaiser either directly or indirectly, and he set
-himself to obtain proof that such was the case. He had wondered at
-the easiness with which Lenine had been able to obtain a passport
-from the German government authorising him to cross the dominions of
-William II. on his way from Switzerland to Russia. He, therefore, had
-the correspondence of both Lenine and Trotzky watched, and very soon
-his attention was attracted by the fact that they were both sending
-and receiving constantly telegrams to and from Sweden and Finland, all
-of which were deeply concerned with the health of a certain “Kola”
-who seemed to be always getting ill, and then better, in a sort of
-regular way which appeared more than strange. This was the first remark
-which led to the result that at last, it was established, to the
-absolute satisfaction of Karensky and of others, that Trotzky, Lenine,
-Kameneff, a certain Zinovieff, a lawyer called Kozlovsky, a lady going
-by the name of Madame Soumentay, and the wife of Lenine, had received
-not less than _nineteen millions of rubles_ from the German government.
-This money had been sent through so many different channels that it was
-next to impossible to discover its origin. It had passed through eight
-banks, and, I do not now remember, through how many private hands. But
-the people whose names I have just mentioned had received it, partly
-in Russian banknotes, and partly in banknotes printed in Berlin, which
-were supposed to be Russian, of a new type with which the German
-government was beginning to meet its obligations so as not to make them
-too heavy for its own Exchequer.
-
-Karensky sought Prince Lvoff, who was still Prime Minister at the time,
-and asked him to sign an order for the arrest of Trotzky and Lenine.
-The Prince had not the courage to do so, and the State Prosecutor had,
-perforce, to wait. But in July the first insurrectionary movement,
-engineered by the Bolscheviki, broke out, and then Karensky thought
-that his duty obliged him to assume the responsibilities which the
-ministry did not care to face. By that time Prince Lvoff, Milyukoff
-and others had resigned, and Kerensky was virtually master of the
-situation. But he was weak, weaker perhaps than any of his colleagues
-had been, and he openly declared to the State Prosecutor that he felt
-afraid to arrest the two men who were ultimately to lead Russia to
-her destruction. Karensky, however, was made of sterner stuff, and he
-bravely decided to act for himself, and signed alone the order for
-the incarceration of both Lenine and Trotzky. But the former had been
-warned, and had fled to Finland. A thorough search was made of the flat
-which he occupied, where the sum of one million and a half of rubles
-was found in possession of his wife, who could not explain whence she
-had this money. Trotzky at the same time was incarcerated and brought
-before the State Prosecutor. The latter, in order to justify the course
-of action he had taken, had caused to be published in all the Petrograd
-and Moscow newspapers an account of the discoveries which he had made,
-together with the names of the people who had participated in the work
-of treason he was determined to suppress. A curious thing in the story
-is that none of the papers that printed it (and they all did with the
-exception of the Bolschevik organ _Prawda_), was allowed to get abroad,
-which accounts for the fact of no publicity having been given to the
-story. Petrograd then was exasperated against Trotzky to such an extent
-that Karensky feared he would be lynched, and caused him to be conveyed
-to the prison called “Kresty” in an automobile driven by his own son,
-as no chauffeur would undertake to drive him there. What happened
-later on remains to this day a mystery. The Minister of Justice, Mr.
-Pereviazeff, resigned his functions two days after the arrest of
-Trotzky, and his place was taken by Nekrassoff, who, when asked by
-the Committees of soldiers and peasants who had begun by that time to
-be all powerful, to give the reasons which had induced the government
-to resort to this measure, became so embarrassed in his replies that
-these Committees insisted on Trotzky being set at liberty, which was
-done three days afterwards. Karensky then resigned his functions, and
-returned to Moscow whence, however, he was obliged to fly and seek a
-refuge in Kharkov, as soon as the Bolscheviki seized the government.
-The latter inaugurated a system of terrorism that claimed more victims
-than is known abroad, completed the disorganisation of the army, and
-at last started the negotiations which culminated in the shameful
-peace signed at Brest Litovsk. After three and a half years’ war and a
-Revolution, Russia as an independent nation ceased to exist, and became
-virtually, and to all appearance, a German province.
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-PEACE DOCUMENT OF DELEGATES AT BREST-LITOVSK CONFERENCE]
-
-This is the story as it reads, and sad enough it sounds. Germany can
-look triumphantly on the success of her work and glory in it. Happily
-for Russia, for the world and for the cause of civilisation, it is only
-one chapter of it that has come to an end. Russia, the great Russia
-of the past, is not dead. She possesses far more vitality than she is
-given credit for, and she still has sound, true, and honest elements
-amidst her citizens. When attempting to judge her, one ought to think
-of the great French Revolution, and to remember that in France, also,
-it took years before its work was at last consolidated and set upon a
-sound basis. One must bear in mind that in France, too, a period of
-terrorism made people despair of the future and fear that the end of
-their Fatherland had come. Our Russian Revolution is hardly one year
-old, and though perhaps one will be aghast at what I am going to
-say, I think that she has not yet passed through that phase of real
-terror which is always a symptom of great upheavals such as Russia
-has undergone and is undergoing. We may see worse things yet; we may
-live to look upon the erection of a scaffold on one of the squares of
-Petrograd or of Moscow. But this will not mean that the end of Russia
-has come, nor that she has become, or will remain, a German province.
-The hatred of the Teuton, on the contrary, will grow as events progress
-and the great disillusion arrives. A few more months, and the peasants
-whom Trotzky, Lenine and their crew have lured with false promises will
-perceive that these demagogues have been unable to fulfil all that they
-had sworn to them they would do. They will realise that their lot has
-become under the rule of these new masters ten thousand times harder
-than was the case before, and they will be the first to rise against
-these deceivers. If we are to believe all that we hear from people
-who have arrived here from Russia recently, this movement of reaction
-has already started, and it is bound to grow stronger with every day
-and hour which goes by. The peace signed at Brest Litovsk will remain
-verily a “scrap of paper” which will end by being thrown into the
-waste-paper basket. Not one Russian will recognise it, not one Russian
-will accept it; the Germans feel it themselves, and are preparing for
-a new struggle which may have a far different conclusion from the one
-which they are now trying to persuade the world has come to an end.
-
-What has helped them, apart from the treason of Trotzky, Lenine and
-their followers, who have only had one idea in heart and brain, that of
-enriching themselves at the expense of the country for which they feel
-neither affection nor pity, has been the state of confusion into which
-Russia was thrown by the Revolution that broke up so unexpectedly--a
-confusion which can only be compared to that which prevails in the
-house of a man whom sudden ruin has overtaken, when every servant or
-menial in the place tries to steal and take something in the general
-disaster or to profit out of it in some way or other. In Petrograd, in
-Moscow, as well as all over the country, looting took place, not only
-of private property, but also of the Public Exchequer, especially of
-the latter, and the Russian officials, who had always been grasping,
-became all at once bandits after the style of Rinaldo Rinaldino, or
-any other brigand illustrated by drama or comedy. They stole; they
-took; they carried away; they seized everything they could lay their
-hands upon. To begin with the silver spoons of the unfortunate Czar
-and as many of the Crown Jewels as they could get hold of, down to the
-paper money issued by the State Treasury, of which, as the Kerensky
-government had to own before the so-called National Assembly at Moscow,
-eight hundred millions were put into circulation every month after
-the Revolution, in contrast with two hundred millions which were
-issued formerly. I do not think that it is a libel on these officials
-to suppose that part of this fabulous sum found its way into their
-pockets, instead of being applied to the needs of the nation or of the
-army.
-
-This wholesale plundering, if I may be forgiven for using such a word,
-was of course not the fault of Kerensky and of his colleagues, under
-whose ministry it began, but whereas the latter realised immediately
-that it was taking place and resigned rather than countenance it; the
-former, though aware of it, found his hands tied in every attempt he
-made to subdue it, by the fact that those who were principally guilty
-were either his personal friends or his former partisans, or people
-with whom he had associated in earlier times, and with whom he had
-compromised himself to a considerable extent. With regard to those
-associates of his former life, Kerensky found himself in the same
-position as Napoleon III. after his accession, in presence of the
-Italian Carbonari, who claimed from the Sovereign the fulfilment of
-the promises made to them by the exiled Pretender. Kerensky had also
-given certain pledges at a time when he never expected he might be
-called upon to redeem them; and when he became a Minister he had to
-give way to the exigencies of all the radicals, anarchists, and extreme
-socialists among whom he had laboured, and with whom he had worked at
-the overthrow of the detested and detestable government of the Czar. He
-could not cast them overboard or set them aside. He had to listen to
-them, and in a certain sense to submit to their demands. For example,
-in the case of the exile to Siberia of the unfortunate Nicholas II.,
-a measure which in the first days of the Revolution he had declared
-that he would never resort to, but which he nevertheless executed
-under conditions of the most intense cruelty, simply because it was
-demanded from him by persons to whom he could not say no. People
-who knew him well say that the fact of his powerlessness caused him
-intense suffering, but he had neither the strength to assert himself in
-presence of his former comrades, nor, perhaps, the will to do so.
-
-In a certain sense, he was the man of the hour, “le maitre de l’heure,”
-as the Franco-Arab proverb says. He was even to some extent the one
-indispensable element without which it would have been impossible for
-a Republic ever to become established in Russia. And everybody seemed
-to agree, one year ago, that a Republic was the only form of government
-possible after the fall of the Romanoffs. Of this Republic Kerensky
-rapidly became the symbol and at the same time the emblem of a new
-Russia; a regenerated and better one, in the opinion of his followers
-of the moment; a worse one from what it had been formerly, in that of
-his adversaries, but at all events of a different Russia from the one
-previously known.
-
-But, unfortunately, Kerensky was neither a statesman like Milyukoff
-nor an administrator like Prince Lvoff, nor even a business man like
-Konovaloff. He lacked experience and knowledge of the routine of
-government. He had but a limited amount of education, no idea of the
-feelings of people born and reared in a different atmosphere from that
-in which he had grown up. He was only a leader of men, or rather of
-the passions of men; and, unfortunately for him, what Russia required
-was more a ruler than a leader, of whom she had more than she wanted,
-though perhaps at that particular moment none so powerful as Kerensky.
-He had emerged a Dictator out of a complete and general chaos; and
-he was to add to it the whole weight of his unripe genius and of his
-exuberant personality. After having been the Peter the Hermit of a new
-Crusade, he was to become the false Prophet of a creed which he had
-preached with an eloquence such as has been seldom surpassed, but in
-which it is doubtful whether he himself believed. Had he consented,
-or had he been able to work in common with more experienced men than
-himself towards the triumph of the Republican cause, he would have
-taken in the annals of his country the place of one of its greatest
-men. As it has turned out, he will rank among its most interesting and
-brilliant historical figures, but only as a figure. His disappearance
-also has had something romantic about it, which will perhaps appeal to
-certain people in Russia, and which will disgust others. The world is
-wondering where he has gone and what has become of him; but everything
-points to the fact that he has either done away with himself, as he
-often said he would do in case of failure, or else that he has been
-murdered by the Bolscheviki during those days when the Neva and the
-different canals of Petrograd were carrying away to the sea hundreds of
-dead bodies every day. At least this is the opinion of persons who were
-in Russia at the time Kerensky vanished into space; and very probably
-this opinion will prove to be a true one.
-
-The moderate liberal parties in Russia, who are the really intelligent,
-would, of course, wish their country’s future government to become a
-Republic modelled after that of the United States. At the same time, if
-we are to believe the rare news which reaches us from Petrograd, and
-especially from Moscow, one hears people say now what they would never
-have dared to mention a few months ago--i. e., that a constitutional
-Monarchy, if it could be established, would offer certain advantages.
-I hasten to say that, personally, I do not see where these advantages
-would come in, unless they were associated with a new dynasty. But at
-the same time, together with many others, when I look at all that has
-taken place recently in my poor country, I cannot but feel sad at the
-great uncertainty as to the morrow which the Revolution of last year
-has opened, not only before Russia, but before the whole world, and I
-would like to see this incertitude come to an end in some way or other.
-
-I have but little more to add. It is difficult even to try to guess
-what the future holds in store for the former realm of the Romanoffs.
-The only thing which one can say at present with any certainty is
-that Russia will never honour the signature of Trotzky in regard to
-the peace treaty concluded with Germany. Any hesitation Russia might
-have had as to this point in her moments of discouragement, that must
-have made themselves felt at times, disappeared after the message sent
-by the President of the United States to the Soviets in Moscow. This
-message dispelled any fear the Russians might have had as to whether
-their allies had abandoned her. At present the country knows that it
-does not stand alone, and that any resistance it has to offer to its
-foes will be appreciated and encouraged. This is much, indeed this is
-the one thing which was capable of rousing the energies of the whole
-of that vast land which the Teutons imagine that they have conquered.
-I can but repeat: Russia is not dead yet. Russia shall show the world
-that, betrayed as she has been, she can still lift the yoke put upon
-her, save herself, and help to save the world for the great cause of
-Democracy.
-
-And the conclusion of this book? I do not pretend to offer any. I
-simply invite my readers to draw the one they like best. I ask them
-only to do so with kindness and an appreciation of the difficulties of
-the situation. I have not tried to write a volume of controversy; I
-have merely attempted to describe, as well as I could, the Revolution
-and the events which preceded it, among which the extraordinary story
-of Rasputin figures so curiously.
-
-I have given the narrative as it was related to me by people whose
-veracity I have no reason to challenge. It is certain, however, that
-many of its details are still unknown, and it is doubtful whether
-they will be revealed before the end of the war. At present there are
-too many persons interested in dissimulating the part which they have
-played in the drama, either out of fear, or because they do not think
-the time opportune. It seems sometimes as if there exists a tacit
-understanding among the actors of the tragedy to hide the details of
-the conspiracy which came to an end by the signature of the Manifest
-of Pskov. This signature was wrenched, no one knows yet by just what
-means, out of the weakness of Nicholas II!--that unfortunate Monarch
-who has never realised the obligations and duties he owed to the
-nation that dethroned him. The last crowned Romanoff had never had,
-unfortunately for him, and still more unfortunately for his subjects,
-a sense of appreciation of the real value of facts or of events, which
-sometimes is even more useful than a great intelligence, to those whom
-destiny has entrusted with the difficult task of ruling over nations.
-He believed that his duty consisted in upholding the superannuated
-traditions of autocracy, and he did not perceive that these traditions
-had been maintained so long only because there had existed strong men
-to enforce them. Honest and kind of heart though he was, at least in
-many respects, he had contrived in spite of these qualities to rouse
-against him from the very first days of his accession to the Throne all
-the social classes of his country. He had irritated the aristocracy,
-wounded the feelings of the army and of the people, and excited against
-himself the passions of the proletariat and of the peasantry, by his
-weakness of character and his obstinacy in surrounding himself with
-the most hated and most despised elements in Russia. A few days before
-his fall he might still have made a successful effort to save himself
-and his dynasty, had he only followed the disinterested advice which
-was forwarded to him by his Allies and consented to the establishment
-of a responsible Ministry. He preferred to listen to his wife and
-to the people she kept around her. Instead of trying to conciliate
-his subjects, he threatened them, until the expected occurred, and
-he lost not only his crown but also his liberty; and has perhaps
-forfeited his life and that of his family.
-
-But the future, the future, my readers will ask me, What will be the
-future, what shall it bring forth for Russia? The only reply possible
-to this eager question is to quote the words of Victor Hugo in his
-wonderful Ode to Napoleon: “The future belongs to no one, it is
-controlled by God alone.”
-
-[Illustration:
-
- _Copyright, 1918, International Film Service, Inc._
-
-THE HOUSE AT BREST-LITOVSK WHERE PEACE NEGOTIATIONS BETWEEN THE RUSSIAN
-BOLSHEVIKI AND THE AUSTRO-GERMANS WERE CONDUCTED]
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s Notes
-
-
-Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made consistent when a
-predominant preference was found in the original book; otherwise they
-were not changed. Some similarly-spelled names were left as-is, as
-neither variation matches current usage.
-
-Simple typographical errors were corrected; unbalanced quotation
-marks were remedied when the change was obvious, and otherwise left
-unbalanced.
-
-Illustrations in this eBook have been positioned between paragraphs
-and outside quotations. In versions of this eBook that support
-hyperlinks, the page references in the List of Illustrations lead to
-the corresponding illustrations.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RASPUTIN AND THE RUSSIAN
-REVOLUTION ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/66358-0.zip b/old/66358-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 7dafb20..0000000
--- a/old/66358-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h.zip b/old/66358-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 7a24da0..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/66358-h.htm b/old/66358-h/66358-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 81b4764..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/66358-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11106 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- Rasputin and the Russian Revolution, by Princess Catherine Radziwill—A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 2.5em;
- margin-right: 2.5em;
-}
-
-h1, h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- margin-top: 2.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-h2+p {margin-top: 1.5em;}
-h2 .subhead {display: block; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-
-.transnote h2 {
- margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-.subhead {
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: smaller;
-}
-
-p {
- text-indent: 1.75em;
- margin-top: .51em;
- margin-bottom: .24em;
- text-align: justify;
-}
-.center p, p.center {text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
-
-.p1 {margin-top: 1em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.vspace {line-height: 1.5;}
-
-.in0 {text-indent: 0;}
-.in2 {padding-left: 2em;}
-.in33 {padding-left: 33%;}
-.l2 {padding-right: 2em;}
-.l5 {padding-right: 4.5em;}
-
-.small {font-size: 70%;}
-.smaller {font-size: 85%;}
-.larger {font-size: 125%;}
-.large {font-size: 150%;}
-.xxlarge {font-size: 200%;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-.firstword {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.bold {font-weight: bold;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin: 4em auto 4em auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-.tb {
- text-align: center;
- padding-top: .76em;
- padding-bottom: .24em;
- letter-spacing: 1.5em;
- margin-right: -1.5em;
-}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- min-width: 20em;
- max-width: 40em;
- border-collapse: collapse;
-}
-
-td {padding-bottom: .75em;}
-.small td {padding-bottom: .2em;}
-
-.tdl {
- text-align: left;
- vertical-align: top;
- padding-right: 1em;
- padding-left: 1.5em;
- text-indent: -1.5em;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
- vertical-align: bottom;
- padding-left: .3em;
- white-space: nowrap;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: .25em;
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: right;
- font-size: 70%;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- font-style: normal;
- letter-spacing: normal;
- line-height: normal;
- color: #acacac;
- border: .0625em solid #acacac;
- background: #ffffff;
- padding: .0625em .125em;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: 2em auto 2em auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-
-}
-
-img {
- padding: 1em 0 0 0;
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-.caption {margin-top: 0;}
-.caption .blockquot {margin: 0;}
-.caption .blockquot p {text-align: left; margin: 0 auto 0 .5em; text-indent: 0; font-size: smaller;}
-.caption p {text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
-
-.blockquot {
- margin: 1.5em 5% 1.5em 5%;
- font-size: 95%;
-}
-
-.transnote {
- background-color: #999999;
- border: thin dotted;
- font-family: sans-serif, serif;
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
- margin-top: 4em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- padding: 1em;
-}
-
-.sigright {
- margin-right: 2em;
- text-align: right;}
-
-.gesperrt1 {letter-spacing: .4em; margin-right: -.4em;}
-.wspace {word-spacing: .3em;}
-.wspace1 {word-spacing: .4em; letter-spacing: .07em;}
-.wspace2 {word-spacing: .2em;}
-
-.pagenum br {display: none; visibility: hidden;}
-
-@media print, handheld
-{
- body {margin: 0;}
-
- h1, .chapter, .newpage {page-break-before: always;}
- h1.nobreak, h2.nobreak, .nobreak {page-break-before: avoid; padding-top: 0;}
-
- p {
- margin-top: .5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .25em;
- }
-
- table {width: auto; max-width: 100%; margin: 1em auto 1em auto;}
-
- .tdl {
- padding-left: 1em;
- text-indent: -1em;
- padding-right: 0;
- }
-
- .figcenter {max-width: 100%; margin: 0 auto 0 auto;}
- img {max-height: 80%;}
-
- hr {
- margin-top: .1em;
- margin-bottom: .1em;
- visibility: hidden;
- color: white;
- width: .01em;
- display: none;
- }
-
- .blockquot {margin: 1.5em 3% 1.5em 3%;}
-
- .transnote {
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- margin-left: 2%;
- margin-right: 2%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- padding: .5em;
- }
-
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-
-<body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Rasputin and the Russian Revolution, by Princess Catherine Radziwill</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Rasputin and the Russian Revolution</p>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Princess Catherine Radziwill</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: September 21, 2021 [eBook #66358]</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Charlie Howard and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RASPUTIN AND THE RUSSIAN REVOLUTION ***</div>
-
-<div class="transnote">
-<p class="center larger">Transcriber’s Note</p>
-
-<p>Larger versions of most illustrations may be seen by right-clicking them
-and selecting an option to view them separately, or by double-tapping and/or
-stretching them.</p>
-
-<p>The original book's Table of Contents only listed three "Parts", not the
-chapters within them. Here are Transcriber-added links to the chapters as well as the
-parts:</p>
-
-<p class="p1 in0 in33 vspace smaller">
-<a href="#PART_I">PART I</a><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#INTRODUCTION">INTRODUCTION</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_I">CHAPTER I</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_II">CHAPTER II</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_III">CHAPTER III</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_IV">CHAPTER IV</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_V">CHAPTER V</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_VI">CHAPTER VI</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_VII">CHAPTER VII</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_VIII">CHAPTER VIII</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_I_IX">CHAPTER IX</a></span><br />
-<a href="#PART_II">PART II</a><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_II_I">CHAPTER I</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_II_II">CHAPTER II</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_II_III">CHAPTER III</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_II_IV">CHAPTER IV</a></span><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CHAPTER_II_V">CHAPTER V</a></span><br />
-<a href="#PART_III">PART III</a><br />
-<span class="in2"><a href="#CONCLUSION">CONCLUSION</a></span>
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="max-width: 30em;">
- <img src="images/cover.jpg" width="1658" height="2487" alt="cover" /></div>
-
-<h1><span class="smaller"><span class="wspace1">RASPUTIN AND THE</span><br /><span class="wspace2">RUSSIAN REVOLUTION</span></span></h1>
-
-<div id="i_001" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 25em;">
- <img src="images/i_001.jpg" width="1588" height="2368" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Photo by Paul Thompson</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Gregory Rasputin</span><br />
-“The Black Monk of Russia”</p></div></div>
-
-<div class="newpage p4 center">
-<p class="vspace">
-<span class="xxlarge gesperrt1 bold"><span class="large">RASPUTIN</span></span><br />
-<span class="larger wspace">AND THE RUSSIAN REVOLUTION</span></p>
-
-<p class="p2">BY</p>
-
-<p class="larger wspace">PRINCESS CATHERINE RADZIWILL<br />
-<span class="small">(COUNT PAUL VASSILI)</span></p>
-
-<p class="small">AUTHOR OF<br />
-“BEHIND THE VEIL AT THE RUSSIAN COURT,”<br />
-“GERMANY UNDER THREE EMPERORS,”<br />
-ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="p4">ILLUSTRATED</p>
-
-<p class="p4 large wspace">NEW YORK: JOHN LANE COMPANY</p>
-<p class="vspace larger wspace">LONDON: JOHN LANE, THE BODLEY HEAD<br />
-MCMXVIII
-</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="newpage p4 smaller vspace">
-<span class="smcap">Copyright, 1917,<br />
-By Public Ledger Company</span><br /><br />
-
-<span class="smcap">Copyright, 1918,<br />
-By John Lane Company</span></p>
-
-<p class="p4 small">Press of<br />
-J.J. Little &amp; Ives Company<br />
-New York, U. S. A.
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="newpage p4 center vspace wspace">TO<br />
-<span class="larger">MONSIEUR JEAN FINOT</span><br />
-<i>Editor of the “Revue”</i></p>
-
-<p class="p2 in0"><i>My dear Mr. Finot:</i>—</p>
-
-<p><i>Allow me to offer you this little book, which may remind you of
-the many conversations we have had together, and of the many
-letters which we have exchanged. In doing so, I am fulfilling one
-of the pleasantest of duties and trying to express to you all the
-gratitude which I feel towards you. Without your kind help, and
-without your advice, I would never have had the courage to take a
-pen in my hand, and all the small success I may have had in my
-literary career is entirely due to you, and to the constant encouragement
-which you have always given to me, and which I shall
-never forget, just as I shall always remember that it was in the
-“Revue” that the first article I ever published appeared. Permit
-me to-day to thank you from the bottom of my heart, and believe
-me to be,</i></p>
-
-<p class="sigright">
-<span class="l2"><i>Always yours most affectionately,</i></span><br />
-<span class="l5"><i>Catherine Radziwill</i></span><br />
-<i>(Catherine Kolb-Danvin)</i>
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">7</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PUBLISHERS_FOREWORD">PUBLISHERS FOREWORD</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0">When the book called “Behind the Veil at the Russian
-Court” was published the Romanoff’s were reigning
-and, considering the fact that she was living in
-Russia at the time, the author of it, had her identity
-become known, would have risked being subjected
-to grave annoyances, and even being sent to that distant
-Siberia where Nicholas II is at present exiled.
-It was therefore deemed advisable to produce that
-work as a posthumous one, and “Count Paul Vassili”
-was represented as having died before the publication
-of “his” Memoirs. This however was not the case, because
-on the contrary “he” went on collecting information
-as to all that was taking place at the Russian
-Court as well as in the whole of Russia, and, consigning
-this information to a diary, “he” went on writing.
-If one remembers, “Count Vassili” distinctly foresaw
-and prophesied in “his” book most of the things that
-have occurred since it was published. This fact will
-perhaps give added interest to the present account
-of the Russian Revolution which now sees the light
-of day for the first time. Though devoid of everything
-sensational or scandalous it will prove interesting
-to those who have cared for the other books of
-“Count Vassili,” for it contains nothing but the truth,
-and has been compiled chiefly out of the narrations
-of the principal personages connected in some way
-or other with the Russian Revolution. The facts concerning<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">8</span>
-Rasputin, and the details of this man’s extraordinary
-career, are, we believe, given out now for
-the first time to the American public, which, up to the
-present moment, has been fed on more or less untrue
-and improbable stories or, rather, “fairy tales,” in regard
-to this famous adventurer. The truth is far
-simpler, but far more human, though humanity does
-not shine in the best colours in its description.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">9</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CONTENTS">CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table id="toc" summary="Contents">
-<tr class="small">
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdr">PAGE</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Part   I.</span>—<span class="smcap">Rasputin</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#toclink_13">13</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Part  II.</span>—<span class="smcap">The Great Revolution</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#toclink_191">191</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Part III.</span>—<span class="smcap">The Riddle of the Future</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#toclink_301">301</a></td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">11</span></p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">10</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="ILLUSTRATIONS">ILLUSTRATIONS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table id="loi" summary="Illustrations">
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Gregory Rasputin—“The Black Monk of Russia”</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_001"><i>Frontispiece</i></a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="small">
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdr">PAGE</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The Ex-Czar and His Family</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_034">34</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Rasputin and His “Court”</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_074">74</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Rasputin</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_094">94</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The First Bolsheviki Cabinet</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_200">200</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The Bolsheviki Headquarters in Petrograd</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_220">220</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The Bolsheviki General Staff</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_230">230</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Soldier and Sailor Citizens’ Duma</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_240">240</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Foreign Minister Leon Trotzky</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_250">250</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Meeting Addressed by Nikolai Lenine</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_260">260</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Alexander Kerensky</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_276">276</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Revolutionary Crowd in Petrograd</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_280">280</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Bolsheviki Sailors Buried at Moscow</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_290">290</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Kerensky Inspiring Troops To Support Revolutionary Government</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_304">304</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Peace Document of Delegates at Brest-Litovsk Conference</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_310">310</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The House at Brest-Litovsk Where Peace Negotiations Between the Russian Bolsheviki and the Austrian-Germans Were Conducted</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_318">318</a></td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">13</span></p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div id="toclink_13" class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">12</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PART_I"><span class="larger">PART I<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">RASPUTIN</span></span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">15</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INTRODUCTION">INTRODUCTION</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">This</span> exposé, based on facts which have come to my
-knowledge, though probably far from being complete,
-aims at depicting the recent state of things in
-Russia, and thus to explain how the great changes
-which have taken place in my country have been rendered
-possible. A lot of exaggerated tales have been
-put into circulation concerning the Empress Alexandra,
-the part she has played in the perturbations
-that have shaken Russia from one end to another and
-the extraordinary influence which, thanks to her and
-to her efforts in his behalf, the sinister personage
-called Rasputin came to acquire over public affairs
-in the vast empire reigned over by Nicholas II. for
-twenty-two years. A good many of these tales repose
-on nothing but imagination, but nevertheless it is unfortunately
-too true that it is to the conduct of the
-Empress, and to the part she attempted to play in the
-politics of the world, that the Romanoffs owe the loss
-of their throne.</p>
-
-<p>Alexandra Feodorovna has been the evil genius of
-the dynasty whose head she married. Without her it
-is probable that most of the disasters that have overtaken
-the Russian armies would not have happened,
-and it is certain that the crown which had been worn
-by Peter the Great and by Catherine II. would not
-have been disgraced. She was totally unfit for the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">16</span>
-position to which chance had raised her, and she never
-was able to understand the character or the needs of
-the people over which she ruled.</p>
-
-<p>Monstrously selfish, she never looked beyond matters
-purely personal to her or to her son, whom she
-idolized in an absurd manner. She, who had been
-reared in principles of true liberalism, who had had in
-her grandmother, the late Queen Victoria, a perfect
-example of a constitutional sovereign, became from
-the very first day of her arrival in Russia the enemy
-of every progress, of every attempt to civilise the
-nation which owned her for its Empress. She gave
-her confidence to the most ferocious reactionaries the
-country possessed. She tried, and in a certain degree
-succeeded, in inspiring in her husband the disdain of
-his people and the determination to uphold an autocratic
-system of government that ought to have been
-overturned and replaced by an enlightened one.
-Haughty by nature and by temperament, she had an
-unlimited confidence in her own abilities, and especially
-after she had become the mother of the son she
-had longed for during so many years, she came to believe
-that everything she wished or wanted to do had
-to be done and that her subjects were but her slaves.
-She had a strong will and much imperiousness in her
-character, and understood admirably the weak points
-in her husband, who became but a puppet in her
-hands.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>She herself was but a plaything in the game of a
-few unscrupulous adventurers who used her for the
-furtherance of their own ambitious, money-grubbing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">17</span>
-schemes, and who, but for the unexpected events that
-led to the overthrow of the house of Romanoff, would
-in time have betrayed Russia into sullying her fair
-fame as well as her reputation in history.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>Rasputin, about whom so much has been said, was
-but an incident in the course of a whole series of facts,
-all of them more or less disgraceful, and none of which
-had a single extenuating circumstance to put forward
-as an excuse for their perpetration.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>He himself was far from being the remarkable individual
-he has been represented by some people, and
-had he been left alone it is likely that even if one had
-heard about him it would not have been for any length
-of time.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>Those who hated him did so chiefly because they
-had not been able to obtain from him what they had
-wanted, and they applied themselves to paint him as
-much more dangerous than he really was. They did
-not know that he was but the mouthpiece of other
-people far cleverer and far more unscrupulous even
-than himself, who hid themselves behind him and who
-moved him as they would have done pawns in a game
-of chess according to their personal aims and wants.
-These people it was who nearly brought Russia to
-the verge of absolute ruin, and they would never have
-been able to rise to the power which they wielded had
-not the Empress lent herself to their schemes. Her
-absolute belief in the merits of the wandering
-preacher, thanks to his undoubted magnetic influence,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">18</span>
-contrived to get hold of her mind and to persuade
-her that so long as he was at her side nothing
-evil could befall her or her family.</p>
-
-<p>It is not generally known outside of Russia that
-Alexandra Feodorovna despised her husband, and
-that she made no secret of the fact. She considered
-him as a weak individual, unable to give himself an
-account of what was going on around him, who had
-to be guided and never left to himself. Her flatterers,
-of whom she had many at a time, had persuaded
-her that she possessed all the genius and most of the
-qualities of Catherine II., and that she ought to follow
-the example of the latter by rallying around her
-a sufficient number of friends to effect a palace revolution
-which would transform her into the reigning
-sovereign of that Russia which she did not know and
-whose character she was unable to understand. Love
-for Nicholas II. she had never had, nor esteem for
-him, and from the very first moment of her marriage
-she had affected to treat him as a negligible quantity.
-But influence over him she had taken good care to
-acquire. She had jealously kept away from him all
-the people from whom he could have heard the truth
-or who could have signalled to him the dangers which
-his dynasty was running by the furtherance of a policy
-which had become loathsome to the country and
-on account of which the war with Germany had taken
-such an unexpected and dangerous course.</p>
-
-<p>The Empress, like all stupid people, and her stupidity
-has not been denied, even by her best friends,
-believed that one could rule a nation by terror. She,
-therefore, always interposed herself whenever Nicholas<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">19</span>
-II. was induced to adopt a more liberal system of
-government and urged him to subdue by force aspirations
-it would have been far better for him to have
-encouraged. She had listened to all the representatives
-of that detestable old bureaucratic system which
-gave to the police the sole right to dispose of people’s
-lives and which relied on Siberia and the knout to keep
-in order an aggrieved country eager to be admitted
-to the circle of civilised European nations.</p>
-
-<p>Without her and without her absurd fears, it is
-likely that the first Duma would not have been dissolved.
-Without her entreaties, it is probable that
-the troops composing the garrison at St. Petersburg
-would not have been commanded to fire at the peaceful
-population of the capital on that January day
-when, headed by the priest Gapone, it had repaired
-to the Winter Palace to lay its wrongs before the
-Czar, whom it still worshipped at that time. She was
-at the bottom of every tyrannical action which took
-place during the reign of Nicholas II. And lately
-she was the moving spirit in the campaign, engineered
-by the friends of Rasputin, to conclude a separate
-peace with Germany.</p>
-
-<p>In the long intrigue which came to an end by the
-publication of the Manifesto of Pskov, Rasputin undoubtedly
-played a considerable part, but all unconsciously.
-Those who used him, together with his
-influence, were very careful not to initiate him into
-their different schemes. But they paid him, they fed
-him, they gave him champagne to drink and pretty
-women to make love to in order to induce him to represent
-them to the Empress as being the only men capable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">20</span>
-of saving Russia, about which she did not care,
-and her crown, to which she was so attached. With
-Rasputin she never discussed politics, nor did the Emperor.
-But with his friends she talked over every
-political subject of importance to the welfare of the
-nation, and being convinced that they were the men
-best capable of upholding her interests, she forced
-them upon her husband and compelled him to follow
-the advice which they gave. She could not bear contradiction,
-and she loved flattery. She was convinced
-that no one was more clever than herself, and she
-wished to impose her views everywhere and upon
-every occasion.</p>
-
-<p>Few sovereigns have been hated as she has been.
-In every class of society her name was mentioned with
-execration, and following the introduction of Rasputin
-into her household this aversion which she inspired
-grew to a phenomenal extent. She was openly accused
-of degrading the position which she held and
-the crown which she wore. In every town and village
-of the empire her conduct came to be discussed
-and her person to be cursed. She was held responsible
-for all the mistakes that were made, for all the
-blunders which were committed, for all the omissions
-which had been deplored. And when the plot
-against Rasputin came to be engineered it was as
-much directed against the person of Alexandra Feodorovna
-as against that of her favourite, and it was she
-whom the people aimed to strike through him.</p>
-
-<p>Had she shown some common sense after the murder
-of a man whom she well knew was considered the
-most dangerous enemy of the Romanoff dynasty<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">21</span>
-things might have taken a different course. Though
-every one was agreed as to the necessity of a change
-in the system of government of Russia, though a revolution
-was considered inevitable, yet no one wished
-it to happen at the moment when it did, and all political
-parties were agreed as to the necessity of postponing
-it until after the war. But the exasperation
-of the Empress against those who had removed her
-favourite led her to trust even more in those whom he
-had introduced and recommended to her attention.
-She threw herself with a renewed vigour into their
-schemes, urging her husband to dishonour himself,
-together with his signature, by turning traitor to his
-allies and to his promises. She wanted him to conclude
-a peace with Germany that would have allowed her a
-free hand in her desires to punish all the people who
-had conspired against her and against the man upon
-whom she had looked as a saviour and a saint. Once
-this fact was recognised the revolution became inevitable.
-It is to the credit of Russia that it took place
-with the dignity that has marked its development and
-success.</p>
-
-<p>This, in broad lines, is the summary of the causes
-that have brought about the fall of the Romanoff dynasty,
-and they must never be lost sight of when one
-is trying to describe it. It is, however, far too early
-to judge the Russian revolution in its effects because,
-for one thing, it is far from being at an end, and may
-yet take quite an unexpected turn. For another, the
-events connected with it are still too fresh to be considered
-from an objective point of view. I have,
-therefore, refrained from expressing an opinion in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">22</span>
-this narrative. My aim has been to present to my
-readers a description of the personality of Rasputin,
-together with the part, such as I know it, that he has
-played in the development of Russian history during
-the last five years or so, and afterward to describe the
-course of the revolution and the reasons that have led
-to its explosion in such an unexpected manner.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">23</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_I">CHAPTER I</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">We</span> live in strange times, when strange things happen
-which at first sight seem unintelligible and the
-reason for which we fail to grasp. Even in Russia,
-where Rasputin had become the most talked-of person
-in the whole empire, few people fully realised
-what he was and what had been the part which he
-had played in Russia’s modern history. Yet during
-the last ten years his name had become a familiar one
-in the palaces of the great nobles whose names were
-written down in the Golden Book of the aristocracy
-of the country, as well as in the huts of the poorest
-peasants in the land. At a time when incredulity was
-attacking the heart and the intelligence of the Russian
-nation the appearance of this vagrant preacher
-and adept of one of the most persecuted sects in the
-empire was almost as great an event as was that of
-Cagliostro during the years which preceded the fall
-of the old French monarchy.</p>
-
-<p>There was, however, a great difference between the
-two personages. One was a courtier and a refined
-man of the world, while the other was only an uncouth
-peasant, with a crude cunning which made him discover
-soon in what direction his bread could be buttered
-and what advantages he might reap out of the
-extraordinary positions to which events, together with
-the ambitions of a few, had carried him. He was a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">24</span>
-perfect impersonation of the kind of individual known
-in the annals of Russian history as “Wremienschtchik,”
-literally “the Man of the Day,” an appellation
-which since the times of Peter the Great had clung
-to all the different favourites of Russian sovereigns.
-There was one difference, however, and this a most
-essential one. He had never been the favourite of the
-present Czar, who perhaps did not feel as sorry as
-might have been expected by his sudden disappearance
-from the scene of the world.</p>
-
-<p>I shall say a thing which perhaps will surprise my
-readers. Personally, Rasputin was never the omnipotent
-man he was believed to be, and more than
-once most of the things which were attributed to him
-were not at all his own work. But he liked the public
-to think that he had a finger in every pie that was
-being baked. And he contrived to imbue Russian society
-at large with such a profound conviction that he
-could do absolutely everything he chose in regard to
-the placing or displacing of people in high places, obtaining
-money grants and government contracts for
-his various “protégés,” that very often the persons
-upon whom certain things depended hastened to grant
-them to those who asked in the name of Rasputin, out
-of sheer fright of finding this terrible being in their
-way. They feared to refuse compliance with any request
-preferred to them either by himself or by one
-who could recommend himself on the strength of his
-good offices on their behalf. But Rasputin was the
-tool of a man far more clever than himself, Count
-Witte. It was partly due to the latter’s influence and
-directions that he tried to mix himself up in affairs<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">25</span>
-of state and to give advice to people whom he thought
-to be in need of it. He was an illiterate brute, but
-he had all the instincts of a domineering mind which
-circumstances and the station of life in which he had
-been born had prevented from developing. He had
-also something else—an undoubted magnetic force,
-which allowed him to add auto-suggestion to all his
-words and which made even unbelieving people succumb
-sometimes to the hypnotic practices which he
-most undoubtedly exercised to a considerable extent
-during the last years of his adventurous existence.</p>
-
-<p>Amidst the discontent which, it would be idle to
-deny, had existed in the Russian empire during the
-period which immediately preceded the great war the
-personality of Rasputin had played a great part in
-giving to certain people the opportunity to exploit
-his almost constant presence at the side of the sovereign
-as a means to foment public opinion against
-the Emperor and to throw discredit upon him by representing
-him as being entirely under the influence
-of the cunning peasant who, by a strange freak of
-destiny, had suddenly become far more powerful than
-the strongest ministers themselves. The press belonging
-to the opposition parties had got into the
-habit of attacking him and calling his attendance on
-the imperial court an open scandal, which ought in
-the interest of the dynasty to be put an end to by
-every means available.</p>
-
-<p>In the Duma his name had been mentioned more
-than once, and always with contempt. Every kind of
-reproach had been hurled at him, and others had not
-been spared. He had become at last a fantastic kind<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">26</span>
-of creature, more exploited than exploiting, more destroyable
-than destructive, one whose real “rôle” will
-never be known to its full extent, who might in other
-countries than Russia and at another time have become
-the founder of some religious order or secret
-association. His actions when examined in detail do
-not differ very much from those of the fanatics which
-in Paris under the reign of Louis XV. were called
-the “Convulsionnaires,” and who gave way to all kind
-of excesses under the pretext that these were acceptable
-to God by reason of the personality of the people
-who inspired them. In civilised, intelligent, well-educated
-Europe such an apparition would have been
-impossible, but in Russia, that land of mysteries and
-of deep faiths, where there still exist religious sects
-given to all kinds of excesses and to attacks of pious
-madness (for it can hardly be called by any other
-name), he acquired within a relatively short time the
-affections of a whole lot of people. They were inclined
-to see in him a prophet whose prayers were capable
-of winning for them the Divine Paradise for
-which their hungry souls were longing. There was
-nothing at all phenomenal about it. It was even in
-a certain sense quite a natural manifestation of this
-large Russian nature, which is capable of so many
-good or bad excesses and which has deeply incrusted
-at the bottom of its heart a tendency to seek the supernatural
-in default of the religious convictions
-which, thanks to circumstances, it has come to lose.</p>
-
-<p>The American public is perhaps not generally
-aware of the character of certain religious sects in
-Russia, which is considered to be a country of orthodoxy,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">27</span>
-with the Czar at its head, and where people
-think there is no room left for any other religion than
-the official one to develop itself. In reality, things
-are very different, and to this day, outside of the
-recognised nonconformists, who have their own bishops
-and priests, and whose faith is recognised and
-acknowledged by the State, there are any number of
-sects, each more superstitious and each more powerful
-than the other in regard to the influence which
-they exercise over their adherents. These, though
-not numerous by any means, yet are actuated by such
-fanaticism that they are apt at certain moments
-to become subjects of considerable embarrassment to
-the authorities. Some are inspired by the conviction
-that the only means to escape from the clutches of the
-devil consists in suicide or in the murder of other
-people.</p>
-
-<p>For instance, the Baby Killers, or Dietooubitsy,
-as they are called, think it a duty to send to Heaven
-the souls of new-born infants, which they destroy as
-soon as they see the light of day, thinking thus
-to render themselves agreeable to the Almighty by
-snatching children away from the power of the evil
-one. Another sect, which goes by the name of
-Stranglers, fully believes that the doors of Heaven
-are only opened before those who have died a violent
-death, and whenever a relative or friend is dangerously
-ill they proceed to smother him under the
-weight of many pillows so as to hasten the end. The
-Philipovtsy preach salvation through suicide, and the
-voluntary death of several people in common is considered
-by them as a most meritorious action. Sometimes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">28</span>
-whole villages decide to unite themselves in one
-immense holocaust and barricade themselves in a
-house, which is afterward set on fire.</p>
-
-<p>An incident that occurred during the reign of Alexander
-II. is remembered to this day in Russia. A
-peasant called Khodkine persuaded twenty people to
-retire together with him into a grotto hidden in the
-vast forests of the government of Perm, where he
-compelled them to die of hunger. Two women having
-contrived to escape, the fanatics, fearing that they
-might be denounced, killed themselves with the first
-weapons which fell under their hand. It was their
-terror that they might find themselves compelled to
-renounce their sinister design, and thus fall again into
-the clutches of that Satan for fear of whom they had
-made up their minds to encounter an awful death.
-Even as late as the end of the last century such acts
-of fanaticism could be met with here and there in
-the east and centre of Russia. In 1883, under the
-reign of the father of the last Czar, a peasant in
-the government of Riazan, called Joukoff, burnt himself
-to death by setting fire to his clothes, which he
-had previously soaked in paraffin, and expired under
-the most awful torments, singing hymns of praise to
-the Lord.</p>
-
-<p>Among all these heresies there are two which have
-attracted more than the others the attention of the
-authorities, thanks to their secret rites and to their
-immoral tendencies. They are the Skoptsy, or Voluntary
-Eunuchs, about which it is useless to say anything
-here, and the Khlysty, or Flagellants, which
-to this day has a considerable number of adepts and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">29</span>
-to which Rasputin undoubtedly belonged, to which,
-in fact, he openly owed allegiance. This sect, which
-calls itself “Men of God,” has the strangest rites
-which human imagination can invent. According to
-its precepts, a human creature should try to raise its
-soul toward the Divinity with the help of sexual excesses
-of all kinds. During their assemblies they indulge
-in a kind of waltz around and around the room,
-which reminds one of nothing so much as the rounds
-of the Dancing Dervishes in the East. They dance
-and dance until their strength fails them, when they
-drop to the floor in a kind of trance or ecstasy, during
-which, being hardly accountable for their actions, they
-imagine that they see Christ and the Virgin Mary
-among them. They then threw themselves into the
-embrace of the supposed divinities.</p>
-
-<p>As a rule the general public knows very little concerning
-these sects, but I shall quote here a passage
-out of a book on Russia by Sir Donald Mackenzie
-Wallace, which is considered to this day as a standard
-work in regard to its subject. “Among the ‘Khlysty,’”
-he writes, “there are men and women who take
-upon themselves the calling of teachers and prophets,
-and in this character they lead a strict, ascetic life, refrain
-from the most ordinary and innocent pleasures,
-exhaust themselves by long fasting and wild ecstatic
-religious exercises and abhor marriage. Under the
-excitement caused by their supposed holiness and inspiration,
-they call themselves not only teachers and
-prophets, but also Saviours, Redeemers, Christs,
-Mothers of God. Generally speaking, they call themselves
-simply gods and pray to each other as to real<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">30</span>
-gods and living Christs and Madonnas. When several
-of these teachers come together at a meeting they
-dispute with each other in a vain, boasting way as to
-which of them possesses most grace and power. In
-this rivalry they sometimes give each other lusty
-blows on the ear, and he who bears the blows the most
-patiently, turning the other cheek to the smiter, acquires
-the reputation of having the most holiness.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Another sect belonging to the same category
-and which indeed claims close kindred with it is the
-Jumpers, among whom the erotic element is disagreeably
-prominent. Here is a description of
-their religious meetings, which are held during
-summer in a forest and during winter in some outhouse
-or barn. After due preparation prayers are
-read by the chief teacher, dressed in a white robe
-and standing in the midst of the congregation. At
-first he reads in an ordinary tone of voice and then
-passes gradually into a merry chant. When he remarks
-that the chanting has sufficiently acted on the
-hearers he begins to jump. The hearers, singing
-likewise, follow his example. Their ever-increasing
-excitement finds expression in the highest possible
-jumps. This they continue as long as they can—men
-and women alike yelling like enraged savages.
-When all are thoroughly exhausted the leader declares
-that he hears the angels singing, and then
-begins a scene which cannot be here described.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I have quoted this passage in full because it may
-give to the reader who is not versed in the details of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">31</span>
-Russian existence and Russian psychology the key to
-the circumstances that helped Rasputin to absorb for
-such a considerable number of years the attention of
-the public in Russia, and which, in fact, made him
-possible as a great ruling, though not governing,
-force in the country. In some ways he had appealed
-to the two great features of the human character in
-general and of the Russian character in particular—mysticism
-and influence of the senses. It is not so
-surprising as it might seem at first sight that he contrived
-to ascend to a position which no one who knew
-him at first ever supposed he would or could attain.</p>
-
-<p>At the same time I must, in giving a brief sketch
-of the career of this extraordinary individual, protest
-against the many calumnies which have associated him
-with names which I will not mention here out of respect
-and feelings of patriotism. It is sufficiently
-painful to have to say so, but German calumny, which
-spares no one, has used its poisoned arrows also where
-Rasputin came to be discussed. It has tried to travesty
-maternal love and anxiety into something quite
-different, and it has attempted to sully what it could
-not touch. There have been many sad episodes in
-this whole story of Rasputin, but some of the people
-who have been mentioned in connection with them
-were completely innocent of the things for which they
-have been reproached. Finally, the indignation which
-these vile and unfounded accusations roused in the
-hearts of the true friends and servants of the people
-led to the drama which removed forever from the surface
-of Russian society the sectarian who unfortunately
-had contrived to glide into its midst.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">32</span></p>
-
-<p>The one extraordinary thing about Rasputin is
-that he was not murdered sooner. He was so entirely
-despised and so universally detested all over
-Russia that it was really a miracle that he could remain
-alive so long a time after it had been found impossible
-to remove him from the scene of the world
-by other than violent means. It was a recognised fact
-that he had had a hand in all kinds of dirty money
-matters and that no business of a financial character
-connected with military expenditure could be brought
-to a close without his being mixed in it. About this,
-however, I shall speak later on in trying to explain
-how the Rasputin legend spread and how it was exploited
-by all kinds of individuals of a shady character,
-who used his name for purposes of their own. The
-scandal connected with the shameless manner in
-which he became associated with innumerable transactions
-more or less disreputable was so enormous
-that unfortunately it extended to people and to names
-that should never have been mentioned together with
-him.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>It must never be forgotten, and I cannot repeat
-this sufficiently, that Rasputin was a common peasant
-of the worst class of the Russian moujiks, devoid
-of every kind of education, without any manners and
-in his outward appearance more disgusting than
-anything else. It would be impossible to explain the
-influence which he undoubtedly contrived to acquire
-upon some persons belonging to the highest social
-circles if one did not take into account this mysticism
-and superstition which lie at the bottom of the Slav<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">33</span>
-nature and the tendency which the Russian character
-has to accept as a manifestation of the power of the
-divinity all things that touch upon the marvellous or
-the unexplainable. Rasputin in a certain sense appeared
-on the scene of Russian social life at the very
-moment when his teachings could become acceptable,
-at the time when Russian society had been shaken
-to its deepest depths by the revolution which had
-followed upon the Japanese war and when it was
-looking everywhere for a safe harbour in which to
-find a refuge.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>At the beginning of his career and when he was
-introduced into the most select circles of the Russian
-capital, thanks to the caprices and the fancies of two
-or three fanatic orthodox ladies who had imagined
-that they had found in him a second Savonarola and
-that his sermons and teachings could provoke a renewal
-of religious fervour, people laughed at him and
-at his feminine disciples, and made all kinds of jokes,
-good and bad, about him and them. But this kind
-of thing did not last long and Rasputin, who, though
-utterly devoid of culture, had a good deal of the
-cunning which is one of the distinctive features of
-the Russian peasant, was the first to guess all the
-possibilities which this sudden “engouement” of influential
-people for his person opened out before him
-and to what use it could be put for his ambition as
-well as his inordinate love of money. He began by
-exacting a considerable salary for all the prayers
-which he was supposed to say at the request of his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">34</span>
-worshippers, and of all the ladies, fair or unfair, who
-had canonised him in their enthusiasm for all the
-wonderful things which he was continually telling
-them. He was eloquent in a way and at the beginning
-of his extraordinary thaumaturgic existence had
-not yet adopted the attitude which he was to assume
-later on—of an idol, whom every one had to adore.</p>
-
-<div id="i_034" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 32em;">
- <img src="images/i_034.jpg" width="2034" height="1625" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Photograph, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The Ex-Czar and His Family</span></p></div></div>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>He was preaching the necessity of repenting of
-one’s sins, making due penance for them after a particular
-manner, which he described as being the most
-agreeable to God, and praying constantly and with
-unusual fervour for the salvation of orthodox Russia.
-He contrived most cleverly to play upon the
-chord of patriotism which is always so developed in
-Russians, and to speak to them of the welfare of their
-beloved fatherland whenever he thought it advantageous
-to his personal interests to do so. He succeeded
-in inspiring in his adepts a faith in his own
-person and in his power to save their souls akin to that
-which is to be met with in England and in America
-among the sect of the Christian Scientists, and he
-very rapidly became a kind of Russian Mrs. Eddy.
-A few hysterical ladies, who were addicted to neuralgia
-or headaches, suddenly found themselves better
-after having conversed or prayed with him, and they
-spread his fame outside the small circle which had
-adopted him at the beginning of his career. One
-fine day a personal friend of the reigning Empress,
-Madame Wyroubourg, introduced him at Tsarskoie
-Selo, under the pretext of praying for the health of
-the small heir to the Russian throne, who was occasioning<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">35</span>
-some anxiety to his parents. It was from
-that day that he became a personage.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>His success at court was due to the superstitious
-dread with which he contrived to inspire the Empress
-in regard to her son. She was constantly trembling
-for him, and being very religiously inclined, with
-strong leanings toward mysticism, she allowed herself
-to be persuaded more by the people who surrounded
-her than by Rasputin himself. She believed that the
-man of whose holiness she was absolutely persuaded,
-could by his prayers alone obtain the protection of the
-Almighty for her beloved child. An accidental occurrence
-contributed to strengthen her in this conviction.
-There were persons who were of the opinion
-that the presence of Rasputin at Tsarskoie Selo was
-not advantageous for many reasons. Among them
-was Mr. Stolypine, then Minister of the Interior, and
-he it was who made such strong representations that
-at last Rasputin himself deemed it advisable to return
-to his native village of Pokrovskoie, in Siberia.
-A few days after his departure the little Grand Duke
-fell seriously ill and his mother became persuaded that
-this was a punishment for her having allowed the vagrant
-preacher to be sent away. Rasputin was recalled,
-and after this no one ever spoke again of his
-being removed anywhere. From that time all kinds
-of adventurers began to lay siege to him and to do
-their utmost to gain an introduction.</p>
-
-<p>Russia was still the land where a court favourite
-was all-powerful, and Rasputin was held as such, especially
-by those who had some personal interest in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">36</span>
-representing him as the successor to Menschikoff under
-Peter the Great, Biren under the Empress Anne
-and Orloff under Catherine II. He acquired a far
-greater influence outside Tsarskoie Selo than he ever
-enjoyed in the imperial residence itself, and he made
-the best of it, boasting of a position which in reality
-he did not possess. The innumerable state functionaries,
-who in Russia unfortunately always have the
-last word to say everywhere and in everything and
-whose rapacity is proverbial, hastened to put themselves
-at the service of Rasputin and to grant him
-everything which he asked, in the hope that in return
-he would make himself useful to them.</p>
-
-<p>A kind of bargaining established itself between
-people desirous of making a career and Rasputin,
-eager to enrich himself no matter by what means.
-He began by playing the intermediary in different
-financial transactions for a substantial consideration,
-and at last he thought himself entitled to give
-his attention to matters of state. This was the saddest
-side of his remarkable career as a pseudo-Cagliostro.
-He had a good deal of natural intelligence,
-and while being the first to laugh at fair ladies who
-clustered around him, he understood at once that he
-could make use of them. This he did not fail to do.
-He adopted toward them the manners of a stern master,
-and treated them like his humble slaves. At last
-he ended by leading the existence of a man of pleasure,
-denying himself nothing, especially his fondness
-for liquor of every kind. At that time there was no
-prohibition in Russia and, like all Russian peasants,
-Rasputin was very fond of vodka, to which he never<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">37</span>
-missed adding a substantial quantity of champagne
-whenever he found the opportunity.</p>
-
-<p>I shall abstain from touching upon the delicate
-point of the orgies to which it is related that Rasputin
-was in the habit of addicting himself, the more so because
-I do not really believe these ever took place in
-those higher circles of society where it was said they
-regularly occurred. That strange things may have
-happened among the common people, who in far
-greater numbers than it has ever been known, used to
-attend the religious meetings which he held, I shall
-not deny. It must always be remembered that Rasputin
-belonged to the religious sect of the Khlysty, of
-whose assemblies we have read the description, and it
-is quite likely, and even probable, that the assemblies
-of these sectarians at which he presided were not different
-from the others to which these heretics crowded.
-But I feel absolutely convinced that as regards the
-relations of the adventurer with the numerous ladies
-of society silly enough to believe in him and in his
-gifts of prophecy, these consisted only of superstitious
-reverence on one side and exploitation of human stupidity
-on the other.</p>
-
-<p>I must once more insist on the point that the apparition
-of Rasputin in Russian society had nothing
-wonderful about it, and that the only strange thing
-is that such a fuss was made. Before his time people
-belonging to the highest social circles had become afflicted
-with religious manias of one kind or another
-out of that natural longing for something to believe
-in and to worship which lies hidden at the bottom of
-the character of every Russian who has the leisure,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">38</span>
-or the craving, to examine seriously the difficult and
-complicated problems of a future life and of the faith
-one ought to follow and to believe in.</p>
-
-<p>In 1817 there was discovered in the very heart of
-St. Petersburg, holding its meetings in an imperial
-residence (the Michael Palace), a religious sect of
-most pronounced mystical tendencies, presided over
-by a lady belonging to the best circles of the capital—the
-widow of a colonel, Madame Tatarinoff. In her
-apartments used to gather officers, State functionaries,
-women and girls of good family and excellent
-education who, with slight variations, practised all the
-religious rites of the Khlystys. One of the Ministers
-of Alexander I., Prince Galitzyne, was suspected of
-having honoured these assemblies with his presence.
-Thanks to a letter which accidentally fell into the
-hands of the police, the Government became aware
-of what was going on, and Madame Tatarinoff, this
-Russian Madame Guyon, expiated in exile in a distant
-province of Siberia the ecstasies which she had
-practised and which she had allowed others to practise
-under her roof. Some of her disciples were prosecuted,
-but the greater number escaped scot free. The
-authorities did not care to increase the scandal which
-this affair had aroused in the capital.</p>
-
-<p>Much later, in 1878, after the Russo-Turkish war,
-which, like the Japanese affair, had been followed by
-a strong revolutionary movement in the country that
-culminated in the assassination of the Czar, Alexander
-II., another prophet, this time of foreign origin,
-appeared on the social horizon of St. Petersburg society,
-where he made a considerable number of converts.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">39</span>
-This was the famous Lord Radstock, whose
-doctrines were taken up by a gentleman who up to
-that time had been known as one of the gayest among
-the gay, a colonel in the Guards—Mr. Basil Paschkoff.
-He was enormously rich, and put all his vast
-fortune at the service of the religious craze which had
-seized him. He used his best efforts to convert to
-the doctrine of salvation through faith only not alone
-his friends and relatives, but also the poorer classes
-of the population of the capital, devoting in particular
-his attention to the cab drivers. All these people
-used to meet at his house, where they mingled with
-persons of the highest rank and standing, such as
-Count Korff, and a former Minister, Count Alexis
-Bobrinsky. Later on the whole Tchertkoff family,
-to which belonged the famous friend of Count Leo
-Tolstoy, associated itself with them, and, indeed, displayed
-the greatest fanaticism in regard to its participation
-in the doctrines of the new sect.</p>
-
-<p>The Paschkovites, as they came to be called, had
-nothing at all in common with the Khlystys. Their
-morals were absolutely unimpeachable, and what they
-preached was simply the necessity to conform one’s
-morals were absolutely unimpeachable, and what they
-explained and commented upon, each person according
-to his own light. They were Protestants in a
-certain sense, inasmuch as their views were distinctly
-Protestant ones. But they had much more in common
-with the nonconformists than the real followers
-of Luther or of Calvin. They were a kind of refined
-Salvation Army, if this expression can be forgiven
-me; though they never acquired the importance,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">40</span>
-nor did the good which the latter has done, perhaps
-because they could never make any practical application
-of the principles and of the ideas which animated
-them. But at one time the Paschkovist craze
-was just as strong as the Rasputin one became later
-on, and Lord Radstock and Mr. Paschkoff were considered
-just as much prophets among their own particular
-circle as was Rasputin among the fanatical
-ladies who had taken him up.</p>
-
-<p>These crises of religious mania are regular occurrences
-in Russian higher social circles when unusually
-grave circumstances arrive to shake their equanimity.
-Seen from this particular point of view, the
-apparition of Rasputin and the importance which his
-personality acquired in the life of the Russian upper
-classes present nothing very wonderful. Before him
-other so-called prophets had kept the attention of
-the public riveted upon their doings and their actions.</p>
-
-<p>What distinguished his short passage was the fact
-that it was made the occasion by the natural enemies
-of the empire, consisting of the discontented at home,
-and of the Germans outside the frontier, to discredit
-the dynasty as well as those whose life was spent in
-its immediate vicinity and to present this figure of
-the vagrant half-monk and half-layman, who
-preached a new relation to those foolish enough to
-listen to him, as being one of almost gigantic importance,
-who could at his will and fancy direct the course
-of public affairs and lead them wherever he wanted.</p>
-
-<p>My object in this study will be to show Rasputin
-for what he really was, and in retracing the different
-vicissitudes of his strange career, not to give way to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">41</span>
-the many exaggerations, which, in familiarising
-people abroad with his person and with his name,
-have made out of him something quite wonderful,
-and almost equal in power with the Czar himself.
-It is time to do away with such legends and to bring
-Rasputin back to his proper level—a very able and
-cunning, half-cultured peasant, who owed his successes
-only to the fanaticism of the few, and to the
-interest which many had in dissimulating themselves
-behind him, in order to bring their personal wishes to
-a successful end. It is not Rasputin who performed
-most of the actions put to his credit. It was those
-who influenced him, who pushed him forward and
-who, thanks to him, became both rich and powerful.
-He has disappeared. I wish we could be as sure that
-they have disappeared along with him.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">42</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_II">CHAPTER II</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">The</span> beginning of the career of Gregory Rasputin
-is shrouded with a veil of deep mystery. He was a
-native of Siberia, of a small village in the government
-of Tobolsk, called Pokrovskoie. Some people
-relate that when quite a youth he was compromised in
-a crime which attracted some attention at the time—the
-murder of a rich merchant who was travelling from
-Omsk to Tobolsk to acquire from an inhabitant of
-the latter town some gold diggings, of which he
-wished to dispose. This merchant was known to
-carry a large sum of money, and as he never reached
-his destination inquiries were started. At last his
-body was found, with the head battered by blows,
-hidden in a ditch by the high road, together with that
-of the coachman who had driven him. The murderers
-were never discovered, but dark rumours concerning
-the participation of the youth Rasputin in the deed
-spread all over the village.</p>
-
-<p>Whether it was the desire to put an end to them,
-or remorse for an action of which he knew himself to
-be guilty, it is difficult to say, but the fact remains
-that suddenly Gricha, as he was called, developed
-mystical tendencies and took to attending some religious
-meetings at which a certain wandering pilgrim
-used to preach. The latter used to go from place to
-place in Siberia predicting the end of the world and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">43</span>
-the advent of the dreaded day of Judgment when
-Christ would once again appear to demand from humanity
-an account of its various good or bad actions.
-For something like two years Rasputin followed him,
-until at last he began himself to assume the character
-of a lay preacher, to apply himself to the study of the
-Scriptures and to try to establish a sect of his own,
-the principles of which he exposed to his followers in
-these terms:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>I am possessed of the Holy Spirit, and it is only
-through me that one can be saved. In order to do
-so, one must unite oneself with me in body and soul.
-Everything which proceeds from me is holy, and
-cleanses one from sin.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>On the strength of this theory, Rasputin declared
-that he could do whatever he liked or wished. He surrounded
-himself with worshippers of both sexes, who
-believed that by a close union with him they could
-obtain their eternal salvation, together with divine
-forgiveness for any sins they might have committed
-during their previous existence.</p>
-
-<p>Strange tales began to be related concerning the
-religious assemblies at which the new prophet presided.
-But, nevertheless, the whole village of Pokrovskoie,
-whither he had returned after his few years’
-wanderings, accepted his teachings and submitted to
-his decrees with scarcely any exceptions. These unbelievers
-were looked upon askance by the majority
-of the inhabitants, who had succumbed to the
-“monk’s” power of fascination and hypnotism. It<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">44</span>
-was with nothing else that Rasputin kept his “flock”
-subjugated. He introduced among them the cult
-of his own person, together with certain rites which
-he called “sacrifice with prayer.”</p>
-
-<p>According to the narratives of some people, who out
-of curiosity had attended these ceremonies, this is how
-they proceeded: In the night, as soon as the first
-stars had become visible in the sky, Rasputin, with
-the help of his disciples, dragged some wood into a
-deep ditch dug for the purpose and lighted a huge
-bonfire. On a tripod placed in the midst of this fire
-was put a cup full of incense and different herbs,
-around which people began to dance, holding themselves
-by the hand all the while, and singing in a voice
-which became louder and louder as the wild exercise
-became more and more accelerated different hymns
-which always ended with the phrase: “Forgive us our
-sins, O Lord, forgive us our sins.”</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>The dance went on until people fell exhausted to
-the ground and groans and tears replaced the former
-singing. The fire died out slowly and, when darkness
-had become complete, the voice of Rasputin was
-heard calling upon his disciples to proceed to the
-sacrifice which God required them to perform. Then
-followed a scene of general orgy.</p>
-
-<div class="tb">* * * * *</div>
-
-<p>As one can see by this tale, the strange practices
-introduced by the seer, about whom people were already
-beginning to talk, differed in no way from
-those generally in use among the Khlysty, and, indeed,
-Rasputin made no secret of his allegiance to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">45</span>
-this particular form of heresy, in which, however, he
-had introduced a few alterations. For instance, he
-did not admit that the souls of his followers could be
-saved by a general prayer, but only thanks to one uttered
-in common with him, and by a complete submission
-to his will. Some persons have alleged that
-during the early wanderings of Rasputin he had gone
-as far as China and Thibet, and there learned some
-Buddhist practices, but this is hardly probable, as
-in that case his instruction would have been more developed
-than it was. It is far more likely that during
-his travels he had met with exiled sectarians belonging
-to the different persecuted religious Russian communities,
-of which there exist so many in the whole
-Oural region, and that they initiated him into some
-of their rites and customs. They also made him attentive
-to the hypnotic powers, which he most undoubtedly
-possessed, teaching him how to use them
-for his own benefit and advantage.</p>
-
-<p>Very soon Rasputin found that Pokrovskoie was
-not a field wide enough for his energies, and he took
-to travelling, together with a crowd of disciples that
-followed him everywhere over the eastern and central
-Russian provinces. There he contrived to win every
-day new adherents to the doctrines in which free love
-figured so prominently. Among the towns where
-he obtained the most success can be mentioned those
-of Kazan, Saratoff, Kieff and Samara.</p>
-
-<p>Concerning his doings in Kazan, people became informed
-through a letter which one of his victims addressed
-to the bishop of that diocese, Monsignor Feofane,
-who had shown at the beginning of Rasputin’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">46</span>
-career a considerable interest in him and who had
-protected him with great success. In this letter,
-which later on found its way into the press, the following
-was said among other things:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Your Reverence, I absolutely fail to understand
-how it is possible that you continue to this day to
-know and see Gregory Rasputin. He is Satan in
-person and the things which he does are worthy of
-those that the Antichrist alone is supposed to perform,
-and prove that the latter’s advent is at hand.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The writer then proceeded to explain that Rasputin
-had completely subjugated the mind of her two
-daughters, one of whom was aged twenty, whilst the
-second had not yet attained her sixteenth year.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“One afternoon,” writes this unfortunate mother,
-“I met in the street, coming out of a bathhouse,
-Rasputin, together with my two girls. One must be
-a mother to understand the feelings which overpowered
-me at this sight. I could find no words to
-say, but remained standing motionless and silent
-before them. The prophet turned to me and slowly
-said: ‘Now you may feel at peace, the day of salvation
-has dawned for your daughters!’”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Another woman, who had also fallen under the spell
-of Rasputin, wrote as follows about him:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I left my parents, to whom I was tenderly attached,
-to follow the prophet. One day when we
-were travelling together in a reserved first-class<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">47</span>
-carriage, talking about the salvation of souls and
-the means to become a true child of God, he suddenly
-got up, approached me, and * * * proceeded
-to cleanse me of all my sins. Towards
-evening I became anxious and asked him: ‘Perhaps
-what we have been doing to-day was a sin,
-Gregory Efimitsch?’ ‘No, my daughter,’ he replied,
-‘it was not a sin. Our affections are a gift
-from God, which we may use as freely as we
-like.’”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Bishop Feofane finally was obliged to recognise the
-evil which Rasputin was constantly doing, and he bitterly
-repented having been taken in by him and by
-his hypocrisy. He reproached himself especially for
-having given him a letter of recommendation to the
-famous Father John of Cronstadt, through whom
-Rasputin was to become acquainted with some of the
-people who were later on to pilot him in the society of
-St. Petersburg. The bishop was not a clever man
-by any means, but he had been sincere in his admiration
-for Rasputin, a fact which added to the consternation
-that overpowered him when the truth about the
-famous sectarian became known to him. He assembled
-a kind of judicial court, composed of one bishop,
-one monk and three well-known and highly respected
-civil functionaries, and called upon the prophet to
-come and explain himself before this court as to the
-actions which were imputed to him. Among these
-figured his general conduct in regard to the women
-who had enrolled themselves in the ranks of his disciples.
-But somehow the adventurer succeeded in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">48</span>
-dispelling the suspicions that had become attached to
-his name and conduct, and he explained in a more or
-less plausible manner the things which had been told
-about him. His leanings towards feminine society,
-and his invariable custom of bathing with women, he
-declared to be quite innocent things, and only a proof
-of his desire to show that it was quite possible for
-human beings to rise above every kind of carnal
-temptation.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of this episode, which would have interfered
-with the career of any one but Rasputin, the
-fame of the latter grew with every day that passed.
-He established himself at last in the town of Tiumen
-in Siberia, where he hired the whole of a large house
-for himself and some of his most favoured disciples,
-and he began to turn his activity into another and more
-profitable channel. He established reception hours
-every day, when all his followers, admirers and friends
-could come to speak with him about any business they
-liked. Hundreds of people used to attend those receptions,
-among them some very influential persons
-curious to see and speak with the modern Peter the
-Hermit, who declared that he had been called by God
-to save Holy Russia. In some mysterious manner
-he acquired the reputation of having great influence
-in high quarters, where (this must be noticed) he was
-at the time still quite unknown. Governors fearing
-dismissal, rapacious functionaries whose exactions
-had become too flagrant, as well as business men in
-quest of some good “geschaft,” to use the German expression
-employed before the war among financial
-circles in Russia, crowded round him, waiting sometimes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">49</span>
-hours for an opportunity to speak with him, and
-fully believing in his capacities for obtaining what
-they required.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin soon became a kind of business agent and
-surrounded himself with a number of secretaries of
-both sexes, whose occupation consisted in attending
-to his correspondence—he could himself hardly read
-or write—and in receiving the numerous offerings
-which were being brought to him daily. These secretaries,
-among whom figured a sister of the Bishop of
-Saratoff, Warnava, made an immense amount of
-money themselves because no one was ever admitted
-into the presence of Rasputin without having previously
-paid dearly for this favour. Very soon they established
-a tax in regard to the audiences granted by
-their master.</p>
-
-<p>Besides this sister of Bishop Warnava, Rasputin
-had another female secretary, and they both accompanied
-him in all his travels, calling themselves his
-spiritual sisters. They constituted, so to say, his
-bodyguard, and wherever he went, even in St. Petersburg,
-they never left off attending him and seeing to
-all his wants. They were the channel through which
-everything had to go, and without their consent no
-one was ever admitted into the presence of the
-“Saint,” as they already had begun to call him.</p>
-
-<p>Gregory Rasputin very often used to visit Tobolsk,
-where he was always received with great ceremony
-and pomp, as if he had been really the important personage
-he believed himself. The policeman in the
-streets saluted him as he passed; the carriage in which
-he drove was escorted or preceded by a high police<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">50</span>
-functionary, and the governor asked him to dinner.
-The same kind of thing used to take place in other
-Siberian cities. In one of them the staterooms reserved
-at the railway station for any high authority
-on a visit to the place were thrown open to him. In
-another triumphal arches were erected in his honour,
-while in a third he was met by deputations in the
-midst of which could be seen civil functionaries and
-religious dignitaries.</p>
-
-<p>How all this happened no one knew or could explain.
-In what consisted the fame of Rasputin and
-what he had done to deserve all these honours nobody
-could tell. But fame he had acquired, honours he
-had obtained, and where another person gifted with a
-smaller amount of impudence than he was possessed
-of, would have been put into prison or sent to a madhouse,
-Gricha had it all his own way, and defied governors
-and judges with an equal indifference, sure
-that none among them would be daring enough to
-try to put a stop to his progress or to his avidity.</p>
-
-<p>Most friendly, not to say intimate, relations were
-established between Rasputin and Bishop Warnava,
-especially after the latter’s elevation to the Episcopal
-See of Tobolsk. The first sermon which Warnava
-preached in that town he dedicated to the wife of
-Rasputin. One need not say that the whole clergy
-of the town and of the diocese trembled before Rasputin,
-who did not fail to exact from it large sums of
-money, which he extorted, thanks to the promises
-which he made but never meant in the least to keep.</p>
-
-<p>During the course of the year 1909 complaints
-about Rasputin’s behaviour increased to a considerable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">51</span>
-extent. He was once more called before an ecclesiastical
-court to give explanations in regard to his
-general conduct. Among his judges figured again
-Bishop Feofane. This time Rasputin could not clear
-himself of the charges preferred against him, and he
-was invited to retire for one year into a monastery by
-way of penance. But Rasputin refused to submit
-to this sentence and categorically declined to do
-as he had been told. He gave as a reason for his
-disobedience to the commands of his ecclesiastical superiors
-that his conscience obliged him to resist because
-it would be impossible for his “spiritual sisters
-and daughters” to accompany him in his retreat and
-live together with him in the monastery they wished
-him to enter.</p>
-
-<p>At the time this incident took place Rasputin was
-already living in St. Petersburg, whither he had repaired
-on the invitation of some of his admirers and
-protectors, who had the opportunity to listen to his
-preachings in Kieff and other Russian towns. Among
-them figured the Countess Sophy Ignatieff, a woman
-of high standing, irreproachable reputation and great
-influence in some circles of the capital, where her salon
-was considered the centre of the conservative orthodox
-party. Bishops and priests figured among
-her daily visitors, and it was among her habitués that
-the most important ecclesiastical appointments in the
-Empire were discussed. Often it was the candidates
-whom she honoured with her protection who were
-chosen for a bishop’s place or for that of a superior
-to one of those rich monasteries the heads of which
-are quite personages in the state.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">52</span></p>
-
-<p>The Countess was already an old woman, widow
-of a man who had been murdered during the revolution
-of 1905, and, incapable of being even suspected
-of any frailties of conduct. She was the
-mother of a large family, and though by no means
-brilliant, was yet clever in her way, with a slight propensity
-to intrigue. She was extremely devout, with
-a strong tendency to exaltation where religious matters
-came into question, and was continually lamenting
-what she called the relaxation of modern society
-in those practices of strict church discipline which
-Russians belonging to the higher classes have lately
-taken to forgetting. She would not have missed attending
-any of the long Church services, sometimes so
-tiring in the Orthodox faith, which are celebrated on
-Sundays and many feast days, and she strictly fasted
-at prescribed times. Indeed, her whole existence
-was, as regards its daily routine, more that of a nun
-than of a woman of the world. But for all that, she
-liked to keep herself well informed as to all that was
-going on around her, and politics was her especial
-hobby.</p>
-
-<p>Among those who frequented her house were Mr.
-Sabler, then Procurator of the Holy Synod, together
-with his future successor, Mr. Loukianoff; a good
-sprinkling of ministers—she was distantly related to
-Mr. Stolypine, a fact that had considerably added to
-her importance during the latter’s lifetime—and a
-few influential dames belonging to the immediate
-circle of friends of the imperial family. All this
-constituted a coterie that had gradually assumed perhaps
-more importance than it really deserved, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">53</span>
-that brought into St. Petersburg society an element
-with which it would not have been wise to trifle and
-which it was impossible to overlook, for any one caring
-to concern himself or herself with the course that
-public affairs were taking and assuming.</p>
-
-<p>A few years before the time I am referring to, that
-is about 1908 or 1909, a good deal of interest was excited
-not only in St. Petersburg, but in the whole of
-Russia, by a monk called Illiodore, who also preached
-a new gospel to those willing to listen. There was,
-however, about him none of the peculiarities which
-distinguished Rasputin, and no one had ever found
-one word to say against his morals. But he tried also
-to found a religion of his own in the sense that he attempted
-to develop on a higher scale, and with certain
-Protestant leanings, the feelings of fervour of the
-people. At Saratoff, where he lived, he did a great
-deal of good, and he had built there a large church,
-Orthodox, of course, which soon became a centre of
-pilgrimage to which flocked thousands and thousands
-of people desirous of hearing him and of listening to
-his inflamed speeches. They reminded one of those
-crusades that in the Middle Ages had stirred whole
-nations to rise and rush to deliver the Holy Sepulchre
-from the yoke of the infidels. He was far more a
-Peter the Hermit than Rasputin, and had, moreover,
-education, which the other lacked.</p>
-
-<p>But ecclesiastical authorities in St. Petersburg did
-not approve of his teachings, and he soon came into
-conflict with them, together with the Bishop of Saratoff,
-who had all along supported him and who considered
-him as being really a good and pious man.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">54</span>
-This conflict led to a quarrel, the result of which was
-that Illiodore was confined in a monastery, whence,
-however, with the help of his disciples and adherents,
-he contrived to make his escape. There was also a
-whole series of lawsuits, into the details of which it is
-useless to enter here. At last the monk was unfrocked
-for rebellion to his superiors, by a decree issued
-from the Holy Synod, and compelled to take
-back his secular name of Trufanoff. He became
-fearful of further annoyance and managed to get
-hold of a false passport, with the help of which he
-made his way into Norway, where we shall find him
-presently mixed up in a most extraordinary adventure
-with which Rasputin was concerned. But before
-all this had occurred there was a brief period
-when Illiodore was quite an important personage in
-Russia, and the salons of the Countess Ignatieff and
-of other ultra-devout ladies used to see a lot of him
-whenever he happened to be in St. Petersburg.
-These feminine listeners were very fond of him, and
-did their best to spread his reputation all over the
-capital.</p>
-
-<p>During Rasputin’s wanderings he had come across
-Illiodore at Saratoff, and the latter, like so many
-others before and after him, had succumbed to the
-hypnotic spell which “Gricha” was casting around
-him. He had believed him to be a real servant of
-God, and he had engaged him to come to St. Petersburg
-and to preach there before some of the people
-who had already listened to his (Illiodore’s) sermons.
-He had introduced him to the celebrated Father John
-of Cronstadt, this saintly priest who was so famous<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">55</span>
-for his virtues and his good deeds. And, strange
-though this may appear, Father John also had been
-struck by Rasputin’s eloquence and had believed him
-to be really inspired by the Lord. In order to explain
-the state of mind prevalent at the time among the
-orthodox clergy one must say that the clergy, or at
-least some of their important members, were trying to
-bring about a revival of religious fervour in the Orthodox
-Church, especially among persons belonging to
-the upper classes, who had, during the last twenty-five
-years or so, become more than indifferent in regard
-to spiritual matters, and who had considered religion
-more a question of “convenience” than anything else.
-Since the religious censorship had been suppressed
-and books to any amount treating of every conceivable
-subject had been allowed to circulate freely in
-the country, the former attachment to the Mother
-Church had waxed fainter and fainter, until this
-Church appeared in the eyes of many as simply a
-question of good breeding, to which it was necessary
-to conform when one belonged to good society, but
-which, beyond this, was treated entirely as a matter
-devoid of importance.</p>
-
-<p>In view of this fact, those Prelates and Dignitaries
-who lamented over this state of things were not
-sorry to find that there were still in the world people
-capable of arousing in the minds of others an
-interest in religion and religious matters. This explains
-partly why the craze which seized some persons
-in regard to Illiodore at first, and to Rasputin later
-on, was not viewed with the dissatisfaction one might
-have expected by the Russian ecclesiastical authorities.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">56</span>
-They argued that surely it was better for people
-to pray in the way these two so-called “saints” told
-them to do than not to pray at all. It was only much
-later, after Illiodore’s rebellion to the orders of his
-superiors, and Rasputin’s ever-growing personal influence
-had begun to alarm them, that there were
-found some bishops in Russia who made a stand
-against both, until at last a catastrophe removed these
-two men from the scene of their previous labours and
-successes.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin and Illiodore were in time to become mortal
-enemies, but at first a great friendship united them,
-and when Rasputin was sentenced to enter a convent
-in the manner already related, Illiodore took up his
-cause most warmly and telegraphed to one of the former’s
-admirers, an ecclesiastic of high rank in St.
-Petersburg, in the following terms: “Neither Bishop
-Feofane nor Archimandrite Serge has behaved fairly
-in regard to the ‘Blessed Grigory.’” Illiodore’s efforts,
-however, did not avail and Rasputin was ordered
-to leave the capital immediately. But instead
-of being compelled to enter the convent whither they
-had wished to confine him at first, he was allowed to
-return to his native village of Pokrovskoie. Before
-doing so he bethought himself of calling on his former
-patron, Bishop Feofane, but the latter met him
-with the exclamation, “Don’t approach me, Satan!
-Thou art not a blessed thing, but only a vulgar deceiver!”
-At Pokrovskoie Rasputin surrounded himself
-with twelve sisters, of whom the oldest was barely
-twenty-nine years of age. They all lived in his house,
-which was extremely well arranged and richly furnished.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">57</span>
-Rasputin’s wife, together with her children,
-was also there and occupied a suite of five rooms,
-whilst each of the sisters had a separate room to herself.</p>
-
-<p>People wondered that the woman who ought to
-have been the sole mistress in the place had consented
-to share her authority with all these girls, and some
-even thought that she was just as bad as her husband.
-In reality, the “Prophet’s” consort had done
-all that she could to persuade her husband to give up
-the “mission” which he declared had been imposed
-upon him by the Almighty and to return to his former
-life of a simple peasant. Her efforts had remained
-fruitless, and Rasputin had replied to all her
-entreaties that his past existence had come forever to
-an end, and that he knew his star was about to shine
-in a wonderful way within a short time. He commanded
-his wife not to attempt to interfere in the
-matter of his own personal relations with the “Sisters”
-living under their roof. Though she tried to submit
-to his will, yet there were occasions when terrible
-scenes occurred between husband and wife. Then the
-latter would attack violently the girls, whom she accused
-of all kinds of dreadful things, and would then
-fall on the ground in attacks of strong hysterics,
-screaming so dreadfully that people heard her from
-the street. But tears and submission were equally
-of no avail and Rasputin did not trouble about his
-wife’s rage or grief any more than he had troubled in
-general with any other impediment he had found in
-his way. As concerns the kind of life which the “Sisters”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">58</span>
-were leading at Pokrovskoie this is how one of
-them describes it:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>It is now already six months since I am here,
-living in a kind of nightmare. I do not know to
-this day whether the “Blessed” Gricha is a saint
-or the greatest sinner the earth has ever known.
-I cannot find a quiet place in this miserable village.
-I would like to run away, to return to St. Petersburg,
-but I dare not do so. I am so afraid, so terribly
-afraid of the “Blessed” one. His large, grey,
-piercing eyes crush me, enter into my very soul and
-absolutely terrify me. At a distance of 5,000 versts
-I feel his presence near me. I feel that he has got
-extraordinary powers, that he can do everything
-that he wishes with me.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>For two whole years Rasputin was not allowed to
-show himself in the Russian capital, but the influential
-friends he had there never left off trying to get
-the decree of banishment rescinded. Among others,
-the Archbishop of Saratoff, Hermogene, and Illiodore
-worked most actively in his favour, and the latter
-in one of his sermons did not hesitate to call Rasputin
-the “greatest saint which the modern Russian
-Church had ever known.” At last the efforts of his
-friends proved successful and Rasputin, toward the
-end of the year 1912, reappeared in St. Petersburg,
-where this time his progress was far more rapid than
-it had been formerly, and here his reputation of a latter-day
-saint grew with every hour, until at last he
-came to be looked upon as a real manifestation of the
-Divinity upon earth.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">59</span></p>
-
-<p>It was about that time that he was seen more frequently
-at Tsarskoie Selo, where the poor Empress
-was eating her heart away in anxiety over the health
-of her only son, the little heir to the throne, whose
-days seemed to be numbered. Rasputin, who had been
-introduced to her as a pious, good man, whose prayers
-had already worked miracles, was very quickly able
-to influence her in the sense that he persuaded her
-that the small Grand Duke could only be cured if
-constant prayers were said for him by people who
-were agreeable to the Lord. It is not to be denied
-that the pseudo-saint had cultivated to a considerable
-extent the science of hypnotism and that he used it
-in regard to the consort of the sovereign in the sense
-that she grew really to believe that the presence of the
-“Prophet” by the side of her sick child might cure the
-latter. There was nothing else in their relations to
-each other, which remained always, in spite of all that
-has been said, purely official ones.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin was far too clever ever to say one word
-capable of offending the Empress, whose proud temperament
-would never have forgiven him any familiarity
-had he dared to venture upon it. Whenever he
-was in her presence he kept a most humble attitude,
-and certainly never discussed with her any matters of
-state and never dared entertain her with aught else
-than religious questions. He was far less guarded
-with regard to what he told the Emperor, with whom
-it is unfortunately true that he sometimes allowed
-himself remarks he would have done better to keep to
-himself. But the Czar never looked upon him in any
-other light than in that of a jester whose sayings were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">60</span>
-absolutely devoid of any importance whatever, but
-who could amuse him at times by the daring manner
-in which he would touch upon things and criticise people
-whose names no one else would ever have dared to
-mention in a disparaging tone before Nicholas II.
-But between that and the possession of any real power
-and influence, there was an abyss which, unfortunately,
-in view of the turn that events were to take, no
-one noticed among all those who lamented over the
-almost constant presence of Rasputin at Tsarskoie
-Selo.</p>
-
-<p>All that I have said, however, refers only to the
-Emperor and Empress. In regard to some people
-who surrounded them it was not quite the same. It
-is certain that from the first day that the “Prophet”
-was introduced at Tsarskoie Selo some intriguing
-persons applied themselves to make use of him for
-their own special benefit and advantage, and tried
-to create around him a legend that had hardly anything
-in common with the real truth. It is useless to
-mention the names of these people, whose influence it
-must be hoped is now at an end. But it is impossible
-not to speak of their activity in regard to the spreading
-of these rumours which attributed to Rasputin an
-importance he was never really in possession of. This
-caused no small damage to the prestige of the dynasty.
-Rasputin ought to have been considered for
-what he was—that is, a kind of jester, “un fou du roi,”
-who, like Chicot in Dumas’ famous novels, allowed
-himself to say all that he thought to his sovereign and
-whose words or actions no one could take seriously
-into account. Instead of this some ambitious men<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">61</span>
-and women, mostly belonging to that special class of
-Tchinovnikis or civil functionaries that has always
-been the curse of Russia and that, happily, is losing
-every day something of its former power, profited by
-the circumstance that the solitary existence led by the
-Imperial Court in its various residences did not allow
-any outside rumours to penetrate to the ears of the
-rulers of the country. They intentionally transformed
-Rasputin into a kind of <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">deus ex machina</i>,
-whose hand could be traced in every event of importance
-which occurred and who could at will remove
-and appoint Ministers, generals, ladies in waiting,
-court officials and at last induce the Czar himself to
-deprive his uncle, the Grand Duke Nicholas, of the
-supreme command of the army and to assume it himself.</p>
-
-<p>These different tales were repeated and carried
-about all over Russia with alacrity, and all the enemies
-of the reigning house rejoiced in hearing them.
-They were untrue nine times out of ten, and generally
-invented for a purpose. Rasputin did not influence
-the Czar, who is far too intelligent to have ever
-allowed this uneducated peasant to guide or to advise
-him, but unfortunately he influenced other people,
-who really believed him to be all powerful. A
-kind of camarilla formed itself around Rasputin that
-clung to him and used him for its own purposes, and
-that went about saying that he was the only man in
-the whole of Russia capable of obtaining what one
-wanted, provided it pleased him to do so. One declared
-that he could persuade the Empress, always
-trembling for the health of her only son, to discuss<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">62</span>
-with her imperial spouse any subject that he might
-suggest. In reality no such thing ever took place.
-Alexandra Feodorovna always kept Rasputin at
-arms’ length, and for one thing had far too much faith
-in his absolute disinterestedness even to imagine offering
-him any reward or gratification. But it is a
-fact that he was often called by her to pray at the
-bedside of the little boy, who represented the best
-hope of Russia. This circumstance was cleverly exploited.
-No one was ever present at his interviews
-with the Czar or with the Empress; it was therefore
-easy for him to say what he liked about them, certain
-that no one could ever contradict him, with the exception
-of the interested persons themselves, and these
-could never get to hear or to learn anything about the
-wild tales which it pleased him, together with his
-friends, to put into circulation regarding the position
-which he occupied at the court. Thanks to his persuasive
-powers and to the undoubted magnetic force
-he was possessed of, he contrived to imbue even
-earnest and serious people with the conviction that he
-was at times the echo of the voices of those placed far
-above him, and that they had called upon him to say
-to others what it embarrassed them to mention themselves.</p>
-
-<p>In Russia, as a general rule, the people in power
-were all cringing before the Czar, whom they never
-dared to contradict. There were at the time I am
-writing about some Ministers who believed, or affected
-to believe, in all the extraordinary tales which
-it pleased Rasputin to repeat, and who thought it
-useful to follow the indications which it pleased him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">63</span>
-to give to them. He was only too delighted to be considered
-the most powerful personage in the whole of
-the Russian Empire. He helped as much as he could
-to accredit all the legends going about among the public
-in regard to his own person, and he imagined that
-the best way to add to his reputation as a man who did
-not care for the opinions of the world was to treat this
-world with disdain and with contempt, and to transform
-into his humble slaves ladies belonging to the
-highest social ranks, just as he had transformed into
-his hand-maidens the peasant girls who had fallen
-under his spell.</p>
-
-<p>That he magnetised most of the people with whom
-he prayed seems but too true. Perhaps they did not
-notice it, and perhaps this was done with the consent
-of those on whom he exercised his hypnotic strength—it
-is difficult to know exactly—but that his prayer
-meetings were the scene of spiritist and magnetic experiences
-all who have ever been present agree in saying.
-He made no secret about the fact, and openly
-acknowledged the use which he made of the state of
-trance in which he liked to throw his disciples, especially
-those belonging to the weaker sex. He practiced
-to the full all the customs of the “Khlystys,” but
-he added to them a cunning such as is but rarely
-found in a human being, and a rough knowledge of
-human nature which gave him the facility to exploit
-the passions of the many vile people who thought that
-he was their instrument while in reality it was they
-who were playing fiddle to his tune.</p>
-
-<p>After his return to St. Petersburg he applied himself
-to the task of setting aside all his former patrons,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">64</span>
-such as Illiodore, against whom he contrived to irritate
-several important members of the Holy Synod
-with false reports about remarks which the now disgraced
-monk was supposed to have made. He contrived
-also to bring about the exile of the Archbishop
-of Saratoff, Hermogene, from whom he feared disagreeable
-revelations concerning his own past life and
-certain episodes connected with the days when he had
-preached his so-called doctrine in the town and government
-of Saratoff. On the other hand, he toadied
-to other ecclesiastical dignitaries eager for promotion,
-and in that way obtained their support in the Synod.
-Very soon he turned his thoughts to more practical
-subjects than religious fervour or religious reforms,
-and sought the society of business and financial people.
-Among these he soon obtained the opportunities
-he longed for and established a kind of large shop or
-concern where everything in the world could be
-bought or sold, from a pound of butter to a minister’s
-portfolio.</p>
-
-<p>It is no exaggeration to say that there was a time
-when nothing of importance ever occurred in the political,
-social and administrative life of the Russian
-capital that was not attributed to Rasputin, and the
-result of this was that there crowded about him all
-kinds of dark personalities, who hoped, thanks to his
-support and influence, to obtain this or that favour.
-Everything interested him, everything attracted his
-attention; railway concessions, bank emissions, stock
-exchange speculations, purchase of properties, acquisition
-of shares in industrial concerns, arranging of
-loans for persons in need of them—nothing seemed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">65</span>
-too small or too important for his activity. He liked
-to think himself necessary to all these high-born people,
-whom he compelled to wait for hours in his ante-chambers,
-just as if he had been a sovereign. And
-for every favour he granted, for every word which he
-promised to say, he exacted payment in the shape of
-a pound of flesh, which consisted, according to circumstances,
-in a more or less important commission.</p>
-
-<p>Ministers and functionaries feared him. They
-knew that he could do them an infinitude of harm by
-causing to be circulated against them rumours of a
-damaging character, the result of which would have
-undoubtedly been their disgrace or removal to another
-sphere of action very probably not at all desirable.
-He was credited for an infinitude of things he had
-never thought of performing, and he was supposed to
-have been privy to all kinds of governmental changes
-that either pleased or displeased those who criticised
-them. As time went on one accused him among other
-things of the dismissal of the procurator of the Holy
-Synod, Mr. Loukianoff, with whom he had for a long
-period been at daggers drawn and who had openly expressed
-his disapproval of the “Prophet” and his disbelief
-in his miraculous powers. The elevation of the
-Archimandrite Warnava, one of his warmest patrons
-in the past, to the Episcopal See of Tobolsk was also
-said to have been Rasputin’s work, and the public persisted
-so entirely in seeing his hand everywhere and
-in everything that it was even rumoured that it was
-he who was answerable for the decision of the censor
-forbidding the representation of a drama by the celebrated
-author Leonide Andreieff called, “Anathema,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">66</span>
-on the eve of the day when it was to be produced—a
-decision which caused an immense sensation
-in the society of the Russian capital.</p>
-
-<p>It was natural that among the many people who
-crowded around Rasputin some secret police agents
-found their way. One of these who was later to become
-the hero of more than one scandal, a certain Mr.
-Manassevitsch Maniuloff, bethought himself of becoming
-the mentor of the “Prophet.” He was in close
-relation with Count Witte, always eager for his own
-return to power, and desirous of overturning every individual
-in possession of the posts which he had formerly
-occupied himself. The two men tried to imbue
-Rasputin with the idea that he had great political
-talents, and that it was a pity he had not yet turned
-these into account for the good and the welfare of
-Holy Russia. Rasputin did not believe in the sincerity
-of his newly acquired advisers, but he was shrewd
-enough to see that their help would be of wonderful
-value to him. He willingly entered into the plans
-which they unfolded to him between two glasses of
-brandy or two cups of champagne as the occasion
-presented itself. Count Witte was very well aware
-of all the secret influences which were paramount at
-Tsarskoie Selo, and he contrived to turn them in favour
-of Rasputin, suggesting at the same time to the
-latter the things which he ought to say, when in presence
-of certain personages. It was easy to throw in
-a word now and then, either in the shape of a jest, or
-of a remark uttered inadvertently and unintentionally,
-but yet sure to bear fruit in the future. The
-great thing was to give to Rasputin the idea that he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">67</span>
-was a personage of importance. This was not a very
-difficult matter considering the very high opinion
-which he already had of his own capacities, coupled
-with his set resolution to make the most hay whilst the
-sun was shining, and never to miss an opportunity of
-asserting his personality no matter on what occasion
-or with what purpose.</p>
-
-<p>The Balkan war gave Rasputin a golden opportunity
-for exercising his various talents, and it is pretty
-certain that he made at the time strenuous efforts in
-favour of peace, repeating to whomsoever wished to
-hear him that he had had visions which predicted that
-the greatest calamities were awaiting Russia, if she
-mixed herself up in it. This feeling was shared by
-a numerous party, and the sovereign himself was the
-most resolute adversary of any military intervention
-in this unfortunate affair. It is likely that even without
-Rasputin Russia would not have drawn her sword
-either for Bulgaria or for Serbia, but nevertheless it
-pleased his friends to say that without him this would
-have most undoubtedly occurred. And it also pleased
-him to assert that on this occasion he had proved to be
-the saviour of his native land. We shall see him repeat
-this legend with great relish during a conversation
-which I had with him personally just before the
-breaking out of the present war.</p>
-
-<p>There was also another incident in which Rasputin
-most certainly was implicated. This was the dismissal
-of Mr. Kokovtsoff, then Prime Minister and
-President of the Council, followed by the appointment
-in his place of old and tottering Mr. Goremykine,
-to whom no one in the whole of Russia had ever<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">68</span>
-given a thought as a possible candidate for this difficult
-post. Count Witte was the personal enemy of
-Mr. Kokovtsoff, whom he had never forgiven for his
-so-called treason in regard to himself, and he never
-missed any opportunity to attack him in the Council
-of State, of which they were both members, criticising
-his financial administration and making fun of the
-splendid budgets which were regularly presented to
-the Duma. These Witte declared to be entirely artificial,
-reposing on a clever manipulation of figures.
-In some ways it was easy to find fault with Mr. Kokovtsoff,
-whose name had been mixed up far too
-much for the good of his personal reputation in all
-kind of financial transactions and Stock Exchange
-operations. But, then, the same thing had been said
-about Count Witte with perhaps even more reason
-than about Mr. Kokovtsoff, whose wife, at least, had
-never been suspected of any manipulations with her
-banking account. Indeed, no finance minister in
-Russia had escaped accusations of the kind from his
-detractors or his adversaries, and it had never interfered
-with their administrative careers nor prevented
-them from sleeping soundly.</p>
-
-<p>So far, so well; but then this was more the work of
-events as they had unfolded themselves naturally than
-the merit of Rasputin; yet he was openly congratulated
-by his friends, or so-called ones, on the success
-which he had obtained in driving Mr. Kokovtsoff
-away. The ultra-orthodox party which hailed the
-advent to power of one of its members—Mr. Goremykine
-having always been considered as one of the pillars
-of the conservative faction—not only cheered the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">69</span>
-“Prophet” with enthusiasm but also started to proclaim
-anew his genius and clear understanding of the
-needs of the Russian people. Thus a ministerial crisis
-culminated in the apotheosis of a man whose only appreciation
-of the qualities and of the duties of a Minister
-consisted in the knowledge of that Minister’s existence
-as a public functionary.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">70</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_III">CHAPTER III</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">Among</span> Rasputin’s adversaries was Mr. Stolypine,
-who, with strong common sense and great intelligence,
-had objected to the importance which certain
-social circles in St. Petersburg had tried to give to the
-soothsayer. At first he had regarded the whole matter
-as a kind of wild craze which was bound to subside
-in time, as other crazes of the same sort had dwindled
-into insignificance in the past. Later on, however,
-some reports that had reached him concerning the persons
-who frequented Rasputin’s society had given him
-reason to think that there might be something more
-than stupid, enthusiasm in the various tales which had
-come to his ears in regard to the Prophet of Pokrovskoie.
-He, therefore, expressed the wish to see him,
-so as to be able to form a personal judgment of the
-man, and a meeting was arranged in due course at the
-house of one of the ladies who patronised Rasputin.
-It is related that after he had cast his eyes upon him
-Mr. Stolypine, when asked to give his opinion on the
-personality of the individual about whom he had heard
-so many conflicting reports, had simply replied:</p>
-
-<p>“The best thing to do with him is to send him to
-light the furnace; he is fit for nothing else.”</p>
-
-<p>The words were repeated and circulated freely in
-St. Petersburg; they reached Rasputin, and enraged
-him the more, because, shortly afterwards, it was Mr.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">71</span>
-Stolypine who had insisted on having him expelled
-from the capital, and who for two whole years had refused
-to allow him to enter it again. When, therefore,
-in the early autumn of 1912 the “prophet” at
-last was allowed to return to St. Petersburg, it was
-with the feelings of the deepest enmity against the
-Minister who had exiled him. He had the satisfaction
-of finding that during his enforced absence the
-popularity of Mr. Stolypine had decreased, and that a
-considerable number were openly talking about overthrowing
-him. Rasputin very soon discovered the use
-which could be made of this state of things, which
-surpassed by far any hopes he might have nursed of
-being able to be revenged upon the President of the
-Cabinet for the injury which he imagined that the latter
-had done to him. He proceeded in all his sermons
-to compare him with the Antichrist, and to say that
-Russia would never be quiet so long as he remained
-one of its rulers.</p>
-
-<p>The police agent, whose name I have already mentioned,
-Mr. Manassevitsch Maniuloff, who always
-had his eye on Rasputin, and who had hastened to
-call upon him as soon as he had seen him return to
-the capital, was not slow to notice the now outspoken
-animosity of the latter in regard to the Prime Minister,
-who was offensive to him as well as to the whole
-secret police. The latter, finding that it could no
-longer do what it pleased, and that it had to respect
-the private liberty and life of the peaceful Russian
-citizens, or else be called to account by Mr. Stolypine,
-who ever since his appointment had been working
-against the occult powers of the “Okhrana,” had but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">72</span>
-one idea; and this was to get rid by fair means or by
-foul of a master determined to control the police.
-It is known in Russia that Mr. Stolypine’s assassination
-was the work of the secret police itself, who had
-found the murderer in the person of one of its own
-agents, to whom it had furnished even the revolver
-with which to kill the unfortunate Stolypine. But
-few people dared relate all that they suspected in regard
-to this heinous crime, and fewer still were aware
-of all its details, and of the manner in which it had
-been planned.</p>
-
-<p>The truth of the story is that Mr. Maniuloff secretly
-took to Rasputin’s house two or three police
-agents, to whom the latter said that God himself had
-revealed to him that Russia could never be saved from
-the perils of revolution until the removal of Mr. Stolypine.
-He even blessed the officers, together with a
-pistol with which he presented them. It turned out
-afterwards that this pistol was the very weapon which
-the Jew Bagroff fired at the Prime Minister in the
-theatre of Kieff during the gala performance given
-there in honour of the Emperor’s visit to the town.
-When Stolypine had succumbed to his wounds, Rasputin
-made no secret of the satisfaction which his
-death had occasioned to him, and exerted himself in
-favour of several people who were supposed to have
-been privy to the plot that had been hatched against
-the life of the Prime Minister. He told his disciples
-that the fate which had overtaken the unhappy Stolypine
-did not surprise him at all, and that every one
-of those who would venture to oppose him would meet
-with a similar one in the future.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">73</span></p>
-
-<p>In a certain sense, this threat had an effect on those
-before whom it was uttered. People began to dread
-Rasputin, not on account of any supernatural powers
-he might have been endowed with, but because
-they saw that he had managed to get into association
-with individuals utterly unscrupulous and ready to
-resort to every means, even to assassination, in order
-to come to their own ends. They thought it better
-and wiser, therefore, to get out of his way and not
-to attempt to thwart him. He became associated in
-the mind of Russian society with conspirators similar
-to the Italian carbonari or Camorrists. The conviction
-that, under the veil of religious fervour, he was
-able to persuade his satellites to do whatever he
-pleased, and to hesitate at nothing in the way of infamy
-and crime, gradually established itself everywhere
-until it was thought advisable to have nothing
-to do with him, or else to submit to him absolutely and
-in everything. It was very well known that he had
-had a hand in the murder of Mr. Stolypine, but not
-one single person could be found daring enough to
-say so, and an atmosphere of impunity enveloped him
-together with those who worshipped at his shrine or
-who had put themselves under his protection.</p>
-
-<p>It was during this same winter of 1912–13 that the
-name of Rasputin became more and more familiar to
-the ears of the general public, which until that time
-had only heard about him vaguely and had not troubled
-about him at all. It was also then that rumours
-without number concerning the prayer meetings at
-which he presided began to circulate. Innumerable
-legends arose in regard to those meetings, which were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">74</span>
-compared to the worst assemblies ever held by Khlysty
-sectarians. In reality nothing unmentionable
-took place during their course. Rasputin was far
-too clever to apply to the fine ladies, whose help he
-considered essential to the progress of his future career,
-the same means by which he had subjugated the
-simple peasant women and provincial girls whom he
-had depraved. He remained strictly on the religious
-ground with his aristocratic followers, and he tried
-only to develop in them feelings of divine fervour
-verging upon an exaltation which was close to hysteria
-in its worst shape or form. In a word, it was
-with him and them a case like that of the nuns of Loudun
-in the sixteenth century. Had he lived in the
-middle ages it is certain that Rasputin would have
-been burnt at the first stake to be found for the purpose,
-which, perhaps, would not have been such a
-great misfortune.</p>
-
-<div id="i_074" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 37em;">
- <img src="images/i_074.jpg" width="2312" height="1615" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Photograph, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Rasputin and His “Court”</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>I have seen a photograph representing the “Prophet”
-drinking tea with the ladies who composed the
-nucleus of the new church or sect, which he prided
-himself upon having founded. It is a curious production.
-Rasputin is seen sitting at a table before a
-samovar or tea urn slowly sipping out of a saucer the
-fragrant beverage so dear to Russian hearts. Around
-him are grouped the Countess I., Madame W., Madame
-T. and other of his feminine admirers, who,
-with fervent eyes, are watching him. The expression
-of these ladies is most curious, and makes one regret
-that one could not observe it otherwise than in a picture.
-Their faces are filled with an enthusiasm that
-bears the distinct stamp of magnetic influence, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">75</span>
-it is easy to notice that they are plunged into that
-kind of trance when one is no longer accountable for
-one’s actions.</p>
-
-<p>The method used by Rasputin was to humiliate all
-the women of the higher circles whom he had subjugated,
-and who had been silly enough to allow themselves
-to fall under his spell. Thus he liked to compell
-them to kiss his hands and feet, to lick the plates
-out of which he had been eating, or to drink out of
-the glass which he had just drained. He made them
-say long prayers in a most fatiguing posture, compelled
-them sometimes to remain for hours prostrate
-on the ground before some sacred image, or to stand
-for a whole day in one place without moving, as a penance
-for their sins; or again to go for hours without
-food. Once he commanded one of them to walk in
-one night to the village of Strelna, a distance of about
-twenty-five miles from St. Petersburg, and to return
-immediately, without giving herself any rest at all,
-with a twig from a certain tree he had designated to
-her.</p>
-
-<p>In a word, Doctor Charcot would have found in
-him an invaluable assistant in the experiments he was
-so fond of making. But he did not go further than
-these eccentricities. Orgies did not take place during
-the prayer meetings in which Rasputin exerted
-to the utmost the magnetic powers which he undoubtedly
-possessed. While he had been preaching to the
-humble followers he had at the beginning of his career
-of thaumaturgy the theory of free love, to his
-St. Petersburg disciples he declared that sensuality
-was the one great crime which the Almighty never<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">76</span>
-forgave to those who had rendered themselves guilty
-of it. It was in order to subdue the flesh and the devil
-that he commanded his victims to mortify themselves
-together with their senses, and that he submitted them
-to the most revolting practices of self-penitence before
-which they would have recoiled with horror had
-they been of sound mind.</p>
-
-<p>There is a curious account of an interview with him
-which was published in the <cite>Retsch</cite>, the organ of the
-Russian Liberal party, immediately after the death
-of Rasputin by Prince Lvoff, who had had the curiosity
-to speak with the “Prophet.” The Prince was
-one of the leaders of the progressive faction of the
-Duma. This is what he wrote, which I feel certain
-will interest my readers sufficiently for them to forgive
-me for quoting it in extenso:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I have had personally twice in my life occasion
-to speak with Rasputin. The first time was toward
-the end of the year 1915, when I was invited by Prince
-I. W. Gouranoff to meet him.</p>
-
-<p>When I arrived Rasputin was already there, sitting
-beside a large table, with a numerous company
-gathered around him, among which figured, in the
-same quality as myself, as a curious stranger, the
-present chief of the military censorship in Petrograd,
-General M. A. Adabasch, who was the whole time attentively
-watching the “Prophet” from the distant
-corner whither he had retired. Rasputin was dressed
-in his usual costume of a Russian peasant and
-was very silent, throwing only now and then a
-word or two into the general conversation or uttering<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">77</span>
-a short sentence, after which he relapsed into his
-former silence. In his dress and in his manners he
-was absolutely uncouth, and when, for instance, he
-was offered an apple he cut a hole at its top with
-his own very dirty pocket knife, after which he put
-the knife aside and tore the fruit in two with his hands,
-eating it, peel and all, in the most primitive manner.
-After some time he got up and went to the next
-room, where he sat down on a large divan with
-a few ladies who had joined him, toward whom his
-manner left very much to be desired.</p>
-
-<p>I had kept examining him the whole time with great
-attention, seeking for that extraordinary glance he
-was supposed to possess, to which was attributed his
-power over people, but I could not find any trace of
-it or notice anything remarkable about him. The
-expression of his face was that of a cunning mougik,
-such as one constantly meets with in our country, perfectly
-well aware of the conditions in which he
-found himself, and determined to make the best
-out of them. Everything in him, to begin with
-his common dress and to end with his long hair and
-his dirty nails, bore the character of the uncivilised
-peasant he was. He seemed to realise, better perhaps
-than those who surrounded him, that one of his trump
-cards was precisely this uncouthness, which ought to
-have been repelling, and that if he had put on different
-clothes and tried to assimilate the manners of
-his betters, half of the interest which he excited would
-have disappeared. I did not stay a long time, and
-went away thoroughly disappointed, and perhaps
-even slightly disgusted at the man.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">78</span></p>
-
-<p>A few months later, in February of the present
-year, 1916, I was asked again to meet Rasputin at
-Baron Miklos’s house. There I found a numerous
-and most motley company assembled. There were
-two members of the Duma, Messrs. Karaouloff and
-Souratchane; General Polivanoff; a great landowner
-of the government of Woronege, N. P. Alexieieff;
-Madame Svetchine; the Senator S. P. Bieletsky and
-other people. Ladies were in a majority. Rasputin
-remained talking for a long time with the Deputy
-Karaouloff in another room than the one in which I
-found myself. Then he came to join us in the large
-drawing room, where he kept walking up and down
-with a young girl on his arm—Mlle. D., a singer by
-profession—who was entreating him to arrange for
-her an engagement at the Russian Opera, which he
-promised her to do “for certain,” as he expressed himself.</p>
-
-<p>Every five or ten minutes Rasputin went up to a
-table on which were standing several decanters with
-red wine and other spirits, and he poured himself a
-large glass out of one of them. He swallowed the
-contents at one gulp, wiping his mouth afterwards
-with his sleeve or with the back of his hand. During
-one of these excursions he came up to where I was
-sitting, and stopped before me exclaiming: “I remember
-thee. Thou art a gasser, who writes, and
-writes, and repeats nothing but calumnies.” I asked
-the “Prophet” why he did not say “you” to me, instead
-of addressing me with the vulgar appellation
-of “thou.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">79</span></p>
-
-<p>“I speak in this way with everybody,” he replied.
-“I have got my own way in talking with people.”</p>
-
-<p>I made him a remark concerning some words which
-he had pronounced badly, adding, “Surely you have
-learned during the ten years which you have lived in
-the capital that one does not use the expressions which
-you have employed. And how do you know that I
-have written or repeated calumnies. You cannot read
-yourself, so that everything you hear is from other
-people, and you cannot feel sure whether they tell
-you the truth.”</p>
-
-<p>“This does not matter,” he replied. “Thou hast
-written that one is stealing, and thou knowest thyself
-how to do so.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do not know how to steal,” I answered. “But I
-have written that one is doing so at present everywhere.
-This it was necessary to do for the public
-good.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thou hast done wrong; one must only write the
-truth. Truth is everything,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>The conversation was assuming an angry and sharp
-tone. Rasputin became enraged at my telling him
-that all he was saying was devoid of common sense,
-and he began shouting at me, at the top of his voice.
-“Be quiet, how darest thou say such things. Be
-quiet!”</p>
-
-<p>I did not wish to remain quiet, and I began in my
-turn to shout at the “Prophet,” who became absolutely
-furious when I assured him that I was not a woman
-whom he could frighten, that I wanted nothing from
-him, and that he had better leave me alone, or it might
-be the worse for him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">80</span></p>
-
-<p>He then howled at me, screaming as loud as he
-could: “It is an evil thing for everybody that thou
-art here!”</p>
-
-<p>When in the following April it came to my knowledge
-that Mr. Sturmer wanted to expel me from the
-capital, I was surprised to have Baron Miklos come
-to me one day in the name of Rasputin, who had asked
-him to tell me that though I was a “proud man,” he
-did not bear me any grudge, that if I wished it, he
-would take steps to have the order for my expulsion
-revoked, and that at all events, he begged me not
-to think that he had taken any part in this whole affair.
-I categorically refused to avail myself of the
-help of Rasputin, and there ended the whole matter.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>I have reproduced this tale because it seems to
-me that it helps one to understand the personality of
-Rasputin, and because it describes to perfection the
-manner in which he used to treat the people with whom
-he dealt. Personally, when I interviewed the “Prophet,”
-I had the opportunity to convince myself that
-the impression which he had produced upon Prince
-Lvoff was absolutely a correct one, and I made the
-same remark which the latter had done in regard to
-the total absence of this magnetic strength which Rasputin
-was supposed to possess over those with whom
-he entered into conversation. The man was a fraud
-and nothing else. He had been deified by the group
-of foolish people whom he had persuaded that he was
-a messenger from Heaven, come to announce to Holy
-Russia that a new Christ had arisen. But his pretended
-fascination existed only in the imagination of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">81</span>
-the persons who asserted its existence. To the impartial
-observer he appeared what he was—an arrogant
-and insolent peasant, who, knowing admirably well
-on which side his bread was buttered, exploited with
-considerable ability to his personal advantage the stupidity
-of his neighbours.</p>
-
-<p>I have already related that his house had become a
-kind of Stock Exchange in which everything could
-be bought or sold, where all kinds of shady transactions
-used to take place, and where the most disgusting
-bargaining for places and appointments was perpetually
-going on. Gifts innumerable were showered
-upon him, which he pretended he distributed
-to the poor, but which in reality he carefully put into
-his own pocket. This peasant, who when he had arrived
-in St. Petersburg for the first time, had hardly
-possessed a shirt to his back, had become a very rich
-man. He had bought several houses, gambled in
-stock shares and other securities, and had contrived to
-accumulate a banking account which, if one is to believe
-all that has been related, amounted to several
-millions. From time to time, however, he used to
-come out with some munificent offering to some charity
-or other, with which he threw dust in people’s eyes.
-They thought that it was in this manner that he employed
-all the money which was showered upon him
-by his numerous admirers. It was in this way that he
-built in St. Petersburg, not far from the spot where,
-by a strange coincidence, his murdered body was
-afterwards found, a church which was called the Salvation
-Church, which adjoined a school for girls.
-There he used to go often. Whenever he went he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">82</span>
-was always met by the clergy in charge with great
-pomp, as if he had been a bishop or some great ecclesiastical
-dignitary, and was awaited at the door with the
-cross and holy water. This church was placed under
-the special protection of the Metropolitan of Petrograd,
-Pitirim, who often celebrated divine service in
-it, at which Rasputin always made it a point to be
-present. But instead of meeting the Metropolitan,
-as he ought to have done, he was in the habit of arriving
-after him. Mgr. Pitirim, however, awaited his
-arrival just as he would have waited for the Emperor.
-Indeed the submission which the official head of the
-clergy of the capital affected in regard to Rasputin
-is one of the most extraordinary episodes in the latter’s
-wonderful career.</p>
-
-<p>In fact, when one reviews all one has heard concerning
-this personage, one is tempted to ask the question
-whether his appearance in St. Petersburg had
-not brought along with it an epidemic of madness
-among all those who had come in contact with him.
-It hardly seems possible that bishops, priests, ministers,
-high dignitaries, statesmen, even, or at least men
-having the pretension to be considered as such, should
-have thought it necessary to go and seek the favour
-of this vulgar, ill-bred, dirty Russian mougik, devoid
-of honesty and of scruples, about whom the most disgraceful
-stories were being repeated everywhere, and
-whose presence in the houses where he was a daily visitor
-used to give rise to the worst kind of gossip. This
-gossip was of such a nature that decent persons hesitated
-before repeating it, let alone believing it. Like<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">83</span>
-an insidious poison it defiled all whom it touched.
-One fails to realise by what kind of magic grave men
-like Mr. Sabler, for instance, who for some time had
-occupied the highly responsible and delicate function
-of Procurator of the Holy Synod, one of the most important
-posts in the whole Russian Empire, could
-be made so far to forget himself as to prostrate himself
-before Rasputin in his eagerness to become entitled
-to the latter’s good graces and protection.
-And that he did so is at least not a matter of doubt,
-if we are to believe the following letter which the
-monk Illiodore wrote from his exile on the fifth of
-May, 1914, to a personage very well known in the
-political circles of St. Petersburg.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I swear to you with the word of honour of an
-honest man that the letter in which I called Sabler
-and Damansky the instruments of ‘Gricha’
-(Rasputin) contained nothing but the solemn
-truth, and I repeat it once more, that according to
-what Rasputin told to me on the twenty-eighth of
-June, 1911, at 3 o’clock in the afternoon in my little
-cell, Sabler really kissed the feet of ‘Gricha,’ who,
-in relating this story to me, showed me with an expressive
-pantomime in what way he had done so.
-I consider as utterly false and as a barefaced lie
-the declaration of Mr. Sabler that he had never
-prostrated himself before any one, except before
-the sacred images. Respectfully yours,</p>
-
-<p class="sigright l2">
-<span class="l2">S. M. TROUFANOFF,</span><br />
-formerly the monk Illiodore.”
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">84</span></p>
-
-<p>It is difficult to say, of course, how much reliance
-can be placed on those assertions of Illiodore, and
-whether Mr. Sabler really thought it necessary to fall
-on the ground before Rasputin. But out of this letter
-one can infer that the influence of the latter was
-considered to be important enough for people to
-trouble themselves about relating stories of the kind
-to show it up. Altogether, one may safely conclude,
-out of the very spare material which so far has come
-to light in regard to the activity of Rasputin, that
-we have not yet heard the whole truth about all the
-circumstances which accompanied his sudden rise and
-fall, and that there must have been in both events
-things which perhaps will never come to light. But
-all of them point out to some dark intrigue in which
-he was but one of the pawns, whilst believing himself
-to be the principal actor. One must not forget that
-the Czar himself was at one time liberal in his ideas
-and opinions, and that it was entirely due to his personal
-initiative that the Constitution, such as it is,
-which Russia possessed before his fall was promulgated.
-This was not done without arousing terrible
-animosities, provoking awful discontent. From the
-first hour that its contents were published, there were
-found persons who began to work against it, and who
-by their efforts brought about the revolution of the
-year 1905, with the help of which they hoped to bring
-back the days of absolute government, when every
-public functionary was a small Czar in his own way,
-and when the caprice of the first police official could
-send away to distant Siberia innocent people. This
-abuse Nicholas II. had tried to put an end to, which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">85</span>
-was not forgiven by the crew of rapacious crocodiles,
-who up to that day had administered the affairs of
-the Russian Empire, and they it was who determined
-to take their revenge for this noble and disinterested
-intention of their sovereign.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin became the instrument of the reactionary
-party, which he, in his turn, contrived to make instrumental
-in carrying out his own views and aims.
-His head had been turned by the unexpected position
-in which he had found himself placed. It is not surprising
-that he lost his balance and that he ended by
-considering himself as being what he had been told
-by so many different people that he was—a Prophet
-of the Lord, having the right to say what he liked, to
-calumniate whom he liked, to make use of whatever
-means he found at hand, to eliminate from his path
-any obstacles he might have found intruding upon it.
-His name became synonymous with that of this ultraconservative
-party which was leading Russia towards
-its ruin, and which always contrived to reduce to nothing
-all the good intentions of the Czar. Rasputin was
-a symbol and a flag at the same time; the symbol of
-superstition, and the flag of dark reaction. It is
-impossible to know to this day whether he was not
-also what everything points to; that is, an agent of
-the German Government, who had entered into German
-interests, and who had during the last months
-of his life been working together with Mr. Sturmer
-and the latter’s private secretary, the famous Manassevitsch
-Maniuloff, towards a separate peace with
-the Central Powers, the conclusion of which would
-have dishonoured forever the Czar, together with his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">86</span>
-Government, and which would have provoked such
-discontent in the country that the dynasty might have
-collapsed under its weight.</p>
-
-<p>There exist at least indications that such a thing
-was within the limits of possibility, and, if so, those
-who put an end to the evil career of this dangerous
-man deserve well from their country, and the leniency
-which has been shown to them is but the reward for
-an act of daring which, though unjustifiable from the
-moral point of view, is nevertheless to be condoned
-by the circumstance that its patriotic aim was so great
-that it was worth while risking everything, even remorse,
-in order to accomplish it.</p>
-
-<p>In a certain sense, Rasputin was the curse of Russia.
-Thanks to him, the purest existences were subjected
-to a whole series of base attacks and of vile
-calumnies. Thanks to him, our enemies were given
-the opportunity to pour out upon us, upon our institutions,
-our statesmen and even upon our sovereign
-the poison of their venom, and to represent us to those
-who do not know us in a light which, thanks be rendered
-to God, was an absolutely false and untrue one.</p>
-
-<p>Russia was far too great for such things to touch
-her. That Germany rejoiced at every tale which
-reached its ears in regard to Rasputin is evident if one
-reads its newspapers. That it was in understanding
-and accord, if not directly with him, at least with some
-of those who were his immediate friends and habitual
-confidents, has been proved to the satisfaction of all
-impartial persons. And that he worked continually
-towards establishing an understanding between the
-Czar and the Kaiser is another fact of which more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">87</span>
-than one man in Russia is aware. Whether he did so
-intentionally, or whether he was the unconscious instrument
-of others cleverer and more cultivated than
-he ever was or would become, is still a point that has
-not been cleared up to the general satisfaction. But
-that his so-called influence only existed over certain
-weak people, and that the Czar himself never knowingly
-allowed it to be exercised in matters of state, is
-a fact about which there can exist no doubt for those
-who knew the sovereign.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">88</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_IV">CHAPTER IV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">I have</span> quoted the impressions of Prince Lvoff in
-regard to Rasputin, and have remarked that I have
-had personally the opportunity to convince myself
-that they were correct, at least in their broad lines.
-The interview which I had with Rasputin in the
-course of the winter of 1913–14 left me with feelings
-akin to those experienced by the Prince. This interview
-took place under the following circumstances:
-I had been asked by a big American newspaper to
-see the “Prophet,” whose renown had already spread
-beyond the Russian frontiers, and who was beginning
-to be considered as a factor of no mean importance
-in the conduct of Russian state affairs. This, however,
-was by no means an easy matter. For one thing,
-he was seldom in St. Petersburg. He spent most of
-his time at Tsarskoie Selo, where his headquarters
-were the apartments of Mme. W. He used to make
-only brief and flying visits to the capital, where he
-possessed several dwellings. One never knew in
-which one he could be found, as he used to go from
-one to another, according to his fancy. He gave audiences
-like a sovereign would have done, and before
-any one was allowed to enter his presence that person
-had to be subjected to a course of cross-examination
-so as to make quite sure that no malicious or evil designs<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">89</span>
-were harboured by him in regard to the “Prophet.”</p>
-
-<p>At last, after a succession of unavailing efforts, I
-chanced to light on a certain Mr. de Bock, with whom
-Rasputin had business relations, and for whom he
-procured when the war broke out an important contract
-connected with the supply of meat for the troops
-in the field. It was this personage who finally obtained
-for me the favour of being admitted into the
-home of Rasputin. The latter was living at the time
-in a very handsome and expensive flat, in a house situated
-on the English Prospekt, a rather distant street
-in St. Petersburg, whose proximity to the quarters of
-the working population of the capital had appealed to
-the “Prophet’s” tastes. When I arrived there at
-about 4 o’clock in the afternoon, I was, first of all,
-stopped by the hall porter, who wanted me to explain
-to him where and to whom I was going. Upon
-hearing that it was to Rasputin he insisted on my
-taking off my fur coat downstairs, and then examined
-me most carefully and suspiciously, surveying with
-special attention the size and volume of my pockets,
-so as to make sure that I was not carrying any murderous
-instruments hidden in their depths.</p>
-
-<p>Upstairs the door was opened by an elderly woman
-with a red kerchief over her head, who, I learned
-afterward, was one of the “sisters” who followed the
-“Prophet” everywhere. She asked for my name, and
-then ushered me into a room, sparely but richly furnished.
-There some half-dozen people were waiting,
-in what seemed to me to be extreme impatience, for
-the door of the next room to open and admit them.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">90</span>
-Voices were heard through the door angrily discussing
-something or other. Among the people present I
-recognised a lady-in-waiting on the Empress, an old
-general in possession of an important command, two
-parish priests, three women belonging to the lower
-classes, one of whom seemed to be in great trouble,
-and a typical Russian merchant in high boots and
-dressed in the long caftan which is still worn by some
-of those who have kept up the traditions of the old
-school. Then there was a little boy about ten years
-old, poorly clad, who was crying bitterly. All these
-people kept silent, but the eager expression on their
-faces showed that they were all labouring under an
-intense agitation and emotion. When I entered the
-apartment a distinct look of disappointment appeared
-on all their faces. At last the old general approached
-me, and asked me in more or less polite tones whether
-I had a special card of admission or not.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?” I inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you see,” he said, “we all who are in this
-room have got one, but there”—and he pointed with
-his finger to the adjoining door—“there sit the people
-who have come here on the chance, just to try whether
-Gregory Efimitsch will condescend to speak to them.
-Some have been sitting there since last night,” he significantly
-added. And as he spoke he slightly pushed
-ajar the door he had mentioned. I could see that a
-room, if anything smaller than the one we were in,
-was packed full of persons of different ages and
-types, all of whom looked tired. They were sitting
-not only on the few chairs which the apartment contained,
-but also on the floor. There were women with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">91</span>
-children hanging at their breast, military men, priests,
-monks, common peasants and two policemen. The
-last named were seated by the window leisurely eating
-a piece of bread and cold meat, which they were
-cutting into small slices with a pocketknife. They
-had evidently made themselves at home, regardless of
-consequences or of the feelings of other people. Suddenly
-we heard another door slam, and a strong step
-resounded in the hall. A man began to speak in a
-loud voice. He said: “You just go to see——” and
-here the name of one of the most influential officials
-in the Home Office was mentioned, “and you tell him
-that Gricha has said he was to give you a place, and
-a good one, too. It does not matter whether there
-is none vacant, he must find one. There, take this
-paper, and now go, and don’t forget to show it when
-you come to the Home Office.”</p>
-
-<p>The door slammed again, and all remained silent
-for a few minutes. Then the elderly woman who had
-admitted me, came into the apartment where we were
-sitting and beckoned me to follow her. But this
-proved too much for the feelings of the old general
-who had accosted me on my entrance, and he pushed
-himself forward in front of me, exclaiming as he did
-so:</p>
-
-<p>“I have been here a longer time than she has been,”
-pointing at me with his finger, “and I must get in
-first.”</p>
-
-<p>“You cannot do so,” replied the woman; “my orders
-are to let this lady in first.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know who I am, woman?” screamed the
-general at the top of his lungs; he was evidently in a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">92</span>
-towering passion. “Go at once, and tell Gregory
-Efimitsch that I must see him at once, I have been
-waiting here for more than an hour.”</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot do so,” replied the woman, “I must obey
-the orders that have been given to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I shall do it myself,” exclaimed the general,
-and he rushed toward the door, which he opened,
-when he was stopped by a whole torrent of invectives
-coming from the next room.</p>
-
-<p>“How dare you disobey my orders?” cried out an
-angry voice. “Thou pig and son of a pig, I have said
-I wish to see this person and no one else! Thou idle
-creature! Chuck him out of the room, that pig who
-dares to contradict me, and you come in here!” And
-the tall figure of Rasputin appeared on the threshold
-of the room. He rudely pushed aside the general and,
-seizing my hand, pulled me into another apartment,
-which seemed to be his dining room.</p>
-
-<p>It was a rather large corner room with three windows,
-in which stood a quantity of flowers and green
-plants. A round table occupied the middle, on which
-was laid a striped white-and-red tablecloth. A samovar
-was standing on it, together with glasses on blue-and-white
-saucers, slices of lemon, sugar in a silver
-sugar basin, and quantities of cakes and biscuits.
-Chairs were placed around it, on one of which Rasputin
-sat down, facing the tea urn, after having made
-me a sign to do likewise. I noticed that there was a
-large writing table in one corner covered with books
-and papers.</p>
-
-<p>The “Prophet” himself did not at all strike me as
-being the remarkable individual I had been led to expect.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">93</span>
-He must have been about forty years old, tall
-and lean, with a long black beard and hair, falling
-not quite down to his back, but considerably lower
-than his ears. The eyes were black, singularly cunning
-in their expression, but did not produce, at least
-not on me, the uncanny impression I had been told
-they generally made on those who saw them for the
-first time. The hands were the most remarkable thing
-about the man. They were long and thin, with immense
-nails, as dirty as dirty could be. He kept moving
-them in all directions as he spoke, sometimes folding
-them on his breast and sometimes lifting them
-high up in the air. He wore the ordinary dress of
-the Russian peasant, high boots and the caftan, which,
-however, was made of the best and finest dark-blue
-cloth. What could be seen of his linen was also of
-the best quality.</p>
-
-<p>After having beckoned to me to sit down, Rasputin
-poured out some tea in a glass and proceeded to
-drink it, sipping the beverage slowly out of the saucer
-into which he poured it out of the glass which he
-had just filled. Suddenly he pushed the same saucer
-toward me with the word:</p>
-
-<p>“Drink.”</p>
-
-<p>As I did not in the least feel inclined to take his
-remains, I declined the tempting offer, which made
-him draw together his black and bushy eyebrows with
-the remark:</p>
-
-<p>“Better persons than thou art have drunk out of
-this saucer, but if thou wantest to make a fuss it is
-no concern of mine.”</p>
-
-<p>And then he called out, “Avdotia! Avdotia!” The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">94</span>
-elderly woman who had opened the door for me hastened
-to come into the room.</p>
-
-<p>“There,” said Rasputin, “this person”—-pointing
-toward me with his forefinger—“this person refuses
-to drink out of the cup of life; take it thou instead.”</p>
-
-<p>The woman instantly dropped on her knees and
-Rasputin proceeded to open her mouth with his fingers
-and pour down her throat the tea which I had disdained.
-She then prostrated herself on the ground
-before him and reverently kissed his feet, remaining
-in this attitude until he pushed her aside with his
-heavy boot and said, “There, now thou canst go.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he turned to me once more. “Great ladies,
-some of the greatest in the land, are but too happy to
-do as this woman has done,” he said dryly. “Remember
-that, daughter.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he proceeded at once with the question, “Thou
-hast wished to see me. What can I do for thee? I
-am but a poor and humble man, the servant of the
-Lord, but sometimes it has been my fate to do some
-good for others. What dost thou require of me?”</p>
-
-<p>I proceeded to explain that I wanted nothing in
-the matter of worldly goods, but asked this singular
-personage to be kind enough to tell me for the paper
-which I represented whether it was true that but for
-him Russia would have declared war upon Austria
-the year before.</p>
-
-<div id="i_094" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 26em;">
- <img src="images/i_094.jpg" width="1604" height="2341" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Photograph, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Gregory Rasputin</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>“Who has told you such a thing?” he inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a common saying in St. Petersburg,” I replied,
-“and some people say that you have been right
-in doing so.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">95</span></p>
-
-<p>“Right? Of course, I was right,” he answered
-with considerable irritation. “All these silly people
-who surround our Czar would like to see him commit
-stupidities. They only think about themselves and
-about the profits which they can make. War is a
-crime, a great crime, the greatest which a nation can
-commit, and those who declare war are criminals. I
-only spoke the truth when I told our Czar that he
-would be ruined if he allowed himself to be persuaded
-to go to war. This country is not ready for it. Besides,
-God forbids war, and if Russia went to war the
-greatest misfortunes would fall upon her. I only
-spoke the truth; I always speak the truth, and people
-believe me.”</p>
-
-<p>“But,” I remarked, “no one can understand how it
-is that your opinion always prevails in such grave matters.
-People think that you must have some strange
-power over men to make them do what you like.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what if I have,” he exclaimed angrily. “They
-are, all of them, pigs—all these people who want to
-discuss me or my doings. I am but a poor peasant,
-but God has spoken to me, and He has allowed me to
-know what it is that He wishes. I can speak with our
-Czar. I am not afraid to do so, as they all are. And
-he knows that he ought to listen to me, else all kind of
-evil things would befall him. I could crush them all,
-all these people who want to thwart me. I could
-crush them in my hand as I do this piece of bread,”
-and while he was speaking he seized a biscuit out of
-a plate on the table and reduced it to crumbs. “They
-have tried to send me away, but they will never get
-rid of me, because God is with me and Gricha shall
-outlive them all. I have seen too much and I know<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">96</span>
-too much. They are obliged to do what I like, and
-what I like is for the good of Russia. As for these
-ministers and generals, and all these big functionaries
-whom every one fears in this capital, I do not trouble
-about them. I can send them all away if I like. The
-spirit of God is in me and will protect me.</p>
-
-<p>“Thou canst say this to those who have sent thee
-to see me. Thou canst tell them that the day will
-come when there will be no one worth anything in
-our holy Russia except our Czar and Gricha, the servant
-of God. Yes, thou canst tell them so, and be
-sure that thou dost it.”</p>
-
-<p>I protested that I should consider this my first
-duty, but at the same time begged “the servant of
-God,” as he called himself, to explain to me by what
-means he had acquired the influence which he possessed.</p>
-
-<p>“By telling the truth to people about themselves,”
-he quickly replied. “Thou probably thinkest that all
-these fine ladies about the court who come to me do
-not care to be told about their failings. But there
-it is that thou art mistaken. They feel so disconcerted
-when they hear me call them by their proper
-names and remind them that they are but b——s, and
-the daughters of b——s, that they immediately fall
-at my feet. A silly lot are these women, and Gricha
-is not such a fool as one thinks. He knows how they
-ought to be treated. Wilt thou see how I treat
-them?”</p>
-
-<p>I said that nothing would give me more pleasure.
-Rasputin went to the door and called Avdotia.</p>
-
-<p>“Go to the telephone,” he said when she came in,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">97</span>
-“ask the Countess I—— to come at once. She must
-come herself to the telephone, and if a servant replies,
-say that he must call her immediately, and then tell
-her that I require her presence here at 12 o’clock to-night;
-not one minute earlier or later, mind.”</p>
-
-<p>The woman went away, and I could hear her talking
-at the telephone in the next room in an authoritative
-tone. Soon she returned with the words:</p>
-
-<p>“The Countess sends her humble respects to Gregory
-Efimitsch, and she will be here at midnight as
-she has been ordered to.”</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin turned toward me with a triumphant
-smile on his coarse cunning countenance.</p>
-
-<p>“Thou canst see, they are losing no time to obey
-me. Thou dost not know what women are, and how
-they like to be handled. Wait, and thou shalt see
-something better. Avdotia,” he called again. “Is
-Marie Ivanovna here?” he asked, when she came in
-response to his call. “Yes, since three hours,” was the
-reply. “Call her here.”</p>
-
-<p>A young woman of about twenty-five years of age
-appeared. She was very well dressed in rich furs,
-and ran up to Rasputin, kneeling before him, and kissing
-with fervour his dirty hands.</p>
-
-<p>“How long hast thou been here?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“About three hours, Batiouschka,” she answered.</p>
-
-<p>“This is well, thou art to remain here until midnight,
-and neither to eat or to drink all that time, thou
-hearest?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Batiouschka,” was the reply, uttered in timid,
-frightened tones.</p>
-
-<p>“Now go into the next room, kneel down before the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">98</span>
-Ikon, and wait for me without moving. Thou must
-not move until I come.”</p>
-
-<p>She kissed his hands once more, prostrated herself
-on the floor before him three times in succession, and
-then retired with the look of being in a kind of trance
-during which she could neither know nor understand
-what was happening to her.</p>
-
-<p>“If thou carest, thou canst follow her, and see
-whether she obeys me or not,” said Rasputin in his
-usual dry tone.</p>
-
-<p>I declined the invitation, protesting that I had never
-doubted but that the “Prophet” would be obeyed,
-adding, however, that though I had understood he
-could control the fancies and imagination of women
-gifted with an exalted temperament, yet I was not
-convinced that his influence could be exerted over unemotional
-men, and that this was the one point which
-interested my friends.</p>
-
-<p>“Thou must not be curious,” shouted Rasputin. “I
-am not here to tell thee the reasons for what I choose
-to do. It should suffice thee to know that I would
-at once return to Pokrovskoie if ever I thought my
-services were useless to my country. Russia is governed
-by fools. Yes, they are all of them fools, these
-pigs and children of pigs,” he repeated with insistence.
-“But I am not a fool. I know what I want, and if I
-try to save my country, who can blame me for it?”</p>
-
-<p>“But Gregory Efimitsch,” I insisted, “can you not
-tell me at least whether it is true that some ministers
-do all that you tell them?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, they do,” he replied angrily. “They
-know very well their chairs would not hold them long<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">99</span>
-if they didn’t. Thou shalt yet see some surprises before
-thou diest, daughter,” he concluded with a certain
-melancholy in his accents.</p>
-
-<p>Avdotia entered the room again.</p>
-
-<p>“Gregory Efimitsch,” she said, “there is Father
-John of Ladoga waiting for you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! I had forgotten him.” Then he turned
-toward me.</p>
-
-<p>“Listen again,” he said; “this is a priest, very
-poor, who is seeking to be transferred into another
-parish somewhere in the south. Avdotia, call on the
-telephone the secretary of the Synod and tell him
-that I am very much surprised to hear that Father
-John has not yet been appointed to another parish.
-Tell him this must be done at once, and that he must
-have a good one. I require an immediate answer.”</p>
-
-<p>The obedient Avdotia went out again, and we could
-hear her once more talk on the telephone. “The secretary
-of the Synod presents his humble compliments
-to you, Batiouschka,” she said when she returned.</p>
-
-<p>“Who cares for his compliments?” interrupted Rasputin.
-“Will the man have his parish or not? This
-is all that I want to know.”</p>
-
-<p>“The order for his transfer will be presented for
-the Minister’s signature to-morrow,” said Avdotia.</p>
-
-<p>“This is right,” sighed Rasputin with relief. And
-then turning to me:</p>
-
-<p>“Art thou satisfied?” he asked, “and hast thou seen
-enough to tell to thy friends?”</p>
-
-<p>I declared myself entirely satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>“Then go,” said Rasputin. “I am busy and cannot
-talk to thee any longer. I have so much to do. Everybody<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">100</span>
-comes to me for something, and people seem to
-think that I am here to get them what they need or
-require. They believe in Gricha, these poor people,
-and he likes to help them. But as for the question
-of war, this is all nonsense. We shall not have war,
-and if we have, then I shall take good care it will not
-be for long.”</p>
-
-<p>He dismissed me with a nod of his head, and his
-face assumed quite a shocked look when he found
-that I was retiring without seeming to notice the hand
-which he was awkwardly stretching out to me. But
-I knew that he expected people, as a matter of course,
-to kiss his dirty fingers, and as I was not at all inclined
-to do so, I made as if I did not notice his gesture.
-As I was passing into the next room, I could
-perceive through a half open door leading into another
-apartment the young lady whom Rasputin had
-called Marie Ivanovna. She was prostrated before
-a sacred image hanging in a corner, with a lamp burning
-in front of it, with her eyes fixed on Heaven, and
-quite an illuminated expression on her otherwise plain
-features. St. Theresa might have looked like that.
-But seen in the light of our incredulous Twentieth
-Century, she appeared a worthy subject for Charcot,
-or some such eminent nerve doctor, and her place
-ought to have been the hospital of “La Salpetriere”
-rather than the den of the modern Cagliostro, who
-was making ducks and drakes out of the mighty Russian
-Empire.</p>
-
-<p>As I was going down the stairs, I met an old man
-slowly climbing them, with a little girl whom he was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">101</span>
-half carrying, half dragging along with him. He
-stopped me with the question:</p>
-
-<p>“Do you happen to know whether the blessed
-Gregory receives visitors?”</p>
-
-<p>I replied that the “Prophet” was at home, but that
-I could not say whether he would receive any one
-or not.</p>
-
-<p>“It is for this innocent I want to see him,” moaned
-the man. “She is so ill and no doctor can cure her.
-If only the blessed Gregory would pray over her, I
-know that she would be well at once. Do you think
-that he will do so, Barinia?” the man added anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“I am sure he will,” I replied, more because I did
-not know what to say rather than from the conviction
-that Rasputin would receive this new visitor. I saw
-the old creature continue his ascent up the staircase,
-and the whole time he was repeating to the child, “You
-shall get well, quite well, Mania, the Blessed One
-shall make you quite well.”</p>
-
-<p>On the last steps before the stairs ended on the landing,
-two men were busy talking. They were both typical
-Israelites, with hooked nose and crooked fingers.
-They were discussing most energetically some subject
-which evidently was absorbing their attention to an
-uncommon degree, and discussing it in German, too.</p>
-
-<p>“You are quite sure that we can offer him 20 per
-cent?” one was saying.</p>
-
-<p>“Quite sure, the concession is worth a million; the
-whole thing is to obtain it before the others come on
-the scene.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who are the others?” asked the first of the two
-men.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">102</span></p>
-
-<p>“The Russo-Asiatic Bank,” replied the second.
-“You see the whole matter lies in the rapidity with
-which the thing is made. The only one who can persuade
-the minister to sign the paper is the old man
-upstairs,” and he pointed out toward Rasputin’s
-apartment. Thereupon the two in their turn started
-to mount the steps.</p>
-
-<p>My first interview with Rasputin, all the details of
-which I wrote down in my diary when I got home,
-gave me some inkling as to the different intrigues
-which were going on around this remarkable personage.
-It failed, however, to make me understand
-by what means he had managed to acquire, if he really
-acquired, a fact of which I still doubted, the strong
-influence which he liked to give the impression he exercised.
-It was quite possible that he had contrived
-through the magnetic gifts with which he was endowed
-to subdue to his will the hysterical women, whose bigotry
-and mystical tendencies he had exalted to the
-highest pitch possible. But how could he, a common
-peasant, without any education, knowledge of the
-world or of mankind, have imbued ministers and
-statesmen with such a dread that they found themselves
-ready to do anything at his bidding and to dispense
-favours, graces and lucrative appointments to
-the people whom he called to their attention. There
-was evidently something absolutely abnormal in the
-whole thing, and it was the reason for this abnormality
-that I began to seek.</p>
-
-<p>This search did not prove easy at first, but in time,
-by talking with persons who saw much of Rasputin
-and of the motley crew which surrounded him, I contrived<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">103</span>
-to form some opinion as to the cause of his success.
-It seemed to me that he was the tool of a strong
-though small party or group of men, desirous of using
-him as a means to attain their own ends. There is nothing
-easier in the world than to make or to mar a reputation,
-and it is sufficient to say everywhere that a
-person is able to do this or that thing, to instil into
-the mind of the public at large the conviction that such
-is the case. This was precisely what occurred with
-Rasputin.</p>
-
-<p>Count Witte, who was one of the cleverest political
-men in his generation and perhaps the only real statesman
-that Russia has known in the last twenty-five
-years, ever since his downfall had been sighing for the
-day when he should be recalled to power. He knew
-very well all that was going on in the Imperial family,
-and it was easier for him than for any one else to
-resort to the right means to introduce an outsider into
-that very closed circle which surrounded the Czar. So
-long as he had been a minister and had under his
-control the public exchequer it had been relatively
-easy for him to obtain friends, or rather tools, that had
-helped him in his plans and ambitions. When this faculty
-for persuasion failed him he bethought himself
-to look elsewhere for an instrument through which he
-might still achieve the ends he had in mind. He was
-not the kind of man who stopped before any moral
-consideration. For him every means was good, provided
-it would prove effective. When he saw that certain
-ladies in the entourage of the sovereigns had become
-imbued with the Rasputin mania, he was quick
-to decide that this craze might, if properly managed,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">104</span>
-prove of infinite value to him. He therefore not only
-encouraged it as far as was in his power by pretending
-himself to be impressed by the prophetic powers of the
-“Blessed Gregory,” but he also contrived very cleverly
-to let the fact of the extraordinary ascendancy which
-Rasputin was rapidly acquiring over the minds of
-powerful and influential persons become known. Very
-soon everybody talked of the latter-day saint who had
-suddenly appeared on the horizon of the social life
-of St. Petersburg, and the fame of his reputation
-spread abroad like the flames of some great conflagration.</p>
-
-<p>Russia is essentially the land where imperial favourites
-play a rôle, and soon the whole country was not
-only respecting Rasputin, but was trying to make up
-to him and to obtain, through him, all kinds of favours
-and material advantages. Together with Count Witte
-a whole political party was working, without the least
-consideration for the prestige of the dynasty which
-it was discrediting, to show up the rulers as associated
-with the common adventurer and sectarian, who,
-under other conditions, would undoubtedly have found
-himself prosecuted by the police authorities for his
-conduct. They had other thoughts in their heads than
-the interests of the dynasty, these money-seeking,
-money-grubbing, ambitious men. They represented
-nothing beyond the desire to become powerful and
-wealthy. What they wanted was important posts
-which would give them the opportunity to indulge in
-various speculations and more or less fraudulent business
-undertakings they contemplated.</p>
-
-<p>Russia at the time was beginning to be seized with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">105</span>
-that frenzy for stock-exchange transactions, share
-buying and selling, railway concessions and mining enterprises
-which reached its culminating point before
-the beginning of the war. Men without any social
-standing, and with more than shady pasts, were coming
-forward and acquiring the reputation of being
-lucky speculators capable in case of necessity of developing
-into clever statesmen. These men began to
-seek their inspirations in Berlin, and through the
-numerous German spies with which St. Petersburg
-abounded they entered into relations with the German
-Intelligence Department, whose interests they made
-their own, because they believed that a war might put
-an end to the industrial development of the country,
-and thus interfere with their various speculations.
-The French alliance was beginning to bore those who
-had got out of it all that they had ever wanted; it was
-time something new should crop up, and the German
-and Russian Jews, in whose hands the whole industry
-and commerce of the Russian Empire lay concentrated,
-began to preach the necessity of an understanding
-with the great state whose nearest neighbour
-it was. A rapprochement between the Hohenzollerns
-and the Romanoffs began to be spoken of openly as
-a political necessity, and it was then that, thanks to
-a whole series of intrigues, the Czar was induced to
-go himself to Berlin to attend the nuptials of the only
-daughter of the Kaiser, the Brunswick.</p>
-
-<p>This momentous journey to Berlin was undertaken
-partly on account of the representations of Rasputin
-to the Empress, whose love for peace was very well
-known. Europe had just gone through the anxiety<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">106</span>
-caused by the Balkan crisis, and it was repeated everywhere
-in St. Petersburg that a demonstration of some
-kind had to be made in favour of peace in general and
-also to prove to the world that the great Powers were
-determined not to allow quarrels in Serbia, Bulgaria
-and Greece to trouble the security of the world. The
-marriage festivities of which Berlin became the theatre
-at the time seemed a fit opportunity for this demonstration.
-The bureaucratic circles in the Russian
-capital and the influence of Rasputin were used to
-bring about this trip of the Czar.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin was thus fast becoming a personage,
-simply because it suited certain people—the pro-German
-party, to use the right word at last—to represent
-him as being important. They pushed things so far
-that many ministers and persons in high places refused
-on purpose certain things which were asked of
-them and which were absolutely easy for them to perform
-simply because they wished Rasputin to ask for
-them for those who were weary of always meeting
-with a non possumus in questions for which they required
-the help of the Administration.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin’s various intermediaries, through whom
-one had to pass before one could approach him, sold
-their help for more or less large sums of money, and
-thus began a period of vulgar agiotage, to use the
-French expression, of which Russia was the stage,
-and Rasputin, together with the men who used him,
-the moving spirits. I very nearly said the evil spirits.
-But of this, more later on.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">107</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_V">CHAPTER V</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">I must</span> now make one remark which is absolutely
-necessary in order to enable the foreign readers to
-understand how the numerous legends which were connected
-with Rasputin and the influence of the latter
-on the course of public affairs could come to be accepted
-by the nation at large. One can seek its principal
-reason in the tendency which the Russian government
-has cultivated since immemorial times to forbid
-the open discussion of certain things and facts.
-At the time about which I am writing present military
-censorship did not exist, and there was no war which
-could have justified the control by the government
-of the publication by the daily press of the current
-events of the day. Yet the censors did not allow any
-mention of Rasputin to be made in any organ of publicity.
-Thanks to this senseless interdict, it helped the
-invention of the most unbelievable tales concerning
-him and the attitude which he had adopted in regard
-to state affairs, with which he had begun to occupy
-himself, much to the dismay of those who had by that
-time learned to appreciate the fact that the “Prophet”
-was but the plaything of men far cleverer than himself
-and 50,000 times more dangerous.</p>
-
-<p>St. Petersburg has always been famed for its gossiping
-propensities, and in no place in the whole world
-do the most incomprehensible rumours start and flourish<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">108</span>
-with the rapidity that they do in the Russian capital.
-What the newspapers are forbidden to mention
-is told by one person to another, whispered from one
-ear to another and discussed everywhere, in clubs,
-drawing rooms, restaurants, in the houses of the
-proudest aristocrats as well as in the dwellings of the
-humblest citizens. Nowhere does, or rather, did, because
-I believe this has become impossible nowadays,
-the telephone contribute more to relate all kind of
-gossip concerning both private people and public matters.
-Of course, as there existed no possibility of
-controlling all that was being related under the seal
-of secrecy all over St. Petersburg, the most improbable
-rumours were put in circulation and were carried
-about not only in the town itself, but in the provinces,
-where the travellers returning from St. Petersburg
-were but too glad to repeat with considerable additions
-all that they had heard in the capital.</p>
-
-<p>The very secrecy which was enjoined by the authorities
-in regard to Rasputin added to the latter’s importance
-and transformed him into a kind of legendary
-personage, either too holy or too bad to be mentioned.
-Soon all kinds of things in which he had had
-absolutely no part began to be attributed to him, and
-many persons, earnestly believing him to be all-powerful,
-took to asking his help not only in the matter of
-their administrative careers, but also in questions
-where their private life and private interests were involved.
-It happened every day that a man who had
-a lawsuit of a doubtful character sought out Rasputin,
-hoping that he might be able to put in a word capable
-of influencing the judges before whom the case was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">109</span>
-to be tried. As it was absolutely impossible for any
-one to approach him without passing through an intermediary
-of some kind, it was generally this intermediary
-who began the regular plundering of the
-pockets of all the unfortunate petitioners who had
-hoped to retrieve their fortunes by an appeal to the
-“Prophet’s” protection. This plundering went on as
-long as the victim had a penny to spare and a hope
-to live upon.</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand, the liberal parties in the country
-began to be seriously alarmed at the importance
-which this uncouth peasant was assuming, and they
-it was who helped by the anxiety which they openly
-manifested to set the general public thinking about
-him more than it ought to have done. In the Duma
-the name of Rasputin was mentioned with something
-akin to horror, and allusions without number were
-made concerning the “Dark Powers,” as they were
-called, who were grasping in their hands the conduct
-of public affairs. The “Prophet” began to be mentioned
-as the scourge of Russia long before he had
-become one. His followers, on the contrary, made
-no secret of his ever-growing importance, and invented
-on their side any number of tales absolutely devoid
-of truth and tending to prove that nothing whatever
-was done in regard to the management of state affairs
-without his having been previously consulted. Who
-consulted him no one knows, and no one could tell.
-Certainly it was not the Emperor, who had, when the
-“Prophet” once or twice had attempted to touch upon
-this point in his presence, rebuked him most sharply;
-certainly it was not the Empress, who at that time<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">110</span>
-had never yet cared for politics, whether foreign or
-domestic. It was also not the ministers, and most
-certainly it was not the leaders of any party in the
-Duma, because all parties there were agreed as to
-one thing, and that was a thorough detestation of
-Rasputin and of the whole crew which surrounded him
-and without which he could not exist. Who consulted
-him, then? No one knew, and very probably no one
-cared to know. But the fact that he was consulted
-was an established one, most probably due to the efforts
-of those persons in whose interests it lay to
-represent him as the deus ex machina without whom
-nothing could be done in general, and upon whom
-everything more or less depended.</p>
-
-<p>It was even related in St. Petersburg that one day,
-during an audience which he had had with the Czar,
-Mr. Rodzianko, the President of the Duma, had attempted
-a remonstrance on the subject of Rasputin
-for which he had been severely reproved by the Sovereign.
-Personally, I do not believe for one single
-instant that such an incident ever took place. For one
-thing, no one, not even Mr. Rodzianko, would have
-dared to talk to the Emperor about such an unsavoury
-subject as that of the “Prophet,” even if he had been
-endowed with a moral courage far superior to that of
-the President of the Duma. Then, again, the well-informed
-were, at the time I am referring to, far too
-cognisant of what was going on in the way of court
-intrigues not to understand that all protestations
-against the constant presence of Rasputin in the vicinity
-of the Imperial family would have led to nothing,
-for the simple reason that those upon whom it depended<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">111</span>
-did not and could not even recognise the danger
-that it presented, because they simply looked upon
-him as upon a holy man. He soothed the anxieties of
-the Empress in regard to her small son, promising her
-that the day would come when, thanks to his prayers,
-the child would outgrow his delicacy. He amused the
-Emperor by talking to him in a rough but bright language,
-describing bluntly all the incidents that had
-reached his knowledge generally through the channel
-of those interested in having them conveyed to the
-Sovereign in the way that best served their own interests.
-But Nicholas II. never took him seriously into
-account, and therefore could hardly have been brought
-to think that others were doing so, and doing it with
-a vengeance into the bargain.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin, however, was of a different opinion, and
-in his desire that others should share it he liked to
-boast in public of the things which he had not done
-and of the words which he had not spoken. He was
-upon excellent terms with some of the palace servants,
-in whom he had found comrades and with whom he
-felt more at his ease than with any one else. He got
-them to relate to him all that was going on in the
-family of the Czar. He very cleverly made use of this
-knowledge later on. It is well known in Russia that
-the Emperor himself was watched by the secret police,
-not only in view of his personal safety, but also
-because it was to the interest of the police to be thoroughly
-acquainted with all that he did and with the
-remarks it pleased him to make. And the secret police
-were working hand in hand with Rasputin. Their
-provocative agents, of which there existed considerable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">112</span>
-numbers, were everywhere talking about the
-“Prophet’s” influence and ever-growing importance,
-as well as relating in all the restaurants and public
-places in the capital wonderful and improbable tales
-concerning him and his doings. From these they were
-spread among the public and penetrated to people
-who otherwise would never have had the possibility
-of hearing anything about them. Among those who
-showed themselves the most active and the most eager
-to talk about Rasputin and about the influence which
-he was acquiring were persons well known for their
-German sympathies and others suspected of being
-German agents in disguise.</p>
-
-<p>At that period the great aim of the German Foreign
-Office was to bring about the collapse of the
-Franco-Russian alliance, and it set itself most cleverly
-to try to bring it about. Among the persons whom
-it employed for the purpose was Rasputin, perhaps
-unknown to himself, but led by men like Count Witte,
-who had always been pro-German in sympathy and
-who had almost engaged himself to bring about a
-rapprochement between the St. Petersburg and the
-Berlin Court. Working with Witte was Mr. Manusevitsch
-Maniuloff, one of the most abominable secret
-agents the world has ever known, who in his unscrupulousness
-would have done anything he was
-asked, provided he were paid high enough. For years
-he had been in receipt of German subsidies. By dint
-of blackmailing he had contrived to maintain himself
-in the capacity of one of the editors of the <cite>Novoie
-Vremia</cite>, where he wrote all that was asked of him
-for a consideration, the extent and nature of which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">113</span>
-depended upon circumstances. He was also on the
-staff of the Russian political Intelligence Department,
-to which he rendered such services as he considered
-to be advantageous to himself without the least
-thought of the use these might be to the State which
-employed him.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Maniuloff was a spendthrift who never could
-deny himself any of the good things of life. These
-are always considered to be expensive ones, and consequently
-he had expensive tastes. His capacity of
-police agent had allowed him to blackmail to advantage
-people against whom he had discovered, or
-thought he had discovered, something in the way of
-dangerous political opinions. One of his favourite occupations
-consisted in going about among these people
-and hinting to them that unless they showed themselves
-willing to minister to his numerous wants they
-might find themselves one day in a very tight corner.
-Generally these tactics proved successful, until he was
-caught red-handed in Paris, where he had been sent on
-a special mission, tampering with the funds of which
-he had control. This accident caused him to be dismissed.
-But the man knew far too much and had
-been far too advanced in the confidence of his superiors
-for them to be able to do without his services,
-so he was allowed to return to Russia and enroll himself
-in journalism, thus to make himself useful again.
-He had a wonderful intelligence and was an excellent
-worker and talked fluently in most of the European
-languages. He therefore made his way up the ladder
-once more, until at last he became the private
-secretary to Mr. Sturmer when the latter was Prime<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">114</span>
-Minister, an advancement that proved fatal to him
-because it brought him to prison. But of this I shall
-speak later on when touching upon the events which
-culminated in the murder of Rasputin.</p>
-
-<p>Such were the men who virtually controlled every
-action of the “Prophet,” and it is no wonder if guided
-by them he sometimes contrived to influence never the
-Czar himself, but the latter’s Ministers and officials
-who had been told, they did not even know by whom,
-but probably by the loud voice of the public, that to
-do anything to please Rasputin was to secure for
-oneself the good graces of the highest people in the
-land. As time went on the “Prophet” showed himself
-less and less in public, remaining among a small circle
-of personal friends whose interest it was to represent
-him as a kind of Indian idol, unapproachable
-except to his worshippers.</p>
-
-<p>And in the meanwhile the ladies who had been the
-first artisans of Rasputin’s favour were still holding
-religious meetings under his guidance and still seeking
-inspiration from his teachings. They believed
-him to be a real saint, refused to admit that he could
-do anything wrong and refused to accept as true the
-rumours which went about and which, unfortunately
-for the “Prophet’s” reputation, were but too exact,
-that he was fond of every kind of riotous living, that
-he spent his nights in drunken revels and that he gave
-his best attention to brandy mixed with champagne.
-His admirers persisted in seeing in him the prophet
-of the Almighty and believed that they could never
-be saved unless they conformed to all the directions
-which it might please him to give them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">115</span></p>
-
-<p>The Rasputin craze became more violent than ever
-during the few months which immediately preceded
-the war, and it very nearly verged upon complete
-fanaticism for his personality. Everything that he
-did was considered to be holy. His insolence and
-arrogance, displayed with increasing violence every
-day and hour, were almost incredible. This illiterate
-peasant dared to send dirty little scraps of paper on
-which he had scribbled a coarse message to ministers
-and public men ordering them to do this or that according
-to his pleasure, and presuming to give them
-advice, which was never his own, in matters of the
-utmost public importance. At first people had
-laughed at him, but very soon they had discovered
-that he could revenge himself on them quickly and
-effectively, and this had led to the general determination
-not to interfere with him any more, but to leave
-him severely alone, no matter what extravagance he
-might commit or say. And when it came to the extortion
-of large sums of money, those who were challenged
-to pay them generally did so with alacrity, as
-happened in the case of several banks to which Mr.
-Maniuloff applied for funds, with the help of these
-illiterate scraps of paper upon which Rasputin had
-scribbled his desire that the money should be put at
-the disposal of his “protégé.”</p>
-
-<p>What I have been writing is fact, which has been
-proved publicly, and never contradicted by so much
-as one single word of protestation. It accounts for
-the hatred with which the “Prophet” came to be
-viewed. As time went on it was felt that something
-ought to be attempted against the imposter who had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">116</span>
-contrived to break through barriers one could have believed
-to be absolutely impregnable. But no one
-knew how this was to be done, and at the time I am
-referring to the idea of a political assassination of
-Rasputin had not entered into the people’s heads. It
-was a woman who was to bring it before the public in
-the following circumstances:</p>
-
-<p>During the spring of the year 1914, Rasputin, to
-the general surprise of everybody, declared to his
-friends that he intended to leave the capital and to
-return for a few months to his native village of Pokrovskoie
-in Siberia to rest from his labours. Strenuous
-efforts were made to detain him in Petrograd,
-but he remained inflexible and rudely thrust aside
-those who would fain have kept him back. He declared
-that he was tired and weary of the existence which
-he had been leading the last year, and that the various
-annoyances and difficulties that had been put in his
-way by his numerous enemies had quite sickened him.
-Such, at least, was the explanation which he chose to
-give and to which he stuck. Others, it is true, declared
-that the real reason for his departure was that he had
-been given to understand that he would do better to
-absent himself from St. Petersburg during the time
-when the visit of the President of the French Republic
-was expected, as his presence there might prove embarrassing
-from more than one point of view. The
-hint had enraged him, and he had determined to go
-away for a much longer time than he had been told to
-do. He had even declared to a few of his closest
-friends that he was not going to return to the capital
-any more, but that he would remain in Siberia, where,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">117</span>
-as he graphically put it, “there was a great deal more
-money to be made than anywhere else in the world.”</p>
-
-<p>Whether the above is strictly true or not, I am not
-in a position to say, but it does not sound improbable.
-The fact remains that Rasputin left St. Petersburg
-for Pokrovskoie, where he arrived in the first days of
-June, 1914, accompanied by the “Sisters,” who were
-his constant companions. He was received with such
-honours that he might have been the Sovereign himself
-instead of the simple peasant he was. A crowd
-composed of several thousand men and women met
-him at the gates of the village and threw themselves
-at his feet imploring his blessing and calling upon him
-to pray with them, and to show them the real way to
-God which he was supposed to be the only one in
-Russia capable of indicating. For a few days this
-kind of thing continued, and Rasputin’s house was
-literally besieged by crowds of people who had gathered
-at Pokrovskoie from all parts of Siberia eager
-to pay homage to their national hero, for such he was
-considered to be. Rasputin smiled and chuckled and
-rubbed his hands, as was his wont in those moments
-when he allowed his satisfaction at anything to overpower
-him. If in St. Petersburg he had been considered
-as a prophet, here in this remote corner of
-Siberia he was fast becoming a kind of small god at
-whose shrine a whole nation was worshipping. This
-was just the sort of thing to please him and to make
-him forget any small unpleasantnesses he might have
-experienced before his departure from the capital.</p>
-
-<p>One morning, it was the 13th of July, 1914, Rasputin
-was leaving his house on his way to church,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">118</span>
-whither it was his custom to repair every day. On
-the threshold of his dwelling a woman was awaiting
-him. She had her face muffled in a shawl in spite of
-the warm weather. When she saw him she threw herself
-on her knees before him, as persons of her kind
-invariably did when they met him. The “Prophet”
-stopped and asked her what it was she wanted from
-him. Her only reply was to plunge into his stomach
-a large kitchen knife, which she had held the whole
-time hidden under her shawl.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin uttered one cry and sank upon the ground.
-The crowd which was always following him rushed
-toward him and lifted him up, while two local policemen
-who had been set by the authorities to protect
-and guard him threw themselves upon the woman and
-seized her violently by both arms. She remained perfectly
-quiet, declaring that they need not hold her as
-she had not the slightest intention of running away.
-She knew very well what she had done, and she had
-meant to do it for a long time. When asked what had
-been her motives, she declared that she would speak
-before the magistrates, and only asked to be protected
-in the meanwhile against the fury of the mob that
-was threatening to tear her to pieces in its rage. She
-did not seem to be in the least disturbed by what she
-had done and throughout she showed the most extraordinary
-coolness and self-possession.</p>
-
-<p>Very soon it was ascertained that she was a native
-of the government of Saratoff, and that her name was
-Gousieva. When Rasputin had been preaching in
-Saratoff she was among the women who had been
-taken in by his speeches, and though married she had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">119</span>
-left her husband and family to follow the “Prophet.”
-He very soon proceeded to “cleanse her from her
-sins,” according to his favourite expression. We
-know, of course, what this meant, and Gousieva, who
-at that time was young and pretty, only shared the
-fate of so many other women, deluded by the mealy
-mouthed utterances of the “new Saviour,” that it was
-only by means of a complete union with himself that
-they could be saved and their sins forgiven them. The
-unfortunate Gousieva had been only one of many.
-When she had found it out an intense rage had taken
-hold of her, which had been further enhanced and
-strengthened by the monk Illiodore, to whom she had
-related her misfortune. He had already at the time
-she sought him out become the deadly enemy of his
-former friend Rasputin. The miserable woman had
-lost everything—home, children, husband, relatives—on
-account of her mad infatuation for the deceiver
-who had made her forget her duties by the fascination
-which he had exercised over her weak mind. She
-swore that she would revenge herself and kill the
-“Prophet,” so that at least other women could be
-saved from the awful fate which had befallen her.</p>
-
-<p>After Rasputin had dismissed her she had been
-compelled to lead a dreadful kind of existence in order
-to obtain a piece of bread. At last she had become
-attacked by an awful disease, which had already eaten
-away a part of her nose and completely disfigured her
-face. This, too, she attributed to the “Prophet.” In
-her despair she decided that as she had nothing to lose
-the best and only thing left for her to do was to try
-and rid the world from the awful impostor who had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">120</span>
-caused so much misery, brought about such abominable
-misfortunes and occasioned so much distress
-to such a number of innocent women. She had followed
-Rasputin for a long time in St. Petersburg,
-but had never been able to approach him near enough
-to execute her design. But when it had come to her
-knowledge that he was returning to Pokrovskoie she
-had taken it as an indication that the Almighty would
-be with her in the deed which she was contemplating,
-and she, too, started for the distant Siberian village.
-There she had spent three days waiting for a favourable
-opportunity until the morning when she had at
-last succeeded in getting close enough to him to plant
-in his body the knife which she had carried about
-with her for more than two years.</p>
-
-<p>This whole story was related by Gousieva with the
-utmost composure, and without any hesitation at all.
-She considered Rasputin as the incarnation of the
-devil, and she had thought it a good deed to put him
-out of the way of committing any more evil. For the
-rest, she did not care what was to become of her. As
-it was she knew that she had not long to live, and
-with the illness with which she was afflicted existence
-in itself was not so sweet that she should sacrifice her
-revenge in order to retain it. She had had no accomplices,
-and she had consulted no one. In spite of the
-efforts which were made to induce her to say that she
-had acted under the directions and the inspiration of
-Illiodore, she denied it absolutely, adding that had she
-spoken to him about her intention she knew that he
-would have dissuaded her from it and that he might<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">121</span>
-even have warned the police so as to frustrate her design.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile, Rasputin had been carried back
-to his room and telegrams dispatched everywhere for
-a doctor. The wound, though deep, was not a serious
-one and it had not attacked any vital organs. The
-man was in no danger, but his disciples chose to say
-that it was a miracle of Providence that he had not
-succumbed at once under the blow which had been
-dealt at him. The “Prophet,” when he had felt himself
-stabbed, had cried out that some one was to “arrest
-that b——h who had hit him.” Then he caused
-several telegrams to be sent to his friends in St.
-Petersburg in which he described the attempt against
-his life as the work of the devil, who had inspired the
-woman Gousieva and induced her to commit her
-abominable action. He added that at the moment
-when her weapon had touched him he had seen an
-angel descend from Heaven, stop her arm, and then
-put a hand on his wound so as to stop it from bleeding,
-and that it was only due to this direct intervention
-of the Almighty that he had escaped with his
-life. Of course, the story was believed by the credulous
-people who accepted every one of his words as a
-manifestation of the will of the Lord, and he became
-more than ever a saint, to whom the people began to
-raise altars, and to regard in the light of another Saviour
-come to redeem mankind from the terrors of sin.</p>
-
-<p>In St. Petersburg the news of the attempted assassination
-of Rasputin had produced an immense impression,
-and had been commented upon in different
-ways. Some people saw in it an intervention of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">122</span>
-secret police, who had been told to get rid in some way
-or other of a man who was fast becoming a public
-nuisance and embarrassment for everybody, even for
-those who had benefited through their acquaintance
-with him. Others declared that it was a just punishment
-for his evil deeds, and that the woman Gousieva
-had not been badly inspired when she had tried to
-revenge herself on him for the terrible wrong which
-he had done to her. Every one was anxious to learn
-how the news would be received in certain quarters
-and among the bevy of feminine worshippers whose
-existence was wrapped up in that of Rasputin. Public
-curiosity, however, was not destined to be satisfied,
-because nothing was heard concerning the feelings of
-these adepts of his on this remarkable occasion.</p>
-
-<p>The only thing which one learned in regard to the
-whole affair was that two ladies who figured among
-his most prominent supporters had started at once for
-Pokrovskoie, and that a celebrated surgeon from
-Kazan had also been requested to go to see him regardless
-of what his journey might cost.</p>
-
-<p>The care that was taken of Rasputin soon restored
-him to his usual health, and he became at once a martyr.
-When the first moment of fright—and, being a
-great coward, he had been thoroughly frightened—had
-passed away, he felt rather satisfied at the fuss
-which was made about him, and more grateful than
-anything else to the woman Gousieva for having given
-him such a splendid opportunity to recover some of
-his popularity, which he had feared might decrease
-during his absence from St. Petersburg. The fact
-that his attempted assassination had brought his name<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">123</span>
-and his person once more prominently before the public
-pleased him, and his natural cunning made him at
-once grasp the whole importance of the event and the
-capital that might be made out of it. He was the
-first to plead for indulgence for his would-be murderess,
-perhaps out of fear of the scandal which a
-trial might produce, a trial during which a lawyer
-might be found daring enough and enterprising
-enough to speak openly of the reasons which had
-driven the accused woman to this act of madness, and
-to disclose certain episodes in the past existence of
-the “Prophet” which the latter would not have cared
-at all to become the property of the public. On the
-other hand, the authorities, too, felt that a public trial
-would only cause a most painful sensation, by the mention
-of names which it was of the highest importance
-to keep outside the question. The culprit herself insisted
-upon being brought before a jury, declaring
-that she had sought publicity and that she would not
-rest until she had it; that, moreover, she did not intend
-to be cheated out of her revenge or prevented
-from exposing the man in whom she saw the most flagrant
-and daring impostor, a creature for whom nothing
-in the world was sacred and who would not hesitate
-at anything in order to come to his ends. She
-insisted on the fact that she would have rendered a
-public service to the country had she killed him, and
-that, whatever happened to her personally, the vengeance
-of God would one day overtake “Gricha” and
-his wickedness, and that others would be found who
-would follow the example which she had given to
-them and not fail as she had failed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">124</span></p>
-
-<p>Gousieva told all this to the examining magistrate
-to whom had been intrusted the preliminary inquest,
-and she persisted in her allegations, notwithstanding
-all the efforts and even the threats which were made
-to her to induce her to retract her first deposition.
-The authorities found themselves in a dilemma from
-which they did not know how to extricate themselves,
-when Rasputin himself came to their rescue.</p>
-
-<p>“The woman is mad,” he said. “All that she relates
-is but the ravings of a madwoman. Lock her
-up in an asylum, and let us hear nothing more about
-her!”</p>
-
-<p>This piece of advice was considered to be the best
-possible under the circumstances, and Gousieva was
-placed first in a hospital for observation and then a
-few months later adjudged insane by order. She was
-removed to a madhouse, no one knows exactly where,
-and there she probably is locked up to this day unless
-death in some shape or form has overtaken her
-and removed her forever out of a world which certainly
-had never proved a kind one for her.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile her victim was mending rapidly,
-and three weeks after his accident he was removed
-first to Tobolsk and then to St. Petersburg. His
-disciples were preparing a great reception for him,
-and he himself was openly talking of all that he would
-do on his return and of the revenge which he was
-going to take on the people to whose influence he attributed
-the “mad” act of the woman who had attacked
-him. He made the greatest efforts to connect Illiodore
-with the attempt of Gousieva, and he was quite
-furious to see them fail, declaring that when he was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">125</span>
-once more in the capital he would make it his business
-to find out whether it was not possible to discover
-some points of association between the unfrocked
-monk and the woman whose knife had been raised
-against him. He further made no secret of his intention
-to obtain the proofs which he needed, thanks
-to the intelligence and with the help of his friend Mr.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff. Whether he would have
-succeeded or not, it is difficult to say, because when
-Rasputin returned to St. Petersburg and was enabled
-to visit his friends at Tsarskoie Selo once more,
-there were other preoccupations which were troubling
-the public more than anything connected with his individuality.
-War had broken out with Germany.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">126</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_VI">CHAPTER VI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">It</span> was perhaps a fortunate thing for Rasputin
-that he was not in St. Petersburg when Germany attacked
-us so unexpectedly. It is quite probable that
-if he had found himself in the capital at the time he
-would have intrigued in so many ways that he might
-have put even the Sovereign in an embarrassing position,
-for any hesitations in the decisions of the Government
-would have been attributed to the influence
-of the “Prophet.” At this time of national crisis, it
-certainly would have been a misfortune if anything
-had occurred likely to endanger the prestige of the
-dynasty. But in regard to Rasputin himself, it is
-likely that his absence delayed the conspiracy which
-resulted in his death, as he was forgotten for the
-moment, so intensely was public opinion preoccupied
-with the grave events that were taking place.</p>
-
-<p>Later on, after the disaster of Tannenberg, the
-friends of the “Prophet,” in order to win back for him
-some popularity, spread the rumour that he had from
-his distant Pokrovskoie written to one of his warmest
-patronesses, Madame W, that he had had a vision during
-which it had been revealed to him that the Russian
-armies were to march immediately upon eastern
-Prussia, where it would be possible to deal a decisive
-blow at the enemy, and to do so with all their strength.
-Now this is precisely what was not done, owing to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">127</span>
-military misconception of the Russian General Staff,
-which for political reasons started to proceed to the
-conquest of Galicia, that could have been delayed with
-advantage until after the Prussian monster, if not
-killed, had been at least seriously injured.</p>
-
-<p>The enemies of the Grand Duke Nicholas, of whom
-there were plenty, seized hold of this rumour, and
-rallied themselves round Rasputin, declaring that once
-more God had intervened in favour of Holy Russia,
-in blessing it with a prophet whose clear glance and
-visions could be relied upon far better than the strategical
-combinations of the Grand Duke that had
-proved such a complete failure. The Grand Duke
-was accused of having despatched two army corps into
-the Mazurian region without having taken sufficient
-precautions to insure their safety, and it was said
-that the only one who had seen clearly the disaster
-which had overtaken these corps had been Rasputin,
-and that it had been revealed to him direct from
-Heaven even before it had taken place.</p>
-
-<p>All this was great nonsense, of course, but nevertheless
-it did a considerable amount of harm. One
-must not lose sight of one fact when one judges the
-whole history of the impostor who for so many years
-contrived to occupy with his personality the attention
-of the Russian public, and that is that his sermons and
-utterances appealed to that mystical side of the Slav
-character which in all hours of great national crises
-and misfortunes asserts itself a manner which to the
-Occidental mind seems quite incomprehensible. It
-is sufficient to have looked upon the crowds kneeling
-in the streets of St. Petersburg, and of Moscow, during<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">128</span>
-those eventful August days which saw the breaking
-out of the catastrophe, to become persuaded of the
-fact that they reckoned more on God’s intervention
-on their behalf than on the efficacy of any guns or
-soldiers to insure a victory for the Russian arms.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin, for a short period, became once more a
-national hero, at least in the eyes of the select circle
-that had first brought him prominently before the
-public, and they began to say among this circle that
-until one followed his directions and gave oneself up
-entirely to the service of God in the manner it pleased
-him to recommend, the campaign that had just begun
-would never be won. For other people, too, the
-return of the “Prophet” to Petrograd, as St. Petersburg
-had been rechristened, was also a boon. All the
-speculators, army purveyors and persons interested in
-army contracts awaited him with an impatience which
-surpassed every description, and they surrounded him
-at once and laid siege, not so much to his person as to
-the influence which he was supposed to possess.</p>
-
-<p>There are innumerable anecdotes about this agitated
-period in the career of Rasputin, each more
-amusing and each more incredible than the others.
-I shall here quote a few:</p>
-
-<p>A Danish gentleman had arrived in Petrograd
-from Copenhagen with a load of medicines and different
-pharmaceutical products which he wanted to
-sell to the Red Cross. He brought excellent credentials
-with him, and he imagined that the business
-would be a relatively easy one. But to his surprise
-he found that this was not at all the case. Though
-the prices which he asked for his goods were not at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">129</span>
-all high compared with those current in the Russian
-capital, he could not get rid of them, and he was always
-put off until the next day. At last he became
-quite discouraged and was already thinking of returning
-home when he met in the lounge of the principal
-hotel of Petrograd (famed for the financial transactions
-which were regularly taking place under its
-roof) a Jew who, seeing him looking worried and
-annoyed, asked what was the matter. The Dane then
-related his story, adding that he failed to understand
-why at a time when the things which he had brought
-with him were in great demand he could not sell them,
-though he had lowered his prices to a point below
-which it was quite impossible for him to go. The
-Jew looked at him for some minutes, then asked
-him whether he would feel inclined, if he could help
-him to dispose of his wares at a profit, to give a
-large commission in exchange. The Dane of course
-assented, and the Jew took him the next day to Rasputin,
-to whom he told a long story of which the seller
-of the articles in question understood nothing at all,
-but which culminated in the “Prophet” scribbling
-something in pencil on a dirty scrap of paper, and
-handing it to his visitors. The same afternoon the two
-men went to the head offices of the Red Cross, accompanied
-by another gentleman, who introduced himself
-as Rasputin’s secretary. To the intense surprise of
-the Dane, the medicines which he had been trying
-uselessly to sell for three weeks were at once accepted
-on the producing of the “Prophet’s” note, and sold
-at such an enormous profit that he remained absolutely
-astounded. The contract was signed there and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">130</span>
-then, and a cheque handed to the happy seller. His
-two companions then accompanied him to the bank,
-where he handed over to them their share in the transaction,
-Rasputin’s representative taking the lion’s
-share of course, but whether for his master or for himself
-has never been ascertained.</p>
-
-<p>Another example is still more typical. There existed
-in Petrograd a German who had lived there for
-years, and who had acquired considerable property,
-among other things several houses in Petrograd,
-bringing him a large income. Very soon after the
-breaking out of the war the properties belonging to
-the enemy were sequestrated, and German subjects
-sent away from the capital to live out the war in some
-northern government. The same fate overtook our
-friend. But he was a man of resources, and he
-immediately proceeded to pay a visit to Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff.
-The latter was about the last
-man capable of allowing such a wonderful chance to
-escape him. How he managed he did not say, and the
-German never cared to learn, but he was allowed not
-only to remain in Petrograd, but also to sell his houses
-to a personage occupying such a very important administrative
-position that no one cared or dared to inquire
-of him whether he paid into the bank, as he ought
-to have done, the price of his acquisitions, or whether
-he gave it in the shape of a cheque on a foreign bank
-to the seller. And to crown the whole matter, the
-German in question was allowed to leave Russia with
-all due honours, and received the position of official
-buyer of different military goods for the Russian
-government in Scandinavia. He soon managed to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">131</span>
-indemnify himself to the full for the loss he had incurred
-in parting from his property for a mere song,
-and in paying the three hundred thousand rubles commission
-which Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff and Rasputin
-had together obtained from him.</p>
-
-<p>Such things were of daily occurrence, known to the
-general public, and of course commented upon in
-terms which were anything but favourable to the
-“Prophet.” The latter, however, did not mind and
-seemed absolutely convinced of immunity in regard
-to the different transactions in which he indulged and
-which increased in importance every day. He began
-to give his special attention to the interesting matter
-of army contracts, and there he found a very rich field
-to explore. All the different agents and intermediaries
-who constituted such a notable element in Petrograd
-crowded around him, offering him their services,
-or imploring his help in all kinds of shady business,
-out of which no one with the exception of Rasputin
-himself got a single penny. Thanks to him, bad cartridges
-were delivered to the army; rotten meat, or
-meat at a fabulous price, was sold for its wants, and
-not only sold once, but several times over. No matter
-how strange this last assertion may sound, it is
-absolutely true. If at the beginning of the war people
-were afraid to indulge in that kind of sport, they became
-adepts at it later on, and the only art which
-was practised in regard to it consisted in bribing an
-official not to put the Government stamp on the goods
-which were delivered to the Red Cross or to the Commissariat
-Department, an omission which allowed
-them to be returned to those who had already once<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">132</span>
-disposed of them, and thus become the object of a
-new transaction, perhaps even more profitable than
-the first.</p>
-
-<p>In regard to important matters, Rasputin did not
-disdain occasionally to play the spy. I remember a
-curious instance which during the first five or six
-weeks of the war greatly amused those who became
-aware of it. The whole incident is most characteristic
-of the business methods then in vogue in Russia, which
-are at present dying out fast, thanks to the co-operation
-of the English and French authorities with the
-Russians in all questions connected with army contracts.</p>
-
-<p>When war was declared the military administration
-proceeded to requisition numerous things which
-it required in the way of war material. Among others
-were sand bags for the trenches. Now there happened
-to be a Jew in Petrograd who had about 50,000 of
-them. He did not care to declare them as he ought
-to have done, knowing very well that he was not in
-a position to obtain from the Commissariat Department
-the price which he wanted. He therefore sold
-them to another Jew, who gave him a certain sum on
-account, stipulating that he would take the delivery
-of the goods in the course of the next week or so.
-But in the meanwhile prices went down, and the unlucky
-buyer found that he had indeed made about as
-bad a bargain as possible. While he was thus lamenting
-his bad luck, he happened to meet one of the
-secretaries of Rasputin to whom he related his misfortune.</p>
-
-<p>“Is this troubling you?” exclaimed the latter. “This<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">133</span>
-is nothing, and we shall soon set it all right.” He took
-him to the “Prophet,” where the trio came to the following
-arrangement: The Jew was to go forthwith
-to the Commissariat Department and declare that
-he had so many thousand sand bags to sell. Rasputin
-was to speak in his favour and to do his best
-to obtain the highest prices possible. Rasputin’s secretary
-proceeded then to denounce the first Jew, who
-was the real owner of the bags, as having neglected
-to declare their existence. Immediately a requisition
-was made in the latter’s store, where the bags of course
-were found. Then the Jew who had given an account
-of them interfered, and said that they were his property,
-and that he had fulfilled all the formalities required
-by the law in regard to them. He forthwith
-proceeded to take possession of the bags, laughing
-in the face of their real owner whom he defied to
-claim the balance still due to him, well knowing that
-the unfortunate victim could do nothing, because if
-he had tried to complain he would inevitably have
-been condemned to pay a heavy fine and to be imprisoned.</p>
-
-<p>Then again there was a story of railway trucks in
-which the “Prophet” also was mixed up in some unaccountable
-way. Some Jews, protected no one
-knows to this day by whom or in what way, had obtained
-some contracts from the Government for different
-goods which were to be delivered to the army,
-together with the necessary numbers of railway trucks
-to carry them to the front. They immediately proceeded
-to sell these contracts at a fair price, though
-not an exaggerated one, to other people, but with the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">134</span>
-clause that these other people were to take upon themselves
-the care of forwarding the goods to their destination.
-And they kept for their own use and benefit
-the trucks which had been allotted to them, hiring
-them afterward to whoever wanted to have them for
-as much money as they could get. One Jew, a certain
-Mr. Bernstein, thus obtained control over more than
-500 trucks, out of which he drew during six months
-an income amounting to something like 250,000 rubles
-a month. And this occurred while everybody was
-complaining of the impossibility of forwarding anything
-anywhere, owing to the total lack of railway
-material. It is related that in this little business, too,
-Rasputin was mixed up, and that without him the
-military contracts which the heroes of the anecdote I
-have just related obtained would never have been
-granted.</p>
-
-<p>These stories, scandalous though they were, are
-well known. There were others of which it is hardly
-possible to speak in a language fit for a drawing room.
-Such, for instance, is the sad case of a young girl, the
-daughter of a rich merchant in Moscow, who travelled
-all the way to Petrograd, to see the “Prophet” and
-implore his prayers for her fiancé who was at the
-front. Rasputin received her, and forthwith proceeded
-to tell her that the young man for whom she
-felt so anxious was doomed and could be saved only
-if she consented to unite herself with him, Rasputin,
-and to be cleansed by him of all her sins. The poor
-child, frightened out of her wits and fascinated by the
-terror which the dreadful creature inspired in his victims,
-allowed him to do what he liked with her. But<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">135</span>
-she afterward became mad, on hearing that in spite
-of her sacrifices her lover had fallen at Tannenburg,
-during the terrible battle which took place in that
-locality.</p>
-
-<p>All these things were whispered from ear to ear
-with horror and disgust, but they did not harm in
-the least the impostor who was pursuing his career
-of wickedness, deceit and crime. As time went on, he
-got more and more insolent, more and more overbearing,
-so that at last even some of his former protectors
-found that he was going rather too far, and he was no
-longer received at Tsarskoie Selo with the same kindness
-that had been shown to him previously.</p>
-
-<p>He did not care for this, nor did those with whom
-he was working care either. They were all unscrupulous,
-daring people, determined to make hay while
-the sun was shining, and careless as to what others
-might think of them. Count Witte, who saw further
-and understood better than most of the public the
-hopeless muddle into which the administration had
-fallen, felt sure that sooner or later the country would
-demand an explanation for the many mistakes and
-errors which had been committed, and that a change in
-the Government was bound to take place. He fully
-meant this change to affect his own prospects in so
-far that it would put him again at the head of affairs,
-and he was helping Rasputin as hard and as well as
-he could to discredit the Cabinet then in power, and
-to show it up as being thoroughly incapable of managing
-the country at this moment of grave crisis.</p>
-
-<p>It was about that time that the Massayedoff incident
-took place, about which such a lot has been written,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">136</span>
-and which deserves a passing mention in this record.
-Massayedoff was a colonel who had already
-given some reasons to be talked about for misdeeds
-of a more or less grave nature. General Rennenkampf,
-when he had received the command of the
-Kovno Army Corps, had energetically protested
-against his appointment on his staff, but headquarters
-ignored his representations and maintained the colonel
-in his functions.</p>
-
-<p>After the disaster of Tannenberg and the loss of
-two Russian army corps in the swamps of the Mazurian
-region, it was discovered that some spying of a
-grave nature had been going on and that the principal
-spy was Colonel Massayedoff, who had kept the
-enemy informed of the movements of the Russian
-troops. He was tried and condemned to death, which
-sentence was duly executed. Together with him several
-individuals compromised in the same affair, mostly
-Jews connected with questions of army purveyance,
-were also hanged. Among these last was a man called
-Friedmann, who had been one of the parasites who
-were perpetually crowding around Rasputin. The
-latter, however, when asked to interfere in his favour
-had refused to do so, but whether this was due to the
-desire to get rid of a compromising accomplice or the
-dread of being mixed up himself in a dangerous story,
-it is difficult to say or to guess. But others talked,
-if the “Prophet” himself remained silent, and soon it
-began to be whispered that he was also, if not exactly
-a German agent, at least a partisan of a separate
-peace with Germany.</p>
-
-<p>There certainly exist indications that such was the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">137</span>
-case. In spite of the strong character upon which
-Rasputin prided himself, it is hardly possible that he
-could have escaped the influence of the people who
-were constantly hanging about him, and who were all
-partial to Germany. This was due to the fact that
-they hoped, if the latter Power triumphed and vanquished
-the Russians, to obtain from the German
-Government substantial rewards for their fidelity, in
-the shape of some kind of army contracts, for the
-time that the Prussian troops remained in occupation
-of some Russian provinces. It is quite remarkable
-that while the nation in general was all for the continuation
-of the war, and would have considered it a
-shame to listen to peace proposals without consent of
-its Allies, commercial and industrial people were always
-talking about peace to whomever would listen.
-And Rasputin had now more to do with that class of
-individuals than with the nation.</p>
-
-<p>It was at that time that he suddenly imagined himself
-to be endowed with perspicacity in regard to military
-matters, and that he attempted to criticise the
-operations at the front, and especially the leadership
-of the Grand Duke Nicholas, whom he hated with all
-the ferocity for which his character had become famous.
-He was known to be absolutely without any
-mercy for those whom he disliked. He disliked none
-more than the Grand Duke, who had, on one occasion
-when the “Prophet” had tried to discuss with
-him the conduct of the campaign and even volunteered
-to arrive at headquarters, declared that if he
-ever ventured to put in an appearance there he would
-have him hanged immediately from the first tree he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">138</span>
-could find. Rasputin was prudent, and moreover he
-knew that Nicolas Nicolaievitsch was a man who always
-kept his word, so he thought it wise to leave a
-wide berth between him and the irascible commander-in-chief.
-But he applied himself with considerable
-perseverance to undermine the position of the latter,
-and especially to render him unpopular among the
-people, accusing him openly of mismanagement in regard
-to military matters and of want of foresight in
-his strategical dispositions.</p>
-
-<p>In the beginning this did not succeed, partly because
-the staff did not allow any news of importance
-to leak out from the front and partly because the
-country believed so firmly in a victory over the Prussians
-that it was very hard to shake its confidence in
-the Grand Duke’s abilities. The early successes of
-the first Galician campaign had strengthened this confidence,
-and no one in Petrograd during the first
-months of the year 1915 ever gave a thought to the
-possibility of our troops being compelled to retreat
-before the enemy, and no one foresaw the fall of Warsaw
-and of the other fortresses on the western frontier.
-Rasputin, however, knew more than the public
-at large. He had his spies everywhere, who faithfully
-reported to him everything that was occurring in the
-army. He was well aware that the army was suffering
-from an almost complete lack of ammunition, and
-that it would never be able to hold against any offensive
-combined with artillery attacks on the part of the
-enemy. This knowledge, which he carefully refrained
-from sharing with any one, enabled him to indulge in
-prophesies of a more or less tragic nature, the sense of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">139</span>
-which was that God was punishing Russia for its sins,
-and that with an unbeliever like the commander-in-chief
-at the head of its armies it was surely marching
-towards a defeat which would be sent by God as a
-warning never to forget the paths of Providence, and
-never to disdain the advice of the one prophet that
-He had sent in His mercy to save Russia from all the
-calamities which were threatening her.</p>
-
-<p>He used to speak in that way everywhere and to
-everybody, even at Tsarskoie Selo, not to the Emperor
-and Empress, of course, but to all those persons
-surrounding them who were favourably inclined
-toward himself and likely to spread abroad the
-prophecies which he kept pouring into their ears.</p>
-
-<p>But, in spite of all this, he was not quite so successful
-as he had hoped, because owing to the ignorance
-which prevailed as to the real state of things in
-the army, few people believed him, and fewer still
-would own that they did so. Once more Rasputin’s
-star was beginning to wane, and even the Empress began
-to think him very wearisome with his perpetual
-forebodings concerning misfortunes which seemed to
-be far away from the limits of possibility.</p>
-
-<p>Then suddenly things changed. Mackensen began
-his march forward, and the Grand Duke, with his
-heart full of rage and despair, was compelled, owing
-to the mistakes, the negligence and the crimes of
-others, to make the best out of a very bad job, and to
-try at least to save the army confided to his care.
-Even if he had to sacrifice towns and fortresses, he
-had declared he would never, and under no conditions
-whatever, surrender to the enemy. The great retreat<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">140</span>
-began, and proved to be one of the most glorious
-pages in the history of Russian warfare, a deed the
-gallantry of which will live in the military annals of
-the world as almost as grand a one as the famous retreat
-of Xenophon and his 10,000 warriors. Russia
-appreciated its importance; the world admired it; the
-Czar, though he may have shed bitter tears over its
-necessity, felt grateful for the talent which was displayed
-in such a terrible emergency; but people in
-Petrograd began looking for those upon whom they
-could fix the responsibility for this awful disappointment
-which had overtaken them. This was the moment
-for which Rasputin had been waiting with the
-patience of the serpent watching for its prey, and of
-which he hastened to make use with the infernal cunning
-he usually displayed in all the evil deeds with
-which he was familiar.</p>
-
-<p>The secret police agents, who were working with
-him, and thanks to whom he had been enabled to make
-the enormous profits that had added so many millions
-to his fortune since the war had started, began to
-spread the rumour that the Grand Duke was plotting
-against the Czar, and wanted to usurp the latter’s
-throne and crown, out of fear of being called
-upon to render an account of his activity during the
-nine months of the campaign. Though it was quite
-evident that the responsibility for the lamentable want
-of organisation which had culminated in the momentary
-defeat of the Russian troops lay upon the War
-Office and the Artillery and Commissariat Departments,
-and though the War Minister, General Soukhomlinoff,
-had been dismissed in disgrace before being<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">141</span>
-sent to the fortress of St. Peter and St. Paul to
-await there his trial; though strenuous efforts had
-been made to punish those to whose carelessness this
-mass of misfortunes had been due, yet Rasputin and
-his friends applied themselves to the task of representing
-the Grand Duke as being more guilty than any
-one else, and of having on purpose kept secret the real
-state of things, out of fear that he would be called
-upon, if he revealed the truth, to surrender his command.
-There was not one word of truth in these accusations,
-because Nicholas Nicholaievitsch had, on
-the contrary, worked harder than any one to repair
-the blunders of others, and had never shared the blind
-confidence in victory which so many people who knew
-nothing about the real condition of affairs professed
-to nurse. He had done all that it was humanly possible
-to do, in order to save a situation which had been
-doomed from the first day that it had begun to develop.
-If he had failed, this had been in no way his
-fault, but that of circumstances and of fate which had
-proved too strong for him.</p>
-
-<p>The public, however, thought differently, and Rasputin’s
-numerous supporters helped it to come to the
-conclusion that the Grand Duke ought to be deprived
-of his command by some means or other. This, however,
-was not such an easy thing to do, because the
-Emperor had a sincere esteem and respect for his
-uncle, and understood better than all those who criticised
-the latter the extent of the difficulties against
-which he had had to fight. He refused to listen to
-those who tried to shake his confidence in the commander-in-chief.
-He might have gone on for a long<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">142</span>
-time doing so had not Rasputin succeeded in winning
-over to his point of view several high ecclesiastical dignitaries,
-who took it upon themselves to speak to the
-Sovereign of the desire and wishes of the nation to
-see him assume himself the supreme command over
-his armies. They assured him that it was quite
-certain that the armies would fight ever so much better
-under the personal leadership of their Czar than under
-any other commander-in-chief, no matter how high
-might be his military reputation, or how elevated
-might be his rank. This was quite a new point of
-view, and Nicholas II. had to examine it with attention,
-the more so as the Empress, too, had been won
-over to the idea, and was pressing him to give to his
-subjects this satisfaction for which they craved.</p>
-
-<p>The military situation was then recognised, even by
-the most optimistically inclined people, to be very
-serious, and it was generally felt that something had
-to be done to excite the enthusiasm of the troops,
-which had lately begun to wane. The assumption by
-the Czar of the supreme command seemed to present
-itself almost in the light of an absolute necessity. Perhaps
-from some points of view Rasputin was not so
-very wrong to urge it, as it most certainly produced a
-salutary effect on the whole situation. But it is to
-be doubted whether the “Prophet” had ever looked
-at it in that light. It is far more likely that his only
-aim had been the displacing of the Grand Duke
-Nicholas, who had begun to look too closely into all
-that was going on around Rasputin, and to watch
-the different intrigues in which the latter was taking
-part with an attention that did not promise anything<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">143</span>
-good for him, or for the further development of his
-career as an adventurer.</p>
-
-<p>When the Grand Duke had been appointed Viceroy
-of the Caucasus, and had left for his new residence,
-Rasputin breathed freely once more. For one thing,
-this incident had given him a greater confidence in
-his own strength than he had even possessed before.
-Now that he had been able to remove the commander-in-chief
-of the Russian armies from his post, it seemed
-to him that it would be a relatively easy thing to push
-forward, and to appoint to the most important functions
-in the State people indoctrinated with his view
-and ready to help him in keeping undisturbed and
-unchallenged the position into which he had glided so
-naturally, and as now appeared to him, so simply—a
-position which he was absolutely determined not to
-lose. With a Prime Minister at his command, he
-would become the real master of Russia, and the Czar
-himself would be compelled to take him into account,
-a thing which up to then he had refused to do, much
-to the distress of the “Prophet.” Though he repeated
-everywhere, and to whomsoever wished to listen to
-him, that he could do all he liked at Tsarskoie Selo, he
-knew very well in his inmost heart that such was not
-the case, and that in the Imperial Palace Rasputin
-was nothing but Rasputin, an ignorant peasant, endowed
-sometimes with gifts of second sight and always
-with religious fervour, but a peasant all the
-same, with whom one might pray, but whom one
-would never dream of appointing to any responsible
-position.</p>
-
-<p>The knowledge that such was the case, and that his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">144</span>
-so-called influence existed mostly in the imagination
-of the people who spoke about it, worried Rasputin.
-Though he dictated to ministers his will, though he
-decided together with them more than one important
-matter, yet he felt that there was a flaw in the edifice
-of his fortune, and that this flaw consisted in the fact
-that the Sovereign did not share the feeling of reverence
-with which the Russian nation, as the “Prophet”
-flattered himself was the case, experienced for his person
-and for his teachings. This was what tormented
-him, and he spent the whole time thinking how it
-might become possible to put in the place of Mr.
-Goremykine another Prime Minister more ready to
-enter into his views, and to follow his advice in regard
-to matters of state. This the then President of Council,
-in spite of his deference for Rasputin, had refused
-to do, preferring to discuss the affairs of the Government
-alone with the Emperor, without any interference
-of the former.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin spoke of his wishes to some of his confidants,
-and even mentioned the subject to several of
-the high-born ladies who formed the great bulk of his
-“clientele.” These entered into his views with alacrity,
-the more so as he developed them in a pathetic
-tone, which appealed to their feelings of “patriotism.”
-They would have given much to be able to help him,
-but they did not very well know how this was to be
-done. This was due to the sad fact that there seemed
-to be no one available. The unexpected and sudden
-death of Count Witte, which had occurred in the
-meanwhile, removed the only person whom they could
-suggest as a candidate for the functions of Prime<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">145</span>
-Minister. All those whose names might have been
-mentioned as fit individuals for the post, such as Mr.
-Krivoscheine for instance, were people who would,
-with a greater energy even than Mr. Goremykine had
-ever displayed, oppose any interference of Rasputin
-into the conduct of the Government. Their perplexity
-might have lasted a long time if Providence, in
-the shape of Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, had not
-interfered in their favour, and had the latter not suggested
-the advisability of entering into negotiations
-with Mr. Sturmer.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">146</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_VII">CHAPTER VII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">Mr. Sturmer</span> was not a novice in politics and he
-was known to be a reactionary of the deepest dye.
-It is likely that even Rasputin’s friends would never
-have given a thought to the possibility of his becoming
-Prime Minister if Count Witte had still been in
-the land of the living. With the latter’s death the sort
-of coalition or secret society that had hoped through
-the occult influence of the “Prophet” to rise to power
-had lost its best head. There was no one to take his
-place, officially at least, because with the best will in
-the world it was impossible to suggest as a candidate
-for a ministerial portfolio Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff.
-The past record of this man did not permit him
-to play any rôle but that of the Père Joseph of a
-minister who was not a Richelieu. And though the
-secret position of principal adviser to a personage of
-the importance of Rasputin had its advantages, it
-nevertheless precluded the possibility of becoming a
-candidate for the place of a statesman.</p>
-
-<p>The next best thing, therefore, was to find some one
-who would be willing to become consciously what the
-“Prophet” was unconsciously, the instrument of the
-vile crew whose ambition was to make money by all
-means out of the terrible situation into which the
-country was plunged. These unscrupulous people all
-felt that they would never again in the whole course<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">147</span>
-of their life have another such opportunity of becoming
-rich beyond the dreams of avarice, and they were
-not the kind of people to allow it to escape them.
-Every effort was therefore put forward to bring Mr.
-Sturmer to the notice of the Emperor, and to the attention
-of all those capable of suggesting to the latter
-the choice of this functionary to replace Mr. Goremykine,
-who had openly declared that he could not any
-longer go on fighting against the subterranean forces
-which were slowly but surely working against him,
-and making his position more unbearable every day.
-The candidate who would have been the most welcome
-to public opinion was Mr. Krivoscheine, but he
-was the last man whom Rasputin’s friends would have
-cared to put forward.</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand, Mr. Sturmer, for personal reasons
-into which it is useless to enter here, when approached
-by Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, had not hesitated
-a single moment in promising to indorse the
-purposes of the small group of persons who had made
-up their minds to become the real rulers of the State.
-As soon as he had declared his willingness to join with
-them in the future an energetic campaign was started
-in his favour, not in the press nor in the Duma, nor
-even among the public, but in the immediate vicinity
-of the Sovereign, a campaign in which some of the
-highest authorities in the Greek Church were enrolled,
-and in which the Empress herself was persuaded by
-some of her personal friends to take part. The expected
-then occurred. The Czar was finally persuaded
-that in Mr. Sturmer he would find a faithful servant,
-which in a certain sense he did, and also a minister<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">148</span>
-determined to govern according to the old principles
-of autocracy with an utter disregard for the
-liberal parties, as well as for the Duma. The Duma
-had not spared the Government during the whole
-summer, and its activity had been viewed with dismay
-by certain members. Yet the country was glad to
-find that at last there existed among its representatives
-men courageous enough to say what they
-thought, and to try to save Russia from the abyss into
-which it was felt that she was falling through the influence
-not so much of Rasputin himself as of those
-who surrounded him and who used him for their own
-ends.</p>
-
-<p>This campaign succeeded and Mr. Sturmer was appointed.
-His selection caused an outcry of indignation
-throughout the whole country, and distressed its
-best friends for more than one reason. But even
-among the functionaries of the Ministry, which had
-to accept him as its chief, there were found some rebellious
-spirits, among whom was the then Minister
-of the Interior, Mr. Chvostoff, who made up their
-minds that it was at last high time to get rid of Rasputin
-in some manner or other. He was also a reactionary,
-like Mr. Sturmer, and even a furious one.
-When he was still a deputy in the Duma he had been
-one of the leaders of the faction of the right and before
-that time had made for himself the reputation
-of being an ultraconservative in all the different administrative
-posts which he had occupied. Among
-others, he had been Governor at Nijni Novgorod
-for a short period. He belonged to the number of
-persons who held the opinion that Rasputin ought to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">149</span>
-be removed. But whether he was really a party to
-the extraordinary story I am going to relate is a matter
-about which I shall abstain from expressing an
-opinion.</p>
-
-<p>The fact is that about the beginning of the year
-1916 people were startled by hearing of a new conspiracy
-against Rasputin, in which it was rumoured
-that the Minister of the Interior himself was a party.
-Things stood thus: A secret agent of the Russian
-police called Rgevsky, a man about as unscrupulous
-as Manassevitsch-Maniuloff but not so clever, who
-had already figured more than once in occasions when
-the need for a provocative agent had been felt, arrived
-in Christiania, in Norway, where the unfrocked
-monk Illiodore was living, and sought him out. His
-journey had been undertaken without the knowledge
-of the chief of the secret police, Mr. Bieletsky, but on
-the express orders of Mr. Chvostoff, the Minister of
-the Interior. Bieletsky, however, had suspected that
-some underhand game was going on, and had caused
-Rgevsky to be watched. When the latter had crossed
-the frontier at Torneo, he had been thoroughly
-searched and examined by special orders received from
-Petrograd, without, however, anything suspicious being
-found on him. When he was questioned as to the
-reasons for his journey abroad he had, in order to be
-allowed to proceed, to own that it was undertaken by
-command of the Minister of the Interior.</p>
-
-<p>On his return from abroad Rgevsky was at once
-arrested under the pretext of having blackmailed another
-police agent. Furious at what he considered to
-have been a breach of faith, he contrived to apprise<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">150</span>
-Rasputin of the position in which he found himself
-placed, and revealed to him that the object of his mission
-had been to see and speak with Illiodore to try
-to persuade the latter to organise a conspiracy with
-the help of the many followers he still had in Russia.
-The object of this plot was to be the murder of the
-“Prophet.” Illiodore had been considered ever since
-his quarrel with Rasputin one of the latter’s worst
-enemies, and it was felt that he would enter with alacrity
-into the plot which it was proposed to engineer.
-But to the stupefaction of the persons who had thus
-applied to him in the hope of finding in him the instrument
-which they required, Illiodore went over to
-the enemy. On the advice of Rgevsky he telegraphed
-to Rasputin, asking the latter to send some one whom
-he could trust to Norway, and telling him that he
-would deliver into the hands of that person the proofs
-of the plot that was being hatched against his, Rasputin’s,
-life.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Chvostoff, when taken to task for the affair,
-of course, denied it in its entirety. He declared that
-he had given quite different instructions to Rgevsky,
-and that he had sent the policeman to Norway to buy
-the memoirs of Illiodore, which he had heard the latter
-was about to publish abroad. But at the same time
-Chvostoff made no secret of his feelings of repugnance
-to Rasputin, and declared that he considered
-him a most dangerous and mischievous man, whose
-presence at Petrograd was exceedingly harmful for
-the prestige of the dynasty, as well as for the welfare
-of the State in the grave circumstances in which the
-country was finding itself placed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">151</span></p>
-
-<p>According to Mr. Chvostoff, Rasputin was surrounded
-with individuals of a most suspicious character,
-who spent their time in concocting any amount
-of shady affairs and transactions, and who had organised
-a regular plundering of the public exchequer.
-He did not dare to do anything directly against the
-“Prophet,” but he tried to get at him through the arrest
-of several of his adepts and friends. He caused
-the houses of a considerable number of these to be
-thoroughly searched for compromising documents.
-Among other places searched was the flat of a Mr.
-Dobrovolsky, who held the position of a school inspector.
-This search gave abundant evidence by
-which he might have been incriminated in more than
-one dirty transaction. But he was not immediately
-arrested and contrived to make his escape. Another
-of the Rasputin crew, a certain Simanovitsch, was arrested
-at the very moment when he returned to his
-home in the private automobile of Mr. Sturmer, one
-of whose familiar friends he happened to be.</p>
-
-<p>At the request of the “Prophet” an inquest into the
-denunciation of Rgevsky was ordered by Mr. Sturmer,
-and a certain Mr. Gourland, whose name had
-often been mentioned as that of a rising secret agent,
-was entrusted with it. But Manassevitsch-Maniuloff
-contrived to oust him and to get himself appointed in
-his place. At the same time it was decided to send
-some one to Norway to interview Illiodore, and to try
-thus to come to the bottom of the whole business. A
-certain General Spiridovitsch, who had already more
-than once been entrusted with missions of a delicate
-character which he had always accomplished to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">152</span>
-satisfaction of those who had employed him, was selected
-for the task. The General had several interviews
-with Mr. Chvostoff, but they all came to nothing,
-and he did not go abroad as it had been rumoured
-that he would do. At last both the Minster of the
-Interior and the chief of the secret police, Mr. Bieletsky,
-had to resign their functions, and Rasputin found
-himself delivered from two of his most dangerous
-enemies.</p>
-
-<p>The next question which arose was that of the appointment
-of Chvostoff’s successor. The post which
-he had vacated was such a difficult and responsible
-one that several persons who were sounded as to their
-readiness to accept it refused the offer in a most categorical
-manner. The story which I have just related
-died at last a natural death. Rgevsky disappeared, no
-one knew where, but the difficulties out of which it
-had arisen were still there. They could hardly be
-set aside by any minister, unless some radical measures
-were adopted, such as the exile of Rasputin, a
-thing which no one dared to propose, and which no
-one would have dared to enforce even if some one
-else had proposed it.</p>
-
-<p>After the resignation, or rather the dismissal, of
-Mr. Chvostoff, his post was finally offered, by the
-advice of Rasputin and at the suggestion of Manassevitsch-Maniuloff,
-to Mr. Protopopoff, a rich landowner
-of the Government of Simbirsk, who for some
-time had occupied the position of vice president of the
-Duma of the Empire.</p>
-
-<p>Just before his appointment to what is the most important
-and responsible function in the whole Russian<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">153</span>
-Empire, there was much talk of an interview
-which he had had at Stockholm with Mr. Warberg, a
-representative of the German Government, during
-which the conditions at which a separate peace might
-come to be concluded between Russia and the Central
-Empires had been discussed. Later on, when this
-meeting, which had been arranged through the good
-offices of a Jew, Mr. Maliniak, became the subject
-of general knowledge in Stockholm, and details
-concerning it had found their way into the Russian
-press, Mr. Protopopoff was violently attacked by the
-liberal parties in the Duma, which accused him of
-treason, and refused even to listen to the clumsy explanations
-which he attempted to give of the affair.</p>
-
-<p>It was then generally believed that the political career
-of this gentleman was at an end, and it was assumed
-that he would have to resign his vice presidency
-in the House. Certainly no one ever thought
-that he would suddenly develop into a minister. And
-yet, this is the very thing which happened, thanks to
-the Rasputin crew, which persuaded Mr. Sturmer to
-present Mr. Protopopoff to the Emperor as the best
-candidate for the place vacated by Mr. Chvostoff. In
-the meanwhile, Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, who had
-been the moving spirit in this whole intrigue, had been
-appointed private secretary to Mr. Sturmer, and at
-his instigation there began dissipation of public funds
-such as Russia had never seen before, and such as, let
-us hope, she will never see again.</p>
-
-<p>There are many more things than I could possibly
-relate in regard to the incidents of which I have given
-the outline here, but these could hardly be published<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">154</span>
-at present. The only thing which I can do is to try
-to make my readers understand the general position
-as it presented itself before the murder of Rasputin
-by quoting some speeches which were delivered in the
-Duma as far back as the year 1912. They were reproduced
-in the Russian Liberal organ, the Retsch,
-on the day following the assassination of the “Prophet.”
-The Russian censor offered no opposition to
-this republication.</p>
-
-<p>The first of these speeches was made by Mr. Goutschkoff,
-one of the most enlightened men in the whole
-of the Russian Empire, whose liberal opinions and
-sound political views had won for him the respect of
-all parties, even those who were opposed to them.
-The occasion upon which it was pronounced was that
-of the discussion of the budget of the Holy Synod, a
-discussion during which for the first time the personality
-of Rasputin, together with his activity, was publicly
-denounced as one of the greatest sources of danger
-that had ever threatened the country as well as
-the dynasty.</p>
-
-<p>“You all know,” said Mr. Goutschkoff in this memorable
-address, “what a terrible drama Russia is living
-through at present. With sorrow in our hearts
-and with terror in our souls we have followed its developments,
-and we are dreading its consequences.
-Standing in the very heart of this drama we see a
-mysterious, enigmatical, tragi-comical figure, who
-seems to have come out of the dark ages, which we believed
-had passed away forever, into the full light of
-the twentieth century. Perhaps this figure is that of
-a sectarian of the worst kind who is trying to popularise<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">155</span>
-amongst us his mystical rites; perhaps it is that
-of an adventurer seeking to hide under the cloak of
-religious fanaticism and superstition his numerous
-swindles. By what means has this individual succeeded
-in rising to such a prominent position and in
-acquiring such an influence which even the dignitaries
-of our church, together with the highest functionaries
-in our State, acknowledge and which they seek to
-propitiate?</p>
-
-<p>“If we had had to do with only this one figure
-which had made its way on the field of religious superstition
-and which has thriven, thanks to an exalted
-spirit of mysticism, a state of mind which, though not
-perhaps bordering on insanity, is yet not quite normal,
-then we should have said nothing. We might
-have regretted the fact; we might even have wept
-over it, but we would not have spoken about it.</p>
-
-<p>“But unfortunately this figure is not standing alone.
-Behind it there is a whole crew, strong and varied,
-unscrupulous and grasping, which is taking advantage
-of its position and of the talents of persuasion
-which it may possess. Amongst this crew there are
-to be found journalists in want of copy, shady business
-men, adventurers of every kind and sort. It is
-they who are the moving spirits in all this sad history,
-it is they who inspire it, they who tell it what it is to
-do. They constitute a kind of commercial enterprise,
-and they understand how to play their game in the
-most clever manner.</p>
-
-<p>“Before such a spectacle it is our duty to cry out
-as loud as we can that one ought to beware of all those
-people, and that the church—our church, and the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">156</span>
-country—our country, find themselves in imminent
-danger, because no revolution and no anti-Christian
-propaganda have ever done them more harm than the
-events which are daily taking place under our eyes for
-the last twelve months.”</p>
-
-<p>Two years later, in 1914, a few weeks before the
-breaking out of the present war, another deputy, this
-time a clergyman, Father Filonenko, spoke about
-Rasputin in the Duma, and did so in the following
-strong terms:</p>
-
-<p>“As a faithful and devoted son of our Holy Orthodox
-Church, I consider it my painful duty to mention
-once more what has already been discussed here, by so
-many orators better than myself, and to recur to a
-subject which is at present talked of at the corner of
-every street, in every town and in every village, no
-matter how distant and how far from any civilised
-centre in our vast Empire. We find ourselves compelled
-to look upon this unexplainable influence of a
-common adventurer, belonging to the worst type of
-those sectarians, whom until now we have known by
-the name of Khlystys, and despised accordingly. We
-are obliged to reckon with this influence of a man
-upon whom all the sane elements in our society look
-with contempt.”</p>
-
-<p>On that same day another deputy belonging to the
-group of Ultra-Conservatives, Prince Mansyreff, also
-spoke about Rasputin, with perhaps even more
-energy than any one had ever done before in the
-Duma. Said the Prince:</p>
-
-<p>“The adventure of Illiodore ended in ridicule, but
-we have now in his place another adventurer, with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">157</span>
-the personality of whom are connected the most nefarious
-and disgusting rumours, the most unnatural
-and contemptible crimes. It is useless to mention his
-name; every one knows who he is, and of whom I am
-talking. He has been let loose on our society to acquire
-some influence over it, by men even more shameless
-than he is himself; he has been used to terrorise
-all those who have dared to express their opinions
-against the currents which prevail at present in our
-administrative circles. This adventurer, whenever
-he travels and whenever he arrives in St. Petersburg,
-is met at the railway station by the highest dignitaries
-of the church; before him pray, as they would do
-to God, unfortunate hysterical ladies of the highest
-social circles. This individual, who only seeks the
-satisfaction of the lowest instinct of a low nature, has
-introduced himself into the very heart of our country
-and of our society, and we find and feel everywhere
-his disgusting and filthy influence.”</p>
-
-<p>A few days after this memorable sitting of the
-Duma the Government issued instructions to the press
-never to mention Rasputin’s name or to speak of any
-subject connected with him in the newspapers. As
-soon as this became known the Octobrists put down on
-the order of the day in the Duma an interpellation on
-the matter, and Mr. Goutschkoff in moving it exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Dark and dangerous days have arrived, and the
-conscience of the Russian nation has been deeply
-moved by the events of the last few months, and is
-protesting against the appearance amongst us of
-symptoms proving that we are returning to the darkest<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">158</span>
-periods of the middle ages. It has cried out that
-things are going wrong in our State, and that danger
-threatens our most holy national ideals.”</p>
-
-<p>Prince Lvoff seconded the motion, and asked the
-Government to explain who was this “strange personality
-who had been taken under the special protection
-of the administration, who was considered as
-too sacred to be subjected to the criticism of the press,
-and who had been put upon such a pedestal that no
-one was allowed to touch or even to approach him.”</p>
-
-<p>I would not have quoted these speeches but for the
-fact that they all bore on the same point, the one that
-I have tried to make clear to the mind of my readers.
-This point is that the danger which Rasputin undoubtedly
-personified in Russian society at large did
-not proceed from his own personality, but from the
-character of the men who surrounded him, who had
-made out of him their tool and who were trying
-through him to rule Russia and to push it into the
-arms of Germany. There is no doubt that Germany
-had been carefully following all the phases of the
-drama which culminated in the assassination of the
-“Prophet” and had been helping by her subsidies the
-underhand and mysterious work of men like Mr.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff and his satellites, and like
-Mr. Sturmer. Sturmer believed quite earnestly that
-he would secure immortality for his name and for his
-work if he contrived to conclude a peace which every
-one knew that Russia required, but which no one except
-himself and the adventurers to whom he owed
-his elevation thought of making except in concert
-with Russia’s Allies, and only after Germany<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">159</span>
-had been compelled to accept the conditions of her
-adversaries.</p>
-
-<p>The whole Rasputin affair was nothing but a German
-intrigue which aimed at discrediting the dynasty
-and perhaps even at overthrowing the sovereign from
-his throne.</p>
-
-<p>Thanks to the infernal cunning of the people who
-were its leaders, the Imperial circle and even some of
-the Imperial family were represented as being entirely
-under the “Prophet’s” influence. And thanks to
-the solitary existence which the Emperor and Empress
-were leading, and to the small number of people
-who were allowed to see them, these rumours gained
-ground, for the simple reason that there existed no
-one capable of contradicting them or of pointing out
-their absurdity. Calumnies as stupid as they were degrading
-to the authors of them were set in circulation,
-and the revolutionary movement which Germany had
-been fomenting grew stronger and stronger every
-day, until it reached the lower classes. These classes
-by a kind of miracle were also kept very well informed
-as to everything that was connected with Rasputin or
-with the subterranean work performed by his party,
-a work which tended to only make the House of Romanoff
-unpopular, and to represent it as incapable
-of taking to heart the interest of the country over
-which it reigned.</p>
-
-<p>If we consider who were the people at the side of
-the “Prophet,” and who inspired all his actions as
-well as his utterances we find police agents, adventurers
-who had been sometimes in prison, and sometimes
-in exile; functionaries eager to obtain some fat<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">160</span>
-sinecure in which they might do nothing and earn a
-great deal; stock exchange speculators of doubtful
-morality and still more doubtful honesty; women of
-low character and army purveyors, mixed up with an
-innumerable number of spies. Most of these last
-were in the German service and were working for all
-that they were worth to bring about some palace conspiracy
-or some popular movement capable of removing
-from his throne a Czar whose honesty and
-straightforwardness of character precluded the possibility
-of Russia betraying the trust which her Allies
-had put in her.</p>
-
-<p>Yet this was precisely what these people wanted,
-and what they had made up their minds to force
-through, thanks to the indignation which the various
-stories which were being repeated every day concerning
-Rasputin and the favour which he enjoyed was
-arousing all over Russia. The Emperor, of course,
-knew nothing of all this; the Empress even less.
-There was no one to tell them the truth, and they
-would have been more surprised than any one else
-had they suspected the ocean of lies which had been
-told concerning themselves, and concerning the kindness
-with which they had treated a man whom they
-considered as being half saint and half mad, but of
-whom they had never thought in their wildest dreams
-of making their chief adviser.</p>
-
-<p>In this extraordinary history there is also another
-point which must be noticed. When the first deceptions
-produced by the disasters of the beginning of
-the campaign had thrown public opinion into a state
-of mind which was bordering well nigh upon despair,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">161</span>
-and before it had had time to recover from the shock
-of the fall of Warsaw and the line of fortresses upon
-which they had relied to protect the western frontier,
-people had begun to seek for the cause of the great
-disillusion they had been called upon to experience.
-It was very quickly discovered, partly through
-the revelations that had been made in the Duma,
-that the real reason for all the sad things which
-had happened lay in the systematic plundering of
-the public exchequer, that had been going on for
-such a long time and which even the experiences of
-the Japanese war had not cured. When the fierce
-battle against Germany began in grim earnest, the
-first thought of the Emperor had been to try to put
-an end to these depredations that had compromised
-the prestige and the good name of Russia abroad as
-well as at home. Great severity was shown to the
-many adventurers who had enriched themselves at
-the expense of the nation. When it had come to the
-fabrication of the necessary ammunition required by
-the army, then the help of Russia’s Allies—England
-and France—had been sought. Thanks to the efforts
-of these two Powers, something like order was
-re-established in the vast machine of the War Office.</p>
-
-<p>The fabrication of shells of a size that could not fit
-any gun was stopped. The army at the front got
-clothes and food of which it had been in want at the
-beginning of the campaign. Ammunition was despatched
-where it was required, and not in the contrary
-direction as often had been the case before. The
-Allies helped Russia to the best of their ability, and
-Russia, at least the sane and honest part of Russian<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">162</span>
-society, felt grateful to them for their co-operation in
-the work of their common defence against a foe which
-it had become necessary to defeat so thoroughly that
-civilisation could no longer be endangered by its existence
-and activity.</p>
-
-<p>But the people who surrounded Rasputin and with
-whom he was working were not grateful for the labour
-of love which Great Britain and France had
-assumed. They began to complain of the so-called
-interference of foreign elements with the details of
-the Russian administration. Some went even so far
-as to say that Russia was becoming an English colony.
-All the plunderers, all the thieves who had had their
-own way for so many months, perceiving that they
-would no longer have the opportunities which they
-had enjoyed before to add to their ill-gotten gains,
-tried by all means in their power to discredit the Sovereign
-whose firmness they had found in their way.
-They joined all the pro-Germans of whom, alas, there
-existed but too many in the country, in an effort to
-bring about a peace, the shame of which would have
-been quite indifferent to them.</p>
-
-<p>It is not at all wonderful if those shameless adventurers
-started the conspiracy for the success of
-which they required the moral influence of Rasputin
-and the authority of his person. It was, after all,
-such an easy matter to say that in such and such a
-case he had been acting in conformity with the Imperial
-will. No one could disprove the truth of the
-assertion, and in that way the Emperor was made
-responsible for all the unavowable things which were
-going on. He was supposed to have given his sanction<span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">163</span>
-to all these things simply because it had pleased,
-not even Rasputin himself, but individuals like Mr.
-Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, to declare that they had
-been done with his knowledge and approval.</p>
-
-<p>Can one feel surprised if in the presence of this
-artificial atmosphere, and still more artificial position,
-an intense feeling of disgust took hold of real
-patriots, and made them contemplate seriously the
-possibility of trying at least to unmask Rasputin and
-his crew and bring to the ears of the Czar all the different
-rumours which were in circulation concerning
-the “Prophet” and what was going on around him?
-Men of experience and of weight seriously thought
-how this could be done. They made no secret of the
-fact, unfortunately for themselves as well as for the
-success of their plans. What was going on very
-soon came to the knowledge of Manassevitsch-Maniuloff
-and made him more frantic than he had ever been
-to overthrow what he called “foreign influences” in
-Russia. He applied himself with renewed energy to
-bring about, by fair means or foul, the conclusion of
-a peace on which depended his whole future destiny.
-And he might perhaps have succeeded if circumstances
-had not turned against him and put an end
-to his machinations, at least for a time.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Sturmer was but a tool in the hands of this
-artful, clever private secretary whom he had been
-persuaded, or rather compelled, to take. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff
-had managed to get hold of him and
-to keep him securely bound to his own policy. He
-was the man who had contrived to put him into
-the position of authority which he enjoyed, and Mr.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">164</span>
-Sturmer, whatever may have been his other defects,
-had a grateful nature. Besides, Maniuloff amused
-him, and took an immense amount of trouble off his
-hands. He could rely on his never doing anything
-stupid, even when he did something very dishonest.
-Mr. Sturmer was absorbed in great political combinations
-and was looking toward a long term of office.
-He felt absolutely safe in the situation which he occupied,
-where at any moment he liked he could speak
-with the Czar and explain to him what he thought to
-be most advantageous to the interests of his party, or
-the events of the day as they followed in quick succession.</p>
-
-<p>Alas for this security! An unexpected incident
-was to destroy it in the most ruthless manner. Rasputin,
-together with Mr. Maniuloff, went too far in
-the system of blackmailing which they had been practising
-with such skill for so many long months. For
-once they found their master in the person of one of
-the directors of a large banking establishment in
-Petrograd, who, upon being threatened with all kinds
-of unpleasantness unless he consented to pay a large
-sum of money, did not protest as others had done before
-him in similar cases, but gave it immediately,
-first having taken the numbers of the banknotes which
-he had handed over to Mr. Maniuloff. He went with
-these numbers to the military authorities and lodged
-with them a formal complaint against the blackmailers.
-The result was as immediate as it was unexpected.
-The General Staff had been waiting a long
-time for just such an opportunity to proceed against
-Rasputin and the members of his crew. That very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">165</span>
-same night, in obedience to orders received from the
-military commander of Petrograd, Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff’s
-house was searched from top to
-bottom, and he himself conveyed to prison, without
-even having been allowed to acquaint his chief, Mr.
-Sturmer, with what had happened to him.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">166</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_VIII">CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">The</span> arrest of the Prime Minister’s private secretary
-produced, as may well be imagined, an immense
-sensation in Petrograd and intense consternation
-among the friends of Rasputin. They were thus deprived
-of the one strong ally capable of guiding their
-steps in the best direction possible under the circumstances,
-and, moreover, of the one who was possessed
-of information which no one else could possibly get at.
-Mr. Sturmer himself was more than dismayed at this
-step taken by the military authorities without consulting
-him and resented it as a personal affront. He
-tried to interfere in the matter and went so far as to
-demand as his right the liberation of Manassevitsch-Maniuloff.
-But his intervention, instead of helping
-the person in whose favour it had been displayed, gave
-on the contrary the signal for a series of attacks
-against Mr. Sturmer himself, attacks of which the
-most important was the speech made by Mr. Miliukoff
-in the Duma, where he publicly accused the
-Prime Minister of being in league with Germany and
-of working in favour of a separate peace with that
-country.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, the remarks of the leader of the opposition
-in the Chamber were not allowed to be published,
-but so many persons had heard them and so many
-others had heard of them that the contents of the address<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">167</span>
-of Mr. Miliukoff very soon became public property.
-No one had ever cared for Mr. Sturmer, whose
-leanings had always been for autocracy. While Governor
-of Tver he had distinguished himself by the zeal
-which he displayed in putting down every manifestation
-of public opinion in his government. In addition
-he had been connected with various matters where
-bribery played a prominent part, a fact which had
-not helped him to win any popularity in the province
-which he had administered. His only merits lay in
-his ability to speak excellent French and in his having
-very pronounced English sympathies. These
-sympathies, however, by some kind of unexplainable
-miracle, died out immediately after his assumption of
-office. He at once fell under the influence of a certain
-party that clamoured for the removal of foreigners
-from the administrative and political life of Russia.
-He was not clever, though he had a very high
-idea of his own intelligence and knowledge.</p>
-
-<p>Though he had never carried his knowledge beyond
-a thorough grasp of the precedence that ought
-to be awarded to distinguished guests at a dinner
-party (which he had acquired while he was master
-of the ceremonies at the Imperial Court), yet he was
-convinced of his capacity to fill the most important
-offices of the Russian State. These he looked upon
-with the eyes of a farmer in the presence of his best
-milking cow. He was not a courtier, but a flatterer by
-nature, and an essentially accommodating one, too.
-There was no danger of his ever turning his back on
-persons who he had reasons to think were in possession
-of the favour of personages in high places. And<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">168</span>
-he had a wonderful faculty for toadying wherever he
-expected that it might prove useful to his career.</p>
-
-<p>For some years he had vegetated in a kind of semi-disgrace
-and fretted over his inactivity. When he
-found himself able once more to make a display of
-his administrative talents he took himself and these
-talents quite seriously and imagined that perhaps he
-could become the saviour of Russia, but surely a very
-rich man. This last idea had been suggested to him
-by Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, who in conversations
-with him had imbued Mr. Sturmer with the conviction
-that it would be a proof of careless neglect on
-his part if he did not make the most of the many opportunities
-his important position as Prime Minister
-put in his way, and did not assure the prosperity of
-his old age, when he had at his disposal all possible
-sources of information out of which he might make
-a profit. Mr. Sturmer was no saint, and the weaknesses
-of the flesh had always appealed to him. There
-is nothing wonderful in the fact that he listened with
-attention, and even with satisfaction, to the confidences
-which were poured into his ear by his private
-secretary, of whose talents he had a most exalted
-opinion.</p>
-
-<p>When his Fides Achates was arrested and thrown
-into a more or less dark dungeon, Mr. Sturmer was so
-dismayed that he allowed himself to be drawn into
-the mistake of identifying himself with the prisoner
-and claiming his liberty as a right. It is related that
-when the object of his solicitude heard of the various
-steps undertaken by the Prime Minister on his behalf
-he gave vent to words of impatience at what he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">169</span>
-considered an imprudence likely to cost a good deal to
-the guilty ones.</p>
-
-<p>“Sturmer ought to have known that a man like
-myself does not allow himself to be arrested without
-having taken the precaution to be able to impose on
-those who had ventured to do so the necessity of liberating
-him,” he had exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>The fact was that Manassevitsch-Maniuloff had
-put to profit the months when, in his capacity as private
-secretary to the Prime Minister, he had access to
-all the archives and secret papers of the Ministry of
-the Interior. He had taken copies of more than one
-important document, the divulging of which might
-have put the Russian Government in an embarrassing
-position. Some persons even said that his zeal had
-carried him so far as to make him appropriate to himself
-the originals of these documents, leaving only a
-worthless copy in their place. True or not, it is certain
-that the spirit of foresight that had always distinguished
-him had induced him to take certain precautions
-against any possible mishap capable of interfering
-with his career. He was able to regard his
-imprisonment philosophically. This was more than
-Mr. Sturmer could do. The latter had reason to
-fear that during the police search of the flat occupied
-by Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff some compromising
-letters had been discovered. This fear did not
-add to his happiness or to his equanimity. Besides,
-he was not strong enough to resist the attacks which,
-dating from that day, were poured upon his head. In
-spite of the assurances which Rasputin was continually<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">170</span>
-giving him that he had nothing to fear, he did not
-share the confidence of the “Prophet.”</p>
-
-<p>He had good reasons for this fear. In the Duma,
-in the Petrograd drawing rooms, in the army and
-among the public, all had grown tired of Mr. Sturmer,
-and all spoke of nothing else but of the necessity
-of compelling him to resign his post. Among the
-different reproaches which were addressed to him was
-that of being an enemy of England and of trying to
-work against the Russo-English alliance. It was
-very well known that his relations with Sir George
-Buchanan, the British Ambassador, were not cordial.
-Sir George, in spite of all that the pro-Germans liked
-to say about him, was a popular personage in Russia,
-that is, among the sane portion of Russian society,
-which had hailed with joy the initiative that he had
-taken in the great work of reorganisation of the Russian
-administration.</p>
-
-<p>Thanks to the English officers who had arrived in
-Russia with the aim of bringing some kind of order
-out of the chaos that had prevailed not only in the
-War Office, but in every other branch of the Government,
-the military position of the Empire had considerably
-improved, and the great work of national
-defence had been at last put upon a sound basis. As
-a man occupying a very important position in Petrograd
-wrote to me during the course of last summer:
-“There are some people here who say that Russia is
-fast becoming an English colony, but I reply to them
-that she might certainly do worse, if by that word is
-meant the introduction of the English spirit of order
-and of English honesty in our country.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">171</span></p>
-
-<p>This was the opinion of a sincere Russian patriot.
-There is no doubt that it was shared by all the best
-elements of the nation, who had recognised that in
-the crisis through which their Fatherland was going
-only one idea ought to dominate everything, and that
-was the necessity of imposing upon Germany a peace
-that would at last give to the world the assurance that
-it would never be called upon again to undergo another
-such catastrophe as the one under which it was
-struggling. Mr. Sturmer, however, was of a quite
-different opinion. This was well known everywhere,
-especially in parliamentary circles. Mr. Miliukoff
-made himself the echo of the popular voice when he
-delivered his famous indictment of the Prime Minister.
-The latter retorted by issuing against the leader
-of the Opposition a writ for libel, and applied himself
-with renewed energy to the task of getting out
-of prison the man who had been the prime mover in
-the dark and sinister intrigue of which Rasputin was
-the principal figure. At last he succeeded, and Manassevitsch-Maniuloff
-was released on bail. Among all
-the papers which had been confiscated at his home
-not one incriminating document had been found, and
-the only thing against him that could be proved was
-the blackmailing scheme against the Bank whose director
-had had him arrested. He threatened, in case
-he should be brought to trial, to make certain revelations
-absolutely damaging for more than one highly
-placed personage, and he contrived to inspire a great
-terror even among those most eager to have him condemned
-for his numerous extortions and other shameful
-deeds. As soon as he was at liberty he set Rasputin<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">172</span>
-to working in his favour, and made the latter
-display an activity that at last exasperated the public
-against the “Prophet” to such an extent that the first
-thought of organising a conspiracy to remove him was
-started, and very soon became quite a familiar one
-with more than one person.</p>
-
-<p>To be quite exact, this thought had already existed
-for some time. About a year after the beginning
-of the war some enterprising individuals in Petrograd
-tried to get rid of the “Prophet” by entangling
-him in some disgraceful escapade which would
-have made it necessary for him to leave Petrograd.
-In accordance with this plan he was invited one night
-to supper at some fashionable music hall, of which
-there exist so many in the Russian capital. Bohemian
-singers were called in and an unlimited amount of
-champagne provided. Rasputin, who was rather fond
-of such adventures when he was not obliged to pay
-for their cost in rubles and copecs, accepted with
-alacrity. He soon became quite drunk. Then, at
-the invitation of one of the guests, he proceeded to
-show them the manner in which the Khlistys, the
-religious sect to which he belonged, danced around the
-lighted fire, which was an indispensable feature of
-their meetings. As he was dancing, or rather turning
-round and round a table that had been put in the middle
-of the room, he took off some of his clothes, just
-as his followers used to do when they were holding
-one of their assemblies in real earnest. Some of the
-assistants seized hold of the opportunity and hid the
-garments of which he had divested himself, then called
-in the police, requiring them to draw up a report of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">173</span>
-what had taken place. On the next day this report
-was taken to a high authority, in the hope that it
-would have a damaging effect on the reputation of
-Rasputin. The result, however, was quite different
-from that which had been expected, for the person
-who had brought the report to the authority in question
-instead of being believed was treated as a libeler
-and himself compelled to retire from public life. After
-this it was generally recognised that nothing in
-the world would be strong enough to bring about
-the downfall of the “Prophet.”</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile the efforts of the Opposition party
-in the Duma had succeeded to the extent of forcing
-Mr. Sturmer to resign as Prime Minister; but he had
-influence enough to secure his appointment as High
-Chancellor of the Imperial Court, one of the most important
-positions in Russia. He did not fall into
-disgrace, but remained the power behind the throne
-whose existence, though not officially recognised, yet
-was everywhere acknowledged. He had not been
-dismissed, he had simply gone away—a very different
-thing altogether in the realm of the Czar. Though
-no longer a Minister, he was still a personage to be
-considered as capable of an infinitude of good or of
-harm, according as it might please him to exert his
-influence. His successor, Mr. Trepoff, an upright
-and fairly able man, did not long retain the office he
-had accepted much against his will. With him departed
-one of the most popular Ministers Russia had
-known for a long time, Count Paul Ignatieff, the able
-son of an able father. He had for something like
-two years held the portfolio of Public Instruction to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">174</span>
-the general satisfaction of the public and had come
-to the conclusion that it was useless to go on fighting
-against dark powers which were getting the upper
-hand everywhere.</p>
-
-<p>The resignation of these two statesmen was preceded
-by one of the most scandalous incidents in Russian
-modern history, the trial of Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff.
-This had been put off from day to day
-for a considerable length of time until at last it became
-impossible to secure further delay. The culprit
-had taken good care, as I have already indicated, to
-put in safety documents of a most incriminating nature,
-implicating many persons whom the authorities
-could not afford to see mixed up in the dirty business
-connected with the numerous sins of Mr. Sturmer’s
-private secretary. When the latter was questioned by
-the examining magistrate in regard to that last transaction
-which had brought him into court, he declared
-that he had acted in accordance with the instructions
-which he had received from his chief and that it was
-not he himself, but the Prime Minister who had received
-the money which the bank that had lodged a
-complaint against him had been induced to pay in order
-to be spared certain annoyances with which it had
-been threatened. He had insisted upon this version
-of the affair and warned the magistrate that his counsel
-would develop it in all the details before the jury.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile Rasputin was moving heaven and
-earth to get the trial postponed and to get the charges
-against the prisoner quashed by the Chamber of Cassation.
-He had long conferences with several ladies
-having free entrance into the Imperial Palace and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">175</span>
-put forward, among other arguments, the one which
-had certain points in its favour: that it would be
-detrimental to the public interest to have the scandal
-of such a trial commented upon by the press of
-the whole of Europe at a time when Russia was
-struggling against a formidable foe, always ready to
-catch hold of anything that would discredit it or its
-institutions. For a time it seemed as if the efforts
-of the “Prophet” would be crowned with success.
-Then one fine day opposite currents became powerful
-and Mr. Maniuloff was sent before a jury in spite of
-his protestations and his threats of revenge upon those
-who had taken upon themselves the responsibility of
-subjecting him to that annoyance.</p>
-
-<p>On the fifteenth of December, the day appointed
-for the trial, the halls and corridors of the law courts
-of Petrograd were filled with an inquisitive crowd
-struggling to get access to the room where it was to
-take place. The spectators waited a long time, watching
-curiously the impassive face of the hero of the day,
-who had quietly entered the hall and taken his place
-in the criminal dock. About 12 o’clock the Judges,
-together with the public prosecutor, made their entrance,
-when to the general surprise the latter rose
-and said that, owing to the absence of several important
-witnesses for the prosecution, he moved an adjournment
-of the proceedings until an indefinite time.
-What had happened, what had brought about such
-an extraordinary change? This was the question
-which one could hear everywhere after the Court had
-risen and the assembly dispersed. Comments without<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">176</span>
-number followed upon this decision, which no one
-would have thought possible a few hours before.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the severe censorship over the press, the
-principal Liberal organs of the capital published short
-commentaries which revealed the feeling of intense
-indignation that prevailed in every class of society.
-The words “Shame, shame!” were heard on all sides.
-It is not at all wonderful that they found an echo
-among some determined spirits who resolved at last
-to free Russia from the scourge of Rasputin, whose
-hand was again seen in the whole disgraceful affair.</p>
-
-<p>This, however, was not at all an easy matter, considering
-the fact that the “Prophet” had become very
-careful and that his followers had him watched wherever
-he went for fear of an attack which they strongly
-suspected was being contemplated. The house where
-he lived, 64 Gorokhovaja Street, was always surrounded
-by policemen and secret agents, who examined
-every person who entered or went out of it. Rasputin
-himself had also grown suspicious, even of
-persons with whom up to that time he had been upon
-friendly terms, and he avoided the numerous invitations
-that began once more to be showered upon him.
-He spoke again of returning to Siberia, which was
-always with him a sign that he did not feel himself at
-ease in the capital.</p>
-
-<p>I had an opportunity to observe this restlessness
-the second time that I met him at the house of that
-Mr. De Bock whom I have already mentioned, when
-he declared to us that he was sick of Petrograd and of
-the many intrigues which were going on there. But
-that was before the war, and it seems that after it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">177</span>
-began the ideas of Rasputin changed and that he
-was always saying that he considered it his duty to
-remain beside his friends at this hour of national peril.
-The fact that his feelings had changed on the last point
-proves that he was aware of the danger in which he
-stood, and of which it is likely that he had been warned
-by the numerous spies who were but too ready to keep
-him well informed of all that was to his interest to
-know.</p>
-
-<p>One thing seems certain, and that is the activity
-which he began to display during the last weeks and
-days of his evil life in favour of the conclusion of a
-peace, which he now said Russia ought to make if she
-wished to escape from further sin, as he termed it.</p>
-
-<p>Why his feelings had undergone such a change it
-is impossible to say, but one may make a pretty near
-guess. One of the principal motives which actuated
-him undoubtedly was the idea that existed among a
-certain circle of persons that if peace were made with
-Germany, the English and French officials working
-with Russian officials in perfecting the defence of the
-fatherland, and whose presence already had prevented
-so many malversations, would depart. This
-would leave once more a free field for the rapacity
-of all the civil and military functionaries of the War
-Office and Commissariat Departments, who could
-make a new harvest of rubles as a result of the unavoidable
-expenses which the liquidation of the war
-would necessarily entail.</p>
-
-<p>There were, however, some persons who, seeing the
-dangers in the path in which this nefarious individual
-was leading Russia, decided that, as nothing else could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">178</span>
-bring about his removal, it had to be effected by violent
-means. I do not seek to excuse them, far less
-to take their part. Murder remains murder, but if
-ever an assassination had an excuse, this was the slaying
-of Rasputin, which also implied the destruction
-of the crew of unscrupulous people of which he was
-the tool. There was something of self-sacrifice in the
-conspiracy to which he fell a victim, something of an
-intense love of the Fatherland in the spirit that armed
-the hand of the man whose pistol sent him into eternity.
-One may condemn the deed and yet excuse its
-motive. Though I am not trying to do so, yet I shall
-not be the one to cry out for vengeance against the
-over-excited young people who risked everything in
-the world to deliver their country from evil.</p>
-
-<p>Of the details of the murder we know very little,
-and even the travellers who have gone abroad since
-it was committed could only speak vaguely about the
-circumstances that attended it. It is certain, however,
-that there was a deeply laid and well organised
-plot to kill the “Prophet,” that about a dozen persons,
-some of them belonging to the best and to the highest
-social circles, were concerned in it, and that at last
-lots were drawn to select the man who was to execute
-the victim. Among those persons were members of
-the Conservative faction of the Duma, some officers
-of several guard regiments, and even ladies of the
-smartest set of Petrograd. That something was
-known concerning this plot in governmental circles
-can be seen from the fact that the Minister of the Interior,
-Mr. Protopopoff, who had always been one of
-the most ardent disciples of Rasputin and who had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">179</span>
-been working with him for the conclusion of a peace
-which both considered to be useful to their personal
-interests, hearing that he was going to have supper
-at the house of Prince Youssoupoff, sent there the
-Prefect of Petrograd, General Balk, with instructions
-to watch over the “Prophet.” When the Prefect appeared
-upon the scene, he was politely asked by the
-master of the house to withdraw, as his presence was
-not required.</p>
-
-<p>Young Prince Youssoupoff, who, by the way, is
-well known in London, was the husband of the Princess
-Irene of Russia, the first cousin of the Czar. By
-virtue of his position he could be whatever he liked,
-even to dismiss curtly the principal police official of
-the capital. At the supper which he gave on the night
-when Rasputin was killed about a dozen people belonging
-to the best circle of Petrograd society were
-present. What passed during the meal and how the
-murder itself was committed is not known even now,
-though several versions of the crime are given. Some
-say that it was done during the meal, and that the
-pretext for it was the conduct of Rasputin toward one
-of the ladies present at the table. Other people relate
-that they waited until the “Prophet” was on the point
-of departing, and that as he was putting on his overcoat
-the young man who had drawn the lot designating
-him for the deed shot him with his revolver at the
-foot of the stairs. The body was then wrapped up in
-a blanket and put into the automobile of a very high
-personage, which was waiting in the garden of the
-house where the event took place, and driven to the
-Neva, where it was dropped under the ice. It seems<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">180</span>
-that after this had been accomplished one of the conspirators
-went to Tsarskoie Selo and informed the
-Czar of what had taken place, as well as of his own
-share in the deed.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile the authorities had become suspicious.
-At 3 o’clock in the night screams had been
-heard by a policeman on duty at the corner of the
-street in which was situated the house of Prince Youssoupoff.
-He also noticed several persons coming out
-of the house, not by the usual entrance, but by the
-garden, which had a door leading into another street.
-After this, an automobile was seen driving out of that
-same garden, an altogether strange circumstance.
-This automobile was seen by another policeman about
-one hour later in the islands which surround Petrograd,
-driving close to the Neva and not on the usual
-road. The next day the garden of Prince Youssoupoff
-was searched by Secret Service agents, who found
-some traces of blood on the snow, but the servants
-of the Prince declared that it was that of a dog that
-had been shot the day before. No one dared say or
-do anything more against the supposed murderers,
-especially as the body of their victim had not yet been
-found. The river was dragged, but it was not until
-twenty-four hours after the event that the dead man
-was discovered under the ice in a frozen condition,
-with the features so completely battered that they
-could be recognised only with difficulty.</p>
-
-<p>The curious thing is that, though it was known
-exactly where the body had been dropped, it could
-not be found at once, having been carried away by the
-current further than had been expected. This gave<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">181</span>
-rise to all kind of rumours, and the friends of Rasputin
-tried to spread the news that he had escaped
-and was hiding away somewhere from his persecutors.
-The tale, however, could not be kept up for any
-length of time, as the whole capital with an unheard-of
-rapidity became aware that the most detested man
-in the whole of Russia had at last met with the fate
-which he so richly deserved. The joy of the public
-could not be suppressed, notwithstanding the fear of
-the police. In all the theatres and public places the
-national anthem was sung with an immense enthusiasm.
-No one regretted what had happened, and the
-people suspected of having had a hand in the murder
-received messages of congratulation from every quarter.
-In fact, they became at once national heroes.
-The murder so far has remained unpunished, and it
-is more than likely that no one will be brought to account
-for it.</p>
-
-<p>As for the body of Rasputin, it was at first kept in
-the hospital where it had been taken after its recovery
-from under the ice. The police received orders not to
-allow it to be seen by the crowds, which it was feared
-would flock in numbers to have a last look at their
-“saint,” the “Blessed Gregory,” as he was called. But
-to the general surprise these crowds did not manifest
-any curiosity to view the mortal remains of the man
-about whom so much fuss had been made in his lifetime,
-but after whose death the whole Russian world
-seemed to breathe more freely than it had been able to
-do for the last ten years or so. Among the clergy satisfaction
-was openly expressed, and it was only a few
-hysterical women who were found to weep over the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">182</span>
-end of the career of one of the wickedest men who
-had ever lived.</p>
-
-<p>The question most discussed in connection with the
-death of this sinister adventurer was whether he was
-to be allowed a Christian burial. He had been, after
-all, but a sectarian, a heretic, the follower of a creed
-which was not only reproved by the orthodox church,
-but also prosecuted by the law of the land. The synod
-was called upon to pronounce itself on the subject
-when the advice of the Metropolitan Pitirim of
-Petrograd, one of the personal friends of Rasputin,
-at last prevailed, and he was buried with the rites of
-Holy Church. Some of the ladies who had been the
-first cause of his having obtained the importance
-which grew to be attached to his strange figure did
-not wait, however, for the permission of the ecclesiastical
-authorities, and a few hours after the body had
-been discovered Madame W., one of the most hysterical
-among the many women followers of Rasputin,
-caused solemn prayers to be celebrated in her
-apartments for the repose of his soul. She went to
-fetch his two daughters, girls of sixteen and fourteen
-years of age, who were living with him at Petrograd,
-taking them to her house and declaring that she would
-henceforward consider and treat them as her own
-children.</p>
-
-<p>But apart from this small group of blind admirers
-no one regretted him, not even the crew of parasites
-that had surrounded him and exploited him. By one
-of those strange anomalies, such as can only take place
-in Russia, Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, who had
-been the indirect cause of his death, was appointed,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">183</span>
-together with other secret police agents, to investigate
-the details connected with the murder of his former
-friend and patron. Of course, the inquest led to nothing.
-No one had any wish to see it end otherwise than
-in oblivion. Every political party in Russia was
-agreed in thinking that with the disappearance of this
-dangerous man the dynasty had won a battle just as
-important for the safety of its future existence as
-would have been a victory on the battlefield against
-a foreign foe. The names of the murderers, though
-pronounced nowhere, were blessed by all sincere Russian
-patriots, who cried out when they heard that
-Rasputin was no more, “Thank God that this adventurer
-is dead and long live the Czar!”</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">184</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I_IX">CHAPTER IX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">Rasputin,</span> taken individually, did not deserve any
-notice. He was never in possession of the influence
-which was attributed to him, and his voice was never
-preponderant in the councils of the Czar. It served
-the interests of those whose tool he had become to
-spread the notion that he had acquired it, and that,
-thanks to the religious enthusiasm which he had
-contrived to arouse among a certain small circle of
-influential men and women, he had installed himself
-in the confidence of his Sovereign. Unfortunately
-for Russia, these people not only had accomplices
-in their evil deeds, but also had the means to
-spread their opinions among the public and the ability
-to make these opinions penetrate into all the different
-classes of the nation. They discredited the Imperial
-family; they discredited the Government of
-the day; they discredited the monarch, until it became
-at last a political, and I shall even say a national,
-necessity to suppress them, together with the
-adventurer whom they had put forward and thanks
-to whom they had been able to play unmolested for
-so many years the most nefarious of games.</p>
-
-<p>Unfortunately, the slaying of Rasputin did not destroy
-the persons who had used him. It did not put
-an end to the many abuses which had brought Russia
-to the sad state of chaos in which it found itself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">185</span>
-at the moment of its great trial. The man himself
-was but an ensign, and the loss of an ensign does not
-mean that the regiment that carried it about has
-shared its fate.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin was the last representative of the old
-régime. His appearance on the horizon of Russian
-social life was but the last flicker of a detestable past.
-During his time of favour and of success the two
-forces that struggled for supremacy in the land of
-his birth fought their last battle, in which he was the
-stake. We must rejoice that it was not the force which
-he was supposed to incarnate in his enigmatical and
-mysterious person that remained master of the field.
-Whether he would have been killed under different
-circumstances is a question to which it would be very
-difficult to find a reply. Most probably the spirit
-of mysticism which lies at the bottom of the Slav
-character would have prevented even his worst enemies,
-let alone his simple adversaries, from trying to
-remove him from the position into which he had been
-thrust. They would most likely have shrugged their
-shoulder and waited for that intervention of St. Nicolas,
-who, according to Russian traditions, always arrives
-at the right moment, to put straight everything
-that has gone wrong.</p>
-
-<p>The peril in which Russia found herself placed
-gave energy even to those to whom that quality had
-hitherto been unknown, and it was felt everywhere
-that, together with the Fatherland, the Czar ought to
-be saved from a danger of which, perhaps, he did not
-himself realise the real importance. Rasputin, and
-especially Rasputin’s followers, had worked as hard<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">186</span>
-as they could to make Russia’s Allies, and especially
-England, unpopular with the Russian nation. He
-paid with his life for the attempt, and one can only
-rejoice that such was the case. As things stand at
-present, it is principally toward Great Britain and
-America that Russia must look for its salvation.
-What I am writing to-day has been my earnest and
-deep conviction for long years, and I have preached
-it not only since the beginning of this war in all the
-books and articles which I have written, but also long
-before any one ever thought or suspected that the
-day would come when the English Union Jack and
-the Stars and Stripes would float beside the Russian
-flag and the French Tricolor on the same battlefields,
-united against one common enemy. I have always
-considered that in human life, as well as in the existence
-of nations, it is essential to recognise the superiority
-of others where this superiority exists, and that
-true civilisation consists in assimilating to oneself with
-gratitude the virtues of other nations, whose example
-one ought to follow instead of trying to ridicule. Russia,
-with all its vast resources and with its immense
-territory, would do well to imitate England and the
-United States in their immense work of culture and
-to call the latter countries to her help in developing
-her own national existence on proper and useful
-bases. In doing so she would not abase herself; she
-would only prove that she was great enough to admire
-the greatness of others.</p>
-
-<p>It is certain that if Anglo-Saxon influence had
-been so dominant in Russia in the past as it is to be
-hoped it will remain in the future, we should not have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">187</span>
-seen occur in Petrograd incidents like those connected
-with the career of Rasputin. We should not have
-witnessed all these perpetual changes of Ministers,
-over which Germany has rejoiced with such evident
-relish. We should not have heard people defy the
-authority of the Czar, as unfortunately has been the
-case.</p>
-
-<p>We former monarchists, who have been brought
-up in the old traditions of loyalty to bygone days,
-have often been accused by this crew of adventurers
-of harbouring revolutionary ideas. They have reproached
-us with the spirit of criticism that has sometimes
-induced and prompted us to speak out what we
-thought and to lay blame where blame was due; to
-criticise where criticism was almost a national necessity.
-Time shall prove whether we have been mistaken.
-It seems to me, however, that as English
-ideals and English respect for individual liberty and
-individual opinions become more and more familiar
-to Russians and penetrate into the Russian mind, the
-public, will acknowledge that we have not been so
-very wrong when we have raised our voices against
-the importance which individuals such as Rasputin
-have been allowed to take in our society and in our
-governmental circles, and against this corrupt system
-of administration, which, thanks to its crawling, flattering
-propensities, caused our people to kneel at his
-feet with the idea that by doing so they were pleasing
-the higher authorities, who most of the time knew
-nothing about the developments for which this intrigue
-was responsible. Russia has still something
-oriental about her, and in some respects she resembles<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">188</span>
-the Greek empire which fell under the blows dealt at
-it by the power of Islam. It needs new life and new
-blood in its veins. It requires the support of this
-strong, earnest British civilisation, which is, perhaps,
-the most beautiful the world has ever known.</p>
-
-<p>I have always been accused of being too pro-English
-in my ideas and opinions. If being pro-English
-means the wish to see my country freed from the
-abuses, the existence of which has prevented her from
-developing herself on the road of a progress embodied
-in the respect of the individual, together with the institutions
-that rule him, such as Great Britain has
-known for so many centuries, then I will willingly
-confess it, I am pro-English. I feel sure that all
-good Russians share my feelings. We have had
-enough of the German Kultur and of German intrigues.
-They it is that have brought my beloved Fatherland
-to the brink of ruin. The whole sad incident
-of Rasputin’s rise and fall has been the result of German
-interference, and it would never have assumed
-the proportions to which it rose if the German press
-had not exaggerated it and German spies spoken
-about it, not only abroad, but also in Russia itself.</p>
-
-<p>When thinking about this story, which savours in
-some of its details of superstitions of the Middle Ages,
-one must always remember what I said at the beginning
-of this sketch of the career of a man whom circumstances
-and the hatred of our enemies transformed
-into a kind of monster devouring all that it touched.
-This fact is that Russia is still the land of many surprises,
-because of its tendency toward mysticism, always
-so strong in all the Slav races. Before Rasputin<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">189</span>
-appeared there had been other sectarians who
-had drawn thousands of men and women around them
-and who had inspired crowds with feelings of fanaticism
-in no wise different from the ones which the modern
-“Prophet,” as some called him, the modern Cagliostro,
-as others had nicknamed him, had evoked in
-the breasts of the simple-minded people whose confidence
-he had abused and whose spirit of superstition
-he had impressed. But these had remained strictly
-in the field of religion and had not meddled with
-any other questions. They had grouped around
-them only persons convinced of the truth of their
-teachings, while Rasputin had gathered about him
-men determined to use him for the benefit of their
-money-seeking, money-grubbing schemes; men who
-saw in the misfortunes that had fallen upon their
-Fatherland only the possibility to enrich themselves
-at her expense. They would not have sacrificed the
-smallest things for her welfare; far less would they
-have given up the chance to add to the ill-gotten gains
-they were daily accumulating. Without those persons
-the whole story of Rasputin would have ended in
-ridicule. Thanks to them and to their rapacity, it
-finished in blood.</p>
-
-<p>It was, after all, the aristocracy that finally got
-rid of Rasputin, perhaps to the great relief of many
-persons who out of weakness, or let us say kindness,
-had hesitated before taking the strong measure of
-sending him away where it would have been difficult
-for him to do any more mischief. And it is doubtful
-whether his removal anywhere than to a place
-whence there existed no possibility for him to return<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">190</span>
-would have stopped the evil which the very mention
-of his name alone was sufficient to cause. Credulous
-persons exist everywhere and will always exist; timorous ones
-also abound in the world. Even if Rasputin
-had been exiled it would have been relatively easy for
-those who reaped such a rich harvest out of the blood
-and the tears of the whole Russian nation to attribute
-to him powers which he did not possess, to threaten
-with his vengeance the persons who might refuse to
-lend themselves to their dirty schemes. He would
-have been a perpetual menace suspended over the
-heads of those who would have tried to rebel against
-the directions issued by the enterprising scoundrels
-who abused the prestige which his so-called holiness
-had won for a man who in other times and in another
-country would not have arrested for a single moment
-the attention of any one, let alone the crowds.</p>
-
-<p>Rasputin is dead! Let us hope that his former supporters
-have lost, together with him, their audacity
-and their power of doing mischief. But to say that
-he was ever a paramount strength in Russian politics
-is an error which I have tried to correct as far as lay
-within my power. Rasputin’s story is simpler than
-many persons think, and perhaps the best explanation
-that can be given of it is to be found in the Book
-of Esther in the Bible, a careful perusal of which is
-recommended to those who are interested in the character
-of Rasputin.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div id="toclink_191" class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">191</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PART_II"><span class="larger">PART II<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE GREAT REVOLUTION</span></span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">193</span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II_I">CHAPTER I</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">On</span> the 15th day of May, 1896, Moscow was celebrating
-the Coronation of the Czar Nicholas II. of
-Russia. In the large courtyard inside the Kremlin,
-an immense crowd was gathered, awaiting the moment
-when the Sovereign together with his Consort
-would come out of the Cathedral of the Assumption,
-to make the customary round of the different shrines
-and churches, which according to the ancient custom,
-they had to visit after they had assumed the old Crown
-of the Russian Autocrats. Among this crowd, there
-were persons who remembered having witnessed the
-same kind of ceremony thirteen years before, when
-Alexander III. had been standing in his son’s place.
-What a splendid apparition it had been that of this
-Czar, gigantic in stature, whose quiet and strong features
-seemed in their placidity to be a true personification
-of the might of that Empire at the head of
-which he stood. One had hoped at that time, that he
-would preside over the destinies of his Realm for long
-years to come, and no one had given a thought to the
-possibility that he would so soon be lying in his coffin.
-Now it was with mixed feelings of pity, combined
-with a sympathy which already was no longer so
-strong as it had been when he had ascended the throne,
-that all were awaiting the new Monarch, who had become
-in his turn the chief of the old House of Romanoff,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">194</span>
-so that when the golden gates of the Assumption
-were thrown open to give passage to the procession
-which was escorting Nicholas II. all the heads
-of the numerous people gathered in honour of the occasion,
-under the shade of the ancient belfrey of Ivan
-Weliky, turned with an anxious curiosity towards
-the Sovereign about to show himself for the first time
-before his people, in the full pomp of his Imperial
-dignity.</p>
-
-<p>What did one see? A young man thin and slim,
-who seemed to be entirely crushed under the weight
-of the massive crown which was reposing on his
-head, and of the heavy robe of cloth of gold, lined
-with ermine, which was thrown upon his shoulders.
-He was tottering as he walked along, and his pale,
-tired face, together with his uncertain steps, bore no
-resemblance whatever to the firm and superb countenance
-of his father thirteen years before. As he
-reached the door of the Church of the Holy Archangels,
-one noticed that he suddenly stopped, as if unable
-to proceed any further, completely worn out by
-the fatigue of the long ceremony that had come to an
-end a few moments before, and the hand which was
-holding the sceptre, enriched with precious stones,
-which the Metropolitan of Moscow had just handed
-to him, dropped down at his side, whilst the symbol of
-might and of power which it was holding, escaped
-from its grasp. Chamberlains and lords in waiting
-hastened to pick it up, and the crowd never noticed
-what had occurred, but those who had witnessed the
-incident, were deeply impressed by it, and different
-rumours began to circulate in regard to it, rumours<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">195</span>
-which would have it that it was a bad omen, whilst
-persons well up in the study of history, and especially
-in that of foreign countries tried to find an analogy
-between it, and the remark made by Louis XVI. on
-the day of his Coronation at Rheims, when he had
-complained that his crown was hurting him, and felt
-too heavy for his head.</p>
-
-<p>A few days later there happened another event,
-which reminded one of a similar coincidence between
-the life of the unfortunate King whose head was to
-fall on the scaffold of the Champs Elysées, and that
-of Nicholas II. It occurred during the popular feast
-which is always given in Moscow after the Coronation
-of a Czar. A crowd amounting to several thousands
-of men and women, some say three hundred
-thousand, had gathered together on a field known by
-the name of Khodinka Plain, in the immediate neighbourhood
-of the town, to be present at it, when suddenly
-a panic which was never accounted for nor explained,
-seized this multitude, and about twenty thousand
-human creatures were crushed to death in the
-short space of a few minutes. The emotion produced
-by this disaster among all the different classes of
-society was very deep and terrible. The only person
-who accepted it with calm and even with indifference,
-if the reader will forgive me for this expression, was
-the Czar himself, who, however, and this is a justice
-which I must render to him, only heard much later
-the whole extent of the disaster, but who at the same
-time, did not try to learn anything definite about it,
-on the day when it took place, and who, under the
-direct influence of his Consort, gave directions to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">196</span>
-reply to the French Ambassador, the Comte de
-Montebello, who had enquired whether he ought to
-postpone the ball he was giving that same night, that
-“he did not see any necessity for doing so.”</p>
-
-<p>This answer became known at once, and it traced
-between the Monarch and his subjects one of these
-white lines which in a tennis ground marks the antagonistic
-camps, and out of two players makes two enemies
-... and this line went on getting wider and
-wider as time went on. It still existed when Nicholas
-II. abdicated, but it had then become an abyss.</p>
-
-<p>In general there is nothing sadder in the world
-than a misunderstanding between two people both
-possessed of good intentions towards each other. It
-is something worse than a discussion, worse than
-a quarrel, and even worse than hatred, because it is
-the only thing which sound reasoning cannot conquer,
-and which is bound to go on aggravating itself
-from day to day. How much worse therefore is a
-thing of the kind when it has established itself between
-a nation and those who rule it. The great, the
-supreme misfortune of Nicholas II. consisted in the
-fact that he never could understand his people or
-their wants, whilst Russia on the other hand was,
-through circumstances independent of its will,
-brought to distrust the real feelings harboured by the
-Czar in regard to its welfare, and to indulge in comparisons
-which certainly were not to his advantage,
-between him and the Sovereign to whom he had succeeded,
-who had possessed the full confidence of his subjects.</p>
-
-<p>This fatality which has dogged all the footsteps of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">197</span>
-the Emperor who abdicated a year ago, from the
-very first moment that he had ascended his Throne,
-can be partly attributed to the defective education
-which he had received, together with the deplorable
-weakness of his character; and partly to the state
-of absolute subjection in which he had been kept
-first by his father, during the whole time of the latter’s
-life, and later on by his wife, together with the
-complete ignorance in which he remained in regard
-to the wants, the aspirations, needs and character of
-his people. He was a despot by temperament, perhaps
-because he had never seen anything else but despotism
-around him, and perhaps because he had got a
-mistaken idea in regard to the duties which devolved
-upon him. He had always been told that he ought
-to uphold intact the principle of autocracy, thanks to
-which his predecessors had maintained themselves upon
-the throne. He had seen Alexander III. adopt
-him with these principles with success, and he had
-forgotten, or rather he had never known, that in order
-to be a successful autocrat, one must neither prove
-oneself a tyrant, nor an oppressor of people’s consciences
-and opinions. His first steps as a Sovereign
-had hurt all the feelings of loyalty of his subjects.
-Among the many addresses of congratulation that
-had been presented to him on the occasion of his marriage
-and of his accession to the Throne, there had
-been one from the Zemstvo or local assembly of the
-government of Tver, a town which was known to be
-very liberal in its opinions, in which was expressed the
-hope that the Monarch would try to govern his people
-with the help and with the co-operation of these same<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">198</span>
-Zemstvos or local assemblies, the aim of which was the
-improvement of the local conditions of existence of
-the population of the different governments or provinces
-of the Russian Empire. There was absolutely
-nothing that was revolutionary in this address. Unfortunately
-there happened to be in the vicinity of
-the young Empress a person whose influence had always
-been perniciously exercised, whenever it had
-manifested itself: the Princess Galitzyne, her Mistress
-of the Robes. Out of a feeling of personal
-dislike, or rather hatred, against one of the signatories
-of this document, which, on account of the consequences
-that followed upon its composition, became
-historical, Princess Galitzyne explained to the Sovereign
-at the head of whose household she stood, that
-this appeal in favour of a liberal system of government
-ought to be discouraged, if not crushed, at once.
-Alexandra Feodorovna was then beginning to acquire
-the absolute power over her consort’s mind,
-which she was never to lose in the future, and she
-spoke to him of the matter suggested by the Princess,
-on the very day that different deputations, coming
-from all parts of Russia to express their good wishes
-to the young Imperial couple, were about to be received
-by them in the Winter Palace.</p>
-
-<p>Nicholas II. has never in his whole life had an opinion
-of his own, but he has shown himself enthusiastic
-for all those that have been suggested to him. He
-promised his wife “to say something,” which would
-put into their proper place the people daring enough
-to dream of anything likely to diminish his own power
-or prerogatives. He forgot, however, one thing, perhaps<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">199</span>
-the most important one, and that was that these
-persons he was about to see, were not at all those who
-had signed the unlucky address, of which it would
-have been far better for everybody to forget the text
-as soon as possible. The result of this first intervention
-of the Empress in affairs of State which did
-not concern her is but too well known. The Czar
-instead of thanking the people who had come to lay
-at his feet the expression of their loyalty, declared to
-them that they ought never to “indulge in any senseless
-‘dreams.’” The words were repeated everywhere,
-and ran from mouth to mouth in the whole of
-Russia. They inflicted on the young popularity of
-Nicholas II. a blow from the effects of which it never
-recovered.</p>
-
-<p>This was the prologue of the tragedy which came
-to an end, if it has done so, with the signature of the
-Manifesto of Pskov. After this rise of the curtain
-was to begin a drama, all the different acts of which
-appear to us shrouded in bloody clouds.</p>
-
-<p>One questions at present whether this drama could
-have had a different end from the one which we are
-witnessing, or whether the historical evolution that
-has been accomplished in the course of the last few
-months in Russia could have been avoided, or at
-least otherwise directed. Personally I believe it to
-have been unavoidable, but it could have unfurled
-itself with dignity, if the Crown had consented to
-concessions which would have taken nothing away
-from its greatness or importance, but which would on
-the contrary have lent to it a new lustre. In any case
-it would have been possible for autocracy to die, or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">200</span>
-better still, to live otherwise. No matter what reproaches
-could have been addressed to the Romanoffs
-in the past, no matter the injustices and the cruelties
-they had committed in the course of their family
-history, there is one thing which cannot be taken
-away from them, and that is that they have all of
-them been strong and courageous men, incapable of
-trembling before the attacks of any enemies, however
-powerful, or before the fury of a revolted mob.
-Nicholas II. was the first one among them who proved
-himself unable to inspire either love or hatred in his
-subjects, and for whom they held nothing but contempt,
-because they very quickly grasped the fact
-that he would never be able to give to himself or to
-others an account of the position he stood in, or to
-realise the tragedy of his own fate.</p>
-
-<p>People who knew him well have wondered whether
-he ever understood what his duty really meant. I
-think, however, from the personal knowledge which I
-have of his character, that in a certain way he wished
-to do what was right, but I doubt whether he knew
-the responsibilities of his position, and the fact that
-he ought to put the interests of the State before those
-of his own family. For him his wife and children
-held the first place, and were the first objects of his
-consideration. This would have been a virtue in a private
-person, but it could easily assume the proportions
-of a crime in a sovereign.</p>
-
-<div id="i_200" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 50em;">
- <img src="images/i_200.jpg" width="2530" height="1078" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, International Film Service, Inc.</cite> (<cite>Courtesy Seattle Times.</cite>)</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The First Bolsheviki Cabinet</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>His father had left to him a splendid inheritance,
-which he might have kept intact with a little care,
-and very small trouble. Before the Japanese war it
-might have been still possible for him to rule his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">201</span>
-country autocratically, though not despotically; but
-after Moukhden and Tschousima, and especially after
-the revolution which followed upon these two catastrophes,
-and which would have been hardly possible,
-had they not occurred, the thing became more difficult,
-if not impossible, because the Russian nation had
-begun to wonder at the causes that had brought about
-these terrible disasters, the consequences of which had
-been the loss of Russian prestige in the Far East,
-and even in Europe. It would, however, still have
-been possible to save something out of the former
-form of government, if a serious and honest appeal
-had been made to the nation to help to consolidate
-its strength, and if an attempt had been made to
-modify it according to the exigencies of the times
-and of the moment. But after the famous day which
-saw rivers of blood flow in the streets of St. Petersburg,
-and the wholesale slaying of thousands of innocent
-workmen, whose only crime had consisted in wishing
-to lay their grievances before their Czar, every
-attempt to keep up the old order of things was bound
-to fail. Something else had to be tried to save the
-dynasty together with the country, but not the granting
-of a so-called Constitution, which it had been determined
-beforehand to leave a dead letter. If on
-the occasion I have just referred to, Nicholas II. had
-found sufficient courage to meet his people face to
-face, and to speak with them as his great grandfather
-had done on an occasion far more critical even than
-the ones which prevailed in 1905, it is likely that the
-divorce which finally separated him from his subjects
-would never have taken place. But he went to Tsarskoie<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">202</span>
-Selo as soon as he heard there was likely to be
-trouble in his capital, forgetting everything else but
-his own personal safety, which, by the way, had never
-been seriously threatened. He proved himself to be a
-coward, and cowardice is the last thing which a nation
-forgives in those who rule it. The Czar lost in consequence
-of his conduct every prestige he had left.
-And he also lost the respect of Russia, owing to the
-shameless corruption which established itself everywhere
-during his reign, when at last everything under the
-sun could be bought or sold in the country, to
-begin with, a Court appointment, and to end with, the
-highest functions in the State. The Emperor was
-unable to refuse anything to those whom he liked, and
-he never grasped this essential fact, that when one
-gives too easily and without discernment, it inevitably
-follows that one also allows people to take what perhaps
-one would never have granted, had one thought
-about it.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander III. had been just as generous as his son
-showed himself to be later on. But his generosity was
-only exercised in regard to what belonged to him personally,
-whilst no one was more careful than this sovereign
-of the public exchequer. He had seen what
-corruption meant during his own father’s reign, when
-abuses had also prevailed, which though in no way
-comparable to those that established themselves towards
-the close of the one which has come to an end a
-year ago, were still sufficiently grave and serious
-to cause anxiety to a Monarch eager and anxious for
-the welfare of his State. He therefore had applied
-himself to put an end to them, and knowing as he did,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">203</span>
-admirably well the character of the Russian nation, he
-took up morally the famous stick of Peter the Great,
-with which he dealt at times most severe blows to those
-whom he believed to be in need of them. The result
-of this system made itself felt within a very short time,
-and when Alexander III. died, the old custom of taking
-bribes, which had been formerly so prevalent in
-Russia, had nearly died out, or at least existed upon
-such a small scale that it could no longer do any harm.
-But under Nicholas II. the old evil was revived, and
-finding no obstacle in its path, it soon assumed most
-unheard of proportions, and became at last a regular
-institution. Soon everything in the vast Empire of
-the Czars was put up at public auction, everything
-could be purchased or sold, and everything became
-buyable, provided a sufficient price was offered for it.
-The Emperor knew nothing, and saw nothing, and
-no one dared to tell him anything, whilst many unscrupulous
-persons found it to their advantage to
-profit by the changes that had taken place to enrich
-themselves quickly and with very little trouble. The
-whole country was seized with a perfect fever of speculation,
-and with the frantic desire to win millions as
-rapidly as possible. When I say the whole country,
-this is not quite exact, because it was not the country,
-but only some people in it, who, thanks to the position
-which they occupied, or to their relations in influential
-circles, found themselves able to take a part in this
-general plundering. The Japanese war which was to
-have such a sad end, was entirely brought about
-through certain concessions being granted by the Russian
-government on the River Yalou which never belonged<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">204</span>
-to the Russian State, to a number of persons
-who hoped to transform them into shareholders’ companies,
-and to make money out of them. They had
-bribed officials who persuaded the Emperor to sign
-the decree which was presented to him, of which he
-failed to see the importance or the meaning, or the
-strange light in which it put him, to distribute thus
-what he did not possess, and what had still to be
-taken away from the Japanese government before it
-could be disposed of. This war, one cannot sufficiently
-repeat it, was brought about willingly and
-knowingly, by people who saw in it an opportunity to
-enrich themselves at the expense of their fatherland,
-thanks to the ammunitions and provisions they would
-be able to deliver for the use of the army in the field,
-and which that army never got at all. The system of
-an organised plundering which in the present war has
-had such mournful and such tragical consequences,
-was then inaugurated with a success that went far
-beyond the most sanguine expectations of those who
-indulged in it. Huge fortunes were made in the space
-of a few months whilst our troops were in want of
-everything, and enduring cold, hunger and thirst.
-The Czar remained in utter ignorance of all that was
-being done in his name. He never suspected anything.
-But his people never forgave him for this indifference
-to its fate. One sees it to-day.</p>
-
-<p>One wonders what was in the mind of this Sovereign,
-who having ascended the throne amidst so many
-sympathies, had contrived to lose them within the
-space of a few months! Did he ever realise the importance
-of the ocean of unpopularity which was submerging<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">205</span>
-him slowly, and the waves of which were rising
-higher and higher, with each day that passed?
-One would like to know it now, when one tries to go
-back to the sources of the tragedy to which he has fallen
-a victim. Or was his character so shallow and so
-careless, that he only looked at the outside of things,
-and could not appreciate their real depth? He was
-of a very reticent nature and disposition, and rarely
-confided in any one, not even in his wife, whose inspiration
-and advice he was nevertheless to follow
-so blindly. And the tastes for solitude which he was
-to develop so strongly later on soon brought him to
-lead a kind of existence that can be compared only
-to that of the Mikado of Japan, before the reforms
-that were to change everything in that country.</p>
-
-<p>That he was surrounded by flatterers goes without
-saying, but he could nevertheless have manifested
-some desire to learn the truth, and not have been so
-continually busy with the exclusive wish to maintain
-his own authority, which in spite of his efforts to the
-contrary, no one in the whole of Russia either respected
-or feared. All the concessions which politically
-were squeezed out of him, came too late, or else
-were accepted by him at the wrong time. Even when
-he seemed in the eyes of the public to be following
-the advice which was given to him by disinterested
-and honest persons, he tried in an underhand way to
-counteract the efficacy of the measures he had himself
-ordered to be taken, and whenever he resigned himself
-to the inevitable, he did not understand the reason
-why he was so doing.</p>
-
-<p>With it all he was in some respects an intelligent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">206</span>
-man. He cared for good reading, for arts, for music,
-for all the things which help to make out of life a
-pleasant thing for irresponsible individuals. He was
-fond of study, very painstaking, but ignorant, and
-doing all that was required of him, in an almost automatic
-manner; kind, it is true, but incapable of coming
-to any serious resolution or determination of his
-own accord; devoid of political sense, occasionally
-most obstinate, and, unfortunately for him as well as
-for his country and dynasty, he had the misfortune in
-all the circumstances when a sacrifice of some fraction
-of his Imperial prerogatives came into question, not
-to be able to understand either his people or the times
-he was living in, and to have no thought for anything
-else but the safety of his own family, forgetting
-utterly that his country and its welfare ought to have
-come before them.</p>
-
-<p>When he resigned himself to grant that shadow of
-a constitution, the advent of which was hailed with
-such enthusiasm by the whole of Russia, he might still,
-had he liked, have regained some part at least, of his
-lost popularity. His personal prestige, or rather that
-of the position he stood in, was still so great among
-the nation, that it would have felt gratitude toward
-him, for every favour he would have chosen to confer
-upon it, if only he had not taken back all that he had
-given, almost immediately after he had awarded it.
-It is quite certain that the first Duma committed
-many errors, but it should have been remembered that
-no human achievement can reach perfection at once;
-and the excitement and effervescence that had followed
-upon the opening of the first Russian Parliament<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">207</span>
-ought to have been allowed to cool down, and
-been given sufficient time to make an honest trial of
-its rights and privileges. At the period I am referring
-to, and this notwithstanding all that was said to
-the contrary, a revolution like the one which took
-place the other day, would have been an impossible
-thing, because the Sovereign could still rely upon the
-army, and it would have been better for him had he
-always leant upon it rather than upon the low crowd
-of state functionaries with which he was exclusively
-surrounded and out of which his wife had picked her
-favourites. He might have checked the then rising
-tide of radicalism with which he found himself unable
-to cope later on, and in the strength of which he was
-to remain to the end mistaken, because he dreaded it
-when it was not dangerous, and imagined that he had
-subdued it, at the very moment when it had become,
-thanks to his own errors, and to his own faults, sufficiently
-strong to carry him away on its waves.</p>
-
-<p>Such a thorough weakness of character was bound
-to bring about the most serious consequences, and
-these did not fail to produce themselves. If Nicholas
-II. had had beside him a wife able to lead him, to advise
-him, to open his eyes which perhaps he did not
-quite close, but which he was never to succeed in keeping
-sufficiently open, and to show him not only the
-perils which surrounded him (these she never forgot
-to point out to him in an exaggerated manner), but
-also to bring to his notice his duties towards his subjects,
-he might have become a Sovereign like any
-other, neither better nor worse, insignificant perhaps,
-but never really dangerous for his country or for his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">208</span>
-dynasty. Even if that wife he was so devoted to had
-wished not to identify herself with State affairs, had
-kept outside them, and not surrounded herself with
-people lost to every sense of shame, he might have
-come out of the numerous difficulties with which
-he found himself confronted, if not exactly to his
-honour and credit, at least without losing too much of
-his prestige. But Alexandra Feodorovna was the
-fatal and dissolving element which destroyed, thanks
-to her attitude and conduct, every scrap of respect for
-the Sovereign, and who inspired in the whole of the
-nation the desire to get rid of an authority in which
-it believed no longer, and in which it saw only an obstacle
-in the way of its development and of its historical
-evolution. The Empress understood even less
-than her husband the state of mind of his subjects; she
-raised between him and them a barrier which nothing
-could destroy, because it was made out of the contempt
-which they both inspired in the whole of Russia.</p>
-
-<p>There is one curious thing contrasting with the
-facility with which Nicholas II. accepted the opinions
-of others, and with his total absence of personal initiative;
-and that is the persistence with which he maintained
-himself during the whole time that his reign
-lasted, in one line of conduct which never varied in
-regard to the determination to govern his country in
-a despotic sense, and which was the more singular that
-he never knew the meaning of real authority. He always
-kept listening to those who represented to him
-that the first duty of a Russian Emperor consisted in
-keeping up the prestige of the police before the mass
-of the citizens. Under no reign in Russia, if we except<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">209</span>
-the dark period of the Opritschnikys under Ivan
-the Terrible, did the police play such an important
-part in public life, or become guilty of more abuses
-and of more malversations of every kind. I will not
-mention here the horrors which took place during and
-after the revolution of 1905, when no one felt secure
-against an anonymous denunciation, the consequences
-of which might be that one saw oneself exiled in Siberia,
-simply because one had not sufficiently bribed
-the police officer in charge of the district where one
-lived; but later on, even after things had calmed down,
-the might of what was called the Okhrana, remained
-just as formidable as it had been before. Literally
-no one could feel safe under this so-called liberal Czar,
-whilst under the reign of his father everybody possessed
-of a good and clear conscience could rest peacefully
-in the certitude that neither the security of his
-domicile or his personal safety would ever be threatened
-or infringed upon by the caprice of this secret
-power called by the vague name of “administration.”</p>
-
-<p>But after all was he really liberal, this Czar who
-had so little known or understood how to endear
-himself to his subjects, or did he merely say that
-such was the case, in order to dissimulate despotic
-leanings which were the more dangerous that they exercised
-themselves without any judgment or without
-any justification for their explosion? A considerable
-number of persons have wondered about it, and have
-found themselves unable to solve this riddle. To hear
-him speak, one would have thought that such was the
-case, whilst it was hardly possible to talk with him
-for any length of time, without finding him a sympathetic,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">210</span>
-kind personality, curious mixture of totally
-different elements in a character that was chiefly remarkable
-for its weakness. One could like him, one
-could even admire some of the qualities which he undoubtedly
-possessed, but it was utterly impossible to
-respect in him the Monarch, or to esteem the man, so
-strange did his conduct sometimes appear, a conduct
-which finally dragged him into an abyss, together
-with his family and with his dynasty. Physically, he
-had a sad and kind face, affectionate and clear blue
-eyes, a charming voice, much affability in his manners;
-a wonderfully bright smile, reminding one of
-his mother’s, a most cordial manner of shaking hands
-that went straight to the heart and made one suspect
-a lot of things which in reality did not exist; a rapid
-and quick walk, a certain hesitation in his speech, and
-in the expression of his face at times; such was the
-man. Morally, he was possessed of honesty of purpose
-to such an extent that he could realise its absence
-in others; he had no will of any kind, but a good
-deal of obstinacy; principles which were always forgotten
-when they interposed themselves between his
-personal welfare and his duty; no sense of responsibility,
-but a very exalted opinion of his own rights,
-and especially of his might; the conviction that autocracy
-ought to be maintained at any cost, and simultaneously
-the sincere desire, during a short while, to
-govern according to the change of system to which
-he had been compelled to submit, more by the force
-of things and of events, than through his personal
-opinions; absolutely no consciousness of the great
-events with which he found himself mixed up, or of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">211</span>
-the wants of the country over which he ruled; no conception
-of the aims he ought to have had in view; no
-real sympathy for his people, but a vague wish to
-help them; an unacknowledged dread of finding himself
-thrown into any intimate contact with the mob,
-combined with the hope that this feeling would not
-be noticed by the public at large; far too much confidence
-in incapable advisers; an exaggerated mistrust
-of the persons courageous enough to tell him
-the truth, an absolute incapacity to resist bad influences;
-sometimes considerable dignity, and often useless
-haughtiness; a good deal of superstition combined
-with religion; a deep conviction that his own
-person was something so sacred that though it might
-come to be attacked and criticised, yet nobody would
-be daring enough to lay a sacrilegious hand upon it;
-a complete incapability of making any distinction between
-his friends and his foes, and such a persuasive
-manner that no one could ever contradict or resist
-him, so that the Revolution in which he lost his Crown
-must have surprised him to the extent of paralysing
-all his faculties of realising its importance and its
-extent; such was the Sovereign.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">212</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II_II">CHAPTER II</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">By</span> the side of this Monarch in whom his subjects
-at last lost every vestige of confidence, there stood a
-sinister figure, the bad genius of a reign that would
-most probably have been far more peaceful if it had
-not been there: the figure of his wife, the Empress
-Alexandra Feodorovna, “the German,” as she had
-been called even long before the present war broke
-out. It was undoubtedly to her that were due, at
-least to a considerable extent, the various misfortunes
-which have assailed the unfortunate Nicholas II.,
-and it was also she, who, in the brief space of a few
-short years, discredited him together with the throne
-to which he had raised her. It was she who destroyed
-all the prestige which the Monarchy had retained in
-Russia, until the day when she tarnished it. She was
-another Marie Antoinette, without any of the qualities,
-or the courage that had distinguished the latter,
-who had become the object of the hatred and furious
-dislike of her subjects, more on account of the vices
-which were attributed to her, than of those which she
-really possessed. In regard to the Consort of the
-Czar Nicholas II., it was just the contrary that occurred,
-because the general public never became
-aware of all the strange details concerning the private
-life of this Princess, who compromised by her conduct
-the inheritance of her son, together with the Crown<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">213</span>
-which she herself wore. On her arrival in Russia
-she had been met with expressions of great sympathy,
-and it would have been relatively easy for her
-to make herself liked everywhere and by everybody,
-because the peculiar circumstances which had accompanied
-her marriage had won for her a sincere popularity
-all over Russia. At the time she arrived there
-as the bride of the future Sovereign there existed in
-the country a strong current of anglomania, which
-disappeared later on, to revive again during the last
-year or two. The Princess who came to Livadia from
-Darmstadt was the granddaughter of Queen Victoria
-of Great Britain, by whom she had been partly
-brought up, a fact which spoke in her favour because
-it was supposed that her education would have developed
-in her liberal opinions, love for freedom, and the
-desire to make herself liked as well as respected by her
-future subjects, who received her with the more enthusiasm
-that they all hoped she would influence in the
-right direction her husband, whose weakness of character
-was already at that time known by those who
-had had the opportunity of becoming acquainted with
-him. One felt therefore inclined to forgive her any
-small mistake she might be led into committing during
-those first days which followed upon her arrival
-in her new Fatherland. One pitied this young bride,
-whose marriage was to follow so soon the funeral of
-the monarch whose untimely death was lamented so
-deeply by the whole of Russia, and one felt quite disposed,
-at least among the upper classes of St. Petersburg
-society, as well as in court circles, to show oneself
-indulgent in regard to the almost inevitable errors<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">214</span>
-into which she might fall, at the beginning of her
-career as an Empress. This feeling was so strong
-that during the first months which followed upon her
-marriage, the popularity of her mother-in-law, who
-had been so sincerely loved before, suffered as a consequence
-of this general wish to make an idol of Alexandra
-Feodorovna. The eyes of everybody were
-turned towards the new star that had arisen on the
-horizon of the Russian capital.</p>
-
-<p>Amidst this general concert of praise which arose
-on all sides in honour of the newly wedded Empress,
-there were a few persons who, having had the opportunity
-to listen to some discordant notes, kept aloof
-and waited for what the future would bring. At the
-time of the death of Alexander III., a man belonging
-to the prominent circles of Russian society, who had
-been for a long period of years upon terms of personal
-friendship with the German Royal Family, happened
-to be in Berlin, and during a visit which he
-paid to the Empress Frederick, the aunt of the future
-wife of the new Czar, he told her how many hopes
-were set in Russia upon her young niece. He was
-very much surprised to hear the Empress express
-herself with a certain scepticism in regard to the bride,
-and finally say that she felt afraid the Princess
-Alix, as she was still called at the time, would not
-understand how to make herself beloved by her subjects,
-or how to win their hearts. Seeing the astonishment
-provoked by her remark, she added that the character
-of the girl about to wear the crown of the Romanoffs,
-was an exceptionally haughty and proud one,
-and that as in addition to this defect she was possessed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">215</span>
-of an unusual amount of vanity, she would
-most probably have her head turned by the grandeur
-of her position, and would put forward, in place of the
-intelligence which she did not possess, an exaggerated
-feeling of her own importance. The gentleman to
-whom I have referred returned therefore to Russia
-with fewer illusions concerning Alexandra Feodorovna
-than the generality of his compatriots indulged
-in.</p>
-
-<p>I must give the latter their due, they did not keep
-these illusions for any length of time, because from
-the very beginning of her married life the new Czarina
-contrived to wound the feelings and the susceptibilities
-of all those with whom she was thrown into contact.
-She had absolutely no tact, and she fancied
-that if she allowed herself to be amiable in regard to
-any one, she would do something which was below
-her dignity. She applied herself to treat everybody
-from the height of her unassailable position, and she
-took good care never to say one word that might be
-interpreted in the light of a kindness or amiability
-towards the people who were being presented to her,
-so that though they tried hard to attribute her utter
-want of politeness to a timidity which in reality did
-not exist, yet they felt offended at it. Russian society
-had been used to something vastly different, and to a
-certain familiarity in its relations with its Sovereigns.
-The mother of Nicholas II., the Empress
-Marie, had been worshipped for the incomparable
-charm of her manners, and the simple kindness with
-which she received all those who were introduced to
-her, asking them to sit down beside her, and talking<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">216</span>
-with them in a charming chatty way, full of sweet and
-unassuming dignity. Her daughter-in-law abolished
-these morning receptions which had brought the Sovereign
-into close intercourse with so many different
-people. She received the ladies who had asked to be
-presented to her, standing, surrounded by her court,
-with two pages behind her holding her train, and she
-merely stretched out her hand to be kissed by those
-whom she condescended to admit into her august
-presence, without speaking one single word to them.
-Of course the people whom she treated with such
-rudeness felt hurt at it, and it began to be said among
-the public that the Empress was not at all amiable,
-and people abstained from seeking her presence or
-appearing at Court, unless it was absolutely necessary
-to do so, leaving thus the field free to people
-devoid of self respect, to whom one impoliteness more
-or less did not matter. The balls at the Winter Palace,
-which formerly had been such brilliant ones, became
-dull and monotonous. The smile of the Empress
-Marie was no longer there to enliven them. At
-last the Czarina left off giving any, and no one missed
-them, or felt the worse for their absence. One felt
-rather relieved than otherwise not to be compelled any
-longer to appear in the presence of the Empress.</p>
-
-<p>As time went on, an abyss was formed which divided
-the Consort of Nicholas II. from her subjects,
-whose feelings manifested themselves quite openly on
-the day of the solemn entry of the Imperial Family
-into Moscow, on the eve of the Coronation of the new
-Sovereigns. The golden carriage that contained the
-Dowager Empress was followed all along its way by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">217</span>
-the cheers of the population of the ancient capital,
-whilst a tragic silence prevailed during the passage
-of the coach in which sat her daughter-in-law. The
-contrast was such a striking one that it was everywhere
-noticed and commented upon.</p>
-
-<p>This latent animosity, the first signs of which manifested
-themselves on this memorable occasion, became
-even more acute after the catastrophe of Khodinka.
-Russia did not forgive its Empress for having danced
-the whole of the night that had followed upon it, and
-for having given no sign of regret at a disaster that
-had cost the life of more than twenty thousand people,
-who had perished in the most awful manner possible.
-The divorce between her and her subjects was accomplished
-definitely after that day, and without any hope
-of a future reconciliation coming to annul its effects.</p>
-
-<p>This unpopularity, and let us say the word, this
-hatred of which she became the object, did not remain
-unknown to the Empress, who either noticed it herself,
-or else was enlightened on the point by her
-German relatives, with whom she had remained upon
-most intimate and affectionate terms. She attributed
-it at first to the fact that she had not during many
-years given a son to her husband and an heir to the
-Russian Throne, but later on she was compelled to
-acknowledge that the dislike which she inspired was
-due to other causes which were dependant on her
-own self. The discovery angered and soured her, and
-made her nasty and ill natured. She tried to avenge
-herself by the assumption of an authority in the exercise
-of which she found a certain pleasure, because it
-procured her at least the illusion of an absolute power,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">218</span>
-allowing her, if the wish for it happened to cross her
-mind, to crush all those who were bold enough to
-criticise any of her actions or her general demeanour.</p>
-
-<p>Her character was obstinate without being firm.
-She believed herself in all earnestness to be the equal
-of her husband, and did not think of herself at all as
-his first subject, so that, instead of giving to others
-the example of deference towards their Sovereign, she
-applied herself to lower him down to her own level,
-to diminish his importance, and to show quite openly
-that she did not in the very least respect either him
-or the throne which he occupied. One heard a number
-of anecdotes on the subject, among others one to the
-effect that during a regimental feast, at which the
-Imperial Family was present, the Empress, who had
-arrived a little in advance of the Czar, did not rise
-from her seat when he entered the riding school in
-which the guests were assembled to receive him. This
-want of deference was commented upon in unfavourable
-terms, and caused such a scandal that Alexandra
-Feodorovna was taken to task for it by her mother-in-law,
-with the only result that she impertinently told
-the latter to mind her own business and to hold her
-tongue. The Dowager Empress did not allow her to
-repeat such a remark, and withdrew herself almost
-entirely from the Court, much to the regret of all
-her admirers. All these things were perhaps not important
-ones, at least from other points of view than
-the purely social one, but they constituted this drop of
-water, which by its constant and continual dripping
-ends in attacking the solidity of the hardest granite.
-Very soon it became a subject of general knowledge<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">219</span>
-that no one cared for the Empress, and one came to
-the conclusion that this initial want of sympathy
-would easily become very real and implacable hatred.</p>
-
-<p>The woman who had become the object of it, instead
-of trying to fight against the general dislike which she
-inspired, did absolutely nothing to try to persuade
-her subjects that she was not the detestable being she
-had been represented to be, but that she cared for their
-welfare, in spite of her cold appearance. The haughty
-and mistaken pride which was one of the chief features
-in her strange character, led her to retire within herself
-and to try to avoid seeing the people, who by that time
-had grown to meet her whenever she appeared in public,
-with angry and unpleasant expressions in their
-faces. The Imperial Court under her rule was
-quickly transformed from the brilliant assemblage it
-had been into a desert—a solitude no one cared to
-disturb. The Empress amused herself chiefly in
-turning tables and in evoking spirits from the other
-world, in company with mediums of a low kind who
-abused the confidence that she so unwisely and unnecessarily
-placed in them, and predicted for her (as
-it was to their interest to do) a happy and prosperous
-future.</p>
-
-<p>Then came the war with Japan, together with the
-disasters which attended it, a war that shook most
-seriously the prestige of the throne of the Romanoffs.
-It brought to light all the defects, the disorder, and
-the inefficiency of the War Office; it enlightened the
-nation as to the real worth of the people who were
-standing at the head of its government, and it sounded
-the first knell of the Revolution which was at last accomplished.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">220</span>
-This war afforded another pretext to
-the public for attacking the personality of the Empress,
-who according to the rumours which circulated
-at the time, had only looked upon it from the joyous
-and glorious side, and never noticed its earnest and
-sad one. It is a fact that neither disasters like those
-of Moukhden and Tschousima, nor even the revolutionary
-movement that broke out in consequence of
-them, affected her equanimity. She remained absolutely
-cold in presence of these grave events and was
-absorbed in the joy of the new maternity, which just
-at that time was granted to her—the birth of the long
-expected and hoped for Heir to the Russian Throne,
-which occurred in the very midst of the Japanese campaign.
-This event certainly did not contrive to make
-her more popular among her subjects, whilst on the
-other hand it increased considerably her importance,
-so that after the appearance in the world of the son
-she had so ardently wished for, she began to display
-more independence in her conduct than had been
-formerly the case, and to discuss more eagerly, and
-more authoritatively than she had ever been able to
-do before, matters of State which her position as the
-mother of the future Sovereign gave her almost a
-right to know, and to interfere with. She brought
-forward her own opinions and judgments, which never
-once proved in accord with the real needs of the Russian
-people. The Empress was neither good, kind,
-nor compassionate. Her nature was cold, hard and
-imperious, and she had never been accessible to the
-divine feeling which is called pity for other people’s
-woes. She would have signed a death warrant with
-the greatest coolness and indifference, and more than
-once her husband decided, thanks to her intervention,
-to confirm those submitted to his consideration.
-This last fact became known, and, as may be imagined,
-it did not procure her any sympathy among
-her subjects.</p>
-
-<div id="i_220" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 33em;">
- <img src="images/i_220.jpg" width="2077" height="1633" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The Bolsheviki Headquarters in Petrograd</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>It was about that time, that is just before the birth
-of the Heir to the Throne, and whilst the war with
-Japan was being fought, that people began to spread
-dark rumours concerning the private life of Alexandra
-Feodorovna. A most extraordinary friendship which
-she contracted with a lady whose reputation left very
-much to be desired, and who had been divorced from
-her husband under circumstances that had given rise
-to much talk, Madame Wyroubieva, was severely
-criticised. The Empress remained deaf to all the hints
-which were conveyed to her on the subject. She kept
-the lady in question beside her, gave her rooms in the
-Imperial Palace, and took her about with her wherever
-she went, without minding in the least the impression
-which this bravado of public opinion produced
-everywhere. Another friendship for a certain
-Colonel Orloff, an officer in her own regiment of lancers,
-also gave rise to considerable gossip, which increased
-in intensity when after the death of the latter,
-who committed suicide under rather mysterious
-circumstances, the Empress repaired every afternoon
-to the churchyard where he was buried, prayed and
-laid flowers upon his grave. One wondered why she
-did such strange things, and of course persons were at
-once found to explain her motives in a manner which
-was the reverse of charitable.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">222</span></p>
-
-<p>The Emperor knew and saw all that was going on,
-but said nothing. His wife by that time had acquired
-over his mind quite an extraordinary influence, and
-either he did not dare to make any remarks as to
-the originality which she displayed in her conduct,
-or else he imagined that her position put her so much
-above criticism that it was useless to interfere with
-what she might feel inclined to do in the matter of
-eccentricity. A legend soon established itself in regard
-to Alexandra Feodorovna. She was said to
-suffer from a nervous affection, which obliged her
-at times to keep to her own apartments, and not to
-appear in public. People tried, thanks to this pretext,
-to explain her absence on different occasions
-when her position would have required her to show
-herself to her subjects. But the truth of the matter
-was that the Empress did not wish to see anybody,
-outside the small circle of people before whom she
-need not constrain herself to be amiable or pleasant;
-and that utterly forgetful of the duties entailed upon
-her by her high rank and great position, she wanted
-only to live according to her personal tastes, surrounded
-by flatterers or by people resigned beforehand
-to accept and bow down before her numerous
-caprices, and to fulfil with a blind obedience all the
-commands it might please her to issue to them.</p>
-
-<p>She mixed openly in public affairs, and began
-to play a leading part in the conduct of the State.
-Her husband never dared to refuse her anything,
-and the Empress attempted to lead the destinies of
-Russia in the sense which she had the most at heart,
-that is in one corresponding to the interests of her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">223</span>
-own native country. She had remained entirely German
-in her tastes and opinions, and her English education
-had had absolutely no influence on her character.
-Thanks to an active correspondence which she
-kept up with her brother, the Grand Duke of Hesse,
-she was able to acquaint the Emperor William II.
-with a good many things that he would never have
-learned without her. This is the more curious, if one
-takes into account the fact that during the first years
-which had followed upon her marriage, and especially
-after the different journeys which she had made in
-France, Alexandra Feodorovna had expressed great
-sympathy and admiration for everything that was
-French, perhaps on account of the great enthusiasm
-with which she had been received by the French population.
-But later on, thanks to the influence of the
-unscrupulous people into whose hands she fell, her
-ideas became transformed, and she boldly tried to fight
-against the French leanings of her husband, and to
-lead him towards an alliance with Germany, in which
-she thought that she saw the advantage, and even the
-safety of her throne, and of the son she loved above
-everything else in the world.</p>
-
-<p>All these facts could not long remain unknown, and
-soon the public began to discuss them, together with
-the story of the different intrigues of which the Palace
-of Tsarskoie Selo became the centre. Thanks to
-the friends whom she had chosen for herself, the ante-chamber
-of the Empress was transformed into a kind
-of annex to the Stock Exchange, where all sorts of
-people, honest or dishonest, used to meet, in order to
-obtain through her intercession more or less extravagant,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">224</span>
-if not dangerous, favours. Thanks to Madame
-Wyroubieva, there were introduced into the intimacy
-of the Czarina certain members of the orthodox
-clergy recommendable only by their love for money
-and for lucrative employments, or rich dioceses and
-monasteries. The Empress together with her sister,
-the Grand Duchess Elisabeth, who after the murder
-of her husband had become a nun and the superior
-of a cloister which she had founded in Moscow, and
-to whom one might have applied with success the remark
-of Marie Antoinette in regard to her aunt Madame
-Louise of France, “she is the most intriguing
-little Carmelite in the whole of the kingdom,” tried to
-mix themselves up in every important matter in the
-State, and to lead it according to their own lights
-and aims, making use of the Emperor as of an instrument
-of their own private ambitions and desires. They
-were both fierce reactionaries, who from the first day
-that Nicholas II. had promulgated the Constitution
-of the 17th of October, had tried to persuade him
-to recall it. It was thanks to the initiative of the Empress
-that the first Duma was dissolved, and that the
-government began to exercise considerable pressure
-over the elections in order to prevent the candidates
-whom it believed it could not trust from being chosen
-by their constituents. One Minister after another
-of those whom the Czar appointed in rapid succession,
-resigned their functions, until at last it was an acknowledged
-fact in Russia that no honest trial of constitutional
-government could or would be attempted
-so long as Alexandra Feodorovna would be there to
-counteract its existence. When the Revolution broke<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">225</span>
-out in the year 1905, and especially at the time of the
-disturbances which took place in Moscow, it was the
-Empress who excited her husband to adopt rigorous
-measures in order to crush it, measures which led to
-nothing, and which only made Nicholas II. a little
-more unpopular than he already was among his subjects.
-It was related, whether true or not I cannot
-say, that when the famous Semenovsky Regiment was
-sent to Moscow to reduce into submission the insurrection
-which had broken out there, Alexandra Feodorovna
-had desired to say good-bye to the officers
-before their departure, and that the only recommendation
-which she had made to them had been not to
-show any mercy to the insurgents. She had read
-without understanding it in the very least, the history
-of the French Revolution in 1789, and one had often
-heard her say that to show any weakness or compassion
-in times of danger was equivalent to signing
-one’s own death warrant. Her friends were nearly
-all of them men and women with a bad reputation,
-and amidst the circle of her own immediate family
-she had only contrived to make herself enemies.
-Thanks to her influence, and to her petty personal
-spite, the young Grand Duke Cyril, the son of the
-Grand Duke Vladimir, was deprived of his titles and
-dignities and exiled from Russia for having dared to
-marry his first cousin, the divorced wife of the Empress’s
-brother, the Grand Duke of Hesse, the Princess
-Victoria Melita of Edinburgh. This punishment,
-however, was promptly cancelled, thanks to the
-numerous protests which followed upon it from all
-quarters, but the two people concerned never forgave<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">226</span>
-the Empress her attitude in regard to their union,
-and we saw an echo of this hostility the other day
-when the Grand Duke Cyril on the outbreak of the
-Revolution tried to play the part of Philippe Egalité
-in the Romanoff family, and went with his regiment
-to put himself at the disposal of the new government
-appointed by the Duma.</p>
-
-<p>The only brother of Nicholas II., the Grand Duke
-Michael Alexandrovitsch, saw the influence of the
-Empress exercised against him in a manner which
-was even more odious, because she contrived to deprive
-him of the control not only of his fortune, but
-also of his personal liberty to manage his estates. With
-her mother-in-law, the Dowager Empress Marie,
-Alexandra Feodorovna showed herself absolutely
-abominable in her disdain, haughtiness and pride.
-With the persons composing her court and household,
-she was unpleasant and bitter. Even in regard to her
-own daughters she proved herself heartless, and she
-never once during the twenty-three years which followed
-her arrival in Russia until the day of her downfall,
-tried to do any good around her or induce her husband
-to accomplish one of those actions full of generosity
-and mercy which unite a nation with its Sovereign,
-and make their hearts beat together for some
-noble cause or other. Then again there occurred the
-Rasputin incident. I have discussed it at length in the
-first part of this book, and shall therefore not enter
-here into a second description of the career of this
-strange personage, this low Cagliostro of a reign that
-did not deserve to have any great nobleman or even
-gentleman for its favourite. The only thing which I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">227</span>
-want to point out to the reader, is the responsibility
-which devolves upon the Empress in this disagreeable
-story, which more perhaps than anything else hastened
-the fall of the old Romanoff monarchy. Whether
-she was really persuaded of the holy character of the
-sinister adventurer who had contrived so cleverly to
-exploit her credulity, or whether there was in this
-curious infatuation for an unworthy object a question
-of hypnotism, combined with the extravagance of
-a badly balanced mind and imagination, it is difficult
-to say, especially when one has not followed otherwise
-than by hearsay the different incidents of this almost
-unbelievable tragedy. It is probable that the mystery,
-such as it was, will never be quite explained, but one
-may reasonably suppose that the perpetual invocations
-to spirits of another world, which Alexandra
-Feodorovna had practised for so many years, have had
-a good deal to do with the obstinacy with which she insisted
-upon imposing this personage upon all those
-who surrounded her, and with which she allowed him
-to interfere with the details of her family life, a
-thing which went so far that one day the governess
-of the young Grand Duchesses, Mademoiselle Toutscheff,
-a most distinguished lady, went to seek the
-Emperor, and told him that she could no longer be responsible
-for the education of his daughters if Rasputin
-was allowed to enter their apartments at every
-hour of the day and night. The only reply which was
-made by Nicholas II. to this communication was that
-the Empress ought not to be crossed, on account of
-the state of her nerves. He seemed to approve of
-everything that was going on in his house, and, this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">228</span>
-is the point which has always seemed so incomprehensible
-in his character, he even appeared to view
-with a certain pleasure the admittance into the intimacy
-of his home life of this uncivilised and uncouth
-creature called Rasputin, whose hand Alexandra Feodorovna
-bent down to kiss with a reverence that she
-had never before in the course of her whole life shown
-to any one else, not excepting Queen Victoria of England,
-whom she had tried to snub during the official
-visit which she had paid to her after her marriage.</p>
-
-<p>The complete indifference of the Czar as to what
-was going on around him and under his own roof,
-combined with his weakness of character and his unreasonable
-love for his wife, did not add to the feelings
-of respect that his subjects ought to have entertained
-for him. In a very short time extraordinary
-rumours began to circulate concerning all that was
-supposed to take place at Tsarskoie Selo, rumours
-which, disseminated as they were among the population
-of Petrograd, contributed in no small degree
-to the promptitude with which it rallied itself to the
-cause of the Revolution that put an end to the reign
-of Nicholas II. It was related amongst other things
-that the Commander-in-Chief of the Army, the Grand
-Duke Nicholas, had one day told his Imperial nephew
-that if he did not lock up Alexandra Feodorovna in
-a convent, he would come himself at the head of his
-troops, to carry her away, and confine her within the
-walls of the monastery of Novodievitvchy. True or
-not, the story was repeated everywhere, and it procured
-for the Grand Duke a considerable number of
-friends and sympathisers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">229</span></p>
-
-<p>Soon after this it was related that the Empress was
-in connivance with the numerous people who had made
-it their business to plunder the national exchequer,
-and that she looked with indulgence upon the malversations
-from which profited the partisans and the
-accomplices, for one could hardly call them by another
-name, of Rasputin. She began to be hated even more
-ferociously than had been the case before, and at
-last the police had to let Nicholas II. know that his
-Consort would do better not to show herself too often
-in public, because an attempt against her life might
-easily come to be made, under the influence of all the
-stories which one heard right and left concerning her
-private conduct and her affection for a being who was
-accused by the whole nation of being fatal to Russia’s
-prosperity at home and good renown abroad.
-The Czar listened to all this, as he was to listen later
-on to the remonstrances of his own family, but he did
-not act on all that he had been told. He continued
-to see Rasputin, partly because, according to the
-tales of those who were in the secret of what really
-went on in that strange Imperial household, the
-frank way of speaking of this uncouth peasant
-amused him and pleased him, being something so
-totally different from the language which he was accustomed
-to hear. But contrary to what was generally
-believed, he did not discuss with him matters
-of State, any more than did the Empress. It is to
-be hoped that this last assertion is correct, and that
-Rasputin in regard to Nicholas II. only played the
-part sustained by Chicot at the court of Henri III.
-of France, that of the King’s Jester, capable occasionally<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">230</span>
-of telling some truths to his master. But during
-the last months which preceded the removal of
-this sinister figure from the horizon of Tsarskoie
-Selo, no one in Russia would believe in such
-a version, seeing that this Jester could dispose
-according to his pleasure of all the high places
-in the State, that he had created ministers, functionaries
-of paramount importance, church dignitaries,
-and that whoever addressed himself to him generally
-got what he wanted, whilst it was his friends who were
-controlling the government of the vast empire of the
-Czars. One did not realise that this had become possible
-only because all persons endowed with the slightest
-independence of character, had gradually become
-estranged from their Sovereign, and had come to the
-decision to abandon him to his fate, disgusted as they
-were by his weakness in regard to his wife, and being
-moreover unwilling to accept the responsibility of duties
-which they were not allowed to fulfil according
-to the dictates of their conscience. One after another
-the Ministers, who at the beginning of the reign of
-Nicholas II. had helped him to rule Russia, had been
-dismissed by him, or retired of their own accord, and
-their places had been taken by simple subaltern functionaries,
-preoccupied only with that one single
-thought of remaining as long as possible in possession
-of the places which they had been called upon by a
-caprice of destiny to occupy, and for which they knew
-at heart that they were not fit. Everybody who had
-a sense of decency left, had fled from Tsarskoie
-Selo, not caring to enter into conflict with the mysterious
-and subterranean powers, which, to repeat<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">231</span>
-the words used by Professor Paul Miliukoff in his
-famous speech in the Duma a few days before the
-Revolution, alone decided the most important questions
-in the State. The whole country was disgusted
-at the conduct of those who ruled it, and this disgust
-was soon to change into an absolute contempt. The
-unpopularity of the Empress had extended itself to
-the person of the Czar himself, whom one was beginning
-to render responsible for the different things
-going on under his roof and to accuse of seeing,
-without any emotion, the Imperial prestige and
-honour sullied, and this autocracy for which he cared
-so much dishonoured. This unfortunate Emperor did
-not find anywhere a support. His mother had been
-estranged from him; his whole family had turned
-against him, after numerous and useless attempts to
-open his eyes as to the dangers which surrounded him
-and the position in which he stood before his subjects.
-His brother had been systematically kept away from
-him by the Empress, who did not care to have in her
-vicinity a man in whom she saw an eventual pretender
-to the throne of her son. His sisters tried to
-remove themselves as far from him as possible. He
-was longing for disinterested affections, and there is
-therefore nothing wonderful or surprising that he
-sought them from the wife whom fate had associated
-with his existence, whom in spite of everything he
-continued to love tenderly, and whose nefarious influence
-was to lead him to his destruction.</p>
-
-<div id="i_230" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 38em;">
- <img src="images/i_230.jpg" width="2373" height="1605" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, Underwood &amp; Underwood, N. Y.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The Bolsheviki General Staff</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>And she, this woman who alone stands responsible
-for all this ruin that has overtaken her consort, and
-his dynasty, did she ever understand the terrible<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">232</span>
-responsibility that she had assumed? Did she ever
-try to be for her husband the faithful companion
-whom he required, and on whom he might have
-leant in the hour of danger and of peril? Did she
-attempt to develop in him those strong and virile
-qualities a sovereign conscious of his might requires
-to be able to handle it wisely? Did she ever enter into
-the needs of her people, or identify herself with the
-interests of the nation whose Empress she happened to
-be? Alas! Alas! history has already replied to those
-questions, and it is history which tells us that, thanks
-to Alexandra Feodorovna, the inheritance bequeathed
-by Peter the Great to his posterity has been squandered
-and lost. If there has ever existed a woman
-who has proved fatal to all those with whom her lot
-has been thrown, it is this little Hessian Princess,
-whom fate or chance associated with one of the greatest
-political crises of which Russian history will keep
-the record and the remembrance, and for whose tears
-no one will find any pity, even when her sorrows will
-need it most.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">233</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II_III">CHAPTER III</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">In</span> one of her letters addressed to her daughter
-Marie Antoinette, the Empress Marie Therese wrote:
-“I am glad to hear that you have decided to re-establish
-the old etiquette and representation of
-Versailles. However tiresome it may be, its inconveniences
-are still far less than those which arise out
-of its absence. A Court must learn to know well its
-sovereigns.” These words of a woman who knew better
-than any other queen had ever known how to uphold
-the prestige of her crown, ought to have been
-remembered by the Czar Nicholas II., because it is an
-undoubted fact that the custom which was established
-during his reign to keep the Emperor and his
-family isolated from the nation over which he
-ruled, had a good deal to do with the change that
-established itself gradually in the ideas of the people,
-as well as in the minds of the aristocracy, in regard to
-the reigning house. One forgot that there existed
-in Russia an Emperor, and one only remembered the
-manifold abuses which were the consequence of the
-detestable government to which the nation was subjected.
-All the personal ties that might have bound
-the monarch with those who could in an emergency
-have defended him against danger, had been snapped
-asunder by that monarch himself. St. Petersburg,
-which formerly (I have now in mind only the upper<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">234</span>
-classes) had converged towards the sun represented
-by the Imperial Palace and its inhabitants, learned
-how to do without it, and it was no longer considered
-to be an honour to have relations, no matter of what
-nature, with any member of the House of Romanoff.
-The Imperial Family, in imitation of the conduct pursued
-by its Chief, seemed as if it wished to efface itself
-and to lead the existence of common mortals,
-which it did not succeed in doing, because it had been
-brought up too far from the world in general, represented
-by that portion of humanity which suffers and
-which works in silence, to be able to enter into its interests,
-and to make them its own. On the other hand
-that same family gave the first signal of rebellion
-against the system represented by the masters of the
-Palace of Tsarskoie Selo, whom it applied itself to
-discredit with an energy which was the more tenacious
-that it would have liked to be in their place. The
-Grand Duchess Vladimir, especially, together with her
-two sons, who had never cared for the Head of their
-dynasty, were the first ones to greet in their house all
-the discontented people who abounded in the Russian
-capital, and to deplore in their presence the scandal
-occasioned by the strange conduct of the Empress.
-The Revolution which was to come later on was prepared
-silently in the palaces of the very persons who
-ought to have fought against it, as well as in the homes
-of those old servants of the monarchy, who would
-have wished to save it from the disaster, which they
-saw but too well, was fast overtaking it, but who
-had to own themselves powerless to do so, and had to
-acknowledge with sorrow and with shame that it was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">235</span>
-discrediting itself a little more with each day that was
-passing. The nation, on its side, was preparing itself
-for the impending struggle. The systematic manner
-in which the labour party in Russia organised itself in
-view of the approaching Revolution, has never been
-sufficiently known or appreciated abroad. It has
-constituted for those who have followed the slow evolution
-which was the consequence of the premature
-revolutionary movement that had failed in 1905, one
-of the most interesting political problems of the twentieth
-century. I have lived in Russia during the years
-which have immediately preceded the war, and I have
-been in personal relations with some of the leaders
-of this party. I can therefore write about it from the
-point of view of a witness eager to watch the slow
-transformation, which out of a party essentially violent
-in its view and aspirations had produced a political
-faction, sufficiently ripened and saddened by the
-unsuccesses of its first fight not to seek elsewhere
-than in a too rapid solution the end of the difficulties
-under which it had been condemned to develop itself.
-It was quite sufficient to have witnessed the manifestations
-that used to take place each first of May, to
-come to the conclusion that the workman who was
-walking the streets, singing and carrying revolutionary
-flags, in 1906, was quite a different man from the
-one who indulged in manifestations of the like kind in
-1913 and 1914. The general strike which preceded
-the war by a few weeks upon which the Germans
-founded so many useless hopes was, notwithstanding
-its revolutionary character, rather an expression of
-opinion on the part of a powerful and perfectly well<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">236</span>
-organised party than a rebellion against authority.
-The workman had at last realised that he had got the
-future for him, provided he did not allow his natural
-impatience to carry him too far, and that he could
-resist the temptation to proceed too quickly with the
-plans which he had formed. He had also realised another
-thing, and that was that neither the liberals nor
-the octobrists, nor the party called that of the cadets,
-nor even the revolutionary socialists, were strong
-enough to constitute a government, and that all the
-plans they were continually talking about, would only
-end in speeches more or less empty and devoid of
-practical common sense. The workman applied himself
-to avoid mistakes, which perhaps he had noticed
-before he had quite grasped their importance. He understood
-on the other hand perfectly well the fact
-that the immense industrial movement, which had developed
-itself during the years that had followed immediately
-upon the war with Japan, was bound to increase
-still further in importance, and that the future
-belonged to those who would be able to profit by it,
-to guide it, and to direct it in the sense of a great and
-general reform of the different abuses which had corrupted
-all the higher classes of the nation. The number
-of factories which suddenly arose everywhere,
-the speculation that followed upon the rise in the value
-of all kinds of industrial securities, and the knowledge
-that the workman very quickly acquired as to the different
-means thanks to which the fortunes of so many
-people come, no one knew from whence, had been edified,
-gave him a strength which became the more formidable
-that he was compelled to remain silent in presence<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">237</span>
-of so many spectacles that revolted his sense of
-integrity. In regard to this particular point, the impossibility
-to hold public meetings proved a blessing
-in disguise for the development of the activity of the
-labour party, because it allowed it to proceed in secret
-to a propaganda that became the more dangerous for
-the security of the government in that there existed no
-one able to point out to those among whom it flourished
-its perilous, and even to a certain extent, its
-disastrous sides. Under the very eyes of the police,
-the mass of the workmen employed in the different
-factories scattered all over Petrograd, prepared itself
-for the mission which it felt but too well was
-bound sooner or later to devolve upon it; so that whenever
-it allowed its voice to be heard, it was always with
-prudence, and even with a certain amount of cautious
-wisdom that prevented the general public and the authorities
-noticing how strong and powerful it was getting,
-and what a wonderful instrument it would prove
-later on, in the hands of those who in the meanwhile
-were leading it in secret, until the day when, thanks
-to their help, it would be able in its turn to lead
-others.</p>
-
-<p>It must here be remarked that the Russian government
-of that time never understood the wants of the
-labour party. It is sufficient to recall the terrible
-drama which was enacted in the Lena gold fields of
-Siberia, when the troops, called to the help of the owners
-of the works, fired on the mass of workmen who
-were simply asking for some legitimate improvements
-in their conditions of existence, to come to the conclusion
-that, according to the words of Hamlet, “there<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">238</span>
-was something rotten in that state of Denmark.”
-Only, neither the government nor the upper classes
-of society, who were all of them, or nearly all, in the
-dependence of a few lucky speculators in stocks and
-shares, nor these speculators themselves, whose number
-was getting larger and larger every day in St.
-Petersburg, cared to remember that such was the fact.</p>
-
-<p>During the years which immediately preceded the
-great war, the whole of Russia had become one vast
-Stock Exchange, the securities of which were quoted
-at every street corner, where the only things that had
-any value, were those which could be turned into a
-shareholder’s company. The Emperor Alexander
-III. had tried, during the whole time of his reign, to
-improve agriculture in his land, and he had tried to
-bind together the different social classes of the nation,
-by a common love for their native soil. It had been
-told at that time that he had been wrong in looking
-upon Russia exclusively from the agricultural point
-of view, but in presence of the things which have happened
-recently, one may wonder whether after all he
-had not been right, because it is quite certain that the
-change of system that had followed upon his death,
-and the exclusive protection which to the detriment
-of everything else, industry was awarded, during the
-twenty-two years of Nicholas II.’s administration,
-and especially during the time that Mr. Kokovtsoff
-remained at the Treasury, darkened the judgment of
-the people who under different circumstances, and
-if they had made less money, would have probably
-noticed the progress made by socialism, and the
-growing influence of the labour party over its adherents,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">239</span>
-who from the outset had been determined to
-break this might of capital which was of no good to
-the country, and simply added to the importance of
-lucky speculators.</p>
-
-<div id="i_240" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 34em;">
- <img src="images/i_240.jpg" width="2147" height="1601" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, Underwood &amp; Underwood, N. Y.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Soldier and Sailor Citizens’ Duma</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>As for the Emperor, he had ceased to count for
-anything in Russia, after the failure of the so-called
-Constitutional government, which he had inaugurated
-rather out of caprice than because he had become convinced
-that it was indispensable to the welfare of
-Russia to see it ruled by a responsible Cabinet. At
-the time I am referring to, it was an acknowledged
-fact in the whole of Russia that it was governed by
-some mysterious and dark powers which in secret were
-proceeding to any amount of malversations, most
-harmful for the prosperity of the nation, as well as
-for its prestige in Europe. The one general feeling
-which prevailed everywhere was one of immense lassitude
-at a state of things one knew but too well
-could not last, but which no one yet felt strong
-enough to try to ameliorate, change, or overturn. If
-the war had not broken out, it is likely that this condition,
-which hovered between a dream and a nightmare,
-might have gone on for a long time, because
-though the public realised perfectly well that the
-Throne, as well as the man who occupied it, represented
-only a dead thing, yet it appeared still so
-immense that no one dared to touch it, but continued
-looking upon it, with the same eyes one would have
-done had it remained the great one it had been formerly.</p>
-
-<p>The war broke out and awakened the nation out
-of the state of marasm into which it had fallen. During<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">240</span>
-the first weeks which followed upon its declaration
-there took place in Russia an explosion of enthusiasm
-such as had never been witnessed before. It
-did not, however, last any appreciable length of time,
-and collapsed together with the news of the reverses
-that attended the Polish campaign. Nowhere were
-these reverses felt more than amidst the ranks of the
-labour party, which, as a direct consequence of them,
-acquired all at once an importance it had hardly
-dared to hope it could win so soon. Factories became
-the principal organ of the national defence, and the
-word “ammunition” was transformed into the flag
-under which all those who were dissatisfied with the
-government then in power enrolled themselves as
-well as the people who longed for the end of an order
-of things the faults and mistakes of which were
-known in Russia long before they came to be recognised
-abroad. The workman suddenly became the
-individual to whom was awarded the greatest importance,
-there where the question of the salvation
-of the Fatherland came to be raised. He was
-the one to whom everybody said aloud what he
-had been himself aware of long before, that it
-was from him, and from his efforts, that depended
-victory over the enemy who had audaciously invaded
-Russian territory. This workman (this must
-never be lost sight of) was intimately connected with
-the army in which he had served, with the army that
-had far more confidence in him, and in his knowledge
-and efforts, than in the incapable government
-that had sent it to be slaughtered without providing
-it with any means to fight its foes. The workman became<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">241</span>
-thus conscious of his extreme importance, and he
-aspired to be awarded the place in society which he
-imagined that he had the right to pretend to. He
-raised his voice, and insisted upon its being listened to.
-Perhaps Nicholas II. would still be in possession of
-his throne had he had sufficient common sense to
-do so. There were at this juncture people who tried
-to make the Sovereign understand that it was not
-enough for him to have assumed the supreme command
-over his troops in order to win back the popularity
-he had so completely lost, and that he would do
-well, in the interest of his dynasty as well as in his
-own, to show himself more frequently to the population
-of Petrograd, and to try to get into direct touch
-with it otherwise than through his official visits to the
-factories where ammunition was prepared for the
-army; visits during which he was escorted with great
-pomp and ceremony by his usual cortège of attendants
-and in the course of which he had never found one
-single word of encouragement to say to those who
-were toiling for the welfare of the Fatherland. The
-Emperor failed to grasp the wisdom of this piece of
-advice, nor did he realise the importance of another
-one, which proceeded from the few friends he had
-still left to him, the advice to call together a national
-and responsible Ministry, composed of men
-chosen among the representatives of the country in
-the Duma, and in possession of the confidence of the
-latter. He understood even less the necessity, recognised
-everywhere outside the gates of his Palace, to
-try and raise the prestige of the Crown, by getting
-rid of the compromising personalities, whose presence<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">242</span>
-at his side dishonoured him as a man, and discredited
-him as a sovereign. He did not see, and perhaps no
-one dared to point out to him, the shameless money
-speculations which were taking place everywhere in
-Russia, and even under his own roof; the bargaining
-of everything that there was to sell or to buy in the
-country; honours, dignities, distinctions, places, and
-the Fatherland itself, by a gang of shameless adventurers,
-who had found the protection which they
-needed to carry on their plunder within the walls of
-the Imperial residence. He believed what his wife
-kept repeating to him, that once he had declared such
-was not the case, no one would dare to think that he
-consulted Rasputin or the metropolitan Pitirim in regard
-to State affairs, and he simply laughed at those
-who pretended that he was doing so. He was blind
-until the end. He is perhaps blind still, and it is quite
-possible that he will persist in remaining so until the
-day when his revolted subjects will come and claim his
-life, after having compelled him to surrender his
-throne. Unconscious creature, unable to notice the
-dangers amidst which he had been living, or the abyss
-that was already swallowing him up.</p>
-
-<p>It is when considering this point that one feels
-tempted to ask what would have become of Nicholas
-II. had he had beside him one of these intelligent
-women, endowed with a strong character, and understanding
-the nature of her duties as a wife, as a mother
-and a sovereign. It is likely that if he had found such
-a help he might have prevented or at least have contrived
-to give a different shape to the crisis through
-which Russia had to pass. The war was an unavoidable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">243</span>
-misfortune, owing to the firm determination
-of Germany to provoke it, no matter in what way, or
-under what pretext, but it would have been possible
-to conduct it differently than was the case. One
-could also have been prepared for it, and one ought
-to have realised that the old and superannuated system
-of government so utterly rotten, where everything
-was left in the hands of corrupt functionaries,
-who had never learned anything out of the book of
-history, for whom the intellectual development of nations
-meant nothing at all, and who did not look beyond
-their personal advantages in all the great crises
-which might come to shake the equanimity of the country,
-that this system had served its time, and was
-bound to collapse under the weight of the universal
-contempt. But Nicholas II. called together a Duma
-which he had determined beforehand to deprive of
-every initiative, and of the liberty to say what it
-wished concerning the needs of the country that had
-entrusted it with the defence of its interests. He made
-many fine promises which he never intended to keep,
-and when he spoke about the necessity of bringing
-about a close union between the Czar and the representatives
-of his people, he never wished to give to
-the latter the possibility to approach him, or to lay
-their grievances at his feet. Had there been in Russia
-an Empress worthy of the name, and competent
-to fill the position she occupied, she would have
-told her husband that the duty of them both consisted
-in remaining loyal towards their subjects.
-She would have exposed her person, and risked her
-life if necessary, in the accomplishment of the task<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">244</span>
-which had been allotted to her by Providence. She
-would have spent her time otherwise than in the
-practices of a piety that was nothing else but superstition
-mingled with erotic tendencies.</p>
-
-<p>What did Alexandra Feodorovna do during those
-solemn hours of a supreme crisis? I do not wish to
-be hard on her now that misfortune has overtaken
-her, but the truth must be told, and it is necessary to
-point out that her principal preoccupation during
-the months which preceded the Revolution consisted
-in defending Rasputin against the attacks directed
-against him from all sides, and in isolating the Emperor
-from all the people capable of enlightening
-him in regard to the conduct and the character of the
-sinister personage whom her imagination had transformed
-into a Saint, and to whose presence at her side
-she attributed a miraculous power, capable of protecting
-her and her family, against every kind of
-danger. Under his influence and thanks to the
-impulse which he gave to her activity, she applied
-herself to persuade the Czar to conclude a separate
-peace with Germany, working upon the humanitarian
-feelings of Nicholas II., and repeating constantly to
-him that he owed it to his subjects to put an end to
-a useless effusion of blood, and not to go on with a
-perfectly hopeless struggle. If the Revolution had
-not taken place it is most probable that a separate
-peace would have been signed between Russia and
-Germany during the course of the next few months,
-and it is also likely that if this intention of the Empress
-had not transpired outside the gates of her Palace
-the Revolution would not have broken out when it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">245</span>
-did, because all the different political parties in the
-Duma were agreed as to the advisability of putting it
-off so long as the enemy was in occupation of a part of
-the country. But Alexandra Feodorovna poured the
-last drops into a glass which was ready to overflow,
-and the hatred which the Russian nation bore her
-found at last its justification in the general opinion
-which suddenly exploded like a barrel of powder in
-the whole of the country, that she also was a traitor,
-who had been won over to the German cause, and
-who was ready to give up into the hands of the adversary
-against whom one had been fighting for so
-many long and anxious months of a struggle during
-which so much blood had flown, this Russia that had
-offered her the Imperial diadem, which she had found
-nothing better to do than to sully with the mud of the
-dirty roads whither her steps had taken her.</p>
-
-<p>Here I must make a pause, and try to analyse the
-real part played in the drama by the unfortunate Sovereign
-on the head of whom so many curses have
-been showered. I do not believe that it was in order
-to hand over to her own native country, the one which
-had become hers by marriage, that Alexandra Feodorovna
-lent herself to the intrigue in which it is
-unfortunately an uncontested fact that she took an
-active share. It seems to me, so far as I can judge of
-things which did not take place in my presence, that
-her intentions were sincere according to her lights.
-She was not an intelligent woman by any means,
-and what she possessed in the way of intellect had disappeared
-in a vanity and haughtiness of which it is
-hardly possible to form an adequate idea. She cared<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">246</span>
-only for her crown, and for autocratic power over
-her subjects, and under the influence of those who
-represented to her that the least concession to the
-spirit of the times was bound to further the cause of
-a revolution which she abhorred, she had awarded
-her protection to this reactionary party represented
-by men like Sturmer, Protopopoff, and others of
-the same kind. She had preached to her husband
-whenever she had had the opportunity for doing so,
-the necessity to stand firm, and never to sacrifice one
-fraction of the principle of absolute power over his
-subjects. She had pointed out to him on every possible
-occasion the example of Louis XVI., who had
-been beheaded, because he had not had sufficient courage
-to resist to the pressure exercised over him by the
-revolutionary elements in the French monarchy. She
-did not grasp in the very least that times were different,
-that ideas as well as men had changed, and that
-a sovereign who in a moment of danger does not seek
-help from his people, or try together with them to find
-a solution to the difficulties of a threatening situation,
-courts an inevitable ruin. The Empress has, without
-any doubt being allowed as to this point, been the direct
-cause of the misfortunes as well as of the fall of
-her husband, and probably when history will be called
-upon to judge her, it will show itself even more severe
-in regard to her and to her conduct than her contemporaries
-have been, because she has certainly done
-more to destroy the respect of Russia for the throne to
-which she had been raised than the most violent revolutionary
-attacks that were ever directed against it.
-Instead of trying to bring her consort nearer to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">247</span>
-nation at whose head he stood, she only inspired him
-with suspicions and even with dislike for this nation,
-or at least for the best among its representatives.</p>
-
-<p>There happened circumstances when the Empress
-interfered directly in the affairs of the State, and persuaded
-the Czar to do what she required of him;
-as, for instance, the exile in Siberia, this Siberia
-whither she was to be sent herself, and the arbitrary
-arrest of several leaders of the labour party, whom,
-under some futile pretext or other, the government
-threw into prison a few weeks before the outbreak of
-the Revolution, in spite of the indignant protestations
-made by the Duma on the subject. It was also
-Alexandra Feodorovna, who, on the advice of the
-metropolitan Pitirim, a creature of Rasputin, who
-had caused him to be appointed to the See of Petrograd,
-the most important one in the Empire, persuaded
-the Emperor to follow the advice of the
-minister Protopopoff to prorogue the Duma, and to
-arm the police with machine guns, in view of a possible
-revolt of the inhabitants of the capital against
-the government, a fatal and most imprudent measure,
-if there ever was one, which decided the fate of the
-Romanoff dynasty.</p>
-
-<p>In this last occurrence, it was less out of fear of
-the debates that might take place in the Duma, than
-because he wanted to have his hands untied in regard
-to the conclusion of peace for which he had been working
-ever since he had been called to the ministry of the
-interior, that Protopopoff induced his Sovereign to
-resort to a measure absolutely devoid of common sense,
-and the only effect of which could be to add fuel to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">248</span>
-a fire that had been smouldering for months, if not
-years. It proved fatal for everybody, and it is still a
-question whether it was not to be more fatal for Russia
-than anything else which Nicholas II. had ever
-done, because it has thrown her into an era of revolution
-and of trouble, for which she was neither prepared
-nor ripe.</p>
-
-<p>At that time I am writing about, the members of
-the Imperial family together with the aristocracy
-were beginning to get more and more alarmed at the
-manner in which events were unfolding themselves,
-and were wondering as to what could be done to put
-an end to the influence of the Empress and of her
-favourites. One of the oldest, and the only surviving
-personal friend of the late Czar Alexander III.,
-Count Vorontzoff Dachkoff, when he visited the Emperor
-to take leave of him, on his resignation of the
-functions of Viceroy of the Caucasus, had tried to
-remonstrate with him on the subject, and to point out
-to him the necessity of getting rid of Rasputin and
-of the followers of the latter. He had known Nicholas
-II. as a child, and he could therefore talk with him
-more familiarly than any one else in Russia: “I must
-tell you the truth,” he said. “Do you know that,
-thanks to your Rasputin, you are going to your ruin
-and endangering the throne of your son?” The old
-soldier, who had served under four sovereigns, became
-quite eloquent in his speech. The Czar listened
-to him in silence, and at last exclaimed almost
-with a sob: “Why did God lay upon me such a
-heavy burden?”</p>
-
-<p>After Count Vorontzoff, the Dowager Empress<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">249</span>
-Marie Feodorovna tried to do something to save her
-son. She had left Petrograd months before, not caring
-to live in the vicinity of her daughter-in-law, whom
-she disliked as much as did the other members of the
-Imperial family. When Nicholas II. visited Kieff in
-October, 1916, where his mother was residing, the latter
-had a long conversation with him, in which she
-pointed out to him the peril which threatened him
-and the dynasty, unless he decided upon an energetic
-step, and removed from her side the favourites
-of his wife. But even Marie Feodorovna was powerless
-in presence of the dark and occult powers that
-held her son in their trammels, and nothing followed
-upon her remonstrances or her adjurations that he
-might consider the dangers with which he was surrounded,
-and try at least to conjure them.</p>
-
-<p>After this interference of the widow of Alexander
-III., some of the members of the Cabinet who were
-not of the same opinions as Messrs. Sturmer and
-Protopopoff, attempted to reason with their Sovereign,
-among others Count Ignatieff and Mr. Bark,
-but they were also not listened to, and the former at
-last handed in his resignation which was accepted with
-alacrity, Alexandra Feodorovna not trying even to
-hide the extreme satisfaction she felt at its having
-taken place.</p>
-
-<p>Count Ignatieff had been the most popular minister
-of public instruction Russia had ever known, and
-his departure was looked upon in the light of a national
-misfortune, adding to the dislike with which
-the Empress was viewed everywhere. Mr. Bark did
-not feel himself at liberty to abandon the department<span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">250</span>
-of finances of which he had the charge at the very
-moment when a new loan was being floated, but he
-avoided seeing the consort of his Sovereign, and only
-appeared at Tsarskoie Selo, when he could not help
-doing so.</p>
-
-<div id="i_250" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 38em;">
- <img src="images/i_250.jpg" width="2425" height="1616" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, Underwood &amp; Underwood, N. Y.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Foreign Minister Leon Trotzky</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>On the 1st of November, 1916, one of the cousins
-of the Czar, the Grand Duke Nicholas Michaylovitsch,
-who was perhaps the cleverest member of the
-Imperial family, a man wonderfully well learned, and
-who had acquired the reputation of an excellent historian,
-thanks to the remarkable studies which he had
-published on the life and times of Alexander I., and
-the Napoleonic wars, made another effort to shake
-the influence of Rasputin, Protopopoff and the Empress.
-He asked the Czar to receive him, and during
-a long and heated conversation which he had with the
-latter, he read to him a letter which he had prepared
-beforehand, in which were exposed not only the political,
-but also the private reasons, which made it an
-imperative necessity to remove Rasputin from Tsarskoie
-Selo. As the Grand Duke told his friends
-later on, there were in this letter some passages that
-might have wounded Nicholas II. in his feelings as a
-husband, not only as a sovereign. But the Czar did
-not reply one single word, only went to fetch the Empress,
-and in his turn read to her the incriminating
-epistle. When he reached the passage in which remarks
-were made concerning her, Alexandra Feodorovna
-rose up in a passion, and snatching the document
-out of her husband’s hands, she tore it up into a
-thousand small pieces. In the course of this memorable
-conversation, the Grand Duke asked the Emperor<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">251</span>
-whether he knew that the appointment of Protopopoff
-was the work of Rasputin, with whom the
-former had become acquainted at the house of one
-of their common friends, a certain Badmaieff.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” replied the Czar, “I know it.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you find this a matter of course,” exclaimed
-his cousin.</p>
-
-<p>Nicholas II. replied nothing.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the angry tone which the discussion had
-assumed, the Emperor remained perfectly civil
-to the Grand Duke. The latter afterwards remarked
-that he had been more than surprised to meet
-with such utter indifference, and at the same time
-such kindness, in appearance at least, from his cousin.
-It seemed as if nothing that he could say could move
-the Czar, who, during the most heated moments of
-this interview, handed the matches to his kinsman,
-when he noticed that the cigarette of the latter had
-gone out. At last the Grand Duke exclaimed:
-“You have got Cossacks here, and a great deal of
-room in your gardens. You can have me killed and
-buried without any one being the wiser for it. But
-I must tell you the truth, and say to you that you are
-going to your ruin.”</p>
-
-<p>The Czar continued to be silent, and his cousin had
-to take his leave, without having been able to obtain
-one single word from him by which he might have
-guessed whether he had been believed or not.</p>
-
-<p>The confessor of the Imperial family, Father Schabelsky,
-was induced to interfere in his turn, and to
-warn the Emperor of the ever increasing unpopularity
-of his consort, advising him at the same time to send<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">252</span>
-her somewhere for the benefit of her health, until the
-storm had abated which everybody except the few people
-who surrounded the Sovereign saw was on its way.
-His advice also was disregarded. A lady belonging
-to the highest social circles, whose family had always
-been upon terms of intimacy with that of Nicholas II.,
-the Princess Vassiltschikoff, bethought herself to
-write to the Empress, and to entreat her to save the
-country and the dynasty, and to induce her husband
-to call together a responsible ministry, in possession
-of the confidence of the Duma and of the nation.
-The only reply which she received was an order commanding
-her to leave the capital immediately for her
-country seat, with a prohibition to return to it again.
-Alexandra Feodorovna remained the only person the
-Czar would listen to, and Alexandra Feodorovna was
-but the mouthpiece of people like Rasputin, Sturmer,
-and Protopopoff, who kept telling to her that she must
-not yield, and that the only thing capable of restoring
-peace to Russia was to subdue the rebellious spirits
-who dared talk about the necessity of making concessions
-to public opinion, coupled with the firm determination
-to crush, even by force, any manifestations
-which might be made in that direction. Acting upon
-this advice, the Empress assumed a power which had
-never belonged to any consort of a sovereign before.
-In the absence of Nicholas II. at the front, it was she
-who gave out orders, not only to the different ministers,
-but also to the troops composing the garrison
-of Petrograd; she had people arrested according to
-her fancy, she caused the houses of others that had
-displeased her to be searched by the numerous police<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">253</span>
-agents whom she had at her disposal, ready to execute
-any of her caprices; she showed herself the absolute
-master in her consort’s dominions, and she held
-everybody, including himself, in a firm grasp, which
-(this must be added) was more the grasp of Rasputin
-and Protopopoff, than her own.</p>
-
-<p>It was evident that such a state of things could not
-go on indefinitely. There were still some persons left
-who hoped to be able to save the dynasty by removing
-its principal enemy, the unscrupulous peasant who
-had tarnished its prestige. A plot, into which entered
-different persons belonging to the highest aristocracy
-of the land as well as some members of the
-Imperial family, was arranged, and culminated, as I
-have already related, in the murder of Rasputin. All
-this has been told, but what has not yet been written is
-the manner in which the news of the assassination of
-her favourite was received by the Empress. At first
-her despair was pitiable to behold, then she quickly
-rallied, and getting back her energy, proceeded to
-avenge her murdered friend. The Czar was at Headquarters,
-and she happened to find herself alone with
-her children at Tsarskoie Selo. She sent for one of her
-husband’s aide de camps, General Maximovitsch, and
-commanded him to proceed immediately to Petrograd,
-and to arrest the Grand Duke Dmitry Pavlovitsch,
-allowing him, however, to remain in his own palace,
-but with strict orders not to leave it, even for a short
-walk. The whole Imperial family protested, but it
-was of no avail. Mr. Protopopoff was on the side of
-the Czarina, and he alone was in command of the police
-forces of the capital. Any thought of resistance<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">254</span>
-was out of the question. The hated minister would
-not have hesitated to proceed, even against the relatives
-of his Sovereign, to gratify the revengeful feelings
-of Alexandra Feodorovna.</p>
-
-<p>How vindictive the latter showed herself to be can
-be seen out of the severity of the punishments which,
-at her instigation, were showered upon all those who
-had taken part in the conspiracy to which Rasputin
-had fallen a victim. Prince Youssoupoff, with his
-wife, was exiled in one of his properties in the government
-of Koursk, and the young Grand Duke
-Dmitry was ordered to proceed to the front in Persia,
-which, considering his delicate state of health, was
-tantamount to a death sentence. When this became
-known, the whole of the Imperial family wrote to the
-Czar in the following terms:</p>
-
-<p>“May it please Your Majesty, we, whose signatures
-you will find at the bottom of this letter, urgently
-and strongly beg of you to reconsider your decision
-in regard to the Grand Duke Dmitry Pavlovitsch,
-and show him some leniency. We know for a fact that
-he is physically ill, and morally broken down. You
-have been his guardian in his youth, and you are aware
-of the deep feelings of affection and of respect that
-he has always entertained in regard to you, and to
-our Fatherland. We implore Your Majesty in view
-of his youth, and of the precarious state of his health,
-to allow him to repair either to his own estate of
-Oussoff, or else to Vilensky.</p>
-
-<p>“Your Majesty is probably aware of the terrible
-conditions in which our army finds itself placed in
-Persia at the present moment, and of the many illnesses<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">255</span>
-and epidemics of all kinds that are raging
-there. To expose the Grand Duke to those dangers
-is simply compassing his ruin, because he can only
-come out of such a trial a physical and moral wreck,
-and surely the kind heart of Your Majesty will take
-pity on a youth for whom you have had some affection
-in the past, and in regard to whom you have always
-shown yourself a kind father. We pray to God
-to soften the feelings of Your Majesty, and to induce
-you to alter your decision, and to show some
-mercy to your own kinsman.”</p>
-
-<p>To this letter was received on the next day the
-following reply:</p>
-
-<p>“No one has the right to commit a murder. I
-am aware that many people are suffering now from
-qualms of conscience, because it is not only Dmitry
-Pavlovitsch who is mixed up in this business. I am
-surprised at your daring to address me in such terms.
-Nicholas.”</p>
-
-<p>The Grand Duke had to submit. He departed for
-the Persian front, accompanied by an officer who had
-received strict orders to oppose any attempt that he
-might feel tempted to make, in order to escape
-his doom. A curious incident, very characteristic of
-the state of mind prevailing in the capital at that
-time, then occurred. The comrades of this officer,
-upon hearing of his appointment, obliged him to resign
-his commission, considering that he had disgraced
-himself by accepting such a mission.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile the body of Rasputin was taken
-at night to Tsarskoie Selo and buried in a small chapel
-which had been erected some years before by the Empress,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">256</span>
-quite close to the palace which she inhabited.
-Troops surrounded it so as to prevent any one getting
-near to it, whilst the ceremony lasted, and the funeral
-was attended by the Emperor, the Empress, and the
-intimate friend of the latter, Madame Vyroubieva.
-Alexandra Feodorovna used to go every afternoon to
-pray on the grave of the man whose influence had
-proved her bane, until at last the Revolution imprisoned
-her, and threw to the winds the ashes of the
-greatest enemy that the dynasty of the Romanoff’s
-had ever known. When the body was exhumed by
-the angry populace, one found on its breast a sacred
-image, bearing the names of the Empress, and of her
-three daughters, last memento of an affection which
-had proved so fatal to those who had nursed it.</p>
-
-<p>The murder of Rasputin had one very clear and
-definite object, that of ridding the Czar of an individual
-who had sullied his honour. Those who were
-courageous enough to send him into eternity had
-nursed the hope that once this evil influence had disappeared,
-the counsels of wisdom would prevail, and
-Nicholas II. might be at last brought to understand
-that his duty required of him to look bravely into the
-face of the situation in which he had been thrown together
-with the Empire over which he ruled. Until
-that time, no one had been able to talk seriously with
-him, with hopes of being listened to. The Emperor
-had acquired the habit of never giving an immediate
-reply to any proposition that was submitted to him,
-but deferred his decisions, in order to discuss them
-first with the Empress, who in her turn consulted her
-favourites Sturmer and Protopopoff, who had taken<span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">257</span>
-to a certain extent the place left empty by Rasputin’s
-disappearance. They were all of them working together
-towards the conclusion of a separate peace
-with Germany, because they believed that if once this
-were achieved they would be able to recall the army
-from the front, and to use it against the Duma and
-the nation, establishing with its help upon a sounder
-and firmer base their own power and might. None
-among them gave a thought to the possibility that the
-troops might practise with the people, and work together
-with it towards the downfall of the government
-and of the dynasty.</p>
-
-<p>This desire of the Empress to bring about, no matter
-at what cost, the ending of the war, was suspected
-by a good many people. A few officers in possession
-of important commands had an inkling of it, and the
-leaders of the labour party had also heard about
-it. The last named, who had worked more than any
-other class of the nation for the continuation of the
-struggle in the material sense of the word, and who
-wanted to avenge their sons fallen before the enemy,
-became anxious at the possibility of such a peace
-being concluded; and very distinct threats were uttered
-not only in Petrograd, but all over Russia,
-against the Ministers, the Emperor, and especially the
-Empress. This explains, apart from other reasons,
-why the murder of Rasputin was hailed with such
-joy. One hoped that his removal would put an end
-to a state of things out of which could only result disaster,
-shame and misfortune.</p>
-
-<p>Unfortunately things turned out quite differently.
-Alexandra Feodorovna declared that she considered it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">258</span>
-her duty to go on doing exactly what her dead and
-gone friend had advised her to do, and the partisans
-of a separate peace with Germany found in her a
-more solid protection than the one they had enjoyed
-before. She pursued unmercifully all those
-who had tried to open the eyes of the Emperor, and
-the first thing she did, after having seen the Grand
-Duke Dmitry sent to Persia and Prince Youssoupoff
-exiled, was to cause the Czar to write to the Grand
-Duke Nicholas Michaylovitsch, who had addressed
-to him the letter which had incensed her so terribly,
-and command him to leave Petrograd and
-repair for two months to an estate which he owned in
-the South of Russia, in the government of Kherson.
-This order was brought to the Grand Duke by an
-Imperial messenger, on the last day of the year 1916,
-at half past eleven o’clock at night. It was written
-entirely in the Emperor’s hand, and was couched in
-the following terms: “I command you to start at
-once for Grouchevka, and to remain there two months.
-Nicholas.” But there was added a postscript that had
-been probably written without the Empress’s knowledge,
-under the vague feeling of remorse for such an
-unjustifiable action, and which said: “I beg you to do
-what I ask you.” Other Grand Dukes attempted in
-their turn to shake the influence of Alexandra Feodorovna,
-and to point out to the Czar the peril which
-it represented for the dynasty. Many angry scenes
-took place at Tsarskoie Selo, between them and the
-master of this Imperial place, but they all led to nothing,
-and when the wife of the Grand Duke Cyril, the
-Grand Duchess Victoria Feodorovna, sought the Sovereign<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">259</span>
-on her own initiative, and tried to make him
-realise the great unpopularity of his consort, Nicholas
-II. interrupted her with the exclamation: “What has
-Alice got to do with politics? She is only a sister of
-mercy, and nothing else. And in regard to her so-called
-unpopularity, what you say is not exact.”</p>
-
-<p>He then proceeded to show his cousin any
-amount of letters emanating from wounded soldiers,
-who thanked the Empress for the care which she had
-taken of them, letters of which not a single one was
-genuine, and which had been manufactured at the instigation
-of Sturmer and Protopopoff. The truth of
-the matter was that the wounded and sick in the different
-hospitals visited by Alexandra Feodorovna, did
-not at all harbour kind feelings in regard to her, as
-they reproached her with giving all her care and attention
-to the German prisoners, to the detriment of her
-own soldiers. And among other stories which were
-related concerning those visits of hers, there was one
-which had obtained a wide circulation. It was related
-that one day the Empress, talking to a wounded
-officer who had been brought to her own hospital at
-Tsarskoie Selo, had asked him the name of the German
-regiment against which he had been fighting. The
-officer had replied that it was a Hessian regiment,
-upon which Alexandra Feodorovna had turned her
-back upon him, and had left the room in a violent
-rage which she had not even tried to control or to dissimulate.</p>
-
-<p>The Grand Duchess Victoria was not discouraged
-by the manner in which her disclosures had been received
-by Nicholas II., and she had attempted to discuss<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">260</span>
-the subject with the Empress, but the latter, at
-her first words, had stopped her with the remark:
-“The people whom you advise us to take into our confidence,
-are the enemies of the dynasty. I have been
-for twenty-two years upon the throne, and I know
-Russia well. We are beloved by the nation, and no
-one will ever dare raise his hand against us. All this
-opposition about which you are talking proceeds from
-a few aristocratic bridge players, and is devoid of any
-importance.” After this, there was nothing to be done
-but to allow events to take their course, and to proceed.</p>
-
-<div id="i_260" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 33em;">
- <img src="images/i_260.jpg" width="2103" height="1609" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, Underwood &amp; Underwood, N. Y.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Meeting Addressed by Nikolai Lenine in Front of Winter Palace, Petrograd</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>They were to develop far quicker than one could
-have imagined. The army had begun to discuss
-the position, and to comment upon it. Every one
-who had watched the march of affairs during the last
-months, felt that something was going to happen, but
-no one knew what it would be, or wished even to know
-it, so general was the discouragement that had taken
-hold of the public mind. There was, however, one
-factor left, which towered over the whole of the situation;
-that was the sincere desire on the part of the different
-political parties to try and keep back as long
-as possible a crisis which was recognised to have become
-inevitable, but which no one wished to see hastened.
-This feeling was such a general one that a
-member of the Duma, who for family reasons had
-come for a few days to Stockholm where I was residing
-at the time just before the Revolution, told me
-that no one had been more surprised than he when
-the news had reached him that it had broken out, because,
-though he had been convinced it was going<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">261</span>
-to produce itself, yet he had never believed that it
-could take place so soon.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst this fearful storm was brooding on the
-horizon and getting nearer and nearer to him with
-each day that passed, Nicholas II. refused to listen
-to the thunder which was already resounding close to
-his ears, and was getting more and more determined
-to persist in the fatal resolution of holding his own
-against the tempest, and if necessary of using force
-in order to conjure and to subdue it. If ever the old
-Latin proverb, “Quod Deus vult perdere, prius dementat,”
-has ever been realised, it was in the case of
-this unfortunate Sovereign, who had fallen into the
-hands of an ambitious, cold woman, devoid of intelligence
-and of scruples, and incapable of appreciating
-the character of the people over whom she had been
-called upon to reign, and of whom she had been unable
-to conquer either the esteem, the respect or the
-affection, during the quarter of a century that she
-had lived in its midst.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">262</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II_IV">CHAPTER IV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">This</span> discredited Monarch, and his hated and despised
-Empress, by whom were they surrounded during
-those eventful days which preceded their fall? Who
-were the people whom they trusted, and on whom they
-relied? Whom do we see advising them? Only a handful
-of flatterers, of sycophants, always ready to turn
-against him and to betray them at the first opportunity,
-together with Ministers devoid of any political
-sense, and without any knowledge or comprehension
-of the position into which the country had been allowed
-to drift; without any courage or energy, incapable
-of imposing themselves or their opinions upon
-the masses, and of convincing them of the soundness
-of their views; incapable even of subduing these
-masses by the use of sheer force. Apart from these
-flatterers and these weak advisers, whom could Nicholas
-II. and his Consort trust and believe in? Whom
-had they got beside them? A discontented army, that
-was too thoroughly weary of seeing itself neglected
-and passed over like a negligible quantity, whilst it
-was fighting for dear life on the frontiers, and who had
-lost all wish to go on with what appeared to it to have
-become a hopeless struggle; a few functionaries who
-cared for nothing but their own advantage or advancement;
-a handful of adventurers in quest of places, influence
-and riches, especially of the latter; a police<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">263</span>
-always ready to listen to every kind of low denunciation;
-that had abused its power, that had destroyed,
-thanks to its criminal activity, every sense of personal
-security in the nation, and that prosecuted only those
-who did not pay it sufficiently to leave them alone.
-Blackmailers, spies, and valets; this was all that was
-left to the Czar of All the Russias, to watch over him.
-They were the only people on whom he could rely, and
-even they would only remain faithful to him as long
-as the supreme power would remain, at least nominally,
-in his hands. His family, as we have seen,
-detested the Empress, and was ready and prepared to
-side against him on the first notice of his downfall,
-which it effectively did. What was left in Petrograd
-of aristocracy had withdrawn itself from him, lamenting
-over evils which it knew itself powerless to allay,
-and had come to the sad conclusion that the further
-it kept from Tsarskoie Selo the better it would be for
-everybody. The Emperor stood alone, forsaken by
-all those who under different circumstances would
-have considered themselves but too honoured to die
-for him, let alone defend him against his foes. Alexandra
-Feodorovna had created a desert around her
-husband, and, thanks to her, there was hardly a Russian
-left in the world who did not for some reason
-or other curse the Sovereign whom Providence had
-destined to become in all human probability the last
-of the Romanoff’s crowned in Moscow. Nicholas II.
-imagined that he could rely on the devotion and the
-loyalty of his army. He forgot that this army was no
-longer the one that had acclaimed him with such enthusiasm
-at the beginning of the war. Most of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">264</span>
-officers who had been in command of it at the time
-had fallen on some battle field or other; the soldiers
-too had disappeared, and the young recruits who had
-taken their place had been reared in different ideas,
-and were ignorant of the old discipline which had inspired
-the former regiments whose original contingents
-had been slain. The army had become a national
-one from the Imperialist it had been before; it was
-composed of the same elements of discontented minds
-who before they had been called to the colours had
-freely discussed the conditions under which the war
-was being fought, and who had noticed better than it
-would have been possible for them to do at the front,
-the mistakes of those in command, the remorseless
-dilapidation of the Public Exchequer which was
-going on everywhere, together with all the faults and
-the carelessness that had brought about all the disasters
-which had fallen upon the nation. This army
-could no longer nurse, in regard to the Czar, the veneration
-and almost religious respect which had animated
-it in earlier days. It had perceived at last that
-he was not at the height of the duties and responsibilities
-which had devolved upon him, and as a natural
-consequence of the fall of the scales from its eyes it
-had sided against him, together with the Duma, from
-which it was hoping and expecting the salvation
-which its masters of the present hour were unable to
-procure for it.</p>
-
-<p>But whilst the whole of Russia was aware of this
-state of things, Nicholas II. alone refused to see it.
-He felt afraid of appearing as the weak man that he
-really was; he refused all the urgent entreaties which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">265</span>
-were addressed to him, to appeal to his people, and to
-appoint a popular and responsible Ministry, capable
-once he had called it to power of requiring from him
-the fulfilment of his former promises, which he had
-determined beforehand never to keep. He threw
-himself from right to left, and from left to right, in
-quest of councillors after his own heart, or rather after
-the heart of the Empress, because it was she who finally
-decided everything; and he changed his Ministers
-with a facility which was the more deplorable that
-those of the morrow did not differ from the ones whom
-he had dismissed the day before, until at last, thanks
-to his irresolution and to his obstinacy, he contrived
-to discredit, not only in Russia, but also abroad and
-among his Allies, the government of which he was
-the head, together with his own person and the great
-Imperial might which he personified. At last even
-the extreme conservative parties, who until then had
-been on his side, joined the ranks of his enemies, and
-this defection of theirs made the disaster an irremediable
-one, and the fatal catastrophe inevitable.</p>
-
-<p>England at this moment made an effort to save the
-Czar, together with his dynasty. Lord Milner, who
-had repaired to Petrograd to attend the conference of
-the Allies which was being held there, tried to open
-the eyes of Nicholas II. as to the dangers which surrounded
-him, and to persuade him to grant at last
-a constitutional government to his people, and to entrust
-the interests of the country to a Cabinet in possession
-of its confidence. His representations proved
-absolutely useless. The Emperor replied to him that
-if the troubled state of public opinion persisted, he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">266</span>
-would establish a military dictature. He forgot in
-saying so that in order to carry an attempt of the
-kind it is indispensable to have at one’s hand a man
-strong enough to accept the responsibility of such a
-post, and an army faithful and loyal enough to back
-him up. Protopopoff, whom the Empress consulted
-as to the wisdom of the decision which Lord Milner
-had implored the Czar to take, declared that he
-thought it would be an extremely dangerous one to
-adopt, and that the only thing which could and ought
-to be done, in the present circumstances, was to resort
-to rigorous measures; to prorogue the Duma and
-the Council of State; and to repress without the least
-mercy every demonstration against the government.
-He added that he was quite ready to assume the responsibility
-of the repression which he advised, and if
-the necessity for doing so presented itself, to give
-orders to the police to fire on the crowds. At the
-same time he inundated the capital, and even the provinces,
-with a whole army of spies, whose only occupation
-consisted in denouncing to him all the people who
-did not pay them sufficiently well to leave them alone.
-A kind of committee of public safety, such as had
-existed in France at the time of the Terror, became,
-thanks to Mr. Protopopoff, the sole master of the
-Russian Empire, and it disposed, according to its
-fancy, of the existence as well as of the property and
-liberty of the most peaceful citizens. During one
-night, fifty workmen belonging to the group that was
-sitting in the industrial war committee, entrusted with
-the fabrication of ammunitions, as representatives of
-the labour party, were arrested, without any other apparent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">267</span>
-reason than the fact that they had allowed
-themselves to discuss in public the debates which had
-taken place in the Duma, and had been overheard by
-some spy or other.</p>
-
-<p>This Assembly had met on the 27th of February,
-1917, as had already been settled before the resignation
-of Mr. Sturmer, and the appointment of Prince
-Galitzyne as Prime Minister in his place. It became
-evident from the very first day the Session was opened
-that most violent discussions were about to take place,
-and that the government would never be able to command
-a majority, because even the ultra Conservatives
-who had backed it up before had forsaken it.
-One more reason for discontent with it had arisen: the
-almost total lack of food in Petrograd, where, thanks
-to the mismanagement of the railways and the lack
-of tracks, no provisions of any kind could arrive.
-Riots of a more or less serious character took place in
-different quarters of the town; the population clamoured
-for bread, and broke the windows in the bakers’
-and butchers’ shops, wherever it could do so. This
-was one more complication added to all those already
-existing. The Duma thought it indispensable
-to make an energetic manifestation of its
-want of confidence in the government’s power to
-grapple with the difficulties of the situation. The parties
-composing the moderate left, together with the
-Cadets that had recently united themselves into one
-group denominated the “Bloc,” declared by the mouth
-of their leader, Mr. Chidlovsky, that it was indispensable
-to call together a Cabinet comprising really
-national elements, in possession of the confidence of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">268</span>
-the country as well as that of the Sovereign, because
-the one in existence was entirely discredited, even
-among its former supporters. During the debates
-which followed upon this motion, the socialist deputies,
-among others Mr. Tcheidze, expressed themselves
-in most violent terms, and said, among other things,
-that the government then in power would never understand
-the wishes or the needs of the nation, or
-become reconciled with it, and that between it and
-the country there existed an abyss which nothing in
-the world could ever fill. It had against it the
-whole of Russia, and it had done nothing and was
-doing nothing to smooth over the difficulties which
-it had itself created, and for which it was alone responsible.
-And Mr. Tcheidze concluded his speech
-by expressing his conviction that a compromise was
-no longer possible, and that only a great national
-movement of revolt could overturn the Cabinet and
-replace it by another one better able to understand
-the needs of the country and of the army.</p>
-
-<p>One of the leaders of the extreme right who, up to
-that time, had been famous for his reactionary opinions
-and sympathies, Mr. Pourichkievitsch, went even
-further than his socialist colleague, and proceeded to
-sketch the character of Mr. Protopopoff, accusing
-him of spending his time in suspecting everybody (the
-zemstvos, the aristocracy, the Duma, and even the
-Council of State) of conspiracies against his person,
-and of meditating the suppression of these two institutions
-within a short time. Mr. Pourichkievitsch
-added that in what concerned the Duma he was personally
-convinced that it would prefer a dissolution to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">269</span>
-the alternative of a blind submission to a tyrant like
-the Minister of the Interior, and of keeping silent
-when it knew that the Fatherland was in danger.</p>
-
-<p>Another speaker of great talent, Mr Efremoff,
-said that he had come with great regret to the conclusion
-that all means at the disposal of a parliamentary
-assembly to fight the government had been exhausted,
-and that the whole country was a prey to
-deep dissatisfaction with the existing order of things.
-It was high time, he added, that the system which had
-ruled Russia for such a long time should give way
-before a responsible cabinet, the constitution of which
-was claimed imperatively by public opinion. It was
-only such a cabinet that would be able to encourage
-the country to go on with the struggle in which it
-found itself engaged, against a foe who had obtained
-so many advantages over it, thanks to the mistakes
-and to the crimes of the administration represented
-by Mr. Protopopoff, and by his friends.</p>
-
-<p>But it was the leader of the Cadets, Mr. Miliukoff,
-the greatest statesman that Russia possesses at the
-present moment, who dealt the last blow to the Ministry,
-thanks to the acerb criticisms which he addressed
-to the Sovereign and to the latter’s advisers,
-and to his indignant protest against the arbitrary
-imprisonment of the delegates of the workmen of
-Petrograd, who had been chosen by them to represent
-their interests in the industrial war commission.
-The vice president of this commission, Mr. Konovaloff,
-joined him in this protest, whilst another deputy
-belonging to the extreme left, whose name was to
-become famous very soon, Mr. Kerensky, in language<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">270</span>
-of a violence such as had never been heard before
-in the Duma, prophesied that the time would
-soon come when this Duma would find itself compelled
-to fight for its rights and for the liberty of the nation,
-and would adopt decisive measures to put an end to
-the danger which was threatening the great work of
-the national defence, if it was allowed to remain in
-the hands and under the control of people who had so
-badly understood its claims and its necessities.</p>
-
-<p>After these debates, during which had been voted
-by an immense majority the immediate release of the
-arrested workmen, Mr. Protopopoff rushed to Tsarskoie
-Selo, the metropolitan Pitirim, and Mr.
-Sturmer (who had remained a persona grata at Court,
-notwithstanding the fact that he had been compelled
-to resign his former functions of Prime Minister) accompanied
-him. A conference took place between
-them and the Empress, towards the close of which
-Nicholas II. was asked to come in and to listen to the
-decisions that had been arrived at, which he was requested
-to sanction. This conference decided that the
-negotiations already engaged with Germany in view
-of the conclusion of a separate peace should be
-hastened; that the Duma should be prorogued for an
-indefinite period of time, and the police armed with
-machine guns, in order to be able to crush at once, by
-a display of its forces, every popular manifestation
-that might be attempted in favour of a change of government,
-should such manifestation take place in the
-capital.</p>
-
-<p>Here I am touching in this short sketch of the Russian
-Revolution upon a point which is still dark, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">271</span>
-point concerning this separate peace with Germany,
-about which there arose at that time so much talk in
-Petrograd. The idea of a step of that kind, which
-would have constituted an arrant treason in regard to
-the Allies of Russia, had been conceived first in the
-brain of Mr. Sturmer, to whom most probably it had
-been suggested by his confidential friend and secretary,
-Mr. Manassevitsch-Maniuloff, about whom I
-have already spoken in the first part of this book, and
-who, after the murder of Rasputin, had been finally
-brought to trial and sentenced to eighteen months
-hard labour for blackmail. He had always been in the
-employ of Germany, and he had spoken to his patron
-of the necessity for putting an end to a war which, if it
-went on much longer, might endanger the very existence
-of the dynasty. Mr. Sturmer had also
-sympathies for the “Vaterland,” and he was but too
-glad to act according to the hints which were given
-to him by a man in whom he had every confidence.
-He found an unexpected ally in Rasputin, who in his
-turn induced the Empress through Madame Vyroubieva
-to rally herself to his opinion, which was a relatively
-easy thing to do, considering the fact that she
-had been already, of her own accord, working towards
-a reconciliation between the Romanoffs and the
-Hohenzollerns, the only people whom she thought of
-any consequence in the whole affair. The difficulty
-consisted, however, in finding a person willing and
-disposed to act as intermediary in so grave a matter.
-Rasputin knew Protopopoff, discussed the subject
-with him, and found him quite ready to enter into
-the views which he expounded to him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">272</span></p>
-
-<p>At that time Mr. Protopopoff was vice president of
-the Duma. No one knew exactly how he had contrived
-to secure his election as such, considering his
-reputation of reactionary and especially of opportunist.
-He had, however, succeeded in getting himself
-appointed, and the fact that he held this position
-gave him a certain weight and prestige abroad. He
-was given very precise instructions as to what he was
-to do, and started with several of his colleagues
-of the Duma for England, under the pretext of
-returning the visit which some members of the English
-House of Commons had paid to Petrograd a few
-months earlier. On his way back, he stopped at Stockholm
-as I have already related, conferred there with
-an agent of the German Foreign Office called Mr.
-Warburg, and settled with him the conditions under
-which an eventual peace could be concluded.
-After this Protopopoff returned to Russia, where,
-however, the story of his Swedish intrigues had
-already become known so that he was awarded a very
-poor welcome by his friends. People believed then
-that his political career had come to an end, when,
-just at this juncture, the most important post in the
-Russian Empire, that of Minister of the Interior, became
-vacant, thanks to the dismissal of Mr. Chvostoff
-who had tried to get rid of Rasputin with the help of
-the monk Illiodore, and, to the general stupefaction
-of the world, the place was offered to Mr. Protopopoff
-by the Empress herself.</p>
-
-<p>By that time one had become used in Russia to
-every possible surprise in regard to the appointment
-of Ministers, and nothing that could happen in that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">273</span>
-line astonished those (and they were legion) who
-knew that it was a gang of adventurers that was ruling
-the country. The rise of Mr. Protopopoff was not
-therefore considered by them as something out of the
-way, but in parliamentary circles it gave rise to deep
-indignation; an indignation which eventually found
-its way into the press, where, however, it was very
-quickly suppressed by the censor, and also in the various
-speeches uttered in the Duma, during which allusions
-were made for the first time to the unhealthy
-influence exercised by the Empress over her husband.</p>
-
-<p>The former was triumphant. As soon as she became
-aware of the conditions under which the German
-government would consent to conclude peace
-with Russia, she set herself, in conjunction with her
-friends, to try to persuade Nicholas II. that his
-duty in regard to his people required him to put an
-end to a hopeless conflict during which the best blood
-in Russia was being spilt for a cause doomed beforehand.
-She made him observe that if the war went
-on much longer, the revolutionary elements in the
-country would wax stronger, in proportion to the sacrifices
-entailed upon the nation, and that it was quite
-possible, the latter, exasperated by their magnitude,
-would attempt to get rid of a government that had
-not succeeded in restoring to it the tranquillity which
-it so sorely needed. It did not take her a long time
-to convert the Czar to her point of view, and the negotiations
-officiously inaugurated by Mr. Protopopoff
-were officially continued by him together with Mr.
-Sturmer, whom Alexandra Feodorovna personally<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">274</span>
-entreated to assume their direction in conjunction
-with her own self.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the extreme secrecy which had presided
-at these different conferences between the Empress
-and her favourites, something of their purport had
-transpired among the general public, and threats had
-been proferred against those who had accepted to
-play the sad part of Judas in regard to their country.
-These threats had been whispered in the corridors of
-the Duma, and Mr. Protopopoff had been informed
-of their purport by his spies. It became therefore
-one of his principal aims to get rid of an opposition
-which, he knew but too well, would only increase in
-violence as well as in importance as the sorry work he
-was bent upon performing would come out in the
-light of day and become known to his numerous
-adversaries. Apart from this, he thought it would be
-better to present himself later on before the Duma
-with an accomplished fact behind him. He therefore
-persuaded the Empress that whilst he would be
-pressing with the utmost speed the negotiations with
-the Kaiser, begun already, it would be advisable to
-bring from the front a considerable number of troops
-to Petrograd, so as to be able with their help to crush
-any effort at resistance attempted either by the population
-of the capital or by its garrison, about whose
-state of mind the minister did not feel quite sure.
-The Cabinet was so badly informed, in spite of its
-numerous spies, of what was going on in the army
-that it imagined the latter would only feel grateful
-and happy to see the campaign come to an end and
-be able to go back to its homes, and that in consequence<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">275</span>
-it would lend itself with the greatest pleasure
-to any attempt made by the Monarch and the government
-to put an end to a struggle for which it did not
-feel any longer any enthusiasm at heart.</p>
-
-<p>The men who reasoned thus were absolutely mistaken.
-The army had made up its mind to win the
-war; the workmen whose importance was increasing
-with every day that went by, also wished it, because
-they hoped that out of this victory they were longing
-for might result a radical change in the form of the
-administration they had begun to despise more and
-more as its incapacity became more and more apparent.
-The person of the Czar did not inspire respect
-or enthusiasm any longer, but on the other hand
-love for the Fatherland had made considerable progress
-since the beginning of the war, and the national
-sentiment which, up to that time, had only existed in
-the state of an Utopia had become a reality, especially
-since one had perceived the great strength which
-it had communicated to Russia’s allies, to France
-among others, where the Republic, which many people
-were already seeing loom in the distance as a possibility
-in the land of the Czars, had inspired so much
-patriotism to its citizens.</p>
-
-<p>Neither Mr. Sturmer, nor Mr. Protopopoff, nor
-those who shared their opinions and their views, were
-able to understand what was going on in the heart
-and in the soul of the Russian nation. They were far
-too much absorbed in their own petty, personal interests,
-to be able to give a thought to such a subject.
-For them the conclusion of a peace with Germany
-meant the strengthening of their influence and of their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">276</span>
-power, together with honours, dignities, and the
-possibility to enrich themselves, and to have a few
-more stars attached to the golden embroideries of
-their uniforms. It meant also the possibility of getting
-rid once for all of this spectre of a responsible
-ministry, of which they stood in such dread. They
-therefore threw themselves in the struggle against the
-Duma with an ardour that grew as they saw the increasing
-difficulties with which the accomplishment
-of their designs was going to encounter in that Assembly,
-and, as a first step in the course of action they
-had determined to follow, they submitted to the signature
-of Nicholas II. the fatal decree which prorogued
-the Duma together with the Council of State,
-and which was to give the signal for the conflagration
-of which they were to become themselves the first
-victims.</p>
-
-<p>Traitors are always to be found in hours of great
-national peril. Among the people who resided in
-the palace of Tsarskoie Selo, there was a person who,
-becoming acquainted by chance of what was going on
-there, rushed to communicate the news which he had
-heard to Mr. Kerensky, the leader of the extreme left
-party in the Duma. The latter did not lose one moment
-in communicating to his colleague the news
-which had come to his knowledge, and also to the
-president of the Assembly, Mr. Rodzianko.</p>
-
-<div id="i_276" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 25em;">
- <img src="images/i_276.jpg" width="1584" height="2529" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Photograph, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Alexander Kerensky</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>Mr. Rodzianko was about the last man whom one
-would have suspected of being possessed of the necessary
-determination to resort to a “Coup d’Etat.” He
-was a Chamberlain of the Czar; he had been brought
-up in monarchical traditions, and during his whole<span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">277</span>
-life he had submitted to the one which, in Russia,
-placed the Sovereign in the light of something holy
-and sacred before his subjects. He was respected
-but did not enjoy an immense authority in the Chamber
-that had never taken quite kindly to him, not
-thinking him possessed of sufficient courage to fight
-its battles with efficiency. It is probable that he felt
-terrified rather than anything else, at the prospect
-which the communication of Mr. Kerensky opened before
-him, but things had advanced too far for him to
-be able to withdraw. There was no alternative left
-but to perish oneself, or to destroy others. Mr. Rodzianko
-called together a meeting of several deputies
-belonging to the moderate parties, with whom he discussed
-the situation. They very quickly came to the
-conclusion that if one entered into a struggle with the
-government in this all important question of war and
-peace, one would be backed up by the whole country,
-which did not wish to see the war come to an end until
-the enemy had been driven out of Russian territory.
-There was also another thing which added itself to all
-the different questions roused by the discovery of the
-intentions of the Court. It was the determination
-of the radical groups of the Duma to proceed to the
-“Coup d’Etat” on their own accord, and no matter
-under what conditions, with or without the help of
-the moderate elements in the Assembly. This might
-have become extremely dangerous, as they had behind
-them the whole mass of the working population
-of the capital. The question had therefore to be considered
-as to whether the Revolution was to be made
-with the concurrence of all the parties represented in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">278</span>
-the Duma, or by the radical socialists alone, who, in
-the latter case, would have become the absolute masters
-of the situation, and might have pressed for the
-immediate proclamation of a Republic which could
-easily have degenerated into an anarchy, and which in
-the best of cases would have lacked the necessary dignity,
-capable of giving it prestige and authority at
-home and abroad. Mr. Rodzianko found himself
-placed in the presence of a dilemma of a most difficult
-kind and nature. He took the only decision possible
-under the circumstances, he boldly placed himself
-at the head of the movement and constituted a provisional
-government, in place of the one that had
-foundered under the weight of the contempt of the
-whole nation.</p>
-
-<p>The first thing that was done by the Duma was to
-refuse to disperse and to resist the ukaze of the Czar
-that had prorogued its debates for an indefinite time.
-The socialist deputies went about trying to get the
-population of Petrograd to join in the vast movement
-of revolt they meant to bring about. The latter was
-but too willing to do so, and the want of provisions
-was the pretext which the people took to organise
-vast meetings, and a strike in all the factories. Great
-masses of men and women paraded the streets, and
-were dispersed by a formidable police force which
-had been assembled by Mr. Protopopoff and armed
-with machine guns that were used against the
-crowds, whenever these did not obey immediately the
-injunctions to disperse given to them by special constables
-and Cossacks gathered together in all the principal
-streets and squares of the capital. The regular<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">279</span>
-troops had been consigned in their barracks and ordered
-to keep themselves ready to lend a hand to the
-police. But the unexpected happened. The soldiers
-had been worked upon by delegates from the
-workmen, and they declared that they would not obey
-orders, should any be given to them, to fire upon the
-populace assembled in the streets. The latter seemed
-quite sure of impunity, because notwithstanding the
-preparations made by the police to quell the revolutionary
-movement, the existence of which was already
-recognised everywhere, it refused to disperse, and on
-the contrary proceeded to commit the only acts of violence
-which were performed during the course of the
-mutiny. It threw itself on the prisons where political
-offenders were confined, plundered and burned them,
-and liberated their inmates. A few other excesses
-were performed, upon which the Duma constituted
-itself an executive committee, which assumed the task
-of restoring order in Petrograd.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile, the Czar who had been kept in
-total ignorance of what was going on in the capital,
-had left Tsarskoie Selo for headquarters, after having
-signed the prorogation of the Chambers. In his absence,
-it was the Empress who was left sole mistress
-of the situation, and it is to her and to Protopopoff
-that were due all the attempts at repression which
-happily for all parties concerned were not allowed to
-be executed, at least not in their entirety.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Rodzianko telegraphed to the Czar. He informed
-him that the position was getting extremely
-serious, that the population of Petrograd was absolutely
-without any food, that riots were taking place,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">280</span>
-and that the troops were firing at one another. He
-implored the Sovereign in the interests of the dynasty
-to send away Protopopoff and his crew, and he drew
-his notice to the fact that every hour was precious, and
-that every delay might bring about a catastrophe.
-At the same time he telegraphed to the principal commanders
-at the front, asking them to uphold his request
-for a responsible government capable of putting
-an end to the complete anarchy that was reigning
-in the capital, an anarchy which threatened to extend
-itself all over the country. The commanders replied
-that they would do what he asked them to perform.
-Nicholas II. alone made no sign. It was related afterwards
-that he had telegraphed to the Empress,
-asking her what she advised him to do. But it is
-more likely that the telegram of the President of the
-Duma was never handed to him. Mr. Rodzianko,
-however, sent another despatch to headquarters which
-contained the following warning: “The position is
-getting more and more alarming. It is indispensable
-to take measures to put an end to it, or to-morrow
-it may be too late. This is the last moment during
-which may be decided the fate of the nation
-and of the dynasty.” To this message also no reply
-was received. The Czar seemed unable to understand
-the gravity of the situation. Others did, however,
-in his place, and on that same day, the 12th of
-March, the troops composing the garrison of Petrograd
-went over to the cause of the Revolution. They
-marched to the Duma in a long procession, beginning
-with the Volynsky regiment, one of the crack ones in
-the army, to which joined themselves almost immediately<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">281</span>
-the famous Preobragensky Guards, and they
-declared themselves ready to stand by the side of the
-new government. The President of the Duma received
-them, and declared to them that the executive
-committee which had been constituted was going to
-appoint a provisional government; of the Czar, there
-was no longer any question. It had become evident
-that his army would no longer support his authority
-or fight for him and for his dynasty. Soon the troops
-composing the garrisons of Tsarskoie Selo, Peterhof,
-and Gatschina left their quarters and joined the mutineers.
-The Revolution had become an accomplished
-fact.</p>
-
-<div id="i_280" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 26em;">
- <img src="images/i_280.jpg" width="1624" height="2312" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Revolutionary Crowd in Petrograd</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>The new executive committee displayed considerable
-patriotism at this juncture. It might have provoked
-enormous enthusiasm in its favour had it revealed
-what it knew concerning the peace negotiations
-entered into by the Empress, but this might
-have given a pretext for explosions of wrath on the
-part of the mob, which could easily have ended in
-excesses, compromising the dignity of the Revolution.
-It therefore decided to keep back from the public its
-knowledge on this subject, and contented itself with
-arresting the ministers, and all the persons whom it
-suspected of having lent themselves to this intrigue,
-and it simply empowered two members of the Duma,
-Mr. Goutschkoff and Mr. Schoulguine, to proceed
-to Pskov, where it was known that the Emperor had
-arrived the day before, to ask the latter to abdicate
-in favour of his son. Nicholas II. in the meanwhile
-had arrived at headquarters which were then in Mohilev,
-and where no one seemed to know anything about<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">282</span>
-what was going on in Petrograd. None of the people
-about him even suspected that a storm was brewing
-which would overturn in a few hours a power which
-they considered far too formidable for anything to
-be able to shake. The only person who was kept
-informed of the course which events were taking was
-the head of the Staff, General Alexieieff, who had
-been won over from the very first to the cause of the
-Revolution, and who, if one is to believe all that
-one hears, played all the time a double game.
-It was he who received all the telegrams addressed
-to the Emperor, and who communicated
-them to him. The latter at last was shaken out
-of his equanimity, and gave orders to prepare his
-train to return to Tsarskoie Selo. He took this decision
-in consequence of a message from the commander
-of the Palace, addressed to General Voyeikoff
-the head of the Okhrana, where the latter was
-advised that the presence of the Sovereign was necessary,
-because the troops of the garrison in the Imperial
-residence had mutineed, and the safety of the
-Empress and of her children was endangered. But in
-spite of the orders given to press the departure of the
-Imperial train it somehow could not be got ready as
-quickly as was generally the case, so that it was only
-during the night from the 12th to the 13th of March,
-that it started at last. It went the usual route as
-far as the station of Lichoslav, where it was met with
-the news that a revolutionary government had been
-formed at Petrograd which had seized the railway
-lines and appointed a deputy to take them in charge.
-Another telegram from the military station master<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">283</span>
-of the Nicholas station in Petrograd instructed the
-officials at Lichoslav to send the Imperial train to
-Petrograd, and not to Tsarskoie Selo. This was communicated
-to General Voyeikoff, who, however, gave
-directions not to heed this warning, but to proceed to
-Tsarskoie Selo, as had been arranged at first. At
-twelve o’clock at night the Imperial train reached
-Bologoie. There a railway official informed the persons
-in charge of it that Tosno and Lioubane were in
-possession of the troops which had mutineed against
-the government, and that it might be dangerous to
-proceed any further. General Voyeikoff would not
-listen to this advice, and the train went on to the
-station of Vichera, where it had perforce to stop. The
-General was told that the first train which always
-preceded the one in which the Sovereign was travelling
-had been seized by the insurgents, and the members
-of the Imperial suite who were travelling in it
-had been arrested and conveyed under escort to Petrograd.</p>
-
-<p>The Czar was awakened. General Voyeikoff informed
-him that it was impossible to proceed to Tsarskoie
-Selo, because the railway line was in the hands
-of the revolutionaries. It was then decided to go to
-Pskov, where commanded General Roussky, on whose
-fidelity the Sovereign believed that he might rely.</p>
-
-<p>But Roussky had been won over to the cause of the
-Duma, notwithstanding the fact that he had been
-loaded with favours by Nicholas II. When the latter
-reached Pskov, where the General met him at the
-railway station, the troops there had already been
-sworn over by their commander in favour of the Revolution,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">284</span>
-and were quite ready to enforce its decisions.
-The Czar knew nothing about this, and after a few
-moments’ conversation with Roussky, who acquainted
-him superficially with the spirit reigning in the army,
-he declared to him that he consented to call together
-a responsible Cabinet chosen out of the principal
-leaders of the different parties in the Duma. But the
-General replied that he feared this concession came
-too late, and that it would no longer satisfy the country
-or the army.</p>
-
-<p>On the 15th of March, Roussky succeeded in talking
-over the telephone with Rodzianko, whom he informed
-of the details of his conversation with Nicholas
-II. The president of the Duma then told him that
-the former must decide to abdicate in favour of
-his son. They spoke for more than two hours, and
-before their talk had come to an end, Roussky had
-promised to do all that lay within his power, even to
-resort to violence if need be, to further the views
-of the new government that had taken up the supreme
-authority in Russia. He went then to make his
-report to the Emperor, after which the latter signified
-his intention to resign his throne to his little boy. The
-telegram announcing this resolution, however, was not
-sent to Petrograd, because in the meanwhile there
-had reached Pskov the news that the two delegates
-sent by the Executive Committee, Mr. Goutschkoff,
-and Mr. Schoulguine, had started on their way thither,
-in order to confer personally with the Czar.</p>
-
-<p>At ten o’clock in the evening of that same day, the
-15th of March, they reached Pskov. Their intention
-had been to confer at first with General Roussky, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">285</span>
-an Imperial aide de camp met them on the platform,
-and asked them to follow him immediately into the
-presence of Nicholas II. The latter received them in
-his railway carriage. With him were old Count
-Fredericks, the Minister of his household, and a
-favourite aide de camp, General Narischkine. Nothing
-in the appearance of the Emperor could have led
-any one to suppose that something extraordinary was
-happening to him. He was as impassible as was his
-wont in all the important occasions of his life, and
-he shook hands with the delegates as if nothing whatever
-was the matter, asking them to sit down. He motioned
-Goutschkoff to a chair beside him, and Schoulguine
-opposite. Fredericks and Narischkine stood at
-some distance from the group, and Roussky, who
-came in uninvited at that moment, placed himself
-next to Schoulguine.</p>
-
-<p>Goutschkoff was the first one to speak. He was extremely
-agitated and could only control his feelings
-with difficulty, keeping his eyes riveted on the table
-and not daring to lift them up to the face of the Sovereign
-whose crown he had come to demand. But his
-speech was perfectly correct, and contained nothing
-that could have been interpreted in an offensive way.
-He exposed the whole situation, such as it was, and
-concluded by saying that the only possible manner to
-come out of it would be the abdication of the Czar
-in favour of his son under the regency of the former’s
-brother, the Grand Duke Michael Alexandrovitsch.</p>
-
-<p>At this juncture Roussky could not restrain his
-impatience, and, bending down towards Schoulguine,
-murmured in his ear: “This is already quite settled.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">286</span></p>
-
-<p>When Goutschkoff had finished his speech, Nicholas
-II. replied in a perfectly quiet and composed
-tone of voice:</p>
-
-<p>“I thought the matter over yesterday, and to-day,
-and I have made up my mind to abdicate. Until
-three o’clock I was ready to do so in favour of my
-son, but then I came to the conclusion that I could
-not part from him.”</p>
-
-<p>He stopped for a few moments, then went on:</p>
-
-<p>“I hope that you will understand this,” and after
-another pause he continued:</p>
-
-<p>“On that account, I have decided to abdicate in
-favour of my brother.”</p>
-
-<p>The delegates looked at each other, and Schoulguine
-remarked that they were not prepared for this
-complication, and that he begged permission to consult
-with his colleague. But after a short conversation
-they gave up the point, as Goutschkoff remarked
-that he did not think they had the right to mix themselves
-up in a matter where paternal feelings and
-affection came into question, and that besides a regency
-had also much to say against it, and was likely
-to lead to complications. The Emperor seemed satisfied
-that the delegates had conceded the point,
-and then he asked them whether they could undertake
-to guarantee that his abdication would pacify
-the country and not lead to any disturbances. They
-declared that they could do so. Upon this he got
-up and passed into another compartment of his railway
-carriage. In about half an hour he returned,
-holding in his hand a folded paper, which he handed
-over to Goutschkoff, saying as he did so: “Here is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">287</span>
-my abdication, will you read it?” After which he
-shook hands with the delegates and retired as if nothing
-unusual had happened, perhaps not realising that
-with one stroke of his pen he had changed not only
-his own life, but the course of Russian history, and,
-in a certain sense, destroyed the work of his glorious
-ancestor, Peter the Great.</p>
-
-<p>It is difficult here not to make some remark on the
-part played by General Roussky in this tragedy which
-without his interference would probably have taken a
-different course. It is impossible not to come to the
-conclusion that the unfortunate Czar whom he induced
-to abdicate, might have found better and more faithful
-servants than the people who forsook him in the
-hour of his peril. Very probably Roussky believed
-that he was acting in the interests of his country, which
-in a sense he was also doing, because something
-had to be attempted in order to stop the nefarious
-work of Alexandra Feodorovna, and it is certain
-that her husband would never willingly have consented
-to be parted from her. Killing a woman would
-have been disgracing oneself, together with the Revolution
-which had been accomplished under such exceptional
-circumstances; but still one would have preferred
-that the man who was instrumental in the destruction
-of the Romanoff dynasty should not have
-been one who wore on his epaulettes the initials of the
-Sovereign he was helping to dethrone. One would
-have liked him to feel some pity for the master whose
-hand he had kissed a few days before he presented to
-him the pen with which he ordered him to sign his
-own degradation. In spite of the impassibility preserved<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">288</span>
-by Nicholas II. during the last hours of his
-reign, it is likely that the tragedy which took place
-at Pskov must have been one of the most poignant
-that has ever assailed a Sovereign, who, after having
-reigned for twenty-two years, found himself, in the
-course of a few hours, reduced to utter powerlessness
-and compelled to give up of his own accord
-the crown which his father had bequeathed to
-him, and which he had hoped to leave in his turn to
-the son, whom fate and perhaps a mistaken feeling of
-affection had made him despoil. He was not a bad
-man after all, although he had done many a bad action;
-he was a tender father, and the thought of his
-child must have added to the moral agony of his soul.
-By what means he was induced to put his name at the
-bottom of the document which snatched away from
-him the sceptre which he had dropped on his coronation
-day in Moscow, remains still a mystery. Whether
-violence was used, or whether he was persuaded by
-the eloquence of Roussky alone to give up the inheritance
-of his race, is a thing which the future alone will
-reveal to us. It is probable that he found himself compelled
-to come to his decision in some way or other,
-and perhaps the threat to reveal the treason against
-his allies in which he had participated, and which had
-been the work of the Empress, was the most powerful
-argument which was used to oblige him to sign his
-abdication. It was after all better to fall as a weak
-man than to be covered with shame in the eyes of the
-world. He was perhaps told to choose between
-degradation and dishonour, and he cannot be blamed
-if he refused to resign himself to the latter.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">289</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II_V">CHAPTER V</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">The</span> abdication of Nicholas II. was but one of the
-acts of a drama the end of which is awaited with anxiety
-not only in Russia, but in the whole of the world.
-Like everything else that he had ever done, it was not
-performed in time, and it was badly executed. His
-own selfishness, together with that of his wife, had
-brought about catastrophes which it would have been
-relatively easy to avoid, by displaying a small amount
-of political tact, good sense, and knowledge of the real
-requirements of the Russian people. If the Czar had
-only been able to render to himself an account of all
-that was going on around him, he would in the interest
-of his dynasty have given up his son to the care
-of the nation, and allowed him to take his place under
-the regency of the Grand Duke Michael. This would
-have left Russia with a Czar, and not allowed the people
-to see that they could very well exist without one,
-which, as events have proved, has not been a particularly
-lucky experience for them. This would also have
-ensured to Nicholas II. his own liberty, because it is
-not likely that the Grand Duke Michael would have
-had his brother and sister-in-law imprisoned. But
-neither the dispossessed Monarch nor Alexandra Feodorovna
-were characters able to rise to any heights of
-unselfishness. She had not the faintest knowledge of
-the duties imposed upon her by her position as Empress<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">290</span>
-of Russia, and when she was placed between the
-alternative of seeing her husband dethroned, or being
-compelled to give up his crown to their child, she
-suggested a third one; that of substituting for the latter
-his uncle, because she thought it would be easier
-for her later on to overturn him than an Emperor
-who owned her for a mother; and that she already
-contemplated the eventuality of a protest on the part
-of Nicholas II. against the abdication to which he had
-been compelled is a fact that can hardly be denied.</p>
-
-<div id="i_290" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 38em;">
- <img src="images/i_290.jpg" width="2407" height="1596" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, Underwood &amp; Underwood, N. Y.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Bolsheviki Sailors Buried at Moscow</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>On the other hand the Grand Duke Michael could
-not have refused to act as Regent for his nephew,
-though it was, in a certain sense, natural for him to
-show some hesitation in accepting over the head of his
-brother, and of his brother’s son, the crown of their
-common ancestors. Personally the young Grand Duke
-did not care for power or for honours, and the fact
-that he was married to a lady not belonging to any
-royal house made it easier for him to resign himself to
-go on for the rest of his existence living as a very rich
-private gentleman, which he had done for a number
-of years. Pressure was also brought to bear upon him,
-in the sense that he was told by persons interested in
-his not accepting the throne that if the Constitutive
-Assembly which it was proposed to call together,
-would elect him as Emperor, it would put him later
-on in an easier position in regard to his nephew, the
-little Grand Duke Alexis, and perhaps even allow
-him to secure the possession of his empire to his own
-children after him. All these considerations put together
-decided him not to avail himself of the immediate
-opportunity which lay before him, of becoming<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">291</span>
-the Czar of All the Russias, and his proclamation on
-the subject may have been a wise one from a personal
-point of view; it was, however, disastrous as regarded
-the future fate of the dynasty, and it is doubtful now
-whether it will ever be possible for a Romanoff to
-reign again in Russia.</p>
-
-<p>The men who had made the Revolution were but
-too well aware of this fact, and they proceeded, immediately
-after this act of Renunciation, to organise
-the government of the country on the new lines which
-they hoped and wished to follow in the future. Their
-lead was followed by the nation with an enthusiasm
-which was so intense that it is no wonder it came to
-collapse so soon as was the case. Russia seemed to
-have been seized with a perfect frenzy; she was like
-a man who after having been unjustly imprisoned
-for years does not know what to make of his newly
-acquired freedom. People were literally mad with
-joy, and inclined to find that everything their new
-government wished to do was right. Hardly a voice
-of discontent arose during these first weeks that followed
-upon the abdication of Nicholas II., and this
-absolution, which was granted beforehand to the Ministry
-that had taken into its hands the direction of the
-affairs of the country, allowed the men at the head
-of it to decide the fate of the Sovereign whom they
-had helped to overthrow, in a manner perhaps different
-from what would have been done under other circumstances.</p>
-
-<p>The Czar, after having parted from Mr. Goutschkoff
-and Mr. Schoulguine at Pskov, and seen them
-leave with his abdication for Petrograd, proceeded<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">292</span>
-himself in his own special train to Mohilew, where the
-headquarters of the army were established. It is not
-easy to understand the reasons which induced him to
-do it. Perhaps he thought he would be in greater
-safety among the troops that had owned him as a chief
-but the day before than anywhere else. At that time
-he had not the slightest inkling of the treason
-of General Alexieieff, and he might have nursed the
-vague thought that the latter might lend himself to
-another effort to subdue the revolutionary movement
-which had seized hold so rapidly of the whole country.
-Others say that he wished to bid good-bye to his army
-before returning to Tsarskoie Selo to join his wife and
-family. The real motive of his determination has, however,
-not been ascertained so far, though the rumours
-going about at the time would have it that he had been
-invited to repair to headquarters by Alexieieff, who
-thought that it would be easier for him to keep his
-former Sovereign a prisoner there than anywhere else,
-until the moment when the new government should
-have decided as to what was to be done with him. That
-something of the kind must have been in his mind can
-be deduced from the fact that from the day of the
-return of Nicholas II. at Mohilew he was no longer
-allowed to see any of the officers of the Staff, or those
-attached to headquarters, and that the only person
-who visited him twice a day, as if to assure himself
-that he was still there, was General Alexieieff himself,
-and this only for a few minutes. It was also the general
-who insisted on both Count Fredericks, formerly
-Minister of the Imperial household, and General
-Voyeikoff, the head of the Okhrana, or personal police<span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">293</span>
-guard of the Czar, being sent away from Mohilew.
-He explained his request by saying that these two
-gentlemen were looked upon with such inimical feelings
-by the garrison and officers stationed at Mohilew,
-that he could not answer for their safety were they
-to remain near the Emperor. In consequence of this
-warning both of them left for Petrograd, but on
-their way thither were arrested, and conveyed under
-escort to the fortress of St. Peter and St. Paul, from
-whence Count Fredericks in view of his advanced age
-(he is over eighty), and of the precarious state of his
-health, was transferred to the Evangelical hospital.
-General Voyeikoff having been invited to tear off the
-initials of Nicholas II. from his epaulettes, proudly
-refused to do so, and declared that he had rather take
-off these epaulettes altogether. He was the only one
-who did not consent to submit to the orders of the
-government in that respect, all the other members of
-Nicholas II.’s military household having shown themselves
-but too eager to do it, General Roussky divesting
-himself of his aiguillettes five minutes after the
-Emperor had handed over his abdication to the Delegates
-sent by the Duma to require it from him.</p>
-
-<p>The unfortunate Monarch returned to Mohilew
-from Pskov on the 17th of March. On the next day
-arrived there by special train his mother, the Dowager
-Empress Marie, who, upon hearing of the misfortunes
-that had befallen her son, had hastened
-to his side. Their relations had been more than
-strained for a long time, thanks to the intrigues
-of the Empress Alexandra, but in those moments
-of agony the mother’s heart forgot aught else save<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">294</span>
-that her child was in trouble, and she rushed to him
-to try at least to help him by her presence to bear
-it. Nicholas II. felt the nobility of this conduct, and
-the few days which he spent with Marie Feodorovna
-did away with much of the bitterness that had presided
-at their intercourse with each other for some
-time. But what they must have been for the widowed
-Empress it would be hardly possible to imagine. She
-understood but too well, if he did not, the perils which
-awaited her son in the future, and the contrast which
-his reign had presented with that of his father must
-have filled her soul with agony and distress. Fate
-proved itself indeed hard for this noble woman, because
-it inflicted upon her that last, supreme sorrow,
-of seeing, before her train carried her back to this
-town of Kieff which she had made her home for the
-last two years, Nicholas II. taken away a captive to
-that palace that was to know him no longer for its
-master.</p>
-
-<p>If one is to believe all that one hears, it seems that
-it was General Alexieieff, together with General
-Roussky and a few socialist leaders, who insisted on
-the provisional government ordering the arrest of the
-former Czar and of his Consort. They represented
-to Mr. Miliukoff and to his colleagues, that it would
-be the height of imprudence to allow the Empress to
-remain at liberty and able to go on intriguing, as was
-her wont, against the new administration. On the
-other hand sending the Imperial family immediately
-abroad had also its inconveniences, because their
-presence in Denmark or in England would only have
-been a cause of embarrassment to the Allies. Then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">295</span>
-again, the hatred of the population of Petrograd
-for Alexandra Feodorovna had reached such immense
-proportions that it was feared it would give
-way to excesses against her, and even attempts to
-murder her, if some kind of satisfaction were not
-given to its incensed feelings in respect to a woman
-who was considered everywhere in the light of the
-worst of traitors. For this reason or for another, it
-is not quite clear, but most likely because of the representations
-made by Roussky and by Alexieieff, the
-Executive Committee of the Duma, which was then
-the highest authority in Russia, decided to arrest
-Nicholas II. together with his Consort.</p>
-
-<p>Four members of the Duma, Messrs. Boublikoff,
-Gribounine, Verschinine and Kalinine, were commanded
-to repair to Mohilew, and to signify to the ex-Emperor
-the decision of the government. It seems
-that what had hastened it had been the discovery of a
-correspondence between the Empress and Protopopoff,
-which the latter, in abject fear for his life, had
-himself given up to the Duma, hoping that he would
-thus be able to drive away from his own person the
-responsibility for the conspiracy which had been going
-on at Tsarskoie Selo, under the plea that he had been
-compelled to obey the orders which had been given
-to him. Apart from this correspondence, other things
-had come to light; amongst others the part that a
-Thibetan doctor, who had been a friend of Rasputin,
-and whom Madame Vyroubieva had introduced to the
-Empress, had played in the private life of the Imperial
-pair. It seems that he had given to Alexandra
-Feodorovna certain drinks and drugs, which, unknown<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">296</span>
-to him, she had administered to Nicholas II.,
-with the result that the latter had been completely
-stupefied, and had become a tool in the hands of his
-enterprising wife. The fact sounds incredible, and
-I would not have mentioned it here had it not been
-that young Prince Youssoupoff, one of those who
-had executed Rasputin, publicly spoke about it during
-an interview which after his return to Petrograd
-from the exile whither he had been sent by the Czar,
-he awarded to a correspondent of the Vovoie Vremia,
-where the account of it was published. Both these
-incidents gave a free hand to those who, from the
-very first day of the Revolution, had insisted upon
-the Empress being put under restraint, and once this
-measure was adopted, it was hardly possible not to
-extend it also to Nicholas II.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners started on March 20th for
-Mohilew. General Alexieieff had been privately informed
-as to the reason of their arriving there, and,
-unknown to others, gave orders for the Emperor’s
-train to be prepared to carry him away at a moment’s
-notice. At four o’clock of the afternoon of March
-21st, the Commissioners reached their destination,
-and they sent at once for the General, with whom they
-held a conference of about twenty minutes. He assured
-them that he had already made full preparation
-for the departure of the Monarch. They asked
-him for a list of the people in attendance on the latter,
-and noticing thereon the name of Admiral Niloff,
-who was considered to be one of the staunchest supporters
-of the Empress, they said at once that he
-could not travel in the Imperial train, and sent for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">297</span>
-him to acquaint him with the fact. Niloff asked only
-if he was to consider himself as being under arrest,
-but the commissioners assured him that they had received
-no orders to that effect.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst this was going on, Nicholas II. was lunching
-with his mother in the latter’s special train, which all
-the time of her stay in Mohilew had remained at the
-station, and which she had not left during these days.
-General Alexieieff was the one who took it upon himself
-to tell the Czar that he had been made a
-prisoner. He boarded the train of the Empress,
-pushed himself most unceremoniously into the carriage
-where she was sitting with her son, and acquainted
-the latter with his fate. Neither the deposed
-Sovereign nor the widowed Empress said a
-word. She simply got up and went to the window.
-She saw a crowd of people standing around her train,
-and the one that was about to carry away her son, then
-she turned back, and folded him in one long embrace.
-Speech was impossible to either of them and Marie
-Feodorovna remained tearless all through this tragedy.</p>
-
-<p>On the platform were standing several officers
-who had formerly been attached to the person of the
-Emperor, whilst he had been in command of the army.
-They were waiting to say good-bye to their former
-chief. A guard, no longer of honour alas! was also
-standing at the door of the railway compartment assigned
-to him, who a few days before had been the
-Czar of All the Russias, together with the commissioners
-of the Duma, into whose hands Alexieieff delivered
-his prisoner. Nicholas II. passed on from his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">298</span>
-mother’s train to his own. Every head was uncovered;
-he spoke to no one, and no one spoke. A silence
-akin to that of the grave prevailed. Standing at the
-window of her carriage could be seen the figure of the
-Empress Marie watching this sad departure. A few
-minutes later the train started on its mournful journey.
-Another act in this drama had come to an end.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst this was going on at Mohilew, the officer in
-command of the garrison of Petrograd, General
-Korniloff, had repaired to Tsarskoie Selo. From the
-station he telephoned to Count Benckendorff, the head
-of the Imperial household, asking him when he could
-see the Empress. The Count asked him to wait a few
-minutes at the instrument, and then told him that
-Alexandra Feodorovna would be ready to receive him
-in half an hour. At the appointed time the General
-was introduced into the presence of the Sovereign
-who entered the room dressed in deep black, but as
-haughty as ever, and asked him in ironical tones to
-what she was indebted for the honour of his visit.
-Korniloff got up, and briefly communicated to her the
-decision of the government in respect to her person,
-and warned her that the Palace would be strictly
-watched, and all communications between her and the
-outside world forbidden. The Empress then enquired
-whether her personal servants and those of her
-children would be left to her, and after having been
-reassured as to that point, she withdrew as impassible
-as ever, though strong hysterics seized her as soon as
-she was once more alone in her private apartments.</p>
-
-<p>The guard in charge of the Palace was changed; the
-telephone and private post and telegraph office were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">299</span>
-taken over by a staff which General Korniloff had
-brought over with him from Petrograd, and the Empress
-was informed that she could not leave her rooms,
-even for a walk, without the permission of the officer
-in charge of the troops quartered in the Imperial residence.
-Though no orders had been issued in regard to
-her personal attendants, yet the proud Princess was
-to find that most of them had left her of their own accord.
-Her children were all ill with a severe attack
-of measles, but this did not prevent the salaried
-domestics who up to that moment had been so happy
-and eager to be allowed the privilege of serving her,
-deserting her in the hour of her need. The few friends
-she thought she could rely upon were in prison. She
-was alone, all alone; and so she was to remain until
-the end. The devotion with which Marie Antoinette
-was surrounded during the tragedy of her existence
-was not known by Alexandra Feodorovna in the
-drama of her life. She had made far too many enemies
-during the time of her splendour and prosperity
-to find any one willing to cheer and comfort her in
-the hour of her misfortune.</p>
-
-<p>And the next day her husband was brought back
-to that Palace of Tsarskoie Selo they had both liked
-so much, brought back a prisoner to find her captive.
-What did she think when she saw him again? Did she
-realise at last all the evil which she had done, all the
-misery, which, thanks to her influence, had overtaken
-the Emperor whose crown she had shared? How did
-she feel in presence of this catastrophe, of this wreck
-of all her ambitions, plans and hopes? Outwardly
-she made no sign that she understood the full significance<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">300</span>
-of the events that had swallowed her up in their
-depths, together with her pride and haughtiness. She
-only manifested some emotion when told that the body
-of Rasputin had been exhumed and burned publicly
-by exasperated crowds. Otherwise she remained
-silent and if not resigned at least disdainful, even
-when she was subjected to a close interrogation by
-General Korniloff, who was deputed to examine her
-as to certain points in the correspondence which Mr.
-Protopopoff had surrendered to the Duma. She denied
-to every one the right to question her; she proudly
-refused to reply to the demands addressed to her,
-and it was only when she was alone in her rooms that
-she used to give way to terrible fits of despair at the
-loss of that grandeur by which her head had been
-turned. Her children were so ill that they could not
-even be told of the change that had taken place in
-their existences and destinies. Her husband was too
-much crushed by the weight of all the calamities which
-had fallen upon him to be able to comfort her in any
-way. Her friends had left her, her attendants had
-forsaken her, her family had abandoned her....
-And it was thus, amidst the stillness of sorrow and of
-anxiety, that the curtain was to fall upon the tragedy
-of Nicholas II. and of Alexandra Feodorovna, or at
-least upon one of its principal acts....</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div id="toclink_301" class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">301</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PART_III"><span class="larger">PART III<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE RIDDLE OF THE FUTURE</span></span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">303</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CONCLUSION">CONCLUSION</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="firstword">More</span> than one year has gone by since the events
-narrated in this book, and it is possible now to throw
-a retrospective glance on them, as well as on all the
-tragedies that have followed the fall of the Romanoffs.
-It has been proved beyond doubt that it is not
-sufficient to destroy a political system and to overturn
-a monarchy. These must be replaced by something
-else, and it is this something else which Russia
-has been vainly looking for during the last twelve
-months. After the abdication of Nicholas II., successors
-had to be found to take up the power which
-had been snatched out of his hands owing to the
-clamours of public indignation at his weakness of
-character and want of comprehension of the needs of
-his people. These successors, who were taken here
-and there in the hazards of an adventure brought
-about by the intrigues of a few and by the cowardice
-of many, who were they? What did they represent?
-And what elements of strength did they possess?
-They were called upon to take the direction of the destinies
-of their Fatherland in an hour of national
-crisis, such as it had never known before in the whole
-course of its history, and to try to save a situation
-which had become already so entangled that it had
-almost reached the limits of desperation. It is possible
-to-day to pass judgment on the first government<span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">304</span>
-that assumed authority after the fall of the unfortunate
-Czar. And, much as one would like to
-think well of it, it must be admitted that though it
-was composed of men of great talent and integrity,
-it did not possess one single character determined
-enough and strong enough to deliver it from the
-demagogues who had secured an entry into it, and
-from the anarchist elements that had tried from the
-very outset to impose themselves upon it and their
-doctrines. Moreover these men were devoid of experience,
-and they believed sincerely (there can be
-no doubt as to this point) but absolutely erroneously,
-that it was sufficient for them and their party to come
-to the foreground in order to bring about in Russia
-an era of bliss such as exists only in fairy tales.
-Among them was found Alexander Kerensky, a Socialist,
-one of the leaders of the Labour Party, an
-indifferent lawyer but a most eloquent speaker, who,
-better than any one else in Russia, understood the art
-of stirring the souls and appealing to the passions
-of the crowds upon which he relied to keep him in
-power; and who by his wonderful speeches could easily
-lead these crowds upon any road he wished to
-have them follow, though it might not land them
-where they imagined they were going. Kerensky
-imposed himself upon the Revolution in the same
-way he imposed himself upon a jury, and he treated
-it as he would have treated a jury during a criminal
-trial. Of politics he had but a hazy idea; of
-the art of government he understood nothing. He
-believed in the value of words, and imagined that
-he could establish in Russia an ideal State, living<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">305</span>
-upon ideal principles. But at one time he was popular,
-and people thought him a strong man, whilst he
-was only an eloquent demagogue. With this he had
-an overbearing character, would not admit contradiction,
-and soon was at variance with his colleagues in
-the ministry, who, unfortunately for Russia, were
-as weak as he was himself but with less tyrannical
-dispositions; they retired when they found that
-they could not prevent him from carrying out his
-plans of reforming the army and of abolishing its
-military discipline, without which no troops in the
-world could be expected to stand bravely in presence
-of an attacking foe. It is a thousand pities
-that men like Paul Milyukoff, Prince George Lvoff,
-Rodzianko and others, to whose initiative was due
-the success of the Revolution, allowed themselves
-to be overruled by Kerensky, until he was left
-alone to bear upon his shoulders the whole burden
-of the government and the whole responsibility
-of the war, when he collapsed like a weak
-reed at the first real attack directed against
-him.</p>
-
-<div id="i_304" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 38em;">
- <img src="images/i_304.jpg" width="2425" height="1613" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, Underwood &amp; Underwood, N. Y.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Kerensky Inspiring Troops to Support Revolutionary Government</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>Another misfortune connected with the government
-that replaced that of Nicholas II. was that it
-failed to recognise the terrible German propaganda
-that was carried on with renewed energy in Russia
-after the Revolution. It would not believe in its
-danger, and it could not bring itself to employ violence
-to put an end to the Socialist or, rather, anarchist
-agitation fomented by German intrigues and
-kept up by German money, which alone has rendered
-possible the triumph of Bolschevikism and the seizure<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">306</span>
-of supreme power by people such as Lenine,
-Trotzky, Kameneff, and other personalities of the
-same kind, and the same doubtful or, rather, not
-doubtful reputation.</p>
-
-<p>And yet it would have been relatively easy to put
-an end to the career of these men, had one only applied
-oneself to do so in time and bravely faced the
-criticisms of the people who were in their pay, or in
-their employ. The whole story of the Lenine-Trotzky
-intrigue has not yet been told, at least not
-here in America; and it may not be without interest
-to disclose some of its details. When Milyukoff and
-Prince Lvoff proceeded to form a government after
-the overthrow of the Monarchy, they offered the portfolio
-of Justice to a Moscow lawyer called Karensky
-(nothing to do with Alexander Kerensky) who enjoyed
-the reputation of being one of the most eloquent,
-and, at the same time, honest members of the
-Moscow Bar. They called him to Petrograd, where
-they held several consultations with him. Karensky
-declared himself ready to accept the position offered
-him, but only on one condition: that he would be
-given an absolutely free hand to proceed with the
-greatest energy and vigour against all the German
-spies and agents with which the Capital was infested,
-and that he would also be allowed the same free hand
-in his dealings with the anarchists who were beginning
-to make themselves heard. Neither Prince
-Lvoff nor Milyukoff would agree to give him these
-powers he demanded. They feared that if they did
-so they would be reproached for doing exactly the
-same as the government that had crumbled down a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">307</span>
-few days before; and they also objected to allowing
-a member of the cabinet to dispose at his will and
-fancy of such grave questions as those involved in repression
-exercised against any political party, no
-matter of what shade or opinion. Karensky thereupon
-refused the position offered to him, but accepted
-the post of State Prosecutor under Alexander
-Kerensky at first, and, afterwards, when the latter
-had been transferred to the war office, under Mr.
-Pereviazeff. This allowed him to watch the growing
-German agitation, connected with anarchist conspiracies,
-which was beginning to feel its way previous
-to its explosion. He had heard about Lenine
-and Trotzky, and was from the first convinced that
-they were both in the employ of the Kaiser either
-directly or indirectly, and he set himself to obtain
-proof that such was the case. He had wondered at
-the easiness with which Lenine had been able to obtain
-a passport from the German government authorising
-him to cross the dominions of William II. on his
-way from Switzerland to Russia. He, therefore,
-had the correspondence of both Lenine and Trotzky
-watched, and very soon his attention was attracted
-by the fact that they were both sending and receiving
-constantly telegrams to and from Sweden and
-Finland, all of which were deeply concerned with the
-health of a certain “Kola” who seemed to be always
-getting ill, and then better, in a sort of regular way
-which appeared more than strange. This was the
-first remark which led to the result that at last, it
-was established, to the absolute satisfaction of Karensky
-and of others, that Trotzky, Lenine, Kameneff,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">308</span>
-a certain Zinovieff, a lawyer called Kozlovsky, a
-lady going by the name of Madame Soumentay, and
-the wife of Lenine, had received not less than <em>nineteen
-millions of rubles</em> from the German government.
-This money had been sent through so many
-different channels that it was next to impossible to
-discover its origin. It had passed through eight
-banks, and, I do not now remember, through how
-many private hands. But the people whose names
-I have just mentioned had received it, partly in Russian
-banknotes, and partly in banknotes printed in
-Berlin, which were supposed to be Russian, of a new
-type with which the German government was beginning
-to meet its obligations so as not to make them
-too heavy for its own Exchequer.</p>
-
-<p>Karensky sought Prince Lvoff, who was still
-Prime Minister at the time, and asked him to sign
-an order for the arrest of Trotzky and Lenine. The
-Prince had not the courage to do so, and the State
-Prosecutor had, perforce, to wait. But in July the
-first insurrectionary movement, engineered by the
-Bolscheviki, broke out, and then Karensky thought
-that his duty obliged him to assume the responsibilities
-which the ministry did not care to face. By that
-time Prince Lvoff, Milyukoff and others had resigned,
-and Kerensky was virtually master of the
-situation. But he was weak, weaker perhaps than
-any of his colleagues had been, and he openly declared
-to the State Prosecutor that he felt afraid to
-arrest the two men who were ultimately to lead Russia
-to her destruction. Karensky, however, was
-made of sterner stuff, and he bravely decided to act<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">309</span>
-for himself, and signed alone the order for the incarceration
-of both Lenine and Trotzky. But the
-former had been warned, and had fled to Finland.
-A thorough search was made of the flat which he occupied,
-where the sum of one million and a half of
-rubles was found in possession of his wife, who could
-not explain whence she had this money. Trotzky
-at the same time was incarcerated and brought before
-the State Prosecutor. The latter, in order to
-justify the course of action he had taken, had caused
-to be published in all the Petrograd and Moscow
-newspapers an account of the discoveries which he
-had made, together with the names of the people
-who had participated in the work of treason he was
-determined to suppress. A curious thing in the
-story is that none of the papers that printed it (and
-they all did with the exception of the Bolschevik organ
-<cite>Prawda</cite>), was allowed to get abroad, which accounts
-for the fact of no publicity having been given
-to the story. Petrograd then was exasperated
-against Trotzky to such an extent that Karensky
-feared he would be lynched, and caused him to be
-conveyed to the prison called “Kresty” in an automobile
-driven by his own son, as no chauffeur would
-undertake to drive him there. What happened later
-on remains to this day a mystery. The Minister of
-Justice, Mr. Pereviazeff, resigned his functions two
-days after the arrest of Trotzky, and his place was
-taken by Nekrassoff, who, when asked by the Committees
-of soldiers and peasants who had begun by
-that time to be all powerful, to give the reasons which
-had induced the government to resort to this measure,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">310</span>
-became so embarrassed in his replies that these
-Committees insisted on Trotzky being set at liberty,
-which was done three days afterwards. Karensky
-then resigned his functions, and returned to Moscow
-whence, however, he was obliged to fly and seek
-a refuge in Kharkov, as soon as the Bolscheviki
-seized the government. The latter inaugurated a
-system of terrorism that claimed more victims than
-is known abroad, completed the disorganisation of
-the army, and at last started the negotiations which
-culminated in the shameful peace signed at Brest
-Litovsk. After three and a half years’ war and a
-Revolution, Russia as an independent nation ceased
-to exist, and became virtually, and to all appearance,
-a German province.</p>
-
-<div id="i_310" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 30em;">
- <img src="images/i_310.jpg" width="1619" height="2162" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Peace Document of Delegates at Brest-Litovsk Conference</span></p></div></div>
-
-<p>This is the story as it reads, and sad enough it
-sounds. Germany can look triumphantly on the
-success of her work and glory in it. Happily for
-Russia, for the world and for the cause of civilisation,
-it is only one chapter of it that has come to an
-end. Russia, the great Russia of the past, is not
-dead. She possesses far more vitality than she is
-given credit for, and she still has sound, true, and
-honest elements amidst her citizens. When attempting
-to judge her, one ought to think of the great
-French Revolution, and to remember that in France,
-also, it took years before its work was at last consolidated
-and set upon a sound basis. One must
-bear in mind that in France, too, a period of terrorism
-made people despair of the future and fear that
-the end of their Fatherland had come. Our Russian
-Revolution is hardly one year old, and though<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">311</span>
-perhaps one will be aghast at what I am going to
-say, I think that she has not yet passed through that
-phase of real terror which is always a symptom of
-great upheavals such as Russia has undergone and
-is undergoing. We may see worse things yet; we
-may live to look upon the erection of a scaffold on
-one of the squares of Petrograd or of Moscow. But
-this will not mean that the end of Russia has come,
-nor that she has become, or will remain, a German
-province. The hatred of the Teuton, on the contrary,
-will grow as events progress and the great disillusion
-arrives. A few more months, and the peasants
-whom Trotzky, Lenine and their crew have lured
-with false promises will perceive that these demagogues
-have been unable to fulfil all that they had
-sworn to them they would do. They will realise that
-their lot has become under the rule of these new masters
-ten thousand times harder than was the case
-before, and they will be the first to rise against these
-deceivers. If we are to believe all that we hear from
-people who have arrived here from Russia recently,
-this movement of reaction has already started, and
-it is bound to grow stronger with every day and hour
-which goes by. The peace signed at Brest Litovsk
-will remain verily a “scrap of paper” which will end
-by being thrown into the waste-paper basket. Not
-one Russian will recognise it, not one Russian will
-accept it; the Germans feel it themselves, and are
-preparing for a new struggle which may have a far
-different conclusion from the one which they are now
-trying to persuade the world has come to an end.</p>
-
-<p>What has helped them, apart from the treason of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">312</span>
-Trotzky, Lenine and their followers, who have only
-had one idea in heart and brain, that of enriching
-themselves at the expense of the country for which
-they feel neither affection nor pity, has been the state
-of confusion into which Russia was thrown by the
-Revolution that broke up so unexpectedly—a confusion
-which can only be compared to that which
-prevails in the house of a man whom sudden ruin has
-overtaken, when every servant or menial in the place
-tries to steal and take something in the general disaster
-or to profit out of it in some way or other. In
-Petrograd, in Moscow, as well as all over the country,
-looting took place, not only of private property,
-but also of the Public Exchequer, especially of the
-latter, and the Russian officials, who had always been
-grasping, became all at once bandits after the style
-of Rinaldo Rinaldino, or any other brigand illustrated
-by drama or comedy. They stole; they took; they
-carried away; they seized everything they could lay
-their hands upon. To begin with the silver spoons
-of the unfortunate Czar and as many of the Crown
-Jewels as they could get hold of, down to the paper
-money issued by the State Treasury, of which, as the
-Kerensky government had to own before the so-called
-National Assembly at Moscow, eight hundred
-millions were put into circulation every month after
-the Revolution, in contrast with two hundred millions
-which were issued formerly. I do not think that
-it is a libel on these officials to suppose that part of
-this fabulous sum found its way into their pockets,
-instead of being applied to the needs of the nation or
-of the army.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">313</span></p>
-
-<p>This wholesale plundering, if I may be forgiven
-for using such a word, was of course not the fault of
-Kerensky and of his colleagues, under whose ministry
-it began, but whereas the latter realised immediately
-that it was taking place and resigned rather than
-countenance it; the former, though aware of it, found
-his hands tied in every attempt he made to subdue
-it, by the fact that those who were principally guilty
-were either his personal friends or his former partisans,
-or people with whom he had associated in earlier
-times, and with whom he had compromised himself
-to a considerable extent. With regard to those
-associates of his former life, Kerensky found himself
-in the same position as Napoleon III. after his accession,
-in presence of the Italian Carbonari, who
-claimed from the Sovereign the fulfilment of the
-promises made to them by the exiled Pretender.
-Kerensky had also given certain pledges at a time
-when he never expected he might be called upon to
-redeem them; and when he became a Minister he had
-to give way to the exigencies of all the radicals, anarchists,
-and extreme socialists among whom he had
-laboured, and with whom he had worked at the overthrow
-of the detested and detestable government of
-the Czar. He could not cast them overboard or set
-them aside. He had to listen to them, and in a certain
-sense to submit to their demands. For example,
-in the case of the exile to Siberia of the unfortunate
-Nicholas II., a measure which in the first days of the
-Revolution he had declared that he would never resort
-to, but which he nevertheless executed under conditions
-of the most intense cruelty, simply because it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">314</span>
-was demanded from him by persons to whom he could
-not say no. People who knew him well say that the
-fact of his powerlessness caused him intense suffering,
-but he had neither the strength to assert himself
-in presence of his former comrades, nor, perhaps, the
-will to do so.</p>
-
-<p>In a certain sense, he was the man of the hour,
-“le maitre de l’heure,” as the Franco-Arab proverb
-says. He was even to some extent the one indispensable
-element without which it would have been
-impossible for a Republic ever to become established
-in Russia. And everybody seemed to agree, one
-year ago, that a Republic was the only form of government
-possible after the fall of the Romanoffs. Of
-this Republic Kerensky rapidly became the symbol
-and at the same time the emblem of a new Russia; a
-regenerated and better one, in the opinion of his followers
-of the moment; a worse one from what it had
-been formerly, in that of his adversaries, but at all
-events of a different Russia from the one previously
-known.</p>
-
-<p>But, unfortunately, Kerensky was neither a statesman
-like Milyukoff nor an administrator like Prince
-Lvoff, nor even a business man like Konovaloff. He
-lacked experience and knowledge of the routine of
-government. He had but a limited amount of education,
-no idea of the feelings of people born and
-reared in a different atmosphere from that in which
-he had grown up. He was only a leader of men, or
-rather of the passions of men; and, unfortunately for
-him, what Russia required was more a ruler than a
-leader, of whom she had more than she wanted,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">315</span>
-though perhaps at that particular moment none so
-powerful as Kerensky. He had emerged a Dictator
-out of a complete and general chaos; and he was to
-add to it the whole weight of his unripe genius and of
-his exuberant personality. After having been the
-Peter the Hermit of a new Crusade, he was to become
-the false Prophet of a creed which he had preached
-with an eloquence such as has been seldom surpassed,
-but in which it is doubtful whether he himself believed.
-Had he consented, or had he been able to
-work in common with more experienced men than
-himself towards the triumph of the Republican cause,
-he would have taken in the annals of his country the
-place of one of its greatest men. As it has turned
-out, he will rank among its most interesting and brilliant
-historical figures, but only as a figure. His
-disappearance also has had something romantic about
-it, which will perhaps appeal to certain people in
-Russia, and which will disgust others. The world is
-wondering where he has gone and what has become
-of him; but everything points to the fact that he has
-either done away with himself, as he often said he
-would do in case of failure, or else that he has been
-murdered by the Bolscheviki during those days when
-the Neva and the different canals of Petrograd were
-carrying away to the sea hundreds of dead bodies
-every day. At least this is the opinion of persons
-who were in Russia at the time Kerensky vanished
-into space; and very probably this opinion will prove
-to be a true one.</p>
-
-<p>The moderate liberal parties in Russia, who are the
-really intelligent, would, of course, wish their country’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_316">316</span>
-future government to become a Republic modelled
-after that of the United States. At the same
-time, if we are to believe the rare news which reaches
-us from Petrograd, and especially from Moscow, one
-hears people say now what they would never have
-dared to mention a few months ago—i. e., that a constitutional
-Monarchy, if it could be established, would
-offer certain advantages. I hasten to say that, personally,
-I do not see where these advantages would
-come in, unless they were associated with a new dynasty.
-But at the same time, together with many
-others, when I look at all that has taken place recently
-in my poor country, I cannot but feel sad at
-the great uncertainty as to the morrow which the
-Revolution of last year has opened, not only before
-Russia, but before the whole world, and I would like
-to see this incertitude come to an end in some way or
-other.</p>
-
-<p>I have but little more to add. It is difficult even
-to try to guess what the future holds in store for the
-former realm of the Romanoffs. The only thing
-which one can say at present with any certainty is that
-Russia will never honour the signature of Trotzky in
-regard to the peace treaty concluded with Germany.
-Any hesitation Russia might have had as to this point
-in her moments of discouragement, that must have
-made themselves felt at times, disappeared after the
-message sent by the President of the United States
-to the Soviets in Moscow. This message dispelled
-any fear the Russians might have had as to whether
-their allies had abandoned her. At present the country
-knows that it does not stand alone, and that any<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317">317</span>
-resistance it has to offer to its foes will be appreciated
-and encouraged. This is much, indeed this is
-the one thing which was capable of rousing the energies
-of the whole of that vast land which the Teutons
-imagine that they have conquered. I can but repeat:
-Russia is not dead yet. Russia shall show the world
-that, betrayed as she has been, she can still lift the
-yoke put upon her, save herself, and help to save the
-world for the great cause of Democracy.</p>
-
-<p>And the conclusion of this book? I do not pretend
-to offer any. I simply invite my readers to
-draw the one they like best. I ask them only to do
-so with kindness and an appreciation of the difficulties
-of the situation. I have not tried to write a volume
-of controversy; I have merely attempted to describe,
-as well as I could, the Revolution and the
-events which preceded it, among which the extraordinary
-story of Rasputin figures so curiously.</p>
-
-<p>I have given the narrative as it was related to me
-by people whose veracity I have no reason to challenge.
-It is certain, however, that many of its details
-are still unknown, and it is doubtful whether
-they will be revealed before the end of the war. At
-present there are too many persons interested in dissimulating
-the part which they have played in the
-drama, either out of fear, or because they do not think
-the time opportune. It seems sometimes as if there
-exists a tacit understanding among the actors of the
-tragedy to hide the details of the conspiracy which
-came to an end by the signature of the Manifest of
-Pskov. This signature was wrenched, no one knows
-yet by just what means, out of the weakness of Nicholas<span class="pagenum" id="Page_318">318</span>
-II!—that unfortunate Monarch who has never
-realised the obligations and duties he owed to the nation
-that dethroned him. The last crowned Romanoff
-had never had, unfortunately for him, and still
-more unfortunately for his subjects, a sense of appreciation
-of the real value of facts or of events,
-which sometimes is even more useful than a great intelligence,
-to those whom destiny has entrusted with
-the difficult task of ruling over nations. He believed
-that his duty consisted in upholding the superannuated
-traditions of autocracy, and he did not perceive
-that these traditions had been maintained so
-long only because there had existed strong men to
-enforce them. Honest and kind of heart though he
-was, at least in many respects, he had contrived in
-spite of these qualities to rouse against him from the
-very first days of his accession to the Throne all the
-social classes of his country. He had irritated the
-aristocracy, wounded the feelings of the army and of
-the people, and excited against himself the passions
-of the proletariat and of the peasantry, by his weakness
-of character and his obstinacy in surrounding
-himself with the most hated and most despised elements
-in Russia. A few days before his fall he
-might still have made a successful effort to save himself
-and his dynasty, had he only followed the disinterested
-advice which was forwarded to him by
-his Allies and consented to the establishment of a responsible
-Ministry. He preferred to listen to his
-wife and to the people she kept around her. Instead
-of trying to conciliate his subjects, he threatened
-them, until the expected occurred, and he lost
-not only his crown but also his liberty; and has perhaps
-forfeited his life and that of his family.</p>
-
-<p>But the future, the future, my readers will ask me,
-What will be the future, what shall it bring forth for
-Russia? The only reply possible to this eager question
-is to quote the words of Victor Hugo in his wonderful
-Ode to Napoleon: “The future belongs to no
-one, it is controlled by God alone.”</p>
-
-<div id="i_318" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 39em;">
- <img src="images/i_318.jpg" width="2462" height="1609" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><cite>Copyright, 1918, International Film Service, Inc.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The House at Brest-Litovsk Where Peace Negotiations Between the Russian Bolsheviki and the
-Austro-Germans Were Conducted</span></p></div></div>
-
-<div class="chapter"><div class="transnote">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="Transcribers_Notes">Transcriber’s Notes</h2>
-
-<p>Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made
-consistent when a predominant preference was found
-in the original book; otherwise they were not changed.
-Some similarly-spelled names were left as-is, as
-neither variation matches current usage.</p>
-
-<p>Simple typographical errors were corrected; unbalanced
-quotation marks were remedied when the change was
-obvious, and otherwise left unbalanced.</p>
-
-<p>Illustrations in this eBook have been positioned
-between paragraphs and outside quotations. In versions
-of this eBook that support hyperlinks, the page
-references in the List of Illustrations lead to the
-corresponding illustrations.</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RASPUTIN AND THE RUSSIAN REVOLUTION ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 80819be..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_001.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_001.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2580c91..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_001.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_034.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_034.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 289fab0..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_034.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_074.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_074.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4d66acb..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_074.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_094.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_094.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8ff564b..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_094.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_200.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_200.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 30bea0a..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_200.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_220.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_220.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a89cc7f..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_220.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_230.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_230.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3f84400..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_230.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_240.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_240.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b8a6e71..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_240.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_250.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_250.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 03f5708..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_250.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_260.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_260.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 29e264e..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_260.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_276.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_276.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 448852a..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_276.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_280.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_280.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0002763..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_280.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_290.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_290.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cf6599c..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_290.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_304.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_304.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e5fd2eb..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_304.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_310.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_310.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 53694f8..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_310.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66358-h/images/i_318.jpg b/old/66358-h/images/i_318.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 447f62f..0000000
--- a/old/66358-h/images/i_318.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ